|
DhammaTalks.net |
|
Venerable Acariya
Mun Bhuridatta Thera
- A Spiritual Biography
by Acariya Maha Boowa Ñanasampanno
Translated by Bhikkhu Dick Silaratano
|
|

|
Contents:
Translator's
Introduction:
About the Author; Author's Preface
1. The Early Years:
The Prophesy; The Sign; Acariya Sao Kantasilo; Sarika Cave; Savaka
Arahants
2. The Middle Years:
The Dhutanga Practices; A Monk's Fear of Ghosts; Local Customs
and Beliefs; Hardship and Deprivation; Graduated Teaching; The
Difference is in the Heart; The Well-digging Incident; An
Impeccable Human Being
3. A Heart Released:
The Spiritual Partner; The Most Exalted Appreciation
4. The Chiang Mai
Years:
The Boxer; Tigers in Disguise; Powerful Magic; Big Brother
Elephant; Youthful Exuberance; The Mysterious Effects of
Kamma; Hungry Ghosts; The Hypercritical Naga; The Death of An
Arahant; The Spiritual Warrior
5.
Unusual Questions, Enlightening Answers:
Complete Self-assurance; Past Lives
6. The Final Years:
Fellowship With Pigs; Harsh Training Methods; The
Therapeutic Qualities of Dhamma; Tigers Make the Best
Teachers; His Final Illness; The Funeral
7. The Legacy:
Relics Transformed; Other Mysteries; The Adventures of
Acariya Chob; Conclusion
Appendix 1:
Answering the Skeptics
Appendix 11:
Citta - The Mind's Essential Knowing Nature
Endnotes
Glossary
|
|
Venerable Acariya Mun Bhuridatta Thera - A Spiritual
Biography by Acariya Maha Boowa Ñanasampanno
Translated by Bhikkhu Dick Silaratano
This book is a free, charitable gift of the Buddha-Dhamma
& may not be offered for sale.
© 2005 All commercial rights reserved.
www.forestdhammabooks.com
ISBN 974-92007-4-8
U.S. Copyright Office Registration Number: TX 5-864-808
Third Printing March, 2005
Printed in Thailand by Silpa Siam Packaging & Printing
Co., Ltd.
Tel: (662) 444-3351-9
The Dhamma
should not be sold like goods in the market place.
Permission to reproduce in any way for free distribution, as a gift of
Dhamma, is hereby granted and no further permission need be obtained.
Reproduction in any way for commercial gain is prohibited.
|
|
Translator's Introduction

Venerable
Acariya Mun Bhuridatta Thera is a towering figure in contemporary Thai
Buddhism. He was widely revered and respected during his lifetime for
the extraordinary courage and determination he displayed in practicing
the ascetic way of life and for his uncompromising strictness in
teaching his many disciples. During the 50 years since his death, he has
assumed an exalted status in Buddhist circles and thus remains an
overshadowing presence whose life and teachings have become synonymous
with the Buddha’s noble quest for self-transformation.
Although
Acariya Mun (pronounced to rhyme with “sun”) left no written record of
his own, this biography, compiled by one of his close disciples some 20
years after his death, is largely responsible for introducing his life,
his achievements, and his teachings to a broad section of Buddhist
society. Through the widespread popularity of this book, many Thai
Buddhists have been given fresh hope that the spiritual liberation which
the Buddha proclaimed to the world over 2,500 years ago, and which has
been attained by so many aspirants over the succeeding centuries, is
still accessible in today’s modern age. Many Thais have expressed the
view that they had lost confidence that magga, phala, and Nibbana were
still relevant today. But, by reading Acariya Mun’s biography, they
realized that accounts of these exalted attainments are not mere
fragments of ancient history, dead and dry – but a living, luminous
legacy of self-transcendence accessible to any individual who is willing
and able to put forth the effort needed to achieve them. They have come
to understand that Buddhist monks, with their distinctive robes and
monastic vocation, are not merely clerical figures representing the
Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha: some of them are indeed living proof of the
Truth presented in the Buddha’s teaching.
The noble
aim of spiritual liberation must be accomplished by the appropriate
means: the Middle Way as taught by the Lord Buddha. Although the Buddha
forbade the use of self-mortification as a means to gain enlightenment,
he nevertheless authorized and encouraged those specialized ascetic
practices, known as dhutangas, that harmonize effectively with this
noble effort. The true Middle Way is not the smooth path of least
resistance negotiated with easy compromises and happy mediums; but
rather, it is that path of practice which most effectively counters the
mental defilements that impede progress by resisting the aspirant every
step of the way. The spiritual path is often arduous, being full of
hardship and discomfort, while the inner forces opposed to success are
formidable, and even intimidating. Thus the work of the spiritual
warrior requires potent counter measures to subvert the inertial powers
of laziness, craving, pride, and self-importance. So the Buddha
encouraged monks, who were truly keen on extricating their hearts from
the subtlest manifestations of these insidious defilements, to practice
the dhutangas. Such ascetic observances are specifically designed to
promote simplicity, humility, self-restraint, vigilance, and
introspection in a monk’s everyday life, and the Buddha was known to
praise those monks who undertook their practice.
For this
reason, the lifestyle of a Buddhist monk is founded on the ideal of life
as a homeless wanderer who, having renounced the world and gone forth
from the household, dresses in robes made from discarded cloth, depends
on alms for a living, and takes the forest as his dwelling place. This
ideal of the wandering forest monk intent on the Buddha’s traditional
spiritual quest is epitomized by the dhutanga kammatthana way of life.
Like
dhutanga, kammatthana is a term designating a specific orientation
shared by Buddhist monks who are dedicated to maintaining an austere
meditative lifestyle. Kammatthana (lit. “basis of work”) denotes an
approach to meditation practice that is directed toward uprooting every
aspect of greed, hatred, and delusion from the heart and thus
demolishing all bridges linking the mind to the cycle of repeated birth
and death. Kammatthana, with its emphasis on meditative development, and
dhutanga, with its emphasis on the ascetic way of life conducive to
intensive meditation, compliment each other perfectly in the noble
effort to transcend the cycle of rebirth. They, along with the code of
monastic discipline, are the cornerstones on which the edifice of a
monk’s practice is erected.
Both the
letter and the spirit of this ascetic life of meditation can be found
embodied in the life and teaching of Acariya Mun. From the day he first
ordained until the day he passed away, his entire way of life, and the
example he set for his disciples, were modeled on the principles
incorporated in these practices. He is credited with reviving,
revitalizing, and eventually popularizing the dhutanga kammatthana
tradition in Thailand. Through his life-long efforts, dhutanga monks (or
kammatthana monks, the two are used interchangeably) and the mode of
practice they espouse became, and still remain, a prominent feature of
the Buddhist landscape there.
Acariya Mun
was especially gifted as a motivator and teacher. Many of the monks who
trained directly under his tutelage have distinguished themselves by
their spiritual achievements, becoming well-known teachers in their own
right. They have passed on his distinctive teaching methods to their
disciples in a spiritual lineage that extends to the present day. As a
result, the dhutanga kammatthana mode of practice gradually spread
throughout the country, along with Acariya Mun’s exalted reputation.
This nationwide acclaim began to escalate during the last years of his
life and continued to grow after his death until he came to be
considered a national “saint” by almost unanimous consent. In recent
decades, he has gained recognition beyond the confines of his native
land as one of the 20th century’s truly great religious figures.
Acariya
Mun’s life epitomized the Buddhist ideal of the wandering monk intent on
renunciation and solitude, walking alone through forests and mountains
in search of secluded places that offer body and mind a calm, quiet
environment in which to practice meditation for the purpose of
transcending all suffering. His was a life lived entirely out of doors
at the mercy of the elements and the vagaries of weather. In such an
environment, a dhutanga monk developed a deep appreciation of nature.
His daily life was full of forests and mountains, rivers and streams,
caves, overhanging cliffs, and wild creatures large and small. He moved
from place to place by hiking along lonely wilderness trails in remote
frontier regions where the population was sparse and village communities
far apart. Since his livelihood depended on the alms food he collected
from those small settlements, a dhutanga monk never knew where his next
meal would come from, or whether he would get any food at all.
Despite the
hardships and the uncertainties, the forest was a home to the wandering
monk: it was his school, his training ground, and his sanctuary; and
life there was safe provided that he remained vigilant and faithful to
the principles of the Buddha’s teaching. Living and practicing in the
relatively uncultivated, undomesticated rural back Translator’s water
that comprised most of Thailand at the turn of the 20th century, a
dhutanga monk like Acariya Mun found himself wandering through a
centuries-old setting little changed from the time of the Buddha 2,500
years ago.
It is
helpful to understand the temporal and cultural background to Acariya
Mun’s wandering lifestyle. Thailand in the late 19th and early 20th
centuries was a loose confederation of principalities that were largely
inaccessible to the central authority because most of the land was
densely forested and paved roads were almost nonexistent. During that
period, 80% of Thailand’s landmass was blanketed with pristine forests
of mostly deciduous hardwoods and thick sub-tropical undergrowth. The
lives of people in the hinterland areas were sustained by subsistence
farming and the hunting of wild animals. Teeming with tigers and
elephants, the vast forests were seen as being dangerous and frightening
places, so the inhabitants banded together in village communities for
the safety and companionship they provided. In the more remote frontier
regions, such settlements were often a day’s walk from one another
following trails that made their way through uninterrupted woodland.
Forests and
the rhythms of nature were defining features of the folklore and culture
of those hardy people. To the villagers living together in isolated
communities, the vast tracts of wilderness were forbidding, inhospitable
territory where wild animals roamed freely and malevolent spirits were
said to hold sway. The huge Bengal tigers indigenous to that part of the
world were especially fearsome. Such creatures ruled not only the
forests but the fears and fantasies of local people and monks alike.
Popular
fear of those impenetrable forest areas turned them into places of
isolation and solitude where no one dared to venture alone. It was in
this remote wilderness environment that Acariya Mun and his dhutanga
monks lived and wandered, practicing the ascetic way of life. Their
meditation practice and the mental fortitude it instilled in them were
their only defences against the hardships and potential dangers they
faced every day. Forests and mountains were proven training grounds for
such monks, who saw themselves as spiritual warriors battling their own
mental defilements for the sake of ultimate victory.
The story
of Acariya Mun’s life is a vivid portrait of a consummate spiritual
warrior unrivaled in modern times who practiced the Buddha’s path to
freedom with such perfection that he left those who knew and revered him
in no doubt that he truly was a Noble disciple. A beautiful story from
beginning to end, his life is reminiscent of those famed accounts of the
Buddha’s great disciples chronicled in the ancient texts. Like theirs,
his life shows us that the spiritual ideals taught by the Buddha are
achieved by real human beings struggling against the same fundamental
hindrances that we find within ourselves. Thus we are made to feel that
the Buddha’s “ancient” path to spiritual liberation is as wholly
relevant today as it was 2,500 years ago.
To this
end, this biography of Acariya Mun is less concerned with a precise
account of events as they unfolded in Acariya Mun’s life and career than
it is with providing a source of inspiration and edification for those
devoted to Buddhist ideals. The author’s perspective is that of an
affirmative witness and advocate rather than an impartial observer
chronicling events. Being a spiritual biography, it is intended to give
us an insight into a model spiritual life. As such, this book should be
viewed above all as an exercise in contemplation.
One aspect
of Acariya Mun’s teaching career deserves special mention as it surfaces
time and again in the course of his biography. Acariya Mun possessed a
unique ability to communicate directly with nonhuman beings from many
different realms of existence. He was continually in contact with beings
in the higher and lower celestial realms, spirits of the terrestrial
realms, nagas, yakkhas, ghosts of many sorts, and even the denizens of
the hell realms – all of whom are invisible to the human eye and
inaudible to the human ear but clearly known by the inner psychic
faculties of divine sight and divine hearing.
The
comprehensive worldview underlying Buddhist cosmology differs
significantly from the view of the gross physical universe presented to
us by contemporary science. In the traditional Buddhist worldview, the
universe is inhabited not only by the gross physical beings that
comprise the human and animal worlds but also by various classes of
nonphysical, divine beings, called devas, that exist in a hierarchy of
increasing subtlety and refinement, and by numerous classes of lower
beings living in the sub-human realms of existence. Only the human and
animal worlds are discernible to normal human sense faculties. The
others dwell in a spiritual dimension that exists outside the range of
human concepts of space and time, and therefore, beyond the sphere of
the material universe as we perceive it.
It was
Acariya Mun’s remarkable, inherent capacity for communicating with many
classes of living beings that made him a teacher of truly universal
significance. Knowing that living beings throughout the sentient
universe share a common heritage of repeated existence and a common
desire to avoid suffering and gain happiness, a great teacher realizes
their common need to understand the way of Dhamma in order to fulfil
their spiritual potential and attain enduring happiness. Having the eye
of wisdom, he made no fundamental distinction between the hearts of
people and the hearts of devas, but tailored his teaching to fit their
specific circumstances and levels of understanding. Although the message
was essentially the same, the medium of communication was different. He
communicated with human beings through the medium of verbal expression,
while he used non-verbal, telepathic communication with all classes of
nonhuman beings.
To
appreciate Acariya Mun’s extraordinary abilities we must be prepared to
accept that the world we perceive through our senses constitutes only a
small portion of experiential reality; that there exists this spiritual
universe of devas and brahmas which is beyond the range of our limited
sense faculties. For in truth, the universe of the wise is much more
vast than the one perceived by the average person. The wise can know and
understand dimensions of reality that others do not even suspect exist,
and their knowledge of the principles underlying all existence gives
them an insight into the phenomenal world that defies conventional
limits.
Acariya
Mun’s finely-tuned powers of perception contacted an immense variety of
external phenomena, and in the best Buddhist tradition he spent a
considerable amount of time and energy engaged in teaching them Dhamma.
Such beings were as much a part of his personal world experience as the
wild animals in the forest and the monks he trained so tirelessly. By
virtue of his unparalleled expertise in these matters, he always felt a
special obligation toward their spiritual welfare. Such phenomena are
what Acariya Mun called “mysteries of the heart”; for they are
conscious, living beings dwelling in spiritual dimensions that are just
as real as the one we inhabit, even though those spheres lie outside the
realm of human existential concepts. The words “heart” and “mind” are
used interchangeably in Thai vernacular. “Heart” is often the preferred
term, as “mind” tends to exclude the emotional and spiritual dimensions
associated with the heart. The heart is the essential knowing nature
that forms the basic foundation of the entire sentient universe. It is
the fundamental awareness underlying all conscious existence and the
very basis of all mental and emotional processes. The heart forms the
core within the bodies of all living beings. It is the center, the
substance, the primary essence within the body. Constantly emphasizing
its paramount significance, Acariya Mun always claimed that the heart is
the most important thing in the world. For this reason, the story of
Acariya Mun’s life and teachings is a story of the heart’s struggle for
spiritual transcendence, and a revelation of the ineffable mystery of
the heart’s pure essence.
The Pali
term “citta” is a word that Acariya Mun often used when referring to
this essential knowing nature, commonly known as heart and mind. Like so
many words in the Buddhist lexicon, it is essentially a technical term
used specifically in the science of Buddhist theory and practice. Since
such terms represent salient aspects of the subject matter of this book,
some of them have been kept in their original form. Generally, in cases
where a suitably accurate English translation exists, that word has been
substituted, with the Pali term in question being annotated in an
explanatory note. There are, however, certain terms for which, due to
the complex and comprehensive nature of the truths they represent, no
truly adequate English word exists. Those specialized terms have largely
been left in the original Pali. They may be found explained in the Notes
and Glossary sections at the back of the book, and the reader is
encouraged to take full advantage of these reference materials.
About the Author:
Venerable
Acariya Maha Boowa Ñanasampanno is himself an outstanding and
distinguished figure in contemporary Thai Buddhism. He is well-known and
respected by people from all walks of life for his impeccable wisdom and
his brilliant expository skills. By aptitude and temperament, he is the
ideal person to record for posterity Acariya Mun’s life and teachings.
Spiritually, he is one of Acariya Mun’s exceptionally gifted disciples;
didactically, he is one of the dhutanga tradition’s truly masterful
spokesmen. His no-nonsense, resolute character, his extraordinary
charisma, and his rhetorical skills have established him as Acariya
Mun’s natural successor.
Born in
1913 in the northeastern province of Udon Thani, Acariya Maha Boowa was
ordained as a Buddhist monk in 1934. Having spent the first 7 years of
his monastic career studying the Buddhist canonical texts, for which he
earned a degree in Pali studies and the title “Maha”, he adopted the
wandering lifestyle of a dhutanga monk and set out to search for Acariya
Mun. Finally meeting up with him in 1942, he was accepted as a disciple
and remained living under his tutelage until his death in 1949.
In the
period following Acariya Mun’s death, Acariya Maha Boowa, by then fully
accomplished himself, soon became a central figure in efforts to
maintain continuity within the dhutanga kammatthana fraternity and so
preserve Acariya Mun’s unique mode of practice for future generations.
He helped to spearhead a concerted attempt to present Acariya Mun’s life
and teachings to an increasingly wider audience of Buddhist faithful.
Eventually, in 1971, he authored this biography to showcase the
principles and ideals that underpin dhutanga kammatthana training
methods and inform their proper practice.
By 1960,
the world outside the forest came to exert a significant impact on the
dhutanga tradition. The rapid deforestation of that period caused
dhutanga monks to modify, and eventually curtail, their wandering
lifestyle. As the geographic environment changed, teachers like Acariya
Maha Boowa began establishing permanent monastic communities where
dhutanga monks could conveniently carry on Acariya Mun’s lineage,
striving to maintain the virtues of renunciation, strict discipline, and
intensive meditation. Practicing monks gravitated to these forest
monasteries in large numbers and transformed them into great centers of
Buddhist practice. At Wat Pa Baan Taad, Acariya Maha Boowa’s forest
monastery in Udon Thani, a religious center arose spontaneously, created
by the students themselves, who came for purely spiritual motives in
hopes of receiving instruction from a genuine master. In the years that
followed, the many Western monks who came to Acariya Maha Boowa were
able to share wholeheartedly in this unique religious experience. Some
have lived there practicing under his tutelage ever since, helping to
spawn an international following which today spans the globe. Highly
revered at home and abroad, Acariya Maha Boowa remains to this day
actively engaged in teaching both monks and laity, elucidating for them
the fundamental principles of Buddhism and encouraging them to practice
those bold and incisive techniques that Acariya Mun used so effectively.
Like Acariya Mun, he stresses a mode of practice in which wisdom remains
a priority at all times. Although ultimately pointing to the ineffable
mysteries of the mind’s pure essence, the teaching he presents for us is
a system of instruction that is full of down-to-earth, practical methods
suitable for everyone desiring to succeed at meditation. Studied
carefully, it may well offer direction to persons who otherwise have no
idea where their practice is taking them.
Author's Preface:
The life
story that you are about to read of Acariya Mun Bhuridatta Thera, his
way of practice and his moral goodness, is the result of extensive
research which I conducted in consultation with many acariyas of his
discipleship who lived with him throughout various periods of his
monastic life.
I sought
out these acariyas, recorded their memories of him, and compiled their
recollections to write this biography. This account is not as completely
accurate as I wished, because it was virtually impossible for the monks
to remember all the many experiences that Acariya Mun conveyed to them
about his life as a wandering forest monk. But, if I were to wait for
every detail to be recalled before writing this biography, it would only
be a matter of time before all information is forgotten and forever
lost. All hope of recording his story for the edification of interested
readers would then be surely lost as well. With great difficulty, I
composed this biography; and, although it is incomplete, my hope is that
it will prove to be of some benefit to the reader.
I shall
attempt to depict the many aspects of Acariya Mun’s daily conduct, as
well as the knowledge and insights he attained and elucidated to his
disciples. I intend to illustrate his Noble life in the style of the
Venerable Acariyas of antiquity who transcribed the essence of the lives
of the Buddha’s Arahant disciples into ancient texts, ensuring that all
future generations will have some understanding of the results that are
possible when the Dhamma is practiced sincerely. May the reader forgive
me if my presentation of Acariya Mun’s life appears inappropriate in any
way. Yet the truth is that it is a factual account, representing the
memories of Acariya Mun Bhuridatta Thera’s life as he himself conveyed
them to us. Although I am not wholly comfortable with the book, I have
decided to publish it anyway, because I feel that readers interested in
Dhamma may gain some valuable insight. |
1. The Early Years

Venerable Acariya Mun
Bhuridatta Thera was a vipassana meditation master of the highest caliber of
this present age; one who is truly worthy of the eminent praise and
admiration accorded to him by his close disciples. He taught the profound
nature of Dhamma with such authority and persuasion that he left no doubts
among his students about the exalted level of his spiritual attainment. His
devoted followers consist of numerous monks and laity from virtually every
region of Thailand. Besides these, he has many more devotees in Laos, where
both monks and lay people feel a deep reverence for him. His story is truly
a magnificent one throughout: from his early years in lay life through his
long endeavor as a Buddhist monk to the day he finally passed away.
Nowadays, a life of such unblemished excellence is harder to come by than a
lode of precious gemstones.
Acariya Mun was born into a
traditional Buddhist family on Thursday, January 20, 1870, the Year of the
Goat. His birthplace was the village of Ban Khambong in the Khongjiam
district of Ubon Ratchathani province.
His father’s name was Khamduang;
his mother’s Jun; and his family surname Kaenkaew. He was the eldest child
of eight siblings, though only two of them were still alive when he passed
away. A child of small stature with a fair complexion, he was naturally
quick, energetic, intelligent, and resourceful.
At the age of fifteen he
ordained as a novice in his village monastery where he developed an
enthusiasm for the study of Dhamma, memorizing the texts with exceptional
speed. A young novice of affable character, he never caused his teachers or
fellows any trouble. Two years into his new way of life his father requested
him to give up the robes, and he was required to return to lay life in order
to help out at home. However, his fondness for the monk’s life was so
pronounced that he was certain he would ordain again some day. His good
memories of life in a monk’s robes never faded. Thus, he resolved to enter
the monkhood again as soon as possible. This strong sense of purpose was
due, no doubt, to the power of that indomitable faith, known as saddha,
which was such an integral part of his character.
When he reached age twenty-two,
he felt an urge to ordain as a monk. So, for that purpose, he took leave of
his parents. Not wanting to discourage his aspirations and having also kept
the hope that their son would ordain again someday, they gave their
permission. To this end, they provided him with a complete set of a monk’s
basic requisites for his ordination. On June 12, 1893,he received his
Bhikkhu ordination at Wat Liap monastery in the provincial town of Ubon
Ratchathani.
His upajjhaya was the Venerable
Ariyakawi; his kammavacariya was Phra Khru Sitha; and his anusasanacariya
was Phra Khru Prajuk Ubonkhun. He was given the monastic name “Bhuridatta”.
After his ordination, he took residence at Wat Liap in Acariya Sao’s
vipassana meditation center.
The Prophecy
When Acariya Mun first began
practicing vipassana at Acariya Sao’s center, he meditated constantly,
internally repeating the word “buddho”, the recollection of the Buddha, as
he preferred this preparatory Dhamma theme above all others. In the
beginning, he failed to experience the degree of calm and happiness that he
expected, which caused him to doubt whether he was practicing correctly.
Despite his doubt he didn’t flag in his persistent use of the word “buddho”,
and eventually his heart developed a certain measure of calm.
One night he had a dream:
He walked out of a village and
entered a large, dense jungle overgrown with tangled undergrowth. He could
hardly find a way to penetrate it. He struggled to find his way through this
vast thicket until he finally emerged safe at the other end. When he came
out, he found himself at the edge of an immense field that stretched as far
as the eye could see. He set out resolutely, walking across this field until
he happened to come across a huge fallen jati tree.5
Felled long ago, its trunk was
partially embedded in the ground, and most of its bark and sapwood had
already rotted away. He climbed upon this giant jati log and walked along
its full length. As he walked, he reflected inwardly. He realized that this
tree would never sprout and grow again. He compared this with his own life
which would certainly not rise again in any future existence. He identified
the dead jati tree with his own life in samsara. Seeing that the tree had
rotted away, never to root and spring to life again, he reckoned that, by
keeping up his diligent practice, he would surely find a way to reach a
definite conclusion to his own life in this very existence. The vast expanse
of open field symbolized the nature of the never-ending cycle of birth and
death.
As he stood on the log
contemplating this, a broad white stallion trotted up and stood next to the
fallen jati tree. As it stood there, Acariya Mun felt an urge to ride it.
So, he mounted the mysterious horse which immediately raced off at full
gallop. He had no idea where he was being taken or why. The horse just
continued galloping at full speed without showing any obvious sign of
direction or purpose. The distance it traveled across the vast field seemed
immeasurable. As they strode along, Acariya Mun saw a beautiful Tipitika
cabinet6 in the distance, adorned with exquisite silver trim. Without
guidance, the horse led him directly to the enclosed bookcase, and came to a
halt right in front of it. The moment Acariya Mun dismounted with the aim of
opening the cabinet, the white stallion vanished without a trace. As he
stepped towards the bookcase, he noticed that it was standing at the very
edge of the field with nothing in the background but more of the dense
jungle, entangled and smothered with undergrowth. He saw no way of
penetrating it. When he came to the Tipitika cabinet, he reached out to open
it; but, before he had a chance to discover the contents inside, he woke up.
This was a dream nimitta, an
omen confirming his belief that if he persevered in his efforts, he would
undoubtedly discover a path for attaining what he sought. From then on, with
renewed determination Acariya Mun meditated intensively, unrelenting in his
efforts to constantly repeat “buddho” as he conducted all his daily affairs.
At the same time, he very carefully observed the austere dhutanga practices
which he undertook at the time of his ordination, and continued to practice
for the rest of his life.7 The dhutangas he voluntarily undertook were:
wearing only robes made from discarded cloth – not accepting robes directly
offered by lay supporters; going on almsround every day without fail –
except those days when he decided to fast; accepting and eating only food
received in his alms bowl – never receiving food offered after his almsround;
eating only one meal a day – never eating food after the one meal; eating
only out of the alms bowl – never eating food that is not inside the one
vessel; living in the forest – which means wandering through forested
terrain, living and sleeping in the wilds, in the mountains or in the
valleys; some time spent living under a canopy of trees, in a cave, or under
an overhanging cliff; and wearing only his three principal robes – the outer
robe, the upper robe, and the lower robe,8 with the addition of a bathing
cloth which is necessary to have nowadays.
Acariya Mun also observed the
remainder of the thirteen dhutanga practices when circumstances were
convenient; but, he upheld the above seven routinely until they became
integrated into his character. They became so much a part of him that it
would be difficult to find one who is his equal these days.
On his own accord, he showed
earnestness in finding meaning in everything he did. He never approached his
duties halfheartedly. His sincere aim, always, was to transcend the world.
Everything he did was directed toward the noble effort of destroying the
kilesas9 within himself. Due to this sense of purpose, he allowed no hiding
room in his heart for arrogance and conceit, despite being exposed to the
same defiling influences as was everyone else. In one respect he differed
markedly from the average person: instead of allowing his mind free reign
for the kilesas to trample all over, he always put up a fight, attacking
them at every opportunity.
Later, when he felt confident
that he had developed a sufficiently solid foundation in his meditation, he
investigated the dream nimitta. Turning his attention to the dream, he
analyzed it until he gradually comprehended its full meaning. He saw that
ordaining as a monk and practicing the Dhamma properly was equivalent to
raising the level of the citta beyond the poisons of the world. The dense,
entangled jungle, where dangers of every kind await to ambush, was the
analogy for the citta, a repository of pain and misery. The citta must be
lifted until it reaches the vast, wide open expanse – a sphere of Ultimate
Happiness, and freedom from all fear and concern.10
The majestic white stallion
symbolized the path of practicing Dhamma. He rode the horse as the means of
transport to the realm of complete contentment, where he encountered the
beautiful Tipitika cabinet with an exquisite design. Able only to look upon
it, he lacked the spiritual perfection necessary to secure the cabinet’s
opening and admire its library to his heart’s content – a feat accomplished
only by one who has acquired catu-patisambhidañana. A person endowed with
this four-fold knowledge is renown throughout the three worlds for his
brilliant wisdom and his comprehensive knowledge of teaching methods,
extensive as the sea and sky. Such a one is never at a loss when teaching
devas and humans.
Because Acariya Mun lacked a
sufficiently high level of spiritual perfection, he was denied the
opportunity to open the cabinet, and had to be content with simply admiring
its beauty. Consequently, he would attain only the level of
patisambhidanusasana, meaning that he had sufficient wisdom and expository
skills to elucidate to others the basic path of Buddhist practice, but not
its entire breadth and depth. Although he humbly stated that his teaching
was merely sufficient to show the way, those who witnessed his practice and
heard the profound Dhamma that he taught throughout his life were so deeply
impressed that no words can describe it. It would certainly be difficult to
witness or hear anything comparable in this day and age – an age much in
need of such a noble person.
The Sign
At one point during his
meditation training at Wat Liap, Acariya Mun’s citta ‘converged’ into a
state of calm11 and a vision arose spontaneously. The mental image12 was of
a dead body laid out before him, bloated, oozing pus, and seeping with
bodily fluids. Vultures and dogs were fighting over the corpse, tearing into
the rotting flesh and flinging it around, until what remained was all
scattered about. The whole scene was unimaginably disgusting, and he was
appalled.
From then on, Acariya Mun
constantly used this image as a mental object to contemplate at all times –
whether sitting in samadhi, walking in meditation, or engaging in other
daily activities. He continued in this manner until, one day, the image of
the corpse changed into a translucent disk that appeared suspended before
him. The more he focused intensely on the disk, the more it changed its
appearance without pause. The more he tried to follow, the more it altered
its form so that he found it impossible to tell where the series of images
would end. The more he investigated the visions, the more they continued to
change in character – ad infinitum. For example, the disk became a tall
mountain range where Acariya Mun found himself walking, brandishing a sharp
sword and wearing shoes. Then, a massive wall with a gate appeared. He
opened the gate to look inside and saw a monastery where several monks were
sitting in meditation. Near the wall he saw a steep cliff with a cave where
a hermit was living. He noticed a conveyance, shaped like a cradle and
hanging down the face of the cliff by a rope. Climbing into the cradle-like
conveyance, he was drawn up to the mountain peak. At the summit, he found a
large Chinese junk with a square table inside, and a hanging lantern that
cast a luminescent glow upon the whole mountain terrain. He found himself
eating a meal on the mountain peak … and so on, and so forth, until it was
impossible to see an end to it all. Acariya Mun said that all the images he
experienced in this manner were far too numerous to recall.
For a full three months,
Acariya Mun continued to meditate in this way. Each time when he dropped
into samadhi, he withdrew from it to continue his investigation of the
translucent disk which just kept giving him a seemingly endless series of
images. However, he did not receive enough beneficial results from this to
be convinced that this was the correct method. For after practicing in this
manner, he was oversensitive to the common sights and sounds around him.
Pleased by this and disappointed by that, he liked some things and hated
others. It seemed that he could never find a stable sense of balance.
Because of this sensitivity, he
came to believe that the samadhi which he practiced was definitely the wrong
path to follow. If it were really correct, why did he fail to experience
peace and calm consistently in his practice? On the contrary, his mind felt
distracted and unsettled, influenced by many sense objects that it
encountered – much like a person who had never undergone any meditation
training at all. Perhaps the practice of directing his attention outwards
towards external phenomena violated the fundamental principles of
meditation. Maybe this was the reason he failed to gain the promised
benefits of inner peace and happiness.
Thus, Acariya Mun came to a new
understanding about himself. Instead of focusing his mind on external
matters, he brought his citta back inside, within the confines of his own
physical body. From then on, his investigations were centered only on his
own body. Keeping a sharp mindfulness, he examined the body from top to
bottom, side to side, inside out and throughout; every body part and every
aspect. In the beginning, he preferred to conduct his examinations while
walking in meditation, pacing back and forth in deep thought. Sometimes he
needed to rest his body from these exertions. So, he sat in samadhi for
awhile, though he absolutely refused to let his citta ‘converge’ into its
habitual state of calm. Rather, he forced it to stay put within the body’s
domain. The citta had no other choice but to travel around the many parts of
the body and probe into them. When it was time for him to lie down, the
investigation continued inside his mind until he fell asleep.
He meditated like this for
several days until he felt ready to sit in samadhi and try to attain a state
of calm with his newly discovered method. He challenged himself to find out
what state of calm the citta could attain. Deprived of peace for many days
now, and having begun the intense training associated with body
contemplation, his citta ‘converged’ rapidly into a calm state with
unprecedented ease. He knew with certainty that he had the correct method:
for, when his citta ‘converged’ this time, his body appeared to be separated
from himself. It seemed to split into two at that moment. Mindfulness was in
force during the entire time, right to the moment that the citta dropped
into samadhi. It didn’t wander and waver about as it had previously. Thus,
Acariya Mun was convinced that his newfound method was the right one for the
preliminary work of meditation practice.
From then on, he continued to
religiously practice body contemplation until he could attain a state of
calm whenever he wanted.
With persistence, he gradually
became more and more skilled in this method, until the citta was firmly
anchored in samadhi. He had wasted three whole months chasing the disk and
its illusions. But now, his mindfulness no longer abandoned him, and
therefore, he was no longer adversely affected by the influences around him.
This whole episode clearly shows the disadvantages of not having a wise
teacher to guide one. Misjudgments occur without timely advice and direction
in meditation. Acariya Mun was a perfect example of this. Having no teacher
can lead to costly mistakes that can easily harm the meditator, or, at the
very least, delay his progress.
DURING ACARIYA MUN’S early
years as a wandering monk, people showed little interest in the practice of
kammatthana meditation. Many regarded it as something strange, even alien to
Buddhism, having no legitimate place in the life of a monk. Back then, a
dhutanga monk, walking in the distance on the far side of a field, was
enough to send country folk into a panic. Being fearful, those still close
to the village quickly ran home. Those walking near the forest ran into the
thick foliage to hide, being too scared to stand their ground or greet the
monks. Thus, dhutanga monks, wandering in unfamiliar regions during their
travels, seldom had a chance to ask the locals for much needed directions.
Women from the countryside
often took their small children on excursions into the surrounding hills to
pick wild herbs and edible plants, or to fish in outlying ponds. Suddenly
spotting a party of dhutanga monks walking toward them, they would yell to
each other in alarm, “Dhamma monks! Dhamma monks are coming!” With that they
threw their baskets and other gear to the ground with a thud, and
frantically rushed to find a safe hiding-place. Their discarded belongings
could have been damaged or broken when flung to the ground, but they took no
notice; everyone simply fled into the nearby forest, or if close by, to
their village homes.
Meanwhile the children, who had
no idea what was happening, started crying and pleading for help when they
saw their mothers scream and run away. Too slow to keep pace with the
adults, the little ones raced around in confusion. Stranded, they ran back
and forth in the open field while their mothers remained in the forest, too
frightened to emerge and retrieve them. An amusing scene of needless panic,
but at the same time pitiful: to see innocent children so frightened,
running in circles, desperately crying in search of their mothers.
Obviously the situation didn’t
look good, so the dhutanga monks hurried past lest their prolonged presence
provoke even more hysteria. Had they made any attempt to approach the
children, the incident might have gotten out of control with terrified kids
frantically scattering in all directions, their shrill screams ringing
through the forest. In the meantime, their anxious mothers huddled,
trembling, behind the trees, afraid of the ‘Dhamma monks’ and, at the same
time, afraid that their children might flee in all directions. They watched
nervously until the monks were out of sight.
When the monks finally
disappeared, a big commotion erupted as mothers and children dashed
excitedly about, trying to find one another. By the time the whole group was
safely reunited, it seemed as though the entire village had disbanded for
awhile. The reunion was accompanied by a hubbub of chatter, everybody
laughing about the sudden appearance of the ‘Dhamma monks’ and the chaos
that followed.
Such occurrences were common in
those early years: women and children were terrified because they had never
before seen dhutanga kammatthana monks. Ordinarily people knew nothing about
them and showed little interest, except to flee at their sight. There are
several possible reasons for this. Firstly, their appearance was rather
austere and reserved. They were unlikely to show much familiarity with
anyone they hadn’t personally known for a long time; someone who knew their
habits well. Also, their robes and other requisites were an ochre color from
dye made from the heartwood of the jackfruit tree – a color that was
striking but had a tendency to inspire more fear than devotion.
These jackfruit-colored robes
were worn by dhutanga monks as they wandered from place to place practicing
the ascetic way of life. They carried their umbrella-tents,13 which were
considerably larger than ordinary umbrellas, slung over one shoulder. Over
the other shoulder they carried their alms bowls. Walking in single file and
dressed in their yellowish-brown robes, they were an eye-catching sight to
those as yet unfamiliar with their mode of practice. Finding a quiet spot,
conducive to meditation, dhutanga monks settled for a while in the outlying
forests of rural communities, allowing the locals a chance to get better
acquainted with them. By listening to their teachings, questioning them, and
receiving their advice, people’s lives benefited in so many ways. Gradually
over time, their hearts grew to accept the reasonable explanations they
heard, and faith issued naturally on its own. With a belief in Dhamma thus
instilled in their hearts, old suspicions died away to be replaced by a
reverence for the monks whose teachings made such an impression. Then, to
those well acquainted with their peaceful temperament and exemplary conduct,
the mere sight of monks walking across the countryside inspired devotion.
During that early period, such enlightening experiences were shared by
country people all over Thailand.
Traveling far and wide, and
determined to practice correctly for the sake of Dhamma, dhutanga monks
always managed to impress people and do them great service. They didn’t
depend on publicity to get out their message. They relied instead on their
exemplary behavior14 as a natural means of gaining public interest.
A dhutanga monk who is
concentrated on Dhamma considers wandering in search of seclusion to be an
indispensable part of his personal practice. Secluded places offer his mind
and body a calm, quiet environment. So it was with Acariya Mun. Each year at
the end of the rainy season retreat he started traveling, hiking through
forests and mountains in locales where he found just enough small villages
to support his daily almsround. More than any other part of the country, he
enjoyed wandering in Thailand’s Northeast region. Among his favorites were
the vast forests and mountain ranges in the provinces of Nakhon Phanom,
Sakon Nakhon, Udon Thani, Nong Khai, Loei, and Lom Sak; or on the Laotian
side of the Mekong River in such places as Tha Khek, Vientiane, and Luang
Prabang. Those locations with their huge tracts of forest and mountainous
terrain were ideally suited to practicing the ascetic way of life.
Wherever he was, whatever the
time of day, Acariya Mun’s primary focus remained the same: working
tirelessly to improve his meditation practice. He knew that this was his
most important task in life. By nature, he disliked involvement in monastic
building projects. He preferred to concentrate exclusively on the inner work
of meditative development. He avoided socializing with fellow monks and
remained aloof from civil society, much preferring life alone – a style of
living that allowed him the freedom to focus all his attention and energy on
one main task: transcending dukkha.15 Earnestness and sincerity
characterized everything he did: never deceiving himself, he never misled
others.
The incredible energy,
endurance, and circumspection that he put into his practice were truly
amazing. Qualities such as these helped to ensure that samadhi and wisdom
steadily progressed, never showing any signs of decline. Since the day he
first discovered body contemplation to be the right method for the
preliminary work of meditation, he kept that contemplation always in mind.
Assiduously maintaining that method, repeatedly investigating his body, over
and over again, he became very skilled at mentally dissecting the various
body parts, large and small, and then breaking them apart with wisdom.
Eventually, he could dissect his entire body at will and then reduce the
whole lot to its constituent elements.
Through perseverance, Acariya
Mun steadily and increasingly attained more peaceful and calmer states of
mind. He wandered through forests and over mountains, stopping at suitable
locations to intensify his practice; but, never did he relax the persistent
effort he put into all his activities. Whether walking for alms, sweeping
the grounds, washing a spittoon, sewing or dying his robes, eating a meal,
or simply stretching his legs, he was aware of striving to perfect himself
at every waking moment and in all activities, without exception. Only when
the time came to sleep did he relent. Even then, he resolved to get up
immediately, without hesitation, as soon as he awoke. He made sure that this
habit became ingrained in his character. The moment he was conscious of
being awake, he rose quickly, washed his face, and resumed his meditation
practice. If he still felt sleepy, he refused to sit in meditation right
away for fear of nodding off to sleep again. Instead, he practiced walking
meditation, striding back and forth to dispel the drowsiness that threatened
to overtake him at the slightest lapse in vigilance. If walking slowly
proved ineffective, he sought to invigorate himself by quickening his pace.
Only when all drowsiness disappeared and he began to feel tired did he leave
his meditation track to sit down to continue meditating until dawn.
Shortly after dawn, he prepared
to go on his almsround. Wearing his lower robe, placing his under and upper
robes together and wrapped about him, his alms bowl hanging from his
shoulder by a strap, he walked to the nearest village in a self-composed
manner, careful to maintain mindfulness the entire way. Considering his hike
to and from the village a form of walking meditation, he focused his
attention inward every step of the way, insuring that his mind did not
venture out to become involved with any emotionally-charged sense object
along the route. Returning to his campsite, or the monastery where he
resided, he arranged the food he had received in his alms bowl. As a matter
of principle, he ate only the food he was offered in the village, refusing
to accept any food brought to him afterward. Only much later, in his very
old age, did he relax this practice somewhat, agreeing to accept food that
the faithful offered him in the monastery. During his early years, he ate
only the food he had received in his alms bowl.
With everything to be eaten
placed in the bowl, he sat contemplating the true purpose of the food16 he
was about to eat as a means of dousing the inner fires of hell; that is to
say, any craving for food that might arise due to hunger. Otherwise, the
mind might succumb to the power of craving and indulge in the fine taste of
food, when in fact, it should be reflecting on food’s essential qualities:
how all food, being simply a composition of gross elements, is inherently
disgusting by its very nature.17 With this thought firmly fixed in his mind,
he chewed his food mindfully to deny any opening to craving until he had
finished the meal. Afterwards, he washed the bowl, wiped it dry, exposed it
to direct sunlight for a few minutes, then replaced it in its cloth covering
and put it neatly away in its proper place. Then, it was time once again to
resume the task of battling the kilesas, with the aim of destroying them
gradually until they were thoroughly defeated and unable ever again to
trouble his mind.
It must be understood, however,
that the business of destroying kilesas is an inexpressibly difficult task
to accomplish. For though we may be determined to burn the kilesas to ashes,
what invariably tends to happen is that the kilesas turn around and burn us,
causing us so much hardship that we quickly abandon those same virtuous
qualities that we meant to develop. We clearly see this negative impact and
want to get rid of the kilesas; but then, we undermine our noble purpose by
failing to act decisively against them, fearing that the difficulties of
such action will prove too painful. Unopposed, the kilesas become lord
masters of our hearts, pushing their way in and claiming our hearts as their
exclusive domain. Sadly, very few people in this world possess the knowledge
and understanding to counteract these defilements. Hence, living beings
throughout the three worlds of existence are forever surrendering to their
dominance. Only the Lord Buddha discovered the way to completely cleanse his
heart of them: never again did they defeat him.
After achieving that
comprehensive victory, the Lord Buddha compassionately turned his attention
to teaching the way, proclaiming the Dhamma to his disciples and inspiring
them to resolutely follow the same Noble Path that he had taken. Practicing
thus, they were able to emulate his supreme achievement, reaching the very
end of the Noble Path, the highest attainment: Nibbana. Dealing the
all-powerful kilesas a fatal blow, these Noble individuals eradicated them
from their hearts forever. Having extinguished their kilesas, they became
those Arahant disciples that people the world over have worshipped with such
devotion ever since.
Acariya Mun was another Noble
individual following in the footsteps of the Lord Buddha. He truly possessed
unshakable faith and uncompromising resolve – he didn’t merely talk about
them. When the morning meal was over, he immediately entered the forest to
begin walking meditation in those peaceful surroundings that were so
conducive to calm and inner happiness. First walking, later sitting, he
pursued his meditation until he felt the time was right to take a short
rest. His strength renewed, he resumed his attack on the kilesas, creators
of the endless cycle of existence. With such determination and steadfast
application to the task, the kilesas were never given reason to scoff at
Acariya Mun’s efforts. While practicing samadhi intensively, he also worked
tirelessly to develop insight, his wisdom revolving relentlessly around
whatever object he was investigating. In that way, samadhi and vipassana
were developed in tandem, neither one lagging behind the other; and his
heart remained peaceful and contented in his practice.
Still, periods of slow progress
were inevitable, for he had no one to advise him when he got stuck. Often he
spent many days working his way through a specific problem, painstakingly
figuring out the solution for himself. He was obliged to exhaustively
investigate these stumbling blocks in his practice, examining every facet
carefully, because they were a hindrance to his progress and also
potentially dangerous. In such situations, the advice of a good teacher can
be invaluable, helping the meditator to advance quickly and confidently
without wasting time.
For this reason, it’s very
important that meditators have a kalyanamitta. Acariya Mun personally
experienced the drawbacks of not having such a wise friend to give him
timely advice, insisting that it was a definite disadvantage.
Acariya Sao Kantasalo
In his early years of practice,
Acariya Mun often wandered dhutanga in the company of Acariya Sao,18
comforted in the knowledge that he had a good, experienced teacher to lend
him support. But when he asked his teacher to advise him on specific
problems arising in his meditation, Acariya Sao invariably replied: “My
experiences in meditation are quite different from yours. Your citta is so
adventurous, tending always toward extremes. One moment it soars into the
sky, only to plunge deep into the earth the next. Then, after diving to the
ocean floor, it again soars up to walk meditation high in the sky. Who could
possibly keep up with your citta long enough to find a solution? I advise
you to investigate these matters for yourself and find your own solutions.”
Acariya Sao never gave him enough concrete advice to really help him, so
Acariya Mun was forced to solve his own problems. Sometimes, he nearly died
before discovering a way past some of the more intractable problems he
faced.
Acariya Mun described his
teacher as someone with a smooth, serene temperament who inspired deep
devotion. A rather strange feature of Acariya Sao’s practice was his
tendency to levitate while in samadhi, his body hovering quite noticeably
above the floor. At first, doubtful that his body was indeed floating, he
opened his eyes to see for himself. As soon as his eyes opened, concern
about the condition of his body caused his citta to withdraw from samadhi.
He promptly fell back to the floor, landing hard on his buttocks which was
sore and bruised for many days. In truth, his body did float about three
feet above the floor. But by opening his eyes to check, he lost the
mindfulness needed to maintain his citta in samadhi. Withdrawing suddenly
from samadhi caused him to come crashing to the floor, like any other object
dropped from a height. Practicing samadhi later and feeling his body
levitate again, he kept mindfulness firmly focused within that state of
samadhi, and then, carefully opened his eyes to look at himself. It was
obvious to him then that he did levitate. This time, however, he didn’t fall
back to the floor, for mindfulness was present to maintain total
concentration.
This experience taught Acariya
Sao a valuable lesson about himself. Yet being an exceptionally careful,
meticulous person, he wasn’t entirely convinced. So he took a small object,
inserted it into the underside of the thatched roof in his hut, and
continued to meditate. When he felt his body beginning to float again, he
firmly focused his citta in samadhi, and he was able to float upward until
he reached that small object in the thatch. Drawing level with it, he slowly
reached out and very mindfully took it in his hand so that he could bring it
back down by means of samadhi. This meant that once he had it in his grasp,
he gradually withdrew from samadhi to the point where his body could slowly,
and safely, descend to the floor – a point still short of complete
withdrawal from samadhi. Experimenting like this, he became convinced of his
ability to levitate, though this did not occur every time he entered
samadhi.
From the beginning of his
practice to the end of his life, Acariya Sao’s citta tended to have this
smooth, imperturbable quality; in sharp contrast to the wholly adventurous
nature that characterized Acariya Mun’s citta. Unlike him, Acariya Sao was
not so motivated to live dangerously, seeking adventure; nor did he tend to
perceive the variety of unusual phenomena that Acariya Mun invariably did.
Acariya Mun told us that, once,
in ages past, Acariya Sao had resolved to become a Paccekabuddha.19
Intensifying his efforts at meditation caused him to recollect his longtime
resolution, and his lingering attachment to that goal made him reluctant to
strive for Nibbana in the present. It soon became apparent that this vow
would block any attempt to realize Nibbana in his lifetime; therefore, he
immediately decided to renounce the old vow. In its place, he resolved to
attain Nibbana as soon as possible. He became determined to reach this goal
within his present lifetime in order to avoid the misery of being reborn in
the future.
Having forsaken his original
vow, and thus, unhindered by previous commitments, his meditation practice
progressed smoothly until one day he finally reached the Land of Ultimate
Happiness that he had been aiming for. However, his teaching skill was very
limited, probably due to a natural predisposition toward becoming a
Paccekabuddha: someone who has no inclination to teach others although he is
able to fully enlighten himself. Furthermore, the fact that he could so
easily give up his original resolve and then achieve his new goal meant that
his previous vow had not yet matured to the stage of being irreversible.
Acariya Mun related that in
ages past he had made a similar resolution – in his case, a solemn vow to
become a Buddha. As with Acariya Sao, intensifying his efforts at meditation
caused Acariya Mun to recollect this long-standing intention, and this
underlying attachment made him reluctant to strive for the attainment of
Nibbana in his present life.
Acariya Mun renounced his vow
to be a Buddha only after he began practicing dhutanga kammatthana, for he
then realized that its fulfillment would take far too long. It required eons
of traversing the round of samsara: being born, growing old, becoming ill,
and dying over and over again, enduring misery and pain indefinitely.
Renouncing the original vow
relieved Acariya Mun of this concern, opening the way for his meditation to
progress smoothly. The fact that he could so easily abandon the original vow
indicates that it was not yet so firmly fixed in his conscious being that he
couldn’t detach himself from it.
Acariya Mun often accompanied
Acariya Sao on his excursions wandering dhutanga across the provinces of the
Northeast region. Due to differences in personality, their meditation
experiences varied in some respects; but each very much enjoyed the other’s
company. By nature, Acariya Sao preferred to say very little. He was a
reluctant teacher, especially of the laity. Occasionally obliged to give
instruction to lay supporters, he was always very frugal with words. The
little he did say could be summed up like this:
“You should renounce evil and
cultivate goodness. Being fortunate enough to be born human, don’t waste
this good opportunity now. Our status as human beings is a very noble one;
so, avoid all animal- like behavior. Otherwise, you’ll sink below the
animals, and be much more wretched as well. When you eventually fall into
hell, your tortuous existence there will be far more grievous than that of
any animal. So don’t do evil!”
That said, he left his seat and
returned to his hut, taking no further interest in anyone.
He always spoke very sparingly.
In an entire day he might say only a few sentences. On the other hand, he
could endure many hours of sitting and walking in meditation. He had a
remarkably dignified, noble appearance that inspired respect and devotion.
Just a glimpse of his serene, peaceful countenance made a lasting
impression. He was greatly revered by monks and laity alike and, like
Acariya Mun, he had many devoted disciples.
It was well known that these
two acariyas shared immense love and respect for each other. In the early
years, they enjoyed traveling in each other’s company. They spent most of
the year living together, both during and after the annual rainy season
retreat. In the middle years, they normally spent these retreats in separate
locations but close enough to each other to make visiting easy. Very seldom,
then, did they spend a retreat together, for each had an increasingly large
following of disciples, making it difficult to find enough space to
accommodate them all at one location. Living separately eliminated the
burden of having to arrange living quarters for so many monks.
Even when living apart, they
often thought of each other with genuine concern. On occasions when Acariya
Sao’s disciples visited Acariya Mun, the first question he asked concerned
the health and wellbeing of Acariya Sao, who in turn invariably reciprocated
by inquiring about Acariya Mun’s well-being when one of his disciples paid a
visit. Through such messengers, each then conveyed his respectful greeting
to the other, maintaining contact in this way at every opportunity. Each of
these great acariyas had enormous respect for the other’s spiritual
achievements. Both used words full of praise and admiration when speaking to
their disciples about each other. Their comments never contained a hint of
criticism.
ACARIYA MUN WHOLEHEARTEDLY
agreed with Acariya Sao’s comment about his citta being adventurous, and
tending to go to extremes: soaring high in the sky one moment, then plunging
into the earth before diving to the ocean floor. His citta truly did have
such mercurial characteristics. Dropping into samadhi in the early stages of
his practice, his citta tended to focus outward then, perceiving all manner
of unusual phenomena – things he had never dreamed of seeing. For example,
he saw a bloated corpse laid out before him. As I have mentioned before,
when he concentrated his attention on this image, it soon changed into a
translucent disc which in turn altered its form, creating an endless series
of images.
Even after discovering the
correct method of practice, when his citta ‘converged’ into calm it was
still inclined to focus outward, perceiving countless types of phenomena.
Sometimes, he felt his body soaring high into the sky where he traveled
around for many hours, looking at celestial mansions before coming back
down. At other times, he burrowed deep beneath the earth to visit various
regions in hell. There he felt profound pity for its unfortunate
inhabitants, all experiencing the grievous consequences of their previous
actions. Watching these events unfold, he often lost all perspective of the
passage of time. In those days, he was still uncertain whether these scenes
were real or imaginary. He said that it was only later on, when his
spiritual faculties were more mature, that he was able to investigate these
matters and understand clearly the definite moral and psychological causes
underlying them.
Any lapse in concentration as
his citta ‘converged’ into calm created an opening through which it could
again focus outward to perceive such phenomena. His newfound proficiency
notwithstanding, if his attention turned outward, his citta would be off in
a flash.
Acariya Mun told us that early
on, due to inexperience with the mercurial nature of his own mind, when
focusing his citta to examine the lower half of his body, instead of
following the various parts down to the soles of his feet, it would shoot
out through his lower torso and penetrate deep into the earth – just as
Acariya Sao had so astutely remarked. No sooner had he hurriedly withdrawn
the citta back into his body than it would fly through the top of his head,
soaring high into the sky where it paced back and forth contentedly, showing
no interest in returning to his body. Concentrating with intense mind
fulness, he had to force the citta to reenter the body and perform the work
he wanted it to do.
In those early days his mind
developed a tendency to drop so speedily into a state of calm – like falling
from a cliff, or down a well – that his mindfulness couldn’t keep up with
it. Resting only briefly in complete stillness before withdrawing slightly
to the level of upacara samadhi,20 his citta tended to venture out so often,
and experienced such a variety of strange things, that he became very
frustrated. He tried to force it to remain inside the confines of his body,
but often to no avail. His citta was far too fleeting for mindfulness and
wisdom to keep pace.
Still too inexperienced to work
out an effective solution, he felt uneasy about the direction of his
meditation. Yet, being a strictly internal matter, he couldn’t mention his
predicament to anyone else. So, with an intense degree of mindfulness and
wisdom to guide his efforts, he experimented with many different techniques,
suffering considerable mental strain before finding a viable means of
controlling his adventuresome citta. Once he clearly understood the correct
method of taming his dynamic mind, he found that it was versatile,
energetic, and extremely quick in all circumstance. Eventually working in
unison, mindfulness and wisdom blended so well with the citta that they
merged to become one with it. Thus strengthened, the citta functioned like a
magic crystal ball; and he was fully capable of keeping pace with all the
myriad phenomena arising within it.
Acariya Mun possessed a bold,
fearless character. He was also extremely intelligent. Because his rigorous
training methods differed significantly from ones practiced by other monks,
his style of practice was unique – and incredibly difficult to imitate. From
my own observations, I can unequivocally state: He was a truly noble
character with a quick, adventurous mind who trained himself with
uncompromising resolve. His harsh training methods were often quite unique.
He had an ingenious way of mixing coercive pressure and gentle persuasion to
tame a dynamic mind that, at the least lapse of concentration, ventured out
to find things that could easily cause him problems.
Struggling desperately on his
own to find ways to control his unruly mind, practicing without a dependable
guide and enduring difficulties, Acariya Mun sometimes felt that he was
beating his head against a mountain. Unlike so many others, he had to manage
without the aid of a wise teacher’s proven meditation methods – a
disadvantage he often warned others against later on. To his own students he
always emphasized his readiness to clarify any problems they experienced in
meditation, thus saving them the difficulty of having to waste time as he
had in his early years.
SHORTLY AFTER HIS ORDINATION,
Acariya Mun began wandering dhutanga in Nakhon Phanom province, and
eventually crossed the Mekong River to enter Laos, where he contentedly
practiced the ascetic way of life in the mountainous district of Tha Khek.
This area of Laos abounded in large, ferocious tigers – huge beasts that
were considered far more vicious than tigers on the Thai side of the river.
Repeatedly they attacked and killed the local inhabitants and then feasted
on their flesh. Despite such brutality, those people, mostly of Vietnamese
descent, weren’t nearly as afraid of tigers as were their Lao and Thai
neighbors.
Time and again they watched
these terrible beasts attack and kill friends and relatives; yet, they
seemed indifferent to the carnage. Having seen a friend killed right in
front of them, the flesh torn from the body by a hungry tiger, the people
would casually venture back into that same tiger-infested forest the next
day, as though nothing had happened. The Lao and Thai communities would have
been extremely upset, but the Vietnamese seemed strangely unmoved by such
occurrences.
Perhaps they were so accustomed
to seeing such things that it no longer affected them.
The Vietnamese had another
strange habit: When they saw a maneating tiger suddenly leap out to attack
one of their companions, no one in the group made any effort to save their
friend’s life. They simply abandoned their friend to his fate and ran for
their lives. Suppose a group were sleeping in the forest overnight. If a
huge tiger leaped into the campsite and dragged one of them away, the
others, awakened by the noise, would jump up and run away; and then, calmly
find another place close by to sleep. Like children, they acted without much
rhyme or reason in these matters. They behaved as though those huge beasts,
which had already shown themselves to be so adept at devouring human flesh,
were somehow too stupid to do the same to them.
I am also familiar with people
who have no proper fear of tigers. When coming to live in our country, they
like to settle in dense, overgrown jungle areas abounding in tigers and
other wild animal. Venturing deep into the forest in search of timber, they
then spend the night there far from the village, showing no signs of fear at
all. Even alone, these people can sleep deep in the forest at night without
fear. If they wish to return to the village late at night, they have no
qualms about walking alone through the dense undergrowth, and back if
necessary. If asked why they aren’t afraid of tigers, their response is
that, while the huge tigers in their own country have a taste for human
flesh, Thai tigers don’t; and that they’re even scared of people. Conditions
can be so dangerous in their homeland that people staying overnight in the
forest must build an enclosure to sleep in that resembles a pigsty;
otherwise, they might never return home. Even within the precincts of some
village communities, prowling tigers can be so fierce that no one dares
leave home after dark, fearing an attack by a tiger leaping out of the
shadows. The Vietnamese even chide the Thais for being such cowardly people,
always entering the forest in groups, never daring to venture out alone. For
these reasons, Acariya Mun claimed that the Vietnamese lacked an instinctive
fear of tigers.
When Acariya Mun crossed into
their country, however, the tigers there never bothered him. Camped in the
forest, he often saw their tracks and heard their roars echoing through the
trees at night. However, he never felt personally threatened by such things;
they were simply natural aspects of forest life. In any case, Acariya Mun
wasn’t worried about tigers so much as he was worried about the possibility
that he might not transcend dukkha and realize the Supreme Happiness of
Nibbana in his lifetime.
When speaking of his excursions
crossing the Mekong River, he never mentioned being afraid. He obviously
considered such dangers to be a normal part of trekking through the wilds.
If I had been faced with those same dangers instead of Acariya Mun, surely
the local villagers would have had to form a posse to rescue this cowardly
dhutanga monk. When I’m walking in meditation in the forest at night, just
the occasional roar of a tiger so unsettles me that I can barely manage to
keep walking to the end of the track. I fear coming face to face with one of
those beasts – and losing my wits. You see, since becoming old enough to
understand such things, I always heard my parents and their neighbors
vociferously proclaim that tigers are very fierce animals, and extremely
dangerous. This notion has stuck with me ever since, making it impossible
not to be terrified of tigers. I must confess that I’ve never found a way to
counteract this tendency.
ACARIYA MUN SPENT most of the
earlier years of his monastic career traveling at length through the various
provinces of Thailand’s Northeast region. Later, as he developed enough
inner stability to withstand both external distractions and those mercurial
mental traits that were so much a part of his character, he walked down into
the central provinces, wandering contentedly across the Central Plains
region, living the dhutanga lifestyle until eventually he reached the
capital, Bangkok.
Arriving shortly before the
rainy season, he went to Wat Pathumwan monastery and entered the retreat
there. During the rains retreat he made a point of regularly going to seek
advice from Chao Khun Upali Gunupamacariya21 at Wat Boromaniwat monastery to
gain more extensive techniques for developing wisdom.
Acariya Mun left Bangkok
following the rains retreat, hiking to Lopburi province to stay awhile at
Phai Khwang Cave in the Phra Ngam mountain range before moving on to Singto
Cave. Life in such favorable locations gave him an excellent, uninterrupted
opportunity to fully intensify his spiritual practice. In doing so, he
developed a fearless attitude toward his mind and the things with which it
came in contact.
By then, his samadhi was
rock-solid. Using it as the firm basis for his practice, he examined
everything from the perspective of Dhamma, continually uncovering new
techniques for developing wisdom. After a suitable interval, he returned to
Bangkok, once again visiting Chao Khun Upali at Wat Boromaniwat. He informed
his mentor of developments in his meditation practice, questioning him about
doubts he still had concerning the practice of wisdom. Satisfied that the
new investigative techniques he had learned were sufficient to further his
progress, he finally took leave of Chao Khun Upali and left to seek
seclusion at Sarika Cave in the Khaw Yai mountains of Nakhon Nayok province.
Sarika Cave
Acariya Mun spent three years
living and practicing in Sarika Cave. His entire stay there was filled with
the most unusual experiences, making it a memorable episode in his life. To
the best of my recollection, he first arrived at Ban Gluay village, the
village nearest the cave and thus close enough to be convenient for
almsround. Unfamiliar with the area, he asked the villagers to take him to
Sarika Cave. Straightaway they warned him that it was a very special cave
possessing numerous supernatural powers, insisting that no monk could
possibly live there unless his virtue was pure. Other monks who had tried to
live there quickly fell ill with a variety of painful symptoms – many had
even died before they could be brought down for treatment. They told him
that the cave was the domain of a spirit of immense size possessing many
magical powers. It also had a very foul temper. This giant spirit guarded
the cave from all intruders – monks being no exception. Unexpected
occurrences awaited all intruders into the cave, many of whom ended up dead.
The spirit delighted in testing any monk who came bragging about his mastery
of magic spells for warding off spirits. Invariably, the monk would suddenly
fall ill and die a premature death. Fearing that Acariya Mun might die
likewise, the villagers pleaded with him not to go.
Curious about the talk of a
huge, malevolent spirit with supernatural powers, Acariya Mun asked and was
told that a trespasser usually saw some sign of those powers on the very
first night. An ominous dream often accompanied fitful sleep: An enormous
black spirit, towering overhead, threatened to drag the dreamer to his
death, shouting that it had long been the cave’s guardian exercising
absolute authority over the whole area, and would allow no one to trespass.
So any trespasser was immediately chased away, for it accepted no authority
greater than its own, except that of a person of impeccable virtue and a
loving, compassionate heart, who extended these noble qualities to all
living beings.
A person of such nobility was
allowed to live in the cave. The spirit would even protect him and pay him
homage, but it did not tolerate narrow-minded, selfish, ill-behaved
intruders.
Finding life in the cave a very
uncomfortable experience, most monks refused to remain for long; and fearing
death, they made a hurried departure. Generally, no one managed a long stay
– only one or two days at most, and they were quickly on their way.
Trembling and almost out of their minds with fear as they climbed back down,
they blurted out something about a fierce, demonic spirit. Scared and
chastened, they fled, never to return. Worse still, some who went up to the
cave never came down again. Thus, the villagers worried about the fate that
awaited Acariya Mun, not wanting him to become the next victim.
Acariya Mun asked what they
meant by saying that some monks went up there never to return. Why hadn’t
they come down again? He was told that, having died there, they couldn’t
possibly come back down. They recounted a story of four seemingly competent
monks who had died in the cave not long before. Prior to entering the cave,
one of them had assured the villagers that he was impervious to fear, for he
knew a potent spell that protected him against ghosts and other spirits,
plus many other potent spells as well. He was convinced no spirit could
threaten him. Warning him repeatedly about the dangers, the villagers tried
to discourage his intentions, but he reiterated that he had no fear and
insisted on being taken to the cave. The villagers were left with no other
choice, so they showed him the way. Once there, he came down with a variety
of afflictions, including high fevers, pounding headaches, and terrible
stomach pains. Sleeping fitfully, he dreamt that he was being taken away to
his death.
Over the years, many different
monks had tried to live there, but their experiences were strikingly
similar. Some died, others quickly fled. The four most recent monks died
within a relatively short period. The villagers couldn’t guarantee that
their deaths were caused by a malevolent spirit; perhaps there was another
reason. But they had always noticed a powerful presence connected with the
cave. Local people weren’t so bold as to challenge its power, for they were
wary of it and envisioned themselves being carried back down in critical
condition – or as corpses.
Acariya Mun questioned them
further to satisfy himself that they were telling the truth. They assured
him that such things happened so often it frightened them to think about it.
For this reason, they warned any monk or lay person who came to search the
cave for magical objects or sacred amulets. Whether the cave actually
contained such things is another matter; but, the fact that some people
liked to claim their existence meant that those with a penchant for sacred
objects inevitably went there to search for them. The villagers themselves
had never seen such objects in the cave; nor had they seen those seeking
them encounter anything but death, or narrow escapes from death. Thus,
fearing for Acariya Mun’s safety, they begged him not to go.
Acariya Mun gave the villagers
a sympathetic hearing, but in the end he was still curious to see the cave.
Live or die, he wanted to put himself to the test, and so discover the truth
of those stories. The scary tales he heard didn’t frighten him in the least.
In truth, he saw this adventure as a means to arouse mindfulness, an
opportunity to acquire many new ideas for contemplation. He possessed the
courage to face whatever was to happen, as befits someone genuinely
interested in seeking the truth. So in his own unassuming way, he informed
the villagers that, although the stories were very frightening, he still
would like to spend some time in the cave. Assuring them that he would hurry
back down at the first sign of trouble, he asked to be escorted to the cave,
which they obligingly did.
FOR SEVERAL DAYS, Acariya Mun’s
physical condition remained normal, his heart calm and serene. The
environment around the cave was secluded and very quiet, disturbed only by
the natural sounds of wild animals foraging for food in the forest. He
passed the first few nights contentedly; but on subsequent nights he began
to suffer stomach pains. Although such pains were nothing new, this time the
condition grew steadily worse, eventually becoming so severe that he
sometimes passed blood in his stool. Before long his stomach refused to
digest food properly it simply passed straight through. This made him
reflect on what the villagers had said about four monks dying there
recently. If his condition didn’t improve, perhaps he would be the fifth.
When lay people came to see him
at the cave one morning, he sent them to look in the forest for certain
medicinal plants that he had previously found beneficial. They gathered
various roots and wood essences which he boiled into a potion and drank, or
else ground into powder, drinking it dissolved in water. He tried several
different combinations of herbs, but none relieved his symptoms. They
worsened with each passing day. His body was extremely weak; and though his
mental resolve was not greatly affected, it was clearly weaker than normal.
As he sat drinking the medicine
one day, a thought arose which, prompting a self-critical examination,
reinforced his resolve: I’ve been taking this medicine now for many days. If
it really is an effective stomach cure, then I should see some positive
results by now. But every day my condition worsens. Why isn’t this medicine
having the desired effect? Perhaps it’s not helping at all. Instead, it may
be aggravating the symptoms and so causing the steady deterioration. If so,
why continue taking it? Once he became fully aware of his predicament, he
made an emphatic decision. From that day on he would treat his stomach
disorder using only ‘the therapeutic properties of Dhamma’. If he lived, so
much the better; if he died, then so be it. Conventional types of treatment
proving ineffective, he determined to stop taking all medicines until he was
cured by Dhamma’s therapeutic powers, or else died there in the cave. With
this firm resolution in mind, he reminded himself: I’m a Buddhist monk. I’ve
certainly practiced meditation long enough to recognize the correct path
leading to magga, phala, and Nibbana. By now my practice should be firmly
anchored in this conviction. So why am I so weak and cowardly when faced
with a small degree of pain? It’s only a slight pain, after all, yet I can’t
seem to come to grips with it. Becoming weak all of a sudden, I now feel
defeated. Later, when life reaches a critical juncture
– at the moment of death as the body begins to break up and disintegrate
– the onslaught of pain will then crush down mercilessly on body and mind.
Where shall I find the strength to fight it so I can transcend this world
and avoid being outdone in death’s struggle?
With this solemn determination,
he stopped taking all medicines and began earnestly focusing on meditation
as the sole remedy for all spiritual and bodily ailments. Discarding concern
for his life, he let his body follow its own natural course, turning his
attention to probing the citta – that essential ‘knowing nature’ which never
dies, yet has death as its constant companion. He set to work examining the
citta, using the full powers of mindfulness, wisdom, faith and perseverance
that he had been developing within himself for so long. The seriousness of
his physical condition ceased to interest him; concerns about death no
longer arose. He directed mindfulness and wisdom to investigate the painful
feelings he experienced, making them separate the body into its constituent
elements, and then thoroughly analyzing each one. He examined the physical
components of the body and the feelings of pain within it. He analyzed the
function of memory which presumes that one or another part of the body is in
pain.22 And he analyzed the thought processes which conceive the body as
being in pain.23 All such vital aspects were targeted in the investigation
conducted by mindfulness and wisdom as they continued to probe into the
body, the pain, and the citta, relentlessly exploring their connections from
dusk until midnight.
Through this process, he
succeeded in fully disengaging the body from the severe pain caused by his
stomach disorder until he understood, with absolute clarity, just how they
are interrelated. At that moment of realization, his citta ‘converged’ into
complete calm – a moment that saw his spiritual resolve immeasurably
strengthened, and his bodily illness totally vanish. The illness, the pain,
the mind’s preoccupations – all disappeared simultaneously.
Remaining only briefly in
complete stillness, his citta withdrew slightly, reaching the level of
upacara samadhi. This ‘luminous’ citta then left the confines of his body
and immediately encountered an enormous, black man standing fully thirty
feet tall. The towering figure carried a huge metal club – twelve feet long
and thick as a man’s leg. Walking up to Acariya Mun, he announced in a
menacing voice that he was about to pound him right into the ground. He
warned Acariya Mun to flee that very instant if he wished to remain alive.
The metal club resting on his shoulder was so huge that a single blow from
it would have been enough to pound a large bull elephant into the earth.
Acariya Mun focused his citta
on the giant spirit, asking why he wanted to club to death someone who had
done nothing to warrant such brutal treatment. He reminded the giant that he
had harmed no one while living there; that he had caused no trouble
deserving of such deadly punishment. The giant replied by saying that he had
long been the sole authority guarding that mountain and would never allow
anyone to usurp that authority. He felt compelled to take decisive action
against all intruders.
Acariya Mun’s response was
reproachful: “I did not come here to usurp anyone’s authority. I came to
carry on the noble work of spiritual development, for I aim to usurp the
authority that the kilesas exercise over my heart. Harming a virtuous monk
in any way is an absolutely despicable act. I am a disciple of the Lord
Buddha, that supremely pure individual whose all-powerful loving compassion
encompasses the whole of the sentient universe. Does the great authority you
boast give you power to override the authority of Dhamma, and of kamma –
those immutable laws that govern the existence of all living beings?”
The creature replied: “No, sir.”
Acariya Mun then said: “The Lord Buddha possessed the skill and the courage
to destroy those insidious mental defilements that like boasting of power
and authority. Thus, he banished from his heart all thoughts of beating or
killing other people. You think you’re so smart, have you ever given any
thought to taking decisive action against the
kilesas in your heart?”
The creature admitted: “Not yet, sir.”
“In that case, such overbearing authority will just make you a cruel, savage
individual, resulting in very grave consequences for you. You don’t possess
the authority needed to rid yourself of evil, so you use the fires of magic
against others, unaware that you’re actually burning yourself. You are
creating very grave kamma indeed. As though that weren’t bad enough, you
want to attack and kill someone who represents the virtues of Dhamma which
are central to the world’s well-being. How can you ever hope to lay claim to
laudable virtues, when you insist on engaging in evil behavior of such
unparalleled brutality? “I am a man of virtue. I have come here with the
purest intentions
– to practice Dhamma for my own spiritual benefit, and the benefit of
others. Despite that, you threaten to pound me into the ground, giving no
thought to the consequences of such an evil deed. Don’t you realize that it
will drag you into hell where you will reap the terrible misery you have
sown? Rather than feel concerned for myself, I feel very sorry for you –
you’ve become so obsessed with your own authority that it’s now burning you
alive. Can your potent powers withstand the effect of the grave act you are
about to commit? You say you exercise sovereign authority over this
mountain, but can your magic powers override Dhamma and the laws of kamma?
If your powers really are superior to Dhamma, then go ahead – pound me to
death! I’m not afraid to die. Even if I don’t die today, my death remains
inevitable. For the world is a place where all who are born must die – even
you, blinded as you are by your own self-importance. You are not above
death, or the laws of kamma that govern all living beings.”
The mysterious being stood
listening, rigid as a statue, the deadly metal club resting on his shoulder
as Acariya Mun admonished him by means of samadhi meditation. He stood so
completely still that if he were a human being we would say that he was so
frightened and ashamed he could scarcely breath. But this was a special
nonhuman being, so he didn’t in fact breathe. Yet his whole manner clearly
showed him to be so ashamed and fearful of Acariya Mun that he could barely
restrain his emotions, which he still managed to do quite admirably.
Acariya Mun had finished
speaking. Suddenly, the contrite spirit flung the metal club down from his
shoulder and spontaneously transformed his appearance from a huge, black
creature into a devout Buddhist gentleman with a mild, courteous demeanor.
Approaching Acariya Mun with heartfelt respect, the gentleman then asked his
forgiveness, expressing deep remorse. Here is the gist of what he said: “I
was surprised, and felt somewhat frightened, the first moment I saw you. I
immediately noticed a strange and amazing radiance extending out all around
you, a brilliance unlike anything I had ever seen. It created such a
profound impact that in your presence I felt weak and numb. I couldn’t do
anything – so captivated was I by that radiant glow. Still, I didn’t know
what it was, for I had never before experienced anything like it.
“My threats to kill you a
moment ago didn’t come from my heart’s true feelings. Rather, they stemmed
from a long-held belief that I possess unrivaled authority over nonhuman
beings, as well as humans with evil intent who lack moral principles. Such
authority can be imposed on anyone, at any time; and that person will be
powerless to resist. This arrogant sense of self-importance led me to
confront you. Feeling vulnerable, I didn’t want to lose face. Even as I
threatened you, I felt nervous and hesitant, unable to act on my threat. It
was merely the stance of someone accustomed to wielding power over others.
Please be compassionate enough to forgive my rude, distasteful behavior
today. I don’t wish to suffer the consequences of evil anymore. As it is
now, I suffer enough. Any more, and I won’t have the strength to bear it.”
Acariya Mun was curious about this: “You are a prominent individual with
enormous power and prestige. You have an nonphysical body, so you needn’t
experience the human hardships of hunger and fatigue. You aren’t burdened
having to make a living as people here on earth are, so why do you complain
about suffering? If a celestial existence isn’t happiness, then which type
of existence is?”
The spirit replied: “On a
superficial level, perhaps, celestial beings with their ethereal bodies do
actually experience more happiness than humans, whose bodies are much
grosser. But speaking strictly in spiritual terms, a celestial being’s
ethereal body still suffers a degree of discomfort proportionate to the
refined nature of that state of existence.”
This discussion between spirit
and monk was far too profound and complex for me to capture its every detail
here, so I hope the reader will forgive me for this shortcoming.
As a result of the discussion,
the mysterious celestial being, showing great respect for the Dhamma he
heard, affirmed his devotion to the three refuges: Buddha, Dhamma, and
Sangha. He let it be known that he considered Acariya Mun to be one of his
refuges as well, asking Acariya Mun to bear witness to his faith. At the
same time, he offered Acariya Mun his full protection, inviting him to
remain in the cave indefinitely. Had his wish been granted, Acariya Mun
would have spent the rest of his life there. This being cherished the
opportunity to take care of him – he wanted to ensure that nothing
whatsoever disturbed Acariya Mun’s meditation. In truth, he was not some
mysterious being with a huge, black body – that was merely a guise. He was
the chief leader of all the terrestrial devas living in that region.24 His
large entourage lived in an area that centered in the mountains of Nakhon
Nayok and extended over many of the surrounding provinces as well.
Acariya Mun’s citta had
‘converged’ into calm at midnight, after which he met the terrestrial deva,
communicating by means of samadhi meditation until four a.m., when his citta
withdrew to normal consciousness. The stomach disorder that was troubling
him so much when he sat down at dusk had completely disappeared by that
time. The therapeutic power of Dhamma, administered by means of meditation,
was the only remedy he needed to effect a decisive cure – an experience that
Acariya Mun found incredibly amazing. Forgoing sleep, he continued striving
in his practice until dawn. Instead of feeling tired after a night of
exertion, his body was more energetic than ever.
He had passed a night full of
many amazing experiences: He witnessed Dhamma’s powerful ability to tame an
unruly spirit, transforming arrogance into faith; his citta remained in a
serenely calm state for many hours, savoring that wonderful sense of
happiness; a chronic illness was completely cured, his digestion returning
to normal; he was satisfied that his mind had acquired a solid spiritual
basis – one he could trust, thus dispelling many of his lingering doubts; he
realized many unusual insights he had never before attained, both those that
removed defilements and those that enhanced the special understanding which
formed an intrinsic part of his character.
During the months that
followed, his meditation practice progressed smoothly, accompanied always by
indescribable peace and tranquillity. With his health back to normal,
physical discomforts no longer troubled him. Sometimes, late at night, he
met with gatherings of terrestrial devas who came from various places to
visit him. Devas from the surrounding area had all heard of Acariya Mun, for
the mysterious deva who had engaged him in a war of words was now announcing
his presence to others, and escorting groups of them to meet him. On nights
when no visitors came, he enjoyed himself practicing meditation.
ONE AFTERNOON HE LEFT his
meditation seat to sit in the open air not far from the cave, reflecting on
the Dhamma that the Lord Buddha had so compassionately given to mankind. He
felt this Dhamma to be so very profound that he understood how difficult it
was going to be to practice it to perfection, and to fully realize its
essential truths. He felt a sense of satisfaction, thinking how fortunate he
was to be able to practice Dhamma and realize its many insights and truths –
an amazing feeling.
Even though he had yet to reach
the ultimate realization, a dream he’d long desired to fulfill, still the
spiritual contentment he experienced was very rewarding. He was sure now
that, unless death intervened, his hopes would surely be realized one day.
Savoring his contentment, he reflected on the path he took to practice
Dhamma and the results he hoped to achieve, proceeding step by step, until
he reached a complete cessation of dukkha, eliminating all traces of
discontent still existing within his heart.
Just then, a large troop of
monkeys came foraging for food in front of the cave. The leader of the troop
arrived first, a good distance in front of the rest. Reaching the area in
front of the cave, it spotted Acariya Mun who sat very still with eyes open,
glancing silently at the approaching monkey. The monkey immediately became
suspicious of his presence.
Nervous, worried about the
safety of its troop, it ran back and forth along the branch of a tree,
looking warily at him. Acariya Mun understood its anxiety, and sympathized
with it, sending out benevolent thoughts of loving kindness: I’ve come here
to practice Dhamma, not to mistreat or harm anyone; so there’s no need to
fear me. Keep searching for food as you please. You can come foraging around
here every day if you like.
In a flash, the lead monkey ran
back to its troop, which Acariya Mun could see approaching in the distance.
He watched what happened next with a sense of great amusement, combined with
sincere compassion.
As soon as the leader reached
the others, it quickly called out: Goke, hey not so fast! There’s something
over there. It may be dangerous! Hearing this, all the other monkeys began
asking at once: Goke, goke? Where, where? And simultaneously, the leader
turned his head toward Acariya Mun’s direction as if to say: Sitting over
there – can you see? Or something like that, but in the language of animals,
which is an unfathomable mystery to most human beings. Acariya Mun, however,
understood every word they spoke.
Once it had signaled Acariya
Mun’s presence to the group, the lead monkey warned them to proceed slowly
and cautiously until they could determine exactly what was up ahead. It then
hurried off ahead of the group, warily approaching the front of the cave
where Acariya Mun was seated. Being concerned for the safety of those
following behind, it was apprehensive, but also curious to find out what was
there. It cautiously snuck up close to Acariya Mun, jumping up and jumping
down from branch to branch, as monkeys tend to do, for they are quite
restless as everybody knows. The lead monkey watched Acariya Mun constantly
until it was sure that he posed no danger. Then, it ran back and informed
its friends: Goke, we can go. Goke, there’s no danger.
During this time, Acariya Mun
sat perfectly still, constantly gauging the lead monkey’s inner feelings to
judge its reaction to him. The way it ran back to speak to its friends was
quite comic; yet, knowing exactly what they said, Acariya Mun couldn’t help
feeling sorry for them. For those of us who don’t understand their language,
the calls they send back and forth to one another are merely sounds in the
forest, much like the bird calls we hear every day. But when the lead monkey
ran back, calling out to its troop, Acariya Mun understood the meaning of
what was said as clearly as if they had been conversing in human language.
In the beginning when the lead
monkey first spotted him, it hurried back to its troop, warning its friends
to take care and pay careful attention to what it had to say. Although it
communicated this message in the goke goke sounds that monkeys make, the
essential meaning was clear to the others: Hey, stop! Not so fast! There’s
danger up ahead. Hearing the warning, the others began wondering what danger
there was. First, one asked: Goke, what is it? Then, another asked: Goke,
what’s the matter? The lead monkey answered: Goke gake, there’s something up
there – it may be dangerous. The others asked: Goke, where is it? The leader
replied: Goke, right over there.
The sounds made by this large
troop of monkeys, as they questioned and answered one another, reverberated
through the whole forest. First, one called out in alarm; then another,
until monkeys, large and small, ran frantically back and forth, seeking
answers about their situation. Fearful of the possible danger they all
faced, they yelled excitedly to one another in a state of general confusion
– just as we people tend to do when confronted with an emergency. Their
leader was obliged to speak up and to try to clarify the situation,
cautioning them: Goke gake, everyone wait here first while I go back and
check to make sure. With these parting instructions, it hurried back to look
again. Approaching Acariya Mun who was seated in front of the cave, it
looked warily at him while scurrying to and fro through the branches of the
trees. Its eyes examined him with intense interest until it was satisfied
that Acariya Mun wasn’t an adversary. Then, it hurriedly returned to its
troop and announced: Goke gake, we can go now, it’s not dangerous. There’s
no need to be afraid. So the whole troop moved forward until it reached the
spot where Acariya Mun was seated, all of them cautiously peering at him in
a way that signaled their continuing mistrust. As monkeys tend to do when
their curiosity is aroused, the troop was jumping about through the trees.
The goke gake sounds of their queries echoed through the forest: What is it?
What’s it doing here? The sounds of their replies reverberated in the
agitated tone of animals needing to find out what’s going on.
This narration has a repetitive
quality, for this is the narrative style that Acariya Mun himself used when
telling this story. He wanted to emphasize the points of interest for his
audience, and thus clearly indicate their significance. He said that wild
monkeys tend to panic when sensing danger because, for ages, human beings
have used various brutal methods to kill these animals in countless numbers.
So monkeys are instinctively very distrustful of people.
The flow of an animal’s
consciousness infuses the different sounds it makes with the appropriate
meaning – just as human verbal expressions are determined by the flow of
human consciousness. So, it is just as easy for monkeys to understand the
meaning of their common sounds, as it is for people to understand the same
language. Each sound that issues from an animal’s flow of consciousness is
attuned to a specific meaning and purpose. These sounds communicate a clear
message, and those who are listening invariably comprehend their precise
meaning. So, even though it has no discernible meaning for human beings,
when monkeys emit a sound like goke, they all understand its intended
meaning, since this is the language monkeys use to communicate. Much the
same applies to people of different nationalities, each speaking their own
native language. Just as most nations around the world have their own
specific language, so too each species of animal has its own distinct means
of communication. Whether animals and humans can comprehend each others’
language ceases to be an issue when we accept that each group has the
prerogative to decide on the parameters of its speech and the manner in
which it is conducted.
Finally overcoming their fears,
the monkeys roamed freely in the area around the cave, foraging for food as
they pleased. No longer were they on guard, wary of the threat of danger.
From that day on, they felt right at home there, showing no interest in
Acariya Mun; and he paid no special attention to them as he and they both
went about their daily lives.
Acariya Mun said that all the
animals foraging for food in the area where he lived did so contentedly,
without fear. Ordinarily, animals of all kinds feel comfortable living in
places where monks have taken up residence, for animals are quite similar to
human beings in emotion. They simply lack the same predominant authority and
intelligence that humans possess. Their level of intelligence extends only
to the tasks of searching for food and finding a place to hide in order to
survive from day to day.
ONE EVENING ACARIYA MUN felt so
moved by a profound sense of sadness that tears came to his eyes. Seated in
meditation focusing on body contemplation, his citta ‘converged’ into a
state of such total calm that it appeared completely empty. At that moment,
he felt as though the whole universe had ceased to exist. Only emptiness
remained – the emptiness of his citta. Emerging from this profound state, he
contemplated the teaching of the Lord Buddha which prescribed the means for
removing the defiling pollutants that exist in the hearts of all living
beings – a knowledge arising from the incisive genius of the Lord Buddha’s
wisdom. The more he contemplated this matter, the more he understood the
amazing sagacity of the Buddha – and the more profoundly saddened he was by
his own ignorance. He realized the paramount importance of proper training
and instruction. Even such common bodily functions as eating food and
relieving ourselves must be taught to us. We learn to perform them properly
by undergoing training and instruction. Washing and dressing ourselves, in
fact all of our daily activities, must be learned through education –
otherwise, they will never be done correctly. Worse than doing them
incorrectly, we may end up doing something seriously wrong, which could have
grievous moral consequences. Just as it’s necessary to receive training in
how to take care of our bodies, so it is essential to receive proper
guidance in how to take care of our minds. If our minds don’t undergo the
appropriate training, then we’re bound to make serious mistakes, regardless
of our age, gender, or position in society.
The average person in this
world resembles a young child who needs adult guidance and constant
attention to safely grow to maturity. Most of us tend to grow up only in
appearance. Our titles, our status, and our self-importance tend to increase
ever more; but the knowledge and wisdom of the right way to achieve peace
and happiness for ourselves and others, don’t grow to maturity with them;
nor do we show an interest in developing these. Consequently, we always
experience difficulties wherever we go. These were the thoughts that moved
Acariya Mun to such a profound sense of sadness that evening.
AT THE FOOT OF THE MOUNTAIN,
where the path to the Sarika Cave began, stood a vipassana meditation
center, the residence of an elderly monk who was ordained late in life,
after having had a wife and family.
Thinking of this monk one
evening, Acariya Mun wondered what he was doing, and so, he sent out his
flow of consciousness to take a look. At that moment, the old monk’s mind
was completely distracted by thoughts of the past concerning the affairs of
his home and family. Again, sending out his flow of consciousness to observe
him later that same night, Acariya Mun encountered the same situation. Just
before dawn, he focused his citta once again, only to find the old monk
still busy making plans for his children and grandchildren. Each time he
sent out the flow of his citta to check, he found the monk thinking
incessantly about matters concerned with building a worldly life now, and
untold rounds of existence in the future.
On the way back from his
almsround that morning, he stopped to visit the elderly monk and immediately
put him on the spot: “How is it going, old fellow? Building a new house and
getting married to your wife all over again? You couldn’t sleep at all last
night. I suppose everything is all arranged now so you can relax in the
evenings, without having to get so worked up planning what you’ll say to
your children and grandchildren. I suspect you were so distracted by all
that business last night you hardly slept a wink, am I right?” Embarrassed,
the elderly monk asked with a sheepish smile: “You knew about last night?
You’re incredible, Acariya Mun.” Acariya Mun smiled in reply, and added:
“I’m sure you know yourself much better than I do, so why ask me? I’m
convinced you were thinking about those things quite deliberately, so
preoccupied with your thoughts you neglected to lie down and sleep all
night. Even now you continue to shamelessly enjoy thinking about such
matters and you don’t have the mindfulness to stop yourself. You’re still
determined to act upon those thoughts, aren’t you?”
As he finished speaking,
Acariya Mun noticed the elderly monk looking very pale, as though about to
faint from shock, or embarrassment. He mumbled something incoherent in a
faltering, ghostly sounding voice bordering on madness. Seeing his
condition, Acariya Mun instinctively knew that any further discussion would
have serious consequences. So he found an excuse to change the subject,
talking about other matters for a while to calm him down, then he returned
to the cave.
Three days later one of the old
monk’s lay supporters came to the cave, so Acariya Mun asked him about the
monk. The layman said that he had abruptly left the previous morning, with
no intention of returning. The layman had asked him why he was in such a
hurry to leave, and he replied: “How can I stay here any longer? The other
morning Acariya Mun stopped by and lectured me so poignantly that I almost
fainted right there in front of him. Had he continued lecturing me like that
much longer, I’d surely have passed out and died there on the spot. As it
was, he stopped and changed the subject, so I managed to survive somehow.
How can you expect me to remain here now, after that? I’m leaving today.”
The layman asked him: “Did
Acariya Mun scold you harshly? Is that why you nearly died, and now feel you
can no longer stay here?”
“He didn’t scold me at all, but
his astute questions were far worse than a tongue-lashing.”
“He asked you some questions,
is that it? Can you tell me what they were? Perhaps I can learn a lesson
from them.”
“Please don’t ask me to tell
you what he said, I’m embarrassed to death as it is. Should anyone ever
know, I’d sink into the ground. Without getting specific, I can tell you
this much: he knows everything we’re thinking. No scolding could possibly be
as bad as that. It’s quite natural for people to think both good thoughts
and bad thoughts. Who can control them? But when I discover that Acariya Mun
knows all about my private thoughts – that’s too much. I know I can’t stay
on here. Better to go off and die somewhere else than to stay here and
disturb him with my wayward thinking. I mustn’t stay here, further
disgracing myself. Last night I couldn’t sleep at all – I just can’t get
this matter out of my mind.”
But the layman begged to
differ: “Why should Acariya Mun be disturbed by what you think? He’s not the
one at fault. The person at fault is the one who should be disturbed by what
he’s done, and then make a sincere effort to rectify it. That, Acariya Mun
would certainly appreciate. So please stay on here for awhile – in that way,
when those thoughts arise, you can benefit from Acariya Mun’s advice. Then
you can develop the mindfulness needed to solve this problem, which is much
better than running away from it. What do you say to that?”
“I can’t stay. The prospect of
my developing mindfulness to improve myself can’t begin to rival my fear of
Acariya Mun: it’s like pitting a cat against an elephant! Just thinking that
he knows all about me is enough to make me shiver, so how could I possibly
maintain any degree of mindfulness? I’m leaving today. If I remain here any
longer, I’ll die for sure. Please believe me.”
The layman told Acariya Mun
that he felt very sorry for that old monk, but he didn’t know what to say to
prevent him leaving: “His face was so pale it was obvious he was frightened,
so I had to let him go. Before he left, I asked him where he’d be going. He
said he didn’t know for sure, but that if he didn’t die first, we’d probably
meet again someday – then he left. I had a boy send him off. When the boy
returned I asked him, but he didn’t know, for the elderly monk hadn’t told
him where he was going. I feel really sorry for him. An old man like that,
he shouldn’t have taken it so personally.”
Acariya Mun was deeply dismayed
to see his benevolent intentions producing such negative results, his
compassion being the cause of such unfortunate consequences. In truth,
seeing the elderly monk’s stunned reaction that very first day, he had
suspected then that this might happen. After that day he was disinclined to
send out the flow of his citta to investigate, fearing he might again meet
with the same situation. In the end, his suspicions were confirmed. He told
the layman that he’d spoken with the old monk in the familiar way that
friends normally do: playful one minute, serious the next. He never imagined
it becoming such a big issue that the elderly monk would feel compelled to
abandon his monastery and flee like that.
This incident became an
important lesson determining how Acariya Mun behaved toward all the many
people he met throughout his life. He was concerned that such an incident
might be repeated should he fail to make a point of carefully considering
the circumstances before speaking. From that day on, he never cautioned
people directly about the specific content of their thoughts. He merely
alluded indirectly to certain types of thinking as a means of helping people
become aware of the nature of their thoughts, but without upsetting their
feelings. People’s minds are like small children tottering uncertainly as
they learn to walk. An adult’s job is to merely watch them carefully so they
come to no harm. There’s no need to be overly protective all the time. The
same applies to people’s minds: they should be allowed to learn by their own
experiences. Sometimes their thinking will be right, sometimes wrong,
sometimes good, sometimes bad – this is only natural. It’s unreasonable to
expect them to be perfectly good and correct every time.
THE YEARS ACARIYA MUN spent
living in Sarika Cave were fruitful. He gained many enlightening ideas to
deepen his understanding of the exclusively internal aspects of his
meditation practice and many unusual insights concerning the great variety
of external phenomena he encountered in his meditation. He became so
pleasantly absorbed in his practice that he forgot about time: he hardly
noticed the days, the months, or the years as they passed. Intuitive
insights arose in his mind continuously – like water gently flowing along in
the rainy season. On afternoons when the weather was clear, he walked
through the forest admiring the trees and the mountains, meditating as he
went, absorbed in the natural scenery all around him. As evening fell, he
gradually made his way back to the cave.
The cave’s surrounding area
abounded in countless species of wild animals, the abundant variety of wild
plants and fruits being a rich, natural source of sustenance. Animals such
as monkeys, languars, flying squirrels, and gibbons, which depend on wild
fruits, came and went contentedly. Preoccupied with their own affairs, they
showed no fear in Acariya Mun’s presence. As he watched them foraging for
food he became engrossed in their playful antics. He felt a genuine spirit
of camaraderie with those creatures, considering them his companions in
birth, ageing, sickness, and death. In this respect, animals are on an equal
footing with people. For though animals and people differ in the extent of
their accumulated merit and goodness, animals nonetheless possess these
wholesome qualities in some measure as well. In fact, degrees of accumulated
merit may vary significantly among individual members of both groups.
Moreover, many animals may actually possess greater stores of merit than do
certain people, but having been unfortunate enough to be reborn into an
animal existence, they must endure the consequences for the time being.
Human beings face the same dilemma: for although human existence is
considered a higher birth than that of an animal, a person falling on hard
times and into poverty must endure that misfortune until it passes – or
until the results of that unfortunate kamma are exhausted. Only then can a
better state arise in its place. In this way the effects of kamma continue
to unfold, indefinitely. For precisely this reason, Acariya Mun always
insisted that we should never be contemptuous of another being’s lowly
status or state of birth. He always taught us that the good and the bad
kamma, created by each living being, are that being’s only true inheritance.
Each afternoon Acariya Mun
swept the area clean in front of the cave. Then for the rest of the evening
he concentrated on his meditation practice, alternating between walking and
sitting meditation. His samadhi practice steadily progressed, infusing his
heart with tranquillity. At the same time, he intensified the development of
wisdom by mentally dissecting the different parts of the body, while
analyzing them in terms of the three universal characteristics of existence:
that is to say, all are impermanent, bound up with suffering, and void of
any self. In this manner, his confidence grew with each passing day.
The Sàvaka Arahants
Living in Sarika Cave, Acariya
Mun was occasionally visited by savaka Arahants,25 who appeared to him by
means of samadhi nimitta.26 Each savaka Arahant delivered for his benefit a
discourse on Dhamma, elucidating the traditional practices of the Noble
Ones. Here is the substance of what was expressed:
Walking meditation must be
practiced in a calm, self-composed manner. Use mindfulness to focus your
attention directly on the task you have set for yourself. If you’re
investigating the nature of the khandhas or the conditions of the body, or
simply concentrating on a specific Dhamma theme, then make sure mindfulness
is firmly fixed on that object. Don’t allow your attention to drift
elsewhere. Such negligence is characteristic of one having no solid
spiritual basis to anchor him, and thus lacking a reliable inner refuge.
Mindful awareness should attend each and every movement in all your daily
activities. Don’t perform these actions as though you are so sound asleep
that you have no mindful awareness of how your body tosses about, or how
prolifically your sleeping mind dreams. Going on your morning almsround,
eating your food, and relieving yourself: in all such basic duties you
should adhere strictly to the traditional practices of the Lord Buddha’s
Noble disciples. Never behave as though you lack proper training in the
Teaching and the Discipline. Always conduct yourself in the manner of a true
samana27 with the calm, peaceful demeanor expected of one who ordains as a
disciple of the Lord Buddha. This means maintaining mindfulness and wisdom
in every posture as a way of eliminating the poisons buried deep within your
heart. Thoroughly investigate all the food you eat. Don’t allow those foods
that taste good to add poison to your mind. Even though the body may be
strengthened by food that’s eaten without proper investigation, the mind
will be weakened by its damaging effects. By nourishing your body with food
that is eaten unmindfully, you will, in effect, be destroying yourself with
nourishment that depletes your mental vitality.
A samana must never endanger
his own well-being or the well-being of others by shamefully accumulating
kilesas; for, not only do they harm him, but they can easily mushroom and
spread harm to others as well. In the view of the Buddha’s Noble disciples,
all mental defilements are to be greatly feared. Utmost care should be taken
to ensure that the mind does not neglect to check any outflow of the kilesas,
for each one acts like a sheet of fire destroying everything in its path.
The Noble Dhamma, practiced by all of the Lord Buddha’s Noble disciples,
emphasizes scrupulous self-discipline at all times and under all conditions
– whether walking, standing, sitting, lying down, eating or relieving
oneself; and in all of one’s conversations and social interactions.
Inattentive, undisciplined behavior is a habit of the kilesas, leading to
unwholesome thoughts, and thus, perpetuating the cycle of birth and death.
Those wishing to escape from the cycle of rebirth should avoid such
deplorable habits. They merely lead deeper into the abyss, eventually
causing one to become that most undesirable of persons – a wretched samana.
No one wishes to partake of wretched food; no one wishes to reside in a
wretched house; and no one wishes to dress in wretched clothes, or even look
at them.
Generally, people detest and
shun wretched things – how much more so a wretched person with a wretched
mind. But the most abhorrent thing in the world is a wretched samana who is
ordained as a Buddhist monk. His wretchedness pierces the hearts of good and
bad people alike. It pierces the hearts of all devas and brahmas without
exception. For this reason, one should strive to be a true samana exercising
extreme care to remain mindful and self-disciplined at all times.
Of all the many things that
people value and care for in the world, a person’s mind is the most
precious. In fact, the mind is the foremost treasure in the whole world, so
be sure to look after it well. To realize the mind’s true nature is to
realize Dhamma. Understanding the mind is the same as understanding Dhamma.
Once the mind is known, then Dhamma in its entirety is known. Arriving at
the truth about one’s mind is the attainment of Nibbana. Clearly, the mind
is a priceless possession that should never be overlooked. Those who neglect
to nurture the special status that the mind has within their bodies will
always be born flawed, no matter how many hundreds or thousands of times
they are reborn. Once we realize the precious nature of our own minds, we
should not be remiss, knowing full well that we are certain to regret it
later. Such remorse being avoidable, we should never allow it to occur.
Human beings are the most
intelligent form of life on earth. As such, they should not wallow in
ignorance. Otherwise, they will live an insufferably wretched existence,
never finding any measure of happiness. The manner in which a true samana
conducts all his affairs, both temporal and spiritual, sets a trustworthy
example to be followed by the rest of the world. He engages in work that is
pure and blameless; his actions are both righteous and dispassionate. So,
endeavor to cultivate within yourself the exemplary work of a samana, making
it flourish steadily, so that wherever you go, your practice will always
prosper accordingly. A samana who cherishes moral virtue, cherishes
concentration, cherishes mindfulness, cherishes wisdom and cherishes
diligent effort, is sure to achieve that exalted status of a full-fledged
samana now, and to maintain it in the future.
The teaching that I give you is
the dispensation of a man of diligence and perseverance, a spiritual warrior
who emerged victorious, a preeminent individual who completely transcended
dukkha, freeing himself of all fetters. He attained absolute freedom,
becoming the Lord Buddha, the supreme guide and teacher of the three worlds
of existence. If you can understand the special value this teaching holds
for you, before long you too will have rid yourself of kilesas. I entrust
this Dhamma teaching to you in the hope that you will give it the most
careful consideration.
In that way, you will
experience incredible wonders arising within your mind, which by its very
nature is a superb and wonderful thing. A savaka Arahant having delivered
such a discourse and departed, Acariya Mun humbly received that Dhamma
teaching. He carefully contemplated every aspect of it, isolating each
individual point, and then thoroughly analyzed them all, one by one. As more
and more savaka Arahants came to teach him in this way, he gained many new
insights into the practice just by listening to their expositions. Hearing
their wonderful discourses increased his enthusiasm for meditation, thus
greatly enhancing his understanding of Dhamma.
Acariya Mun said that listening
to a discourse delivered by one of the Buddha’s Arahant disciples made him
feel as if he was in the presence of the Lord Buddha himself, though he had
no prior recollection of meeting the Buddha. Listening intently, his heart
completely full, he became so absorbed in Dhamma that the entire physical
world, including his own body, ceased to exist for him then. The citta alone
existed, its awareness shining brightly with the radiance of Dhamma. It was
only later, when he withdrew from that state, that he realized the
oppressive burden he still carried with him: for he became conscious again
of his physical body – the focal point where the other four khandhas come
together, each one a heavy mass of suffering on its own.
During his lengthy sojourn at
Sarika Cave, Acariya Mun entertained many savaka Arahants and heeded their
words of advice, making this cave unique among all the places where he had
ever stayed. While living there, the Dhamma of unimpeachable certainty arose
in his heart; that is, he attained the fruition of Anagami.28 According to
Buddhist scripture, the Anagami has abandoned the five lower fetters that
bind living beings to the round of repeated existence: sakkayaditthi,
vicikiccha, silabbataparamasa, kamaraga, and patigha. Someone reaching this
level of attainment is assured of never being reborn in the human realm, or
in any other realm of existence where bodies are composed of the four gross
physical elements: earth, water, fire, and air. Should that individual fail
to ascend to the level of Arahant before dying, at the moment of death he
will be reborn into one of the five Pure Abodes of the brahma world. An
Anagami is reborn in the abode of aviha, atappa, sudassa, sudassi or
akanittha, depending on the individual’s level of advancement along the
Arahant path.
Acariya Mun revealed that he
attained the stage of Anagami in Sarika Cave exclusively to his close
disciples; but, I have decided to declare it publicly here for the reader’s
consideration. Should this disclosure be considered in any way
inappropriate, I deserve the blame for not being more circumspect.
ONE NIGHT, HAVING CONTINUED to
practice peacefully for many months, Acariya Mun experienced an unusually
strong feeling of compassion for his fellow monks. By that time, amazing
insights surfaced nightly in his meditation practice. He became keenly aware
of many strange, wonderful things – things he had never dreamed of seeing in
his life. On the night that he thought about his fellow monks, his
meditation had an exceptionally unusual quality to it. His citta had
attained an especially ethereal refinement in samadhi, resulting in many
extraordinary insights.
Fully realizing the harmful
effects that his own past ignorance had caused him, he was moved to tears.
At the same time, he understood the value of the effort he had struggled so
diligently to maintain until he could reap the amazing fruits of that
diligence. A deep appreciation for the Lord Buddha’s supreme importance
arose in his heart; for, it was he who compassionately proclaimed the Dhamma
so that others could follow in his footsteps, thus allowing them to
understand the complex nature of their own kamma, and that of all other
living beings as well. Thus the vital significance of the Dhamma verse: All
beings are born of their kamma and kamma is their one true possession, which
succinctly sums up practically all the Buddha’s teachings.
Those insights notwithstanding,
Acariya Mun continued to remind himself that despite their truly amazing
character he had yet to reach the end of the path and the cessation of
dukkha. To accomplish that he would need to pour all his energy into the
practice – with unstinting resolve. In the meantime, he was pleased to see
that the chronic stomach ailment which he had suffered so long was now
completely cured. More than that, his mind was now firmly anchored to a
solid spiritual basis. Although he had yet to totally eradicate his kilesas,
he was sure of being on the right path. His meditation practice, now
progressing smoothly, had none of the fluctuations he had experienced
earlier. Unlike in the past, when he was groping in the dark, feeling his
way along, he now felt certain of the path leading to the highest Dhamma. He
was absolutely convinced that one day he would transcend dukkha.
His mindfulness and wisdom had
reached a stage where they worked ceaselessly in perfect concert. He never
needed to urge them into action. Day and night, knowledge and understanding
arose continuously – both internal spiritual insights and awareness of
countless external phenomena. The more his mind delighted in such amazing
Dhamma, the more compassion he felt for his fellow monks: he was eager to
share with them these wondrous insights. In the end, this profound feeling
of compassion precipitated his departure from that auspicious cave. With
some reluctance, he eventually left to search out the dhutanga monks he had
known previously, when he was living in the Northeast.
Several days prior to his
departure from Sarika Cave, a group of terrestrial devas, led by the
mysterious being he first encountered there, came to hear a discourse on
Dhamma. After finishing his discourse, Acariya Mun informed them of his
decision, saying he would soon take leave of them. Unwilling to see him
depart, the large company of devas who were gathered there beseeched him to
stay on for the sake of their long-term happiness and prosperity. Acariya
Mun explained that, just as he had come to that cave for a reason, so too he
had a reason for moving on – he didn’t come and go slavishly, following his
desires. Asking for their understanding, he cautioned them against feeling
disappointed.
He promised that, if the
opportunity presented itself in the future, he would return. The devas
expressed their sincere regrets, showing the genuine affection and respect
for him they’d always felt.
At about ten p.m. on the night
before his departure, Acariya Mun thought of Chao Khun Upali at Wat
Boromaniwat monastery, wondering what was on his mind. So he focused his
citta and sent the flow of his consciousness out to observe him. He found
that Chao Khun Upali was at that moment contemplating avijja in relation to
paticcasamuppada.29 Acariya Mun took note of the time and the date. When
eventually he arrived in Bangkok, he asked Chao Khun Upali about what he’d
observed.
With a hearty laugh Chao Khun
Upali immediately acknowledged it to be true, saying this in praise of
Acariya Mun:
“You are truly masterful. I
myself am a respected teacher, yet I’m inept compared to you – and I feel
embarrassed. You truly are a master. This is exactly how a genuine disciple
of the Lord Buddha follows in the footsteps of the Supreme Teacher. We can’t
all be incompetent in the practice of the Lord Buddha’s teaching – somebody
has to maintain this exalted Dhamma in the spirit that it was originally
taught. By not allowing the modern age we live in to foster a lazy,
defeatist attitude toward the highest attainments, you have demonstrated the
timeless quality of the Buddha’s teaching. Otherwise, the true Dhamma will
no longer arise in the world, despite the fact that the Buddha proclaimed it
for the benefit of all mankind. The special knowledge you have just
displayed to me is most admirable. This is the way the Lord’s teaching
should be developed and put into practice.”
Acariya Mun stated that Chao
Khun Upali had the utmost admiration and respect for him. There were certain
occasions when he sent for Acariya Mun to help him solve certain problems he
was unable to resolve to his own satisfaction. Eventually when the time was
right, Acariya Mun left Bangkok and returned directly to the Northeast.
IN THE YEARS PRIOR to his
sojourn at Sarika Cave, Acariya Mun traveled into the neighboring country of
Burma, later returning by way of the northern Thai province of Chiang Mai.
Continuing on into Laos, he practiced the ascetic way of life for some time
in the area around Luang Prabang, eventually returning to Thailand to spend
the rains retreat near the village of Ban Khok in Loei province, quite close
to Pha Pu Cave. The following rains retreat was spent at Pha Bing Cave, also
in Loei province. Back then, these places were all wilderness areas, teeming
with wild animals where village communities were located far and few
between: one could walk all day without coming across a single settlement. A
person losing his way in that vast wilderness could find himself in the
precarious situation of having to sleep overnight in an inhospitable
environment at the mercy of tigers and other wild beasts.
On one occasion Acariya Mun
crossed the Mekong River and settled in a large tract of mountainous forest
on the Laotian side. While he camped there, a huge Bengal tiger often
wandered into his living area. Always coming at night, it stood some
distance away watching him pace back and forth in meditation. It never
displayed threatening behavior, but it did roar occasionally as it wandered
freely around the area. Being well accustomed to living in close proximity
to wild animals, Acariya Mun paid little attention to the tiger.
During that excursion he was
accompanied by another monk, Acariya Sitha, who had been ordained slightly
longer than he had. A contemporary of Acariya Mun, Acariya Sitha excelled in
the practice of meditation. He liked the type of seclusion that the
wilderness offered, preferring to live in the mountains stretching along the
Laotian side of the Mekong River. Only occasionally did he cross the river
into Thailand, and then never for very long.
On that occasion, Acariya Mun
and Acariya Sitha were camped some distance apart, each depending on a
separate village for his daily alms food. One night while walking in
meditation, Acariya Sitha was visited by a huge Bengal tiger. The tiger
crept in and quietly crouched forward to about six feet from his meditation
track, right in between the lighted candles at each end of the track that
allowed him to see as he paced back and forth in the dark. Facing the
meditation track while remaining motionless, it sat there calmly like a
house pet watching Acariya Sitha intently as he paced back and forth.
Reaching that place on the track opposite which the tiger was crouched,
Acariya Sitha sensed something out of place. At once he became suspicious,
for normally nothing was at the side of his track. Glancing over he saw the
huge Bengal tiger crouched there, staring back at him – since when he
couldn’t tell. Still, he felt no fear. He merely watched the tiger as it sat
motionless, looking back at him like a enormous stuffed animal.
After a moment he continued
pacing back and forth, passing each time in front of the tiger – but
thoughts of fear never crossed his mind. He noticed, though, that it
remained crouched there for an unusually long time. Feeling sorry for it, he
directed this train of thought at the tiger: Why not go off and find
something to eat? Why just sit there watching me? No sooner had this thought
arisen, than the tiger let out a deafening roar that resounded through the
whole forest. The sound of its roar left Acariya Sitha in no doubt that it
intended to stay, so he quickly changed tack, thinking: I thought that only
because I felt sorry for you – I was afraid you might get hungry sitting
there so long. After all, you have a mouth and a stomach to fill, just like
all other creatures. But if you don’t feel hungry and want to sit there
watching over me, that’s fine, I don’t mind.
The tiger showed no reaction to
Acariya Sitha’s change of heart – it just crouched by the path and continued
to watch him. He then resumed his meditation, taking no further interest in
it. Some time later he left the meditation track and walked to a small
bamboo platform situated close by to take a rest. He chanted suttas there
for awhile then sat peacefully in meditation until time to go to sleep,
which he did lying on the bamboo platform. During that entire time the tiger
remained crouched in its original position, not far away. But when he awoke
at three a.m. to resume his walking meditation, he saw no sign of the tiger
anywhere – he had no idea where it had gone. As it happened, he saw it only
that once; from then on until he left that place, it never appeared again.
This incident intrigued Acariya Sitha, so when he met with Acariya Mun he
described to him how the tiger had crouched there watching him. He told
Acariya Mun the tiger had roared at the precise moment the thought arose
wishing it to go away. He recounted how, although he wasn’t conscious of any
fear, his hair stood on end and his scalp went numb, as if he were wearing a
cap. But soon he again felt quite normal, resuming his walking meditation as
though nothing had happened.
Actually, there probably was a
subtle measure of fear buried deep inside that he was incapable of
perceiving at the time. Although the tiger never returned to his campsite,
he often heard the sound of its roars echoing through the nearby forest.
Still, Acariya Sitha’s mind remained resolute and he continued to practice
contentedly, as he always had.
|
|
Venerable Acariya Mun said that
he often traveled back and forth from the Northeast to Bangkok, sometimes
taking the train to ‘the end of the line’, which extended only part of the
distance in those days. All other times he walked dhutanga. Upon arriving in
Bangkok on this trip, he went to Wat Pathumwan monastery, and stayed there
through the rains retreat. During the rains he frequently studied Dhamma
texts with the Venerable Chao Khun Upali Gunupamacariya at his monastery,
Wat Boromaniwat.1 Chao Khun Upali invited Acariya Mun to accompany him to
Chiang Mai after the rains. So, during the dry season, they went to Chiang
Mai by train. On the train Acariya Mun remained in samadhi almost the whole
time. Between Bangkok and Lopburi he laid down to rest; but after the train
departed Lopburi and reached the foothills of Uttaradit, he entered samadhi
and remained there for the duration of the trip to Chiang Mai. At the start
of his meditation, he made a decision to withdraw from it only upon arrival
at Chiang Mai, and then focused exclusively on his meditation. After
approximately twenty minutes, his citta completely ‘converged’ into the very
base of samadhi. From that moment on, he was no longer aware of whether the
train was moving or not. Absolute stillness was all that his heart knew; all
awareness of external phenomena, including his body, completely ceased. Any
perception, that might have disturbed it, vanished from the citta, as though
the world no longer existed, having disappeared along with all thoughts and
inner sensations. The noise of the train, the other passengers, and all the
things that were associated with the citta earlier were extinguished from
his awareness. All that remained was his state of samadhi. The external
environment faded out of consciousness from the moment his citta first
‘converged’ until he arrived in Chiang Mai, where his previous determination
restored him to his normal state of consciousness.
When he opened his eyes to look
around, he saw the surrounding buildings and houses of the city. As he began
collecting his things in preparation for leaving the train, he noticed that
the passengers and railway officials around him were staring at him in
astonishment. When it was time to disembark, the railway officials
approached him and, smiling cheerfully, helped him with his things, while
everyone else in the passenger carriage stared curiously at him. Even before
he had stepped off the train, he was asked what monastery he was from and
where he was going. He replied that he was a forest-dwelling monk without a
fixed residence, and that he intended to go wandering alone in the remote
mountains of the North. Inspired by faith in him, some of them asked where
he would stay and whether anyone had agreed to take him there.
He thanked them, replying that
there was someone to receive him since his traveling companion was Chao Khun
Upali, a very senior monk and one who was highly respected by all in Chiang
Mai, from the governor to the merchants and the general public. So it
happened that a crowd of monks, novices, and lay supporters awaited to
receive Chao Khun Upali. There were even automobiles in waiting, which were
quite rare in those days. Official government cars as well as private ones
were there to escort them to Wat Chedi Luang monastery.
Once people learned that Chao
Khun Upali had returned to reside at Wat Chedi Luang, they came to pay their
respects and hear him expound the Dhamma. Chao Khun Upali took advantage of
the many people present to invite Acariya Mun to give a discourse on Dhamma.
Speaking eloquently, Acariya Mun enthralled the large audience so much that
they wished it would not end. Starting from the basics, he gradually climbed
step by step to the higher levels of Dhamma, where he ended his discourse to
the sincere regret of all who were absorbed in his presentation. He then
paid his respects to Chao Khun Upali before he left center stage to find a
place to relax by himself. Meanwhile, Chao Khun Upali praised his talk
before the whole assembly:
“Acariya Mun expounds Dhamma so
eloquently that it is difficult to find anyone to equal him. He clarifies
muttodaya – the heart released, the land of absolute freedom – in a way that
leaves no room for doubt. Everything is so precisely illustrated that I
myself couldn’t possibly match his unique, engrossing style. The rhetorical
fluency of this dhutanga monk is most extraordinary. Listening to him is a
pleasurable, learning experience. His discourses never become stale or
boring. He speaks of common, everyday things – things we see and hear all
the time but never pay attention to utilize. We recall their significance
only after he mentions them. Acariya Mun is an important kammatthana monk
who uses mindfulness and wisdom to faithfully follow the path taught by the
Buddha. He never tramples upon it in an unseemly, worldly manner. His talks
employ a full range of expression: sometimes casual, sometimes serious,
sometimes emphatic, stressing specific points. He elaborates the profound
complexities of Dhamma in a way the rest of us are hard pressed to do so
candidly. He is quite capable of analyzing the disparate aspects of Dhamma
and articulates them in a way that deeply affects our hearts. His commentary
is so brilliant that it’s hard to keep up with him. I myself have needed to
ask him questions about problems I couldn’t solve on my own, and he quickly
and adeptly solved those problems with his wisdom. I have benefited in
innumerable ways from his counsel.
“Since I was coming to Chiang
Mai I wanted Acariya Mun to accompany me, and he readily agreed. Although he
did not specifically mention this to me, he probably agreed to come here
because he knows Chiang Mai abounds in mountains and forests suitable for
the spiritual life. Monks like Acariya Mun are extremely hard to find. Even
though I am his senior, I wholly revere the Dhamma within him – and yet, he
is still so humble and gracious towards me that I sometimes feel
embarrassed. He has intended to stay here for only a short while before
going off in search of seclusion. I must allow my friend to follow his
inclinations as I dare not contradict them, for it is rare indeed to find
such a monk. With his intentions being solely focused on Dhamma, we should
wish him the best as he strives to improve himself. He can then be of
greater benefit to us all in the near future.
“Those of you who have problems
with your meditation practice, please go to him and seek his advice. You
certainly won’t be disappointed. But please don’t ask him for powerful
amulets, magic spells, or lucky charms to ward off danger, for they are all
outside the way of practice. You will just make yourself a nuisance to him
for no good reason. You may well receive a reprimand – don’t say I never
warned you!
Acariya Mun is not that kind of
monk. He is a genuine monk, sincerely teaching people to know the difference
between right and wrong, good and bad, virtue and evil. His teaching never
deviates from the path of Dhamma. His way of practice and knowledge of
Dhamma are true to the teachings of the Lord Buddha. No one else nowadays
can convey such incredible ideas as he has presented me from our discussions
on Dhamma. That has been my experience. I hold an immense respect for him in
my heart, but, I have never told him this. Nevertheless, he may already know
of it from his powers of intuition.
“Acariya Mun is a monk truly
worthy of the highest respect, and is unquestionably ‘an incomparable field
of merit for the world’. He himself never makes claims of noble attainments,
though they are apparent to me when we discuss Dhamma in private. I am
wholly convinced that he is firmly established in the third level of the
Noble Dhamma. It is obvious from the way he expresses himself. Although he
has never made statements of his specific level of attainment, I know for
certain what it is: for the knowledge of Dhamma he has conveyed to me is
absolutely consistent with that level as described in the Buddhist texts. He
has shown me nothing but loyalty and respect, and I have never known him to
be in any way stubborn or disdainful. He conducts himself with such humility
that I cannot help but admire him from the bottom of my heart.”
These were the words of praise
that Chao Khun Upali addressed to the lay followers, monks, and novices
after Acariya Mun gave his Dhamma talk and returned to his hut. Afterwards,
monks who were present reported this speech to Acariya Mun, who later
recounted the story to his disciples when a good opportunity arose. The term
muttodaya means “a heart released”. Its mention in the short biographical
sketch distributed at Acariya Mun’s cremation stems from that occasion in
Chiang Mai when Chao Khun Upali praised his noble virtues. The name stuck
and was then passed down to future generations by word of mouth. According
to Chao Khun Dhammachedi of Wat Bodhisomphon monastery in Udon Thani,
Acariya Mun remained practicing in Chiang Mai from 1929 to 1940 when he left
for the province of Udon Thani. More will be written later concerning his
stay in Udon Thani.
HAVING LIVED AT Wat Chedi Luang
monastery for some time, Acariya Mun paid his respects to Chao Khun Upali
and took leave to wander in search of solitude in the remote wilderness
areas of the North. Chao Khun Upali readily gave his permission; and so
Acariya Mun departed alone from Chiang Mai, beginning another journey. He
had eagerly awaited the ideal seclusion he needed for a long time, and the
perfect opportunity finally arose. Having been long involved in teaching
others, it was the first time in many years that he had time alone.
Initially, he wandered through the Mae Rim district in Chiang Dao, staying
in the forested mountains there throughout the dry and rainy seasons.
His efforts had reached the
crucial, final stage. He exhorted himself to strive earnestly to reach the
final goal, whatever happened – live or die. Nothing whatsoever would be
allowed to interfere. Out of compassion he had taught his fellow monks to
the best of his ability – of this he had no doubt. The results of his
guidance had already begun to show in some of his disciples. Now it was time
to have compassion for himself, to educate and lift himself above and beyond
those obscuring inner factors which still needed to be overcome.
The life of someone with social
obligations and responsibilities is a life of distraction and of almost
unbearable stress, never allowing adequate time for being alone. One must
admit that this kind of life is a perpetual struggle to be endured, even
though a person may have enough mindfulness and wisdom to avoid this burden
somewhat and alleviate the stress so that it doesn’t overwhelm him. The
opportunities to practice meditation are limited; the results are likely to
be minimal and not worth all the disappointments and difficulties.
This solitary excursion into
the untamed wilderness was an ideal opportunity for him to disengage and
live alone, aloof from all entanglements. Wild, remote forests are just the
right kinds of places to live and practice for someone aiming to sever all
residual attachments, both internal and external, from his heart. He can
discard all the remaining concerns that might form the seeds of future
existence – the source of all forms of dukkha that brings menace in its wake
and causes endless suffering. Remote forests are the right environment in
which a persistent and diligent person can zero in on the fundamental causes
of existence–the great internal masters of deception leading us astray–and
excise them quickly from his heart. While one is still far from reaching the
shores of Nibbana, little benefit can be gained from involvement in other
people’s affairs; for that is comparable to overloading a barge that is
ready to sink even before it starts going. When the coveted goal of the holy
life seemed within reach, Acariya Mun’s compassionate concern for others
dropped away, replaced by motivations of a more personal nature. He was no
longer considering the suffering of others. His resolve was focused firmly
on the realm of purity and he was concerned, lest he not reach it this time.
Thus he reflected:
“Now I must worry about myself
– pity myself – so that as a diligent disciple of the Tathagata, I can live
up to his exalted virtue of unwavering perseverance. Am I fully aware that I
have come here striving to cross beyond the world of samsara and attain the
goal of Nibbana – the freedom from all anxiety and dukkha? If so, what
methods should be used by someone attempting to cross beyond the
conventional world? The Lord Buddha first led the way and then taught us the
Dhamma – what kind of guidance did he give? Did he teach us to forget our
purpose and start worrying about this and that as soon as we have gained a
modest understanding of Dhamma? “In the beginning, the Lord Buddha publicly
proclaimed the sasana with the help of a small number of Arahants, getting
his message rapidly spread far and wide – most properly so. But I am not in
the same exalted position, so I must view my own development as paramount
right now. When I have perfected myself, then benefits to others will
inevitably follow. This view befits one who is circumspect and reluctant to
waste time. I must reflect on this carefully, so I can learn a lesson from
it.
“Right now, I am striving for
victory in a battle between the kilesas and magga, the way of Dhamma, in
order to win freedom for the citta. Until now its loyalties have been
divided between these two rivals, but I aim to make Dhamma its undisputed
master. If my persistence slackens and my powers of discernment are
inadequate, the citta will slip from my grasp and fall under the ignoble
influence of the kilesas; and they will ensure that the citta keeps turning
in a never-ending cycle of birth and despair. But if I can keep up my
persistence and keep my wisdom sharp, the citta will come under my control
and be my own priceless treasure for the taking.
“The time has come for me to
put my life on the line and engage the kilesas in a fierce all out assault,
showing no hesitation or weakness. If I lose, then let me die while battling
it out. I will not allow myself to retreat in disarray so that the kilesas
can ridicule me – that will be a lasting disgrace. If I am victorious, I
shall remain perfectly free for all eternity. So now, there is only one path
for me to take: I must fight to the death with all my might for the sake of
this victory. There is no other choice.”
This is the kind of exhortation
that Acariya Mun used to embolden himself for the impending realization of
the goal he had set for himself. It reflected his uncompromising decision to
accept the obligation of striving for Nibbana steadfastly both day and night
– whether standing, walking, sitting, or lying down. Except when he rested
to sleep, his time was wholly devoted to diligent effort. His mindfulness
and wisdom circled around all external sensations and all internal thought
processes, meticulously investigating everything without leaving any aspect
unexplored. At this level of practice, mindfulness and wisdom act in unison
like a Wheel of Dhamma, turning continuously in motion, irrespective of the
body’s action.
Later, when Acariya Mun
described his tremendous efforts during that time, his audience was so
awe-struck by his Dhamma exploits that they sat motionless with bated
breath. It was as though Acariya Mun had opened the door to Nibbana,
allowing them a glimpse inside, without their having ever experienced
Nibbana before. In truth, Acariya Mun was then in the process of
accelerating his efforts toward the realization of Nibbana. Although only a
stage in the course of his development, it nevertheless moved those who had
never before heard of such a thing, and they were always carried away by the
awesome power of his achievement.
ACARIYA MUN SAID that his citta
had long attained the third ariya level of Anagami; but, because of his
continual obligations to his followers, he had no time to speed up his
efforts as he wished. Only when he had the opportunity to go to Chiang Mai
was he able to maximize his practice and accomplish his objective.
Chiang Mai’s environment was
conducive and his citta was well prepared. Physically, he was in excellent
shape, fit to exert himself in every activity. His fervent hope was like the
radiant sun, streaming forth continuously to reach the shore free of dukkha
in the shortest possible time. He compared his inner struggle between Dhamma
and the kilesas to a hunting dog, which, at full run, corners its prey; and
it is only a matter of time before the prey is torn to shreds in the jaws of
the chasing hound. There could be no other ending, for the citta was armed
with mahasati and mahapañña – supreme-mindfulness and supreme-wisdom.
They never lapse for a single
moment, even when one has no intent to be vigilant. At this level,
mindfulness and wisdom are fully present, reacting automatically to all
matters arising within oneself. As soon as their cause is known and their
true nature is clearly understood, one simply lets go of them. It is not
necessary then to be in command, giving orders, as is the case in the
initial stages of practice. When equipped with habitual mindfulness and
wisdom, there is no need for specific directions and calculated decisions to
practice this or to investigate that, while having to simultaneously guard
against lapses in attention. “Reason and result” are integrated into the
nature of automatic mindfulness and automatic wisdom; so, it is unnecessary
to search on one’s own for reasons and skillful methods to encourage their
operation. With the exception of sleep, all daily activities are the working
arenas for this level of mahasati and mahapañña. Just like spring water that
flows steadily out of the ground all year round, they work ceaselessly.
The thinking process is taken
as the focal point of the investigation, in order to find the true source of
these thoughts. The four nama khandhas – vedana, sañña, sankhara, and
viññana – are the appropriate battleground for this superior degree of
mindfulness and wisdom. As for the rupa khandha – the physical body – it
ceased to be a problem when one achieved the intermediate level of wisdom.
This form of wisdom performs the tasks necessary for realizing the Anagami
stage of the Nobel Path. To attain this exalted level, one must focus on the
physical body, investigating it scrupulously in every detail until all
misunderstandings and concerns about the body are forever banished.
When one comes to the final
stage – the path to Arahantship, it is absolutely essential to investigate
the nama khandhas so that one gains a deep and clear understanding about how
all phenomena arise, briefly exist, and then vanish. These three aspects of
the investigation converge in the truth of anatta. This means examining all
phenomena as being empty of a permanent self: empty of being a man or woman,
empty of being me or them. No self-entity – whatsoever – exists anywhere
within mental phenomena.2 To comprehend the true nature of the nama khandhas,
one must discover the fundamental principles underlying them and understand
them deeply and clearly with wisdom. It’s not enough that we anticipate
results or speculate about their nature, as is the common tendency of most
people – people who just prefer to do guesswork.
A theoretical understanding,
acquired from learning, differs from a genuine understanding based on wisdom
as the earth differs from the sky. People whose understanding is founded
upon knowledge gained through memorization are very preoccupied with their
own ideas, always assuming that they are highly intelligent. In truth, they
are completely deluded. Consequently, they become overly conceited and are
reluctant to accept help and advice from anyone.3
This arrogant tendency is quite
apparent when a group of scholars discusses Dhamma, each one constantly
trying to champion his own intellectual theories. These meetings usually
degenerate into verbal sparring matches, spurred on by this common attitude
of self-importance, until everyone – regardless of age, race, gender, or
clan – forgets to observe the proper etiquette expected of such ‘civilized’
people. Understanding, based on wisdom, is ready to uproot all types of
speculative views that continually manifest our conceit. Wisdom is prepared
to ferret out and expose these erroneous views, penetrating every niche
until the whole edifice of these kilesas comes crashing down. There is not
one kilesa that can successfully withstand the penetration of the highest
degree of mindfulness and wisdom.
In the Dhamma’s arsenal,
mindfulness and wisdom are the foremost weapons. Never have the kilesas been
intrepid enough to defeat them. The Lord Buddha became the Supreme Teacher
because of mindfulness and wisdom. His disciples became Arahants because of
mindfulness and wisdom. Because of mindfulness and wisdom, they were able to
see with insight into the true nature of things. They didn’t uproot their
kilesas by using learning, supposition, or mere guesswork. In the initial
stages of practice, concepts recalled from memory can be used to delineate
the boundaries of the way forward; but, one must exercise great caution lest
this kind of conjecture causes delusion appearing in the guise of genuine
truth.
When the Lord Buddha and his
Arahant disciples proclaimed the Truth of his teaching to the world, they
were proclaiming the way of wisdom – the way that brings us to see the true
nature of all phenomena. We practitioners of meditation must be extremely
careful that the master of speculation doesn’t sneak in and conjure up his
tricks in place of wisdom. If we aren’t, we will be led to mistake mere
concepts for true understanding, without ever removing a single kilesa from
our hearts. We may find ourselves inundated with knowledge about salvation,
yet unable to save ourselves. This is exactly what the Lord Buddha meant
when he advised the people of Kalama not to believe in speculation or
conjecture, and not to believe teachings handed down from the past or
teachers who are considered to be reliable; but to believe that the
principles of truth can be discovered within themselves – by the wisdom
within themselves. This is the surest kind of knowledge there is. The Lord
Buddha and his Arahant disciples didn’t need anyone to validate the
authenticity of their attainment, for sanditthiko is there within everyone
who practices the Buddha’s teaching in the right way.4 Acariya Mun said that
when he came to this last level of advanced practice, he became so intrigued
with it that he lost all sense of time. He completely forgot the time of
day, forgot to sleep, and then forgot how tired he was. Fearless and
unshakable, his citta was constantly in position to oppose every type of
kilesa, ready to excise them by their roots. From the time he left Wat Chedi
Luang in Chiang Mai, he did not allow a single day to pass in vain. And
before long, he reached the point of ultimate understanding.5
At the moment he set off alone,
his citta began to express the dynamic characteristics of a daring
thoroughbred stallion. It wanted to soar high and glide through the air,
dive underground and then shoot up into the sky again. It felt inclined to
venture out to experience the many countless variety of phenomena in the
universe. He felt as if his citta was about to dig up and remove all of the
kilesas in a single instant. The adventurous nature of his mindfulness and
wisdom had long been hemmed in by social obligations. They were unable to
move freely about in their preferred domain – the observation and analysis
of just those things Acariya Mun had wanted to know about for such a long
time.
Now he was blessed – blessed
with the opportunity of leaping away and vanishing, finally able to give
mindfulness and wisdom the chance to display their considerable prowess as
they explored throughout the three worlds of existence.
Acariya Mun investigated
thoroughly, internally and externally. His mindfulness and wisdom penetrated
all around – constantly moving in and out, up and down – all the while
resolving issues, detaching himself, and then letting go as he cut, slashed,
and pulverized every manner of falsehood with all the strength he could
muster. Feeling unbound as a giant fish swimming happily in the ocean, he
looked back on his entire past and saw only dark obstructive times lurking
there, fraught with all kinds of dangerous, inevitable consequences. His
heart beat faster at the prospect of finding a way to save himself. Looking
to the future, he saw before him only a majestic, empty expanse of brilliant
illumination – a view that completely surpasses any conventional
understanding and is utterly beyond all description. So much so, that I find
it difficult to elaborate any further for the benefit of the reader. I
sincerely regret that I am unable to do justice to all the inspiring things
Acariya Mun said.
Acariya Mun sat in meditation
late that night, not too long after supreme-mindfulness and supreme-wisdom
had reached the peak of their performance. Like a Wheel of Dhamma, they
moved in unison as they rotated non-stop around the citta and everything
related to it. He was residing at the base of a mountain, in a broad, open
area covered with enormous flat rocks. Clear, open space surrounded him as
he sat at the foot of a solitary tree – the only tree in that entire area.
This tree had abundant cool shade during the day, so he sometimes went to
meditate under it.
I regret that I cannot recall
what type of tree it was, or its exact location. As Acariya Mun described
this amazing event, I was so thoroughly overwhelmed by the magnitude of his
achievement that I failed to remember any of the pertinent details – what
district and township he was in, or even the name of the mountain range.
Hearing him talk of his great victory, I couldn’t help thinking about
myself. Was I going to simply waste my birth as a human being, carelessly
throwing away the wonderful opportunity it gave me? Did I have enough
spiritual potential to one day succeed in realizing that same Supreme
Dhamma? Reflecting in this manner, I forgot everything else. I had no idea
that, someday, I would be writing his biography.
At dusk Acariya Mun began
walking meditation, focusing on paticcasamuppada, as the theme of primary
relevance to this level of contemplation. 6 Starting with avijja paccaya
sankhara, he became so intrigued by the subject of ‘dependent origination’
that he was soon investigating it to the exclusion of all else. By the time
he sat down at about nine o’clock, his mind was concentrated solely on
scrutinizing avijja, examining each of the interdependent conditions through
to the logical conclusion, then reversing the order to arrive back at
avijja. Contemplating thus, he deliberated back and forth, over and over –
inside the citta – the focal point where birth, death, and kilesas converge
with the principal cause – avijja.
Seated in meditation late that
night, the crucial moment had arrived. The battle lines were drawn:
supreme-mindfulness and supreme-wisdom – the razor sharp weapons – against
avijja, an enemy especially adroit at repulsing their advances then
counterattacking, leaving its opponents in total disarray. Since time
immemorial no one has dared to challenge its might, allowing avijja to reign
supreme and unopposed over the ‘kingdom of birth and death’ inside the
hearts of all living beings. But at three a.m. that night when Acariya Mun
launched his final, all out assault, the result was the total destruction of
the king’s mighty throne and the complete overthrow of his reign in the
kingdom of birth and death. Suddenly impotent and deprived of room to
maneuver, the king could not maintain his sovereignty. At that moment avijja
perished, victim to a lightning strike of magnificent brilliance.
Acariya Mun described how that
fateful moment was accompanied by a tremor that appeared to shake the entire
universe. Celestial beings throughout this vast expanse immediately paid
tribute to his supreme accomplishment, roaring an exclamation of approval
that reverberated across the sentient universe, and proclaimed the
appearance of another disciple of the Tathagata in the world. Overjoyed to
have witnessed this event, they were eager to offer their congratulations.
Human beings, however, were unaware of the momentous event that had just
taken place. Occupied with worldly pleasures, they were too oblivious to
care that, only a moment before, the Supreme Dhamma had arisen in the heart
of a fellow human being.
When the awesome moment passed,
what remained was visuddhidhamma. 7 This pure Dhamma – the true, natural
state of the citta – suffused Acariya Mun’s body and mind, and extended its
light in all directions. The experience aroused an indescribable feeling of
great awe and wonder. His customary compassion for the world virtually
disappeared, and with it, his interest in teaching other people. He was
convinced that this Supreme Dhamma was far too profound and overwhelming in
its greatness for people to ever truly understand. So he became disheartened
in this respect, feeling disinclined to teach others. He felt it was enough
to simply enjoy this wonderful Dhamma alone while still living in the midst
of the conventional world.
Acariya Mun reflected at length
that night on the beneficence of the Lord Buddha. This Supreme Teacher,
having fully realized the Truth, taught people who were receptive to his
message so that they too could attain genuine deliverance. It was obvious
that not a single falsehood was concealed anywhere within the Buddha’s
teaching. He spent the rest of that night tirelessly paying homage to the
supreme virtues of the Lord Buddha.
Acariya Mun had always been
compassionate – he was deeply sympathetic to the spiritual state of fellow
human beings. But his citta had just attained a clarity that was so
extraordinary in its brilliance and purity that he felt he could not
possibly explain the true nature of this Dhamma to others. Even if he tried,
ordinary people with kilesas could never hope to attain this exalted state
of mind. More than that, hearing him speak in such superlatives, they could
accuse him of insanity for daring to teach the world something that no good,
sane person would ever discuss. He believed it unlikely that there would be
enough sympathetic people to generate his enthusiasm for teaching. He was
free to live a life of solitude for the remainder of his years. It was
sufficient that he had fully realized his life-long ambition. He saw no
reason to burden himself with difficult teaching responsibilities. It could
end up being an example of good causes with bad effects: that is, his
compassionate intentions could well turn into harmful results for
contemptuous people.
Such was Acariya Mun’s frame of
mind shortly after attaining the Supreme Dhamma – a time when he had yet to
focus on the wider picture. Eventually, his thoughts gathered on the Lord
Buddha’s guiding role in revealing the correct path of practice. Reviewing
his attainment of Dhamma and the path he took, he saw that he, too, was a
human being in the world just like everyone else, and undistinguished from
others by any special characteristic that would make him the only person
capable of understanding this Dhamma. Certainly, others with strong
spiritual tendencies were capable of this understanding. By failing to
broaden his perspective, his initial outlook had tended to disparage the
spiritual tendencies of his fellow human beings – which was unfair.
The Lord Buddha did not reveal
the path of practice leading to magga, phala and Nibbana for the benefit of
only one individual. This revelation was a gift for the whole world, both
his contemporaries and succeeding generations. In total, the number of those
who have reached magga, phala and Nibbana, following the Buddha’s teaching,
is enormous beyond reckoning. In this respect, Acariya Mun’s achievement was
definitely not unique, though he initially overlooked the capacity of others
for similar achievement.
Carefully reviewing all aspects
of the Buddha’s teaching, he saw its relevance for people the world over,
and its accessibility to anyone willing to practice correctly. These
thoughts gave him a renewed desire to help others. Once again, he felt
comfortable with the idea of teaching people who came to him for guidance,
provided they were receptive to his instructions. For in teaching Dhamma,
the teacher has an obligation to treat Dhamma with respect by refusing to
instruct anyone who is disrespectful or indifferent to what is being taught.
Some people can’t help making
noise while listening to Dhamma: they are obviously apathetic to the value
of the Dhamma and the opportunity they have for hearing it. They appear
oblivious to where they are or how they are expected to behave at that time.
Such people see Dhamma as something quite ordinary. They have adopted a
typically worldly attitude of being thoroughly indifferent to Dhamma, to the
monastery, and to the monks. They see the whole lot as just commonplace.
Under such circumstances, it is unconscionable to teach Dhamma: the teacher
is then censurable and the audience fails to gain any real benefit.
Before he realized the Supreme
Dhamma and then made it available to others, Acariya Mun nearly gave up his
life in the forests and mountains as he struggled relentlessly with every
ounce of strength. After such heroic effort, the notion of bringing this
precious Dhamma and having it simply dissipate in the ocean was
inconceivable. When has that ever happened? After all, a monk is the type of
person who considers everything scrupulously before he acts. Dhamma exists
in a class by itself, so special attention must be paid to when and how it
is presented to a public audience. Should these considerations be neglected
in the presentation of Dhamma, the outcome might well prove harmful.
Dhamma is taught for the
purpose of helping people in the world – much like a doctor, desiring the
well-being of his patients, prescribes medications to cure sickness and
relieve pain. But when people are unwilling to accept help, why should a
monk worry about teaching them? If he really has true Dhamma in his heart,
he is perfectly content to live in solitude. It’s unnecessary for him to
seek students in order to alleviate the discomfort and stress caused by an
irrepressible urge to teach others the way – an urge which merely adds to a
person’s sense of discontent, anyway. Lacking sincerity in the Dhamma that
the Lord Buddha strove so earnestly to realize, such a person, though he
calls himself a teacher, is one only in name.
Acariya Mun said he had
complete confidence that he was mentally and physically attuned to living
alone because his heart was supremely tranquil, possessing genuine Dhamma.
Dhamma means tranquillity. A heart filled with Dhamma is a heart whose
serenity transcends everything. Acariya Mun naturally preferred living in
forested mountain areas since these places were conducive to dwelling
sublimely with Dhamma.8 He considered teaching others to be a special
situation. It was an obligation he performed occasionally and not an actual
necessity as was living by Dhamma– an essential aspect of his life to the
very end. Otherwise, he would not have enjoyed a convenient daily existence.
When we possess Dhamma,
understand Dhamma, and abide in Dhamma, we are unperturbed by things in the
world, and so do not go searching for dukkha. Where Dhamma abides, there is
happiness and tranquility. According to natural principles, Dhamma abides in
the hearts of those who practice it; so happiness and tranquility arise in
the hearts of those practitioners. It cannot arise in any other place.
Acariya Mun was always
extremely circumspect when teaching Dhamma. He never taught
indiscriminately, for Dhamma itself is never indiscriminate. He never
practiced Dhamma in a random fashion but always followed well-established
principles, practicing within the confines of the Noble tradition recorded
in the Buddhist scriptures. Understanding did not arise in him in a random
fashion either – it arose in progressive stages following the principles of
truth. Acariya Mun advised practicing monks to guard against being
indiscriminate by always keeping the strictures of the Teaching and the
Discipline in mind, since they represent the Buddha and the path of practice
he followed. He stressed that the monk who maintains magga and phala – and
maintains the Teaching and the Discipline – is one who is humble and
unassuming, and always careful not to let his actions, his speech, or his
thoughts go astray. Practicing thus, he will be able to stand on his own –
indefinitely.
Having addressed the issue of
teaching Dhamma to others, Acariya Mun again turned his attention to the
nature of his inner Dhamma. He said that the moment of realization, when
Dhamma arises in all its glory within the citta, is a moment that’s
completely unimaginable. Dhamma’s true nature reveals itself in a totally
unexpected manner, as it is inconceivable and impossible to speculate about
beforehand. At that moment, he felt as though he had died and been born
again into a new life – a uniquely amazing death and rebirth. The quality of
awareness, intrinsic to this transformation, was a state of knowing that he
had never before experienced, even though it had always been there,
unchanging. Suddenly, then, it became apparent – spectacular, and
inconceivably amazing. It was this quintessential quality that caused
Acariya Mun to consider – somewhat unconventionally – that it would not be
possible to teach others this Dhamma because they would never be able to
truly understand it.
Since his early days of
practice, Acariya Mun always possessed a very dynamic character. That
distinguishing characteristic was evident at the moment of his final
attainment, which was so unforgettable for him that he would later tell this
story to inspire his disciples. Once his citta had completely overthrown the
cycle of repeated birth and death, it appeared to make three revolutions,
circling around the newly-arisen vivatta-citta.9 Upon conclusion of the
first revolution, the Pali term lopo – cutting off – arose together with its
essential meaning: at that moment the citta had completed the function of
totally excluding all vestiges of relative, conventional reality. Upon
conclusion of the second revolution, the Pali term vimutti – absolute
freedom – arose together with its essential meaning: at that moment the
citta had completed the function of attaining total release. Upon conclusion
of the third revolution, the Pali term analayo – total detachment – arose
together with its essential meaning: at that moment the citta had completed
the function of wholly severing all attachments. Citta and Dhamma were then
one and the same – ekacitta ekadhamma. The true nature of the citta is
synonymous with the true nature of Dhamma. Unlike relative, conventional
reality, there is no duality. This is vimuttidhamma pure and simple.10 It is
absolute in its singularity and devoid of any trace of relative,
conventional reality within. This pure Dhamma is fully realized only once.
It never requires further perfection.
The Lord Buddha and the
Arahants become fully enlightened only once: the citta and Dhamma being
exactly of the same nature, they have no need to search further. The
khandhas, that make up their conventional existence, are then just khandhas
pure and simple – they contain no defiling elements. The khandhas of an
Arahant remain the same as before, for the attainment of Nibbana does not
alter them in any way. For example, those khandhas responsible for thought
processes continue to perform this function at the behest of their boss, the
citta. By nature, the release of vimutti is already freed of any
intermingling with the khandhas, the citta and the khandhas each existing as
separate, distinct phenomena, each one true within its own natural state.
They no longer seek to deceive or disrupt one another. Both sides exist
peacefully in their distinct natural states, performing their specific
functions until, at death, each constituent element goes its own separate
way.11 When the body finally dies, the purified citta attains yathadipo ca
nibbuto: just as the flame in a lamp is extinguished when all of the fuel is
exhausted, so too goes the citta according to its true nature.12 Relative,
conventional realities like the khandhas are no longer involved with the
purified citta beyond that point. In truth, nothing of the relative,
conventional world accompanies this citta to create a cause for coming to
birth in the future. Such was the essence of Dhamma that arose in Acariya
Mun’s citta at the moment it completed the three revolutions expressing its
dynamic character. That was the final occasion when the relative reality of
the khandhas and the absolute freedom of the citta joined forces before
finally separating to go their separate ways – forever.13
Throughout the remainder of
that night Acariya Mun considered with a sense of dismay how pathetically
ignorant he had been in the past, being dragged endlessly from one existence
to another – like a puppet. He wept as he thought of how he finally came
upon a pool of crystal-clear, wondrous-tasting water. He had reached Nong
Aw,14 that sparkling pool of pure Dhamma that the Lord Buddha and his
Arahant disciples encountered and then proclaimed to the world over 2500
years ago. Having at long last encountered it himself, he tirelessly paid
heartfelt homage, prostrating himself over and over again to the Buddha, the
Dhamma, and the Sangha. Should people have seen him then, tears streaming
down his face as he prostrated over and over again, surely they would have
assumed that this monk was suffering immensely, shedding tears so profusely.
They probably would have suspected him of beseeching the guardian spirits,
living in all directions, to help ease his pain; or else of being on the
verge of madness, for his behavior was extremely unusual. In fact, he had
just arrived at the truth of the Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha with utmost
clarity, as epitomized in the maxim: He who sees the Dhamma, sees the
Tathagata, and thus abides in the presence of the Buddha, the Dhamma, and
the Sangha. Acariya Mun was simply engaged in the kind of conduct befitting
someone who is overwhelmed by a sincere sense of gratitude.
That night celestial devas of
all realms and terrestrial devas from every direction, paid tribute in a
resounding exclamation of approval that reverberated throughout the world
systems, and then gathered to listen to Acariya Mun expound the Dhamma. But
being still fully engaged in his immediate commitment to the Supreme Dhamma,
he was not yet ready to receive visitors. So, he signaled to the assembled
devas that he was occupied, indicating they should return on a later
occasion. The devas then left, thoroughly delighted that they had seen a
visuddhi-deva on the very night when he attained Nibbana.15
At dawn, Acariya Mun rose from
his meditation seat, reflecting still on the unforgettably amazing Dhamma.
Thinking back to the moment of final release, he recalled the three
revolutions together with the profound subtlety of their essential meanings.
He also reflected with appreciation on the tree that had sheltered him as he
sat in meditation, and the local villagers who had always supported him with
food and other basic needs.
At first, Acariya Mun
considered foregoing his morning almsround that day. He reckoned that the
happiness he felt from his attainment was all that he needed for sustenance.
But he could not help feeling compassion for the local villagers who had
done so much for him. So, while he had no desire to eat, he nevertheless
went on almsround.
Entering the village that
morning he fixed his gaze firmly on the people, having paid little attention
to them before. As he gazed intently at the people who came forward to put
food in his bowl, and at those milling around the houses with children at
play in the dirt, he experienced an extraordinary sense of love and
compassion for them all. The whole village appeared to be especially bright
and cheerful that day, with smiling faces beaming at him as people saw him
come.
Upon return at his mountain
retreat, his heart felt replete with Dhamma, while his body felt fully
satisfied even though he had yet to eat. Neither body nor citta was the
least bit hungry. Nonetheless, he forced himself to eat for the body’s sake,
since it requires nourishment to sustain its life. The food, however,
appeared to have no taste. The taste of Dhamma alone permeated the whole of
his body – and his heart. As the Buddha said: The taste of Dhamma surpasses
all other tastes.16 Eager to hear Dhamma, all the devas came to visit
Acariya Mun the following night. Both terrestrial devas and celestial devas
arrived in groups, hailing from nearly every direction. Each group described
the amazing radiance caused by the incredible power of his Dhamma the
previous night. They compared it to a magnificent tremor that passed through
all the celestial abodes in the vast realms of all the world systems. This
tremor was accompanied by a fantastic incandescence that rendered the length
and breadth of the upper and lower realms ineffably translucent. They told
him:
“Those of us with intuitive
knowledge were able to see unobstructed throughout the entire universe due
to the luminous quality of the Dhamma pouring forth from your person,
venerable sir. Its brilliance was far more radiant than the light of a
hundred or even a thousand suns. It is truly unbearable to think that there
were those who missed seeing such a wonder. Only humans and animals, living
futile earthbound existences, could be so incredibly blind and unperceptive
as to have been unaware of last night’s splendor. Devas everywhere were so
stunned, astonished, and utterly amazed that they let out an emphatic
exclamation of approval to express their exultation at the perfection of
your achievement. If it were not such an absolutely amazing achievement, how
could knowledge of it have been so widespread?
“You, venerable sir, are a
person of saintly virtue, majestic power, and vast influence, capable of
being a refuge to a great number of beings in numerous realms of existence.
All will be able to find blessed comfort in the shadow of your greatness.
Beings of every class – be they humans, devas, or brahmas, living
underwater, on land, or in the air – are rarely fortunate enough to
encounter such perfection. We devas consider ourselves especially blessed to
have met you, venerable sir, having the precious opportunity to pay our
respects to you and to receive your beneficent teaching. We are grateful to
you for expounding the Dhamma to brighten our hearts, leading us on the path
of practice so that we can gradually become aware of how to improve
ourselves.”
When the assemblies of devas
finally returned to their respective realms, Acariya Mun began to reflect on
the tremendous difficulties he had experienced in his effort to realize this
Dhamma. Because his practice had entailed such exceptional hardship, he
regarded it as Dhamma at the threshold of death. Had he not come so close to
death, while struggling to reach freedom from dukkha, then surely he would
never have attained that freedom.
The Spiritual Partner
Sitting in meditation after his
final attainment, Acariya Mun recalled a certain personal matter from his
past – one which he had not taken much interest in before. Here I would like
to tell a story relevant to Acariya Mun’s past. I feel it would be a shame
to leave out such an intriguing story, especially as this type of
relationship may be following every one of you like a shadow, even though
you are unaware of it. Should the story be deemed in any way unseemly,
please blame the author for not being properly circumspect. As you may
already have guessed, this is a private matter that was discussed only by
Acariya Mun and his inner circle of disciples. I have tried to suppress the
urge to write about it here, but the more I tried to suppress it, the
stronger this urge became. So I finally gave in and, after writing it down,
the urge gradually subsided. I must confess that I’m at fault here, but I
hope the reader forgives me. Hopefully, it will provide everyone, caught in
the perpetual cycle of birth and death, something worthwhile to think about.
This story concerns Acariya
Mun’s longtime spiritual partner.17 Acariya Mun said that in previous lives
he and his spiritual partner had both made a solemn vow to work together
toward the attainment of Buddhahood. During the years prior to his final
attainment, she occasionally came to visit him while he was in samadhi. On
those occasions, he gave her a brief Dhamma talk, then sent her away. She
always appeared to him as a disembodied consciousness. Unlike beings from
most realms of existence, she had no discernible form. When he inquired
about her formless state, she replied that she was so worried about him she
had not yet decided to take up existence in any specific realm. She feared
that he would forget their relationship – their mutual resolve to attain
Buddhahood in the future. So out of concern, and a sense of disappointment,
she felt compelled to come and check on him from time to time. Acariya Mun
told her then that he had already given up that vow, resolving instead to
practice for Nibbana in this lifetime. He had no wish to be born again,
which was equivalent to carrying all the misery he had suffered in past
lives indefinitely into the future. Although she had never revealed her
feelings, she remained worried about their relationship, and her longing for
him never waned. So once in a long while she paid him a visit. But on this
occasion, it was Acariya Mun who thought of her, being concerned about her
plight, since they had gone through so many hardships together in previous
lives. Contemplating this affair after his attainment, it occurred to him
that he would like to meet her so they could reach a new understanding. He
wanted to explain matters to her, and thus remove any lingering doubts or
anxieties regarding their former partnership. Late that very night and soon
after this thought occurred to him, his spiritual partner arrived in her
familiar formless state.
Acariya Mun began by asking her
about her present realm of existence. He wanted to know why she had no
discernible form like beings from other celestial realms, and what exactly
was her present condition. The formless being answered that she lived in one
of the minor ethereal states of being in the vast sentient universe. She
reiterated that she was waiting in that realm because of anxiety concerning
him. Having become aware of his desire to meet her, she came to him that
night.
Ordinarily, she didn’t dare to
visit him very often. Though sincerely wanting to see him, she always felt
shy and hesitant. In truth, her visits were in no way damaging to either of
them for they were not of such a nature as to be harmful. But still, her
long-standing affection for him made her hesitant about coming. Acariya Mun
had also told her not to visit too often, for although not harmful, such
visits could nevertheless become an emotional impediment, thus slowing his
progress. The heart being very sensitive by nature, it could well be
affected by subtle emotional attachments, which could then interfere with
the practice of meditation. Convinced that this was true, she seldom came to
visit him.
She was quite aware that he had
severed his connection to birth and death, including former friends and
relatives – and of course the spiritual partner who was counting on him –
with no lingering regrets whatsoever. After all, it was an event that had a
dramatic effect throughout the world systems. But rather than rejoice with
delight, as she would have done in the past when they were together, this
time she felt slighted, prompting an unorthodox reaction. She thought
instead that he was being irresponsible, neglecting to consider the loyal
spiritual companion who had shared his suffering, struggling together with
him through so many lifetimes. She felt devastated now, left alone in
misfortune, clutching dukkha but unable to let go. He had already gone
beyond dukkha, leaving her behind to endure the burden of suffering. The
more she thought about it, the more she felt like one bereft of wisdom who,
nonetheless, wanted to reach up to touch the moon and the stars. In the end,
she fell back to earth clutching her misery, unable to find a way out of
such grievous misfortune.
Despondent, hapless being that
she was, and struggling to endure her misery, she pleaded with him for
assistance: “I am desperately disappointed. Where can I possibly find
happiness? I so want to reach up and touch the moon and the stars in the
sky! It’s just terrible, and so painful. You yourself are like the moon and
the stars up in the sky shining brightly in every direction. Having
established yourself in Dhamma, your existence is never bleak, never dreary.
You’re so completely content and your aura radiates throughout every part of
the universe. If I am still fortunate enough, please kindly show me the way
of Dhamma. Please help me bring forth the bright, pure knowledge of
wisdom,18 releasing me quickly from the cycle of repeated birth and death,
to follow you in the attainment of Nibbana so that I will not have to endure
this agony much longer. May this vow be strong enough to produce the results
my heart desires, allowing me to attain the grace of enlightenment as soon
as possible.”
Convulsed with sobs of anguish,
such was the fervent plea of that sorrowful formless being as she expressed
her hopes of gaining enlightenment. Acariya Mun replied that his intention
in wishing to see her was not to elicit regrets about the past: “People who
wish each other well should not think in that way. Haven’t you practiced the
four brahmaviharas: metta, karuna, mudita, and upekkha?19
The formless spirit replied: “I
have practiced them for so long that I can’t help thinking about the
closeness we once shared practicing them together. When a person saves only
himself, as you have, it is quite natural for those left behind to be
disappointed. I’m in misery because I have been abandoned without any
concern for my welfare. I still can’t see any possibility of easing my
pain.”
He cautioned her: “Whether
practicing on your own or in concert with others, goodness is developed for
the purpose of reducing anxiety and suffering within yourself, not for
increasing them until, being agitated, you become all upset. Isn’t that
right?”
“Yes, but the tendency of
people with kilesas is to somehow muddle through, not knowing which path is
the right one for a smooth, safe passage. We don’t know if what we are doing
is right or wrong, or whether the result will be happiness or suffering. We
know the pain in our hearts, but we don’t know the way out of it. So we are
left to fret about our misfortune, as you see me doing now.”
Acariya Mun said that the
formless spirit was adamant in her complaints about him. She accused him of
making his escape alone, showing no pity for her – she who for so long had
struggled together with him to go beyond dukkha. She complained that he had
made no effort to assist her so that she too could gain release from
suffering.
He tried to console her: “When
two people eat food together at the same table, inevitably one will be full
before the other. It’s not possible for both to be fully satiated at the
same moment. Take the case of the Lord Buddha and his former spouse,
Yasodhara. Although for many ages they had jointly developed goodness of all
kinds, the Lord Buddha was the first to transcend dukkha, returning then to
teach his former spouse so that later she also crossed over to the other
shore. You should consider this lesson carefully and learn from it, instead
of complaining about the person who’s right now trying his best to find a
way to help you. I am earnestly searching for a means to help you cross
over, yet you accuse me of being heartless and irresponsible. Such thoughts
are very inappropriate. They will merely increase the discomfort for both of
us. You should change your attitude, following the example of the Lord
Buddha’s former spouse – an excellent example for everyone, and one giving
rise to true happiness.
“My reason for meeting you is
to assist you, not to drive you away. I have always supported your
development in Dhamma. To say that I have abandoned you and no longer care
for your welfare is simply not true. My advice to you emanates from a heart
whose loving kindness and compassion are absolutely pure. If you follow this
advice, practicing it to the best of your ability, I will rejoice in your
progress. And should you receive completely satisfactory results, I will
rest contented in equanimity.20
“Our original aspiration to
achieve Buddhahood was made for the express purpose of crossing beyond the
cycle of rebirth. My subsequent desire to attain the status of savaka21
instead, was actually a desire aimed toward the same goal: a state free of
kilesas and asava,22 free of all dukkha, the Supreme Happiness, Nibbana. As
I’ve followed the righteous path through many different lives, including my
present status as a Buddhist monk, I have always done my utmost to keep in
touch with you. Throughout this time, I have taught you as best I could with
the immense loving compassion that I feel for you. Never was there a moment
when I thought of forsaking you to seek only my own salvation – my thoughts
were constantly full of concern, full of sympathy for you. I have always
hoped to free you from the misery of birth in samsara, leading you in the
direction of Nibbana.
“Your abnormal reaction –
feeling offended because you suppose that I’ve abandoned you without any
concern for your well-being – is of no benefit to either of us. From now on,
you should refrain from such thinking. Don’t allow these thoughts to arise
and trample all over your heart, for they will bring only endless misery in
their wake – a result incompatible with my objective, as I strive with
heartfelt compassion to help you out.
“Escaping without a care? Where
have I escaped to? And who is it I don’t care about? At this moment I am
doing my utmost to give you every possible assistance. Doesn’t everything
I’ve taught you arise solely out of such compassionate concern as I am
showing you right now? The constant encouragement I have provided comes
straight from a heart full to the brim with a compassion that exceeds all
the water in the great oceans, a compassion that pours forth unsparingly,
without concern that it might run dry. Please understand that helping you
has always been my intention and accept this Dhamma teaching that I offer.
If you just trust me and practice accordingly, you will experience the
fruits of inner happiness for yourself.
“From the day I first ordained
as a monk, I have sincerely practiced the way of Dhamma – never for a moment
have I thought ill of anyone. My motive in wanting to meet with you was not
to deceive you, or cause you harm, but to assist you as best I can with all
my heart. If you refuse to trust me, it will be difficult for you to find
anyone else so worthy of your complete faith. You said you were aware of the
universe trembling that night. That trembling, do you think it was caused by
the ‘Dhamma of deception’ arising in the world? Is that why you’re so
hesitant about taking to heart the advice I have so graciously offered you?
If you understand that Dhamma is indeed the Dhamma of Truth, then you should
consider the trembling of the universe that night as a decisive factor in
your faith, and take comfort in the fact that you still have great resources
of merit. You are still able to listen to a timely exposition of Dhamma,
even though your birth in that formless realm of existence should render
such a thing impossible. I consider it my good fortune to be able to teach
you now. You should feel proud of your own good fortune in having someone to
come and rescue you from the hopeless gloom that your misguided thinking has
caused. If you can think positively like this, I shall be very pleased. Such
thinking will not allow dukkha to bind you so tightly that you can’t find a
way out. It won’t allow Dhamma to be seen as something mundane, or
compassionate concern to be seen as something malevolent.”
As she listened to Acariya Mun
present these reasoned arguments with such loving compassion, his spiritual
partner felt as though she was being bathed in a stream of celestial water.
Gradually she regained her composure. Enchanted by his discourse, her mind
soon became calm, her manner respectful.
When he finished speaking, she
admitted her mistake: “My affection and my hopeless yearning for you have
caused so much trouble. I believed that you had discarded me, going your own
way, which left me feeling neglected. I became terribly disappointed. I
couldn’t stop thinking how useless and rejected I felt, with no one to turn
to. But now that I have received the light of Dhamma, my heart is cool and
contented. I can now put down the burden of misery that I’ve been carrying,
for your Dhamma is like a divine nectar washing over my heart, cleansing it
and making it bright. Please forgive me whatever wrong I have done to you
through my ignorance. I am determined to be more careful in the future –
never shall I make such a mistake again.”
When she finished speaking,
Acariya Mun advised her to take birth in a more appropriate realm of
existence, telling her to cease worrying about the past. Respectfully, she
promised to follow his advice, then made one final request: “Once I have
taken birth in a suitable realm, may I come and listen to your advice as
before? Please give me your blessing for this.” Once Acariya Mun had granted
her request, she immediately vanished.
The formless spirit having
departed, Acariya Mun’s citta withdrew from samadhi. It was nearly five a.m.
and almost light. He had not rested the entire night. Having begun sitting
in samadhi at around eight p.m., he had spoken with the formless spirit for
many hours into the night. Not long afterwards, the same spirit came to
visit him again. This time she came in the bodily form of a beautiful deva,
although in deference to the especially revered monk she was visiting, she
was not adorned in the ornamental style customary of the devas.
Upon arriving, she explained to
him her new situation: “After listening to your explanation, which removed
all my doubts and relieved me of the misery that was tormenting me, I came
to birth in the Tavatimsa heavenly realm – a celestial sphere full of
delightful pleasures, all of which I now enjoy as a result of the goodness
we performed together as human beings. Although I experience this pleasant
existence as a consequence of my own good deeds, I can’t help remembering
that you, venerable sir, were the one who initially encouraged me to do
good. On my own, I would never have had the wisdom capable of accomplishing
this to my complete satisfaction.
“Feeling fortunate enough to be
reborn in heavenly splendor, I am wholly contented, and no longer angry or
resentful. As I reflect back on the immense kindness you’ve always shown me,
it becomes apparent to me how important it is for us to choose discretely in
our lives – concerning everything from our work to our food to our friends
and companions, both male and female. Such discretion is crucial for leading
a smooth, untroubled existence. This is especially true when choosing a
spouse to depend on, for better or for worse. Choosing a spouse merits
special attention, for we share everything with that person – even our very
breath. Every happiness and every sorrow along the way will necessarily
affect both parties.
“Those who have a good partner,
even though they may be inadequate in terms of their intelligence, their
temperament, or their behavior, are still blest to have someone who can
guide and encourage them in dealing with all their affairs – both their
secular affairs, which promote peace and stability in the family, and their
spiritual affairs, which nourish the heart. All other matters will benefit
as well, so they won’t feel they are groping blindly in the dark, never
certain how these matters will turn out. Each partner being a good person,
they compliment each other to create a virtual paradise within the family,
allowing everyone to remain peaceful, contented, and free from strife at all
times. Always cheerful, such a household is undisturbed by temperamental
outbursts. All members contribute in creating this atmosphere: each is calm
and composed, firmly established in the principles of reason – instead of
just doing whatever they like, which is contrary to the very moral
principles that insure their continued peace and contentment. Married
couples work together to construct their own future. Together they create
good and bad kamma. They create happiness and misery, virtue and evil,
heaven and hell, from the very beginning of their relationship onwards to
the present and into the future – an unbroken continuum.
“Being blessed with the chance
to accompany you through many lives, I’ve come to realize this in my own
situation. By your guidance, venerable sir, I have made goodness an integral
part of my character. You have always steered me safely through every
danger, never letting me stray in the direction of evil or disgrace.
Consequently, I’ve remained a good person during all those lifetimes. I
cannot tell you how deeply moved I am by all the kindness you’ve shown me. I
now realize the harm caused by my past mistakes. Please kindly forgive my
transgressions so that no lingering animosity remains between us.”
Assenting to the deva’s
request, Acariya Mun forgave her. He then gave her an inspiring talk,
encouraging her to perfect herself spiritually. When he had finished, she
paid him her respects, moved off a short distance, and floated blissfully up
into the sky.
Some of the resentful comments
she made when she was still a formless spirit were too strange to record
here, so I’ve been unable to recount every detail of their conversation; and
for that I ask your forgiveness. I am not really that satisfied with what
has been written here either, but I feel that without it a thought-provoking
story would have been left out.
The Most Exalted
Appreciation
On the nights subsequent to
Acariya Mun’s attainment of vimutti, a number of Buddhas, accompanied by
their Arahant disciples, came to congratulate him on his vimuttidhamma. One
night, a certain Buddha, accompanied by tens of thousands of Arahant
disciples, came to visit; the next night, he was visited by another Buddha
who was accompanied by hundreds of thousands of Arahant disciples. Each
night a different Buddha came to express his appreciation, accompanied by a
different number of Arahant disciples. Acariya Mun stated that the number of
accompanying Arahant disciples varied according to each Buddha’s relative
accumulation of merit – a factor that differed from one Buddha to the next.
The actual number of Arahant disciples accompanying each Buddha did not
represent the total number of his Arahant disciples; they merely
demonstrated the relative levels of accumulated merit and perfection that
each individual Buddha possessed. Among the Arahant disciples accompanying
each of those Buddhas were quite a few young novices.23 Acariya Mun was
skeptical about this, so he reflected on it and realized that the term
“Arahant” does not apply exclusively to monks.
Novices whose hearts are
completely pure are also Arahant disciples, so their presence did not raise
issue with the term in any way. Most of the Buddhas who came to show their
appreciation to Acariya Mun addressed him in much the following manner:
“I, the Tathagata, am aware
that you have escaped from the harmful effects of that monstrous suffering
which you endured in the prison of samsara,24 so I have come to express my
appreciation. This prison is enormous, and quite impregnable. It is full of
seductive temptations which so enslave those who are unwary that it is
extremely difficult for anyone to break free. Of the vast number of people
living in the world, hardly anyone is concerned enough to think of looking
for a way out of dukkha that perpetually torments their bodies and minds.
They are like sick people who cannot be bothered to take medicine. Even
though medicines are plentiful, they are of no use to a person who refuses
to take them.
“Buddha-Dhamma is like
medicine. Beings in samsara are afflicted with the painful, oppressive
disease of kilesas, which causes endless suffering. Inevitably, this disease
can be cured only by the medicine of Dhamma. Left uncured, it will drag
living beings through an endless succession of births and deaths, all of
them bound up with physical and mental pain. Although Dhamma exists
everywhere throughout the whole universe, those who are not really
interested in properly availing themselves of its healing qualities are
unable to take advantage of it.
“Dhamma exists in its own
natural way. Beings in samsara spin around, like wheels, through the pain
and suffering of each successive life – in the natural way of samsara. They
have no real prospect of ever seeing an end to dukkha. And there is no way
to help them unless they are willing to help themselves by holding firmly to
the principles of Dhamma, earnestly trying to put them into practice. No
matter how many Buddhas become enlightened, or how extensive their teachings
are, only those willing to take the prescribed medicine will benefit.
“The Dhamma, taught by all the
Buddhas, is invariably the same: to renounce evil and do good. There exists
no Dhamma teaching more exceptional than this: For even the most exceptional
kilesas in the hearts of living beings are not so exceptional that they can
transcend the power of Dhamma taught by all the Buddhas. This Dhamma in
itself is sufficient to eradicate every kind of kilesa there is – unless, of
course, those practicing it allow themselves to be defeated by their kilesas,
and so conclude that Dhamma must be worthless.
“By nature, kilesas have always
resisted the power of Dhamma. Consequently, people who defer to the kilesas
are people who disregard Dhamma. They are unwilling to practice the way, for
they view it as something difficult to do, a waste of the time they could
otherwise spend enjoying themselves – despite the harm such pleasures cause
them. A wise, far-sighted person should not retreat into a shell, like a
turtle in a pot of boiling water – it is sure to die because it can’t find a
way to escape. The world is a cauldron, boiling with the consuming heat of
the kilesas. Earthly beings of every description, every where, must endure
this torment, for there is no safe place to hide, no way to elude this
conflagration burning in their own hearts – right there where the dukkha is.
“You have seen the truly
genuine Tathagata, haven’t you? What is the genuine Tathagata? The genuine
Tathagata is simply that purity of heart you have just realized. The bodily
form in which I now appear is merely a manifestation of relative,
conventional reality.25 This form does not represent the true Buddha, or the
true Arahant; it is just our conventional bodily appearance.” Acariya Mun
replied that he had no doubts about the true nature of the Buddha and the
Arahants. What still puzzled him was: how could the Buddha and the Arahants,
having attained anupadisesa-nibbana26 without any remaining trace of
relative, conventional reality, still appear in bodily form. The Buddha
explained this matter to him:
“If those who have attained
anupadisesa-nibbana wish to interact with other Arahants who have purified
their hearts but still possess a physical, mundane body, they must
temporarily assume a mundane form in order to make contact. However, if all
concerned have already attained anupadisesa- nibbana without any remaining
trace of relative, conventional reality, then the use of conventional
constructs is completely unnecessary. So it is necessary to appear in a
conventional form when dealing with conventional reality, but when the
conventional world has been completely transcended, no such problem exists.
“All Buddhas know events
concerning the past and the future through nimittas that symbolize for them
the original conventional realities of the occurrences in question.27 For
instance, when a Buddha wishes to know about the lives of the Buddhas who
preceded him, he must take the nimitta of each Buddha, and the particular
circumstances in which he lived, as a device leading directly to that
knowledge. If something exists beyond the relative world of conventional
reality, that being vimutti, then there can be no symbol representing it.
Because of that, knowledge about past Buddhas depends on mundane conventions
to serve as a common basis for understanding, as my present visit
illustrates. It is necessary that I and all of my Arahant disciples appear
in our original mundane forms so that others, like yourself, have a means of
determining what our appearance was like. If we did not appear in this form,
no one would be able to perceive us.28
“On occasions when it is
necessary to interact with conventional reality, vimutti must be made
manifest by the use of suitable conventional means. In the case of pure
vimutti, as when two purified cittas interact with one another, there exists
only the essential quality of knowing – which is impossible to elaborate on
in any way. So when we want to reveal the nature of complete purity, we have
to bring in conventional devices to help us portray the experience of
vimutti. We can say that vimutti is a ‘self-luminous state devoid of all
nimittas representing the ultimate happiness’, for instance, but these are
just widely-used, conventional metaphors. One who clearly knows it in his
heart cannot possibly have doubts about vimutti. Since its true
characteristics are impossible to convey, vimutti is inconceivable in a
relative, conventional sense. Vimutti manifesting conventionally and vimutti
existing in its original state are, however, both known with absolute
certainty by the Arahant. This includes both vimutti manifesting itself by
means of conventional constructs under certain circumstances, and vimutti
existing in its original, unconditioned state. Did you ask me about this
matter because you were in doubt, or simply as a point of conversation?”
“I have no doubts about the
conventional aspects of all the Buddhas, or the unconditioned aspects. My
inquiry was a conventional way of showing respect. Even without a visit from
you and your Arahant disciples, I would have no doubts as to where the true
Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha lie. It is my clear conviction that whoever sees
the Dhamma sees the Tathagata. This means that the Lord Buddha, the Dhamma,
and the Sangha each denote the very same natural state of absolute purity,
completely free of conventional reality, collectively known as the Three
Jewels.”
“I, the Tathagata, did not ask
you that question thinking you were in doubt, but rather as a friendly
greeting.” 29
On those occasions when the
Buddhas and their Arahant disciples came to visit, only the Buddhas
addressed Acariya Mun. None of the disciples accompanying them spoke a word
as they sat quietly composed, listening in a manner worthy of the highest
respect. Even the small novices, looking more adorable than venerable,
showed the same quiet composure. Some of them were quite young, between the
ages of nine and twelve, and Acariya Mun found them truly endearing.
Ordinarily, the average person
would see only bright-eyed, adorable children. Being unaware that they were
Arahants, one would most probably be tempted to fool around, reaching out
playfully to stroke their heads, without realizing the impertinence of doing
so. When Acariya Mun spoke about this, I thought mischievously that I would
probably be the first to succumb to the urge to reach out and play with
them, despite the consequences. Afterwards, I could always beg their
forgiveness.
Acariya Mun said that, although
they were young novices, their behavior was very mature. They were as calm,
composed, and impressive to see as all the other Arahant disciples. In
short, all the Arahant monks and novices who accompanied each Buddha
exhibited impeccable behavior worthy of the highest respect. They were neat,
orderly, and pleasing to the eye – like immaculately folded robes.
Acariya Mun had always been
curious to know how walking and sitting meditation were practiced at the
time of the Buddha. He also had questions about the proper etiquette to be
used between junior and senior monks, and whether it was necessary for a
monk to wear his formal robes while doing meditation. When such questions
arose in his mind, invariably one of the Buddhas, or an Arahant disciple,
appeared to him in samadhi and demonstrated how these practices were
originally performed in the Buddha’s day. For example, Acariya Mun was
curious to know the correct manner of practicing walking meditation so as to
show proper respect for Dhamma. A Buddha or an Arahant then appeared,
demonstrating in detail how to place the hands, how to walk, and how to
remain self-composed. Sometimes, these demonstrations included explicit
instructions; at other times, the methods were demonstrated by example. They
also showed him such things as the proper way to sit in samadhi, including
the most suitable direction to face and the best seated posture to assume.
Acariya Mun had some strange
things to say about how junior and senior monks showed their respect for
each other. Acariya Mun wanted to know how monks at the time of the Buddha
conducted themselves with appropriate respect toward one another.30 Shortly
after this thought arose, the vision of a Buddha and many Arahant disciples
appeared to him. The Arahants were of all different ages – some were young,
others older, a few being so old that their hair had turned completely
white. A considerable number of small novices of all ages accompanied them.
However, the Buddha and his disciples did not arrive together – each Arahant
arrived individually. Those arriving first sat in the front, while those
arriving later sat further away – without regard for seniority. Even those
novices who arrived earlier sat ahead of the monks who arrived later.
Finally the last monk, a very elderly man, arrived to take the last
available seat – way in the back; but the others showed no sign of shame or
embarrassment. Even the Buddha himself sat down in whichever seat was
available at the time he arrived.
Seeing this, Acariya Mun was
somewhat incredulous. Could it be that the monks at the time of the Buddha
did not respect seniority? It was definitely not an inspiring sight. How
could the Buddha and his disciples proclaim the sasana and then expect
people to have faith in it when the sasana’s leader and his closest
disciples behaved in such an indiscriminate fashion? Instantly, the answer
arose in his heart without the Buddha and his disciples having offered any
comment: This was an instance of pure vimuttidhamma devoid of any trace of
relative, conventional reality – so there was no fixed order of propriety.
They were demonstrating the true nature of Absolute Purity,31 being
perfectly equal for all, irrespective of conventional designations such as
young and old, or high and low. From the Lord Buddha on down to the youngest
Arahant novice, all were equal with respect to their state of purity.
What Acariya Mun had witnessed
was a conclusive indicator that all the Arahant monks and novices were
equally pure.
This having been made clear to
him, he wondered how they deferred to each other in the conventional world.
No sooner had this thought arisen, than the vision of the Buddha and the
Arahants seated before him changed. Whereas before they had been sitting
together in no special order, now the Buddha sat at the head of the
assembly, while the small novices, previously in the front, sat in the last
seats. It was an impressive sight – worthy of the highest respect. At that
moment Acariya Mun clearly understood that this image represented the
traditional way in which monks at the time of the Buddha showed each other
respect. Even Arahants who were junior in rank were obliged to respect those
of their seniors who were practicing correctly but still had kilesas in
their hearts.32 The Buddha then elaborated on this theme:
“The Tathagata’s monks must
live in mutual respect and friendship, as though they were all one single
entity. This does not mean that they are friendly in a worldly way, but
rather that they are friendly in the equal, unbiased way of Dhamma. When my
monks live together, even in large numbers, they never quarrel or display
arrogance. Monks who do not respect their fellows according to the
principles of the Teaching and the Discipline of the Buddha, are not worthy
of being called the Tathagata’s monks. Even though those monks may imitate
the disciples of the Buddha, they are merely impostors making false claims.
As long as monks respect each other according to the principles of the
Teaching and the Discipline – which substitute for the Buddha himself – and
never violate these principles, then wherever those monks live, whenever
they were ordained, whatever their race, status, or nationality, they remain
true disciples of the Tathagata. And whoever is a true follower of the
Tathagata must surely see the end of dukkha one day.”
The Buddha and all his
disciples vanished instantly the moment he finished speaking. As for Acariya
Mun, all his doubts had vanished the moment that vision appeared to him so
clearly.
Concerning Acariya Mun’s doubts
about the necessity of wearing the formal robes when doing meditation: one
of the Arahant disciples appeared to him, demonstrating how it was
unnecessary to wear them every time. He personally demonstrated when and how
sitting and walk ing meditation should be practiced while wearing the formal
robes, as well as the instances when it was unnecessary to wear them. Every
aspect of a monk’s robes was made clear to him, including the correct color
for a monk’s three principal robes. He showed Acariya Mun ochre-colored
robes that were dyed from the heartwood of the jackfruit tree in three
different shades – light, medium, and dark brown.33
Careful consideration of these
episodes is enough to convince us that Acariya Mun always had sound,
acknowledged precedents for the way he practiced. He never jeopardized his
vocation by merely guessing about things he was unsure of. Consequently, his
practice was always smooth, consistent, and irreproachable from beginning to
end. Certainly, it would be hard to find his equal nowadays. Those adopting
his mode of practice are bound to exhibit a gracefulness befitting disciples
of such a fine teacher, and their own practice is sure to progress very
smoothly. However, those who prefer to flout convention are like ghosts
without a cemetery, or orphans without a family. Having forsaken their
teacher they may well modify the practice to suit their own opinions.
Acariya Mun possessed a mysterious, ineffable inner compass to direct him in
these matters, one which none of his disciples could ever match.
|
|
Venerable Acariya Mun said that
he often traveled back and forth from the Northeast to Bangkok, sometimes
taking the train to ‘the end of the line’, which extended only part of the
distance in those days. All other times he walked dhutanga. Upon arriving in
Bangkok on this trip, he went to Wat Pathumwan monastery, and stayed there
through the rains retreat. During the rains he frequently studied Dhamma
texts with the Venerable Chao Khun Upali Gunupamacariya at his monastery,
Wat Boromaniwat.1 Chao Khun Upali invited Acariya Mun to accompany him to
Chiang Mai after the rains. So, during the dry season, they went to Chiang
Mai by train. On the train Acariya Mun remained in samadhi almost the whole
time. Between Bangkok and Lopburi he laid down to rest; but after the train
departed Lopburi and reached the foothills of Uttaradit, he entered samadhi
and remained there for the duration of the trip to Chiang Mai. At the start
of his meditation, he made a decision to withdraw from it only upon arrival
at Chiang Mai, and then focused exclusively on his meditation. After
approximately twenty minutes, his citta completely ‘converged’ into the very
base of samadhi. From that moment on, he was no longer aware of whether the
train was moving or not. Absolute stillness was all that his heart knew; all
awareness of external phenomena, including his body, completely ceased. Any
perception, that might have disturbed it, vanished from the citta, as though
the world no longer existed, having disappeared along with all thoughts and
inner sensations. The noise of the train, the other passengers, and all the
things that were associated with the citta earlier were extinguished from
his awareness. All that remained was his state of samadhi. The external
environment faded out of consciousness from the moment his citta first
‘converged’ until he arrived in Chiang Mai, where his previous determination
restored him to his normal state of consciousness.
When he opened his eyes to look
around, he saw the surrounding buildings and houses of the city. As he began
collecting his things in preparation for leaving the train, he noticed that
the passengers and railway officials around him were staring at him in
astonishment. When it was time to disembark, the railway officials
approached him and, smiling cheerfully, helped him with his things, while
everyone else in the passenger carriage stared curiously at him. Even before
he had stepped off the train, he was asked what monastery he was from and
where he was going. He replied that he was a forest-dwelling monk without a
fixed residence, and that he intended to go wandering alone in the remote
mountains of the North. Inspired by faith in him, some of them asked where
he would stay and whether anyone had agreed to take him there.
He thanked them, replying that
there was someone to receive him since his traveling companion was Chao Khun
Upali, a very senior monk and one who was highly respected by all in Chiang
Mai, from the governor to the merchants and the general public. So it
happened that a crowd of monks, novices, and lay supporters awaited to
receive Chao Khun Upali. There were even automobiles in waiting, which were
quite rare in those days. Official government cars as well as private ones
were there to escort them to Wat Chedi Luang monastery.
Once people learned that Chao
Khun Upali had returned to reside at Wat Chedi Luang, they came to pay their
respects and hear him expound the Dhamma. Chao Khun Upali took advantage of
the many people present to invite Acariya Mun to give a discourse on Dhamma.
Speaking eloquently, Acariya Mun enthralled the large audience so much that
they wished it would not end. Starting from the basics, he gradually climbed
step by step to the higher levels of Dhamma, where he ended his discourse to
the sincere regret of all who were absorbed in his presentation. He then
paid his respects to Chao Khun Upali before he left center stage to find a
place to relax by himself. Meanwhile, Chao Khun Upali praised his talk
before the whole assembly:
“Acariya Mun expounds Dhamma so
eloquently that it is difficult to find anyone to equal him. He clarifies
muttodaya – the heart released, the land of absolute freedom – in a way that
leaves no room for doubt. Everything is so precisely illustrated that I
myself couldn’t possibly match his unique, engrossing style. The rhetorical
fluency of this dhutanga monk is most extraordinary. Listening to him is a
pleasurable, learning experience. His discourses never become stale or
boring. He speaks of common, everyday things – things we see and hear all
the time but never pay attention to utilize. We recall their significance
only after he mentions them. Acariya Mun is an important kammaååhana monk
who uses mindfulness and wisdom to faithfully follow the path taught by the
Buddha. He never tramples upon it in an unseemly, worldly manner. His talks
employ a full range of expression: sometimes casual, sometimes serious,
sometimes emphatic, stressing specific points. He elaborates the profound
complexities of Dhamma in a way the rest of us are hard pressed to do so
candidly. He is quite capable of analyzing the disparate aspects of Dhamma
and articulates them in a way that deeply affects our hearts. His commentary
is so brilliant that it’s hard to keep up with him. I myself have needed to
ask him questions about problems I couldn’t solve on my own, and he quickly
and adeptly solved those problems with his wisdom. I have benefited in
innumerable ways from his counsel.
“Since I was coming to Chiang
Mai I wanted Acariya Mun to accompany me, and he readily agreed. Although he
did not specifically mention this to me, he probably agreed to come here
because he knows Chiang Mai abounds in mountains and forests suitable for
the spiritual life. Monks like Acariya Mun are extremely hard to find. Even
though I am his senior, I wholly revere the Dhamma within him – and yet, he
is still so humble and gracious towards me that I sometimes feel
embarrassed. He has intended to stay here for only a short while before
going off in search of seclusion. I must allow my friend to follow his
inclinations as I dare not contradict them, for it is rare indeed to find
such a monk. With his intentions being solely focused on Dhamma, we should
wish him the best as he strives to improve himself. He can then be of
greater benefit to us all in the near future.
“Those of you who have problems
with your meditation practice, please go to him and seek his advice. You
certainly won’t be disappointed. But please don’t ask him for powerful
amulets, magic spells, or lucky charms to ward off danger, for they are all
outside the way of practice. You will just make yourself a nuisance to him
for no good reason. You may well receive a reprimand – don’t say I never
warned you!
Acariya Mun is not that kind of
monk. He is a genuine monk, sincerely teaching people to know the difference
between right and wrong, good and bad, virtue and evil. His teaching never
deviates from the path of Dhamma. His way of practice and knowledge of
Dhamma are true to the teachings of the Lord Buddha. No one else nowadays
can convey such incredible ideas as he has presented me from our discussions
on Dhamma. That has been my experience. I hold an immense respect for him in
my heart, but, I have never told him this. Nevertheless, he may already know
of it from his powers of intuition.
“Acariya Mun is a monk truly
worthy of the highest respect, and is unquestionably ‘an incomparable field
of merit for the world’. He himself never makes claims of noble attainments,
though they are apparent to me when we discuss Dhamma in private. I am
wholly convinced that he is firmly established in the third level of the
Noble Dhamma. It is obvious from the way he expresses himself. Although he
has never made statements of his specific level of attainment, I know for
certain what it is: for the knowledge of Dhamma he has conveyed to me is
absolutely consistent with that level as described in the Buddhist texts. He
has shown me nothing but loyalty and respect, and I have never known him to
be in any way stubborn or disdainful. He conducts himself with such humility
that I cannot help but admire him from the bottom of my heart.”
These were the words of praise
that Chao Khun Upali addressed to the lay followers, monks, and novices
after Acariya Mun gave his Dhamma talk and returned to his hut. Afterwards,
monks who were present reported this speech to Acariya Mun, who later
recounted the story to his disciples when a good opportunity arose. The term
muttodaya means “a heart released”. Its mention in the short biographical
sketch distributed at Acariya Mun’s cremation stems from that occasion in
Chiang Mai when Chao Khun Upali praised his noble virtues. The name stuck
and was then passed down to future generations by word of mouth. According
to Chao Khun Dhammachedi of Wat Bodhisomphon monastery in Udon Thani,
Acariya Mun remained practicing in Chiang Mai from 1929 to 1940 when he left
for the province of Udon Thani. More will be written later concerning his
stay in Udon Thani.
HAVING LIVED AT Wat Chedi Luang
monastery for some time, Acariya Mun paid his respects to Chao Khun Upali
and took leave to wander in search of solitude in the remote wilderness
areas of the North. Chao Khun Upali readily gave his permission; and so
Acariya Mun departed alone from Chiang Mai, beginning another journey. He
had eagerly awaited the ideal seclusion he needed for a long time, and the
perfect opportunity finally arose. Having been long involved in teaching
others, it was the first time in many years that he had time alone.
Initially, he wandered through the Mae Rim district in Chiang Dao, staying
in the forested mountains there throughout the dry and rainy seasons.
His efforts had reached the
crucial, final stage. He exhorted himself to strive earnestly to reach the
final goal, whatever happened – live or die. Nothing whatsoever would be
allowed to interfere. Out of compassion he had taught his fellow monks to
the best of his ability – of this he had no doubt. The results of his
guidance had already begun to show in some of his disciples. Now it was time
to have compassion for himself, to educate and lift himself above and beyond
those obscuring inner factors which still needed to be overcome.
The life of someone with social
obligations and responsibilities is a life of distraction and of almost
unbearable stress, never allowing adequate time for being alone. One must
admit that this kind of life is a perpetual struggle to be endured, even
though a person may have enough mindfulness and wisdom to avoid this burden
somewhat and alleviate the stress so that it doesn’t overwhelm him. The
opportunities to practice meditation are limited; the results are likely to
be minimal and not worth all the disappointments and difficulties.
This solitary excursion into
the untamed wilderness was an ideal opportunity for him to disengage and
live alone, aloof from all entanglements. Wild, remote forests are just the
right kinds of places to live and practice for someone aiming to sever all
residual attachments, both internal and external, from his heart. He can
discard all the remaining concerns that might form the seeds of future
existence – the source of all forms of dukkha that brings menace in its wake
and causes endless suffering. Remote forests are the right environment in
which a persistent and diligent person can zero in on the fundamental causes
of existence–the great internal masters of deception leading us astray–and
excise them quickly from his heart. While one is still far from reaching the
shores of Nibbana, little benefit can be gained from involvement in other
people’s affairs; for that is comparable to overloading a barge that is
ready to sink even before it starts going. When the coveted goal of the holy
life seemed within reach, Acariya Mun’s compassionate concern for others
dropped away, replaced by motivations of a more personal nature. He was no
longer considering the suffering of others. His resolve was focused firmly
on the realm of purity and he was concerned, lest he not reach it this time.
Thus he reflected:
“Now I must worry about myself
– pity myself – so that as a diligent disciple of the Tathagata, I can live
up to his exalted virtue of unwavering perseverance. Am I fully aware that I
have come here striving to cross beyond the world of samsara and attain the
goal of Nibbana – the freedom from all anxiety and dukkha? If so, what
methods should be used by someone attempting to cross beyond the
conventional world? The Lord Buddha first led the way and then taught us the
Dhamma – what kind of guidance did he give? Did he teach us to forget our
purpose and start worrying about this and that as soon as we have gained a
modest understanding of Dhamma? “In the beginning, the Lord Buddha publicly
proclaimed the sasana with the help of a small number of Arahants, getting
his message rapidly spread far and wide – most properly so. But I am not in
the same exalted position, so I must view my own development as paramount
right now. When I have perfected myself, then benefits to others will
inevitably follow. This view befits one who is circumspect and reluctant to
waste time. I must reflect on this carefully, so I can learn a lesson from
it.
“Right now, I am striving for
victory in a battle between the kilesas and magga, the way of Dhamma, in
order to win freedom for the citta. Until now its loyalties have been
divided between these two rivals, but I aim to make Dhamma its undisputed
master. If my persistence slackens and my powers of discernment are
inadequate, the citta will slip from my grasp and fall under the ignoble
influence of the kilesas; and they will ensure that the citta keeps turning
in a never-ending cycle of birth and despair. But if I can keep up my
persistence and keep my wisdom sharp, the citta will come under my control
and be my own priceless treasure for the taking.
“The time has come for me to
put my life on the line and engage the kilesas in a fierce all out assault,
showing no hesitation or weakness. If I lose, then let me die while battling
it out. I will not allow myself to retreat in disarray so that the kilesas
can ridicule me – that will be a lasting disgrace. If I am victorious, I
shall remain perfectly free for all eternity. So now, there is only one path
for me to take: I must fight to the death with all my might for the sake of
this victory. There is no other choice.”
This is the kind of exhortation
that Acariya Mun used to embolden himself for the impending realization of
the goal he had set for himself. It reflected his uncompromising decision to
accept the obligation of striving for Nibbana steadfastly both day and night
– whether standing, walking, sitting, or lying down. Except when he rested
to sleep, his time was wholly devoted to diligent effort. His mindfulness
and wisdom circled around all external sensations and all internal thought
processes, meticulously investigating everything without leaving any aspect
unexplored. At this level of practice, mindfulness and wisdom act in unison
like a Wheel of Dhamma, turning continuously in motion, irrespective of the
body’s action.
Later, when Acariya Mun
described his tremendous efforts during that time, his audience was so
awe-struck by his Dhamma exploits that they sat motionless with bated
breath. It was as though Acariya Mun had opened the door to Nibbana,
allowing them a glimpse inside, without their having ever experienced
Nibbana before. In truth, Acariya Mun was then in the process of
accelerating his efforts toward the realization of Nibbana. Although only a
stage in the course of his development, it nevertheless moved those who had
never before heard of such a thing, and they were always carried away by the
awesome power of his achievement.
ACARIYA MUN SAID that his citta
had long attained the third ariya level of Anagamï; but, because of his
continual obligations to his followers, he had no time to speed up his
efforts as he wished. Only when he had the opportunity to go to Chiang Mai
was he able to maximize his practice and accomplish his objective.
Chiang Mai’s environment was
conducive and his citta was well prepared. Physically, he was in excellent
shape, fit to exert himself in every activity. His fervent hope was like the
radiant sun, streaming forth continuously to reach the shore free of dukkha
in the shortest possible time. He compared his inner struggle between Dhamma
and the kilesas to a hunting dog, which, at full run, corners its prey; and
it is only a matter of time before the prey is torn to shreds in the jaws of
the chasing hound. There could be no other ending, for the citta was armed
with mahasati and mahapañña – supreme-mindfulness and supreme-wisdom.
They never lapse for a single
moment, even when one has no intent to be vigilant. At this level,
mindfulness and wisdom are fully present, reacting automatically to all
matters arising within oneself. As soon as their cause is known and their
true nature is clearly understood, one simply lets go of them. It is not
necessary then to be in command, giving orders, as is the case in the
initial stages of practice. When equipped with habitual mindfulness and
wisdom, there is no need for specific directions and calculated decisions to
practice this or to investigate that, while having to simultaneously guard
against lapses in attention. “Reason and result” are integrated into the
nature of automatic mindfulness and automatic wisdom; so, it is unnecessary
to search on one’s own for reasons and skillful methods to encourage their
operation. With the exception of sleep, all daily activities are the working
arenas for this level of mahasati and mahapañña. Just like spring water that
flows steadily out of the ground all year round, they work ceaselessly.
The thinking process is taken
as the focal point of the investigation, in order to find the true source of
these thoughts. The four nama khandhas – vedana, sañña, sankhara, and
viññana – are the appropriate battleground for this superior degree of
mindfulness and wisdom. As for the rupa khandha – the physical body – it
ceased to be a problem when one achieved the intermediate level of wisdom.
This form of wisdom performs the tasks necessary for realizing the
Anagamistage of the Nobel Path. To attain this exalted level, one must focus
on the physical body, investigating it scrupulously in every detail until
all misunderstandings and concerns about the body are forever banished.
When one comes to the final
stage – the path to Arahantship, it is absolutely essential to investigate
the nama khandhas so that one gains a deep and clear understanding about how
all phenomena arise, briefly exist, and then vanish. These three aspects of
the investigation converge in the truth of anatta. This means examining all
phenomena as being empty of a permanent self: empty of being a man or woman,
empty of being me or them. No self-entity – whatsoever – exists anywhere
within mental phenomena.2 To comprehend the true nature of the nama khandhas,
one must discover the fundamental principles underlying them and understand
them deeply and clearly with wisdom. It’s not enough that we anticipate
results or speculate about their nature, as is the common tendency of most
people – people who just prefer to do guesswork.
A theoretical understanding,
acquired from learning, differs from a genuine understanding based on wisdom
as the earth differs from the sky. People whose understanding is founded
upon knowledge gained through memorization are very preoccupied with their
own ideas, always assuming that they are highly intelligent. In truth, they
are completely deluded. Consequently, they become overly conceited and are
reluctant to accept help and advice from anyone.3
This arrogant tendency is quite
apparent when a group of scholars discusses Dhamma, each one constantly
trying to champion his own intellectual theories. These meetings usually
degenerate into verbal sparring matches, spurred on by this common attitude
of self-importance, until everyone – regardless of age, race, gender, or
clan – forgets to observe the proper etiquette expected of such ‘civilized’
people. Understanding, based on wisdom, is ready to uproot all types of
speculative views that continually manifest our conceit. Wisdom is prepared
to ferret out and expose these erroneous views, penetrating every niche
until the whole edifice of these kilesas comes crashing down. There is not
one kilesa that can successfully withstand the penetration of the highest
degree of mindfulness and wisdom.
In the Dhamma’s arsenal,
mindfulness and wisdom are the foremost weapons. Never have the kilesas been
intrepid enough to defeat them. The Lord Buddha became the Supreme Teacher
because of mindfulness and wisdom. His disciples became Arahants because of
mindfulness and wisdom. Because of mindfulness and wisdom, they were able to
see with insight into the true nature of things. They didn’t uproot their
kilesas by using learning, supposition, or mere guesswork. In the initial
stages of practice, concepts recalled from memory can be used to delineate
the boundaries of the way forward; but, one must exercise great caution lest
this kind of conjecture causes delusion appearing in the guise of genuine
truth.
When the Lord Buddha and his
Arahant disciples proclaimed the Truth of his teaching to the world, they
were proclaiming the way of wisdom – the way that brings us to see the true
nature of all phenomena. We practitioners of meditation must be extremely
careful that the master of speculation doesn’t sneak in and conjure up his
tricks in place of wisdom. If we aren’t, we will be led to mistake mere
concepts for true understanding, without ever removing a single kilesa from
our hearts. We may find ourselves inundated with knowledge about salvation,
yet unable to save ourselves. This is exactly what the Lord Buddha meant
when he advised the people of Kalama not to believe in speculation or
conjecture, and not to believe teachings handed down from the past or
teachers who are considered to be reliable; but to believe that the
principles of truth can be discovered within themselves – by the wisdom
within themselves. This is the surest kind of knowledge there is. The Lord
Buddha and his Arahant disciples didn’t need anyone to validate the
authenticity of their attainment, for sandiååhiko is there within everyone
who practices the Buddha’s teaching in the right way.4 Acariya Mun said that
when he came to this last level of advanced practice, he became so intrigued
with it that he lost all sense of time. He completely forgot the time of
day, forgot to sleep, and then forgot how tired he was. Fearless and
unshakable, his citta was constantly in position to oppose every type of
kilesa, ready to excise them by their roots. From the time he left Wat Chedi
Luang in Chiang Mai, he did not allow a single day to pass in vain. And
before long, he reached the point of ultimate understanding.5
At the moment he set off alone,
his citta began to express the dynamic characteristics of a daring
thoroughbred stallion. It wanted to soar high and glide through the air,
dive underground and then shoot up into the sky again. It felt inclined to
venture out to experience the many countless variety of phenomena in the
universe. He felt as if his citta was about to dig up and remove all of the
kilesas in a single instant. The adventurous nature of his mindfulness and
wisdom had long been hemmed in by social obligations. They were unable to
move freely about in their preferred domain – the observation and analysis
of just those things Acariya Mun had wanted to know about for such a long
time.
Now he was blessed – blessed
with the opportunity of leaping away and vanishing, finally able to give
mindfulness and wisdom the chance to display their considerable prowess as
they explored throughout the three worlds of existence.
Acariya Mun investigated
thoroughly, internally and externally. His mindfulness and wisdom penetrated
all around – constantly moving in and out, up and down – all the while
resolving issues, detaching himself, and then letting go as he cut, slashed,
and pulverized every manner of falsehood with all the strength he could
muster. Feeling unbound as a giant fish swimming happily in the ocean, he
looked back on his entire past and saw only dark obstructive times lurking
there, fraught with all kinds of dangerous, inevitable consequences. His
heart beat faster at the prospect of finding a way to save himself. Looking
to the future, he saw before him only a majestic, empty expanse of brilliant
illumination – a view that completely surpasses any conventional
understanding and is utterly beyond all description. So much so, that I find
it difficult to elaborate any further for the benefit of the reader. I
sincerely regret that I am unable to do justice to all the inspiring things
Acariya Mun said.
Acariya Mun sat in meditation
late that night, not too long after supreme-mindfulness and supreme-wisdom
had reached the peak of their performance. Like a Wheel of Dhamma, they
moved in unison as they rotated non-stop around the citta and everything
related to it. He was residing at the base of a mountain, in a broad, open
area covered with enormous flat rocks. Clear, open space surrounded him as
he sat at the foot of a solitary tree – the only tree in that entire area.
This tree had abundant cool shade during the day, so he sometimes went to
meditate under it.
I regret that I cannot recall
what type of tree it was, or its exact location. As Acariya Mun described
this amazing event, I was so thoroughly overwhelmed by the magnitude of his
achievement that I failed to remember any of the pertinent details – what
district and township he was in, or even the name of the mountain range.
Hearing him talk of his great victory, I couldn’t help thinking about
myself. Was I going to simply waste my birth as a human being, carelessly
throwing away the wonderful opportunity it gave me? Did I have enough
spiritual potential to one day succeed in realizing that same Supreme
Dhamma? Reflecting in this manner, I forgot everything else. I had no idea
that, someday, I would be writing his biography.
At dusk Acariya Mun began
walking meditation, focusing on paåiccasamuppada, as the theme of primary
relevance to this level of contemplation. 6 Starting with avijja paccaya
sankhara, he became so intrigued by the subject of ‘dependent origination’
that he was soon investigating it to the exclusion of all else. By the time
he sat down at about nine o’clock, his mind was concentrated solely on
scrutinizing avijja, examining each of the interdependent conditions through
to the logical conclusion, then reversing the order to arrive back at
avijja. Contemplating thus, he deliberated back and forth, over and over –
inside the citta – the focal point where birth, death, and kilesas converge
with the principal cause – avijja.
Seated in meditation late that
night, the crucial moment had arrived. The battle lines were drawn:
supreme-mindfulness and supreme-wisdom – the razor sharp weapons – against
avijja, an enemy especially adroit at repulsing their advances then
counterattacking, leaving its opponents in total disarray. Since time
immemorial no one has dared to challenge its might, allowing avijja to reign
supreme and unopposed over the ‘kingdom of birth and death’ inside the
hearts of all living beings. But at three a.m. that night when Acariya Mun
launched his final, all out assault, the result was the total destruction of
the king’s mighty throne and the complete overthrow of his reign in the
kingdom of birth and death. Suddenly impotent and deprived of room to
maneuver, the king could not maintain his sovereignty. At that moment avijja
perished, victim to a lightning strike of magnificent brilliance.
Acariya Mun described how that
fateful moment was accompanied by a tremor that appeared to shake the entire
universe. Celestial beings throughout this vast expanse immediately paid
tribute to his supreme accomplishment, roaring an exclamation of approval
that reverberated across the sentient universe, and proclaimed the
appearance of another disciple of the Tathagata in the world. Overjoyed to
have witnessed this event, they were eager to offer their congratulations.
Human beings, however, were unaware of the momentous event that had just
taken place. Occupied with worldly pleasures, they were too oblivious to
care that, only a moment before, the Supreme Dhamma had arisen in the heart
of a fellow human being.
When the awesome moment passed,
what remained was visuddhidhamma. 7 This pure Dhamma – the true, natural
state of the citta – suffused Acariya Mun’s body and mind, and extended its
light in all directions. The experience aroused an indescribable feeling of
great awe and wonder. His customary compassion for the world virtually
disappeared, and with it, his interest in teaching other people. He was
convinced that this Supreme Dhamma was far too profound and overwhelming in
its greatness for people to ever truly understand. So he became disheartened
in this respect, feeling disinclined to teach others. He felt it was enough
to simply enjoy this wonderful Dhamma alone while still living in the midst
of the conventional world.
Acariya Mun reflected at length
that night on the beneficence of the Lord Buddha. This Supreme Teacher,
having fully realized the Truth, taught people who were receptive to his
message so that they too could attain genuine deliverance. It was obvious
that not a single falsehood was concealed anywhere within the Buddha’s
teaching. He spent the rest of that night tirelessly paying homage to the
supreme virtues of the Lord Buddha.
Acariya Mun had always been
compassionate – he was deeply sympathetic to the spiritual state of fellow
human beings. But his citta had just attained a clarity that was so
extraordinary in its brilliance and purity that he felt he could not
possibly explain the true nature of this Dhamma to others. Even if he tried,
ordinary people with kilesas could never hope to attain this exalted state
of mind. More than that, hearing him speak in such superlatives, they could
accuse him of insanity for daring to teach the world something that no good,
sane person would ever discuss. He believed it unlikely that there would be
enough sympathetic people to generate his enthusiasm for teaching. He was
free to live a life of solitude for the remainder of his years. It was
sufficient that he had fully realized his life-long ambition. He saw no
reason to burden himself with difficult teaching responsibilities. It could
end up being an example of good causes with bad effects: that is, his
compassionate intentions could well turn into harmful results for
contemptuous people.
Such was Acariya Mun’s frame of
mind shortly after attaining the Supreme Dhamma – a time when he had yet to
focus on the wider picture. Eventually, his thoughts gathered on the Lord
Buddha’s guiding role in revealing the correct path of practice. Reviewing
his attainment of Dhamma and the path he took, he saw that he, too, was a
human being in the world just like everyone else, and undistinguished from
others by any special characteristic that would make him the only person
capable of understanding this Dhamma. Certainly, others with strong
spiritual tendencies were capable of this understanding. By failing to
broaden his perspective, his initial outlook had tended to disparage the
spiritual tendencies of his fellow human beings – which was unfair.
The Lord Buddha did not reveal
the path of practice leading to magga, phala and Nibbana for the benefit of
only one individual. This revelation was a gift for the whole world, both
his contemporaries and succeeding generations. In total, the number of those
who have reached magga, phala and Nibbana, following the Buddha’s teaching,
is enormous beyond reckoning. In this respect, Acariya Mun’s achievement was
definitely not unique, though he initially overlooked the capacity of others
for similar achievement.
Carefully reviewing all aspects
of the Buddha’s teaching, he saw its relevance for people the world over,
and its accessibility to anyone willing to practice correctly. These
thoughts gave him a renewed desire to help others. Once again, he felt
comfortable with the idea of teaching people who came to him for guidance,
provided they were receptive to his instructions. For in teaching Dhamma,
the teacher has an obligation to treat Dhamma with respect by refusing to
instruct anyone who is disrespectful or indifferent to what is being taught.
Some people can’t help making
noise while listening to Dhamma: they are obviously apathetic to the value
of the Dhamma and the opportunity they have for hearing it. They appear
oblivious to where they are or how they are expected to behave at that time.
Such people see Dhamma as something quite ordinary. They have adopted a
typically worldly attitude of being thoroughly indifferent to Dhamma, to the
monastery, and to the monks. They see the whole lot as just commonplace.
Under such circumstances, it is unconscionable to teach Dhamma: the teacher
is then censurable and the audience fails to gain any real benefit.
Before he realized the Supreme
Dhamma and then made it available to others, Acariya Mun nearly gave up his
life in the forests and mountains as he struggled relentlessly with every
ounce of strength. After such heroic effort, the notion of bringing this
precious Dhamma and having it simply dissipate in the ocean was
inconceivable. When has that ever happened? After all, a monk is the type of
person who considers everything scrupulously before he acts. Dhamma exists
in a class by itself, so special attention must be paid to when and how it
is presented to a public audience. Should these considerations be neglected
in the presentation of Dhamma, the outcome might well prove harmful.
Dhamma is taught for the
purpose of helping people in the world – much like a doctor, desiring the
well-being of his patients, prescribes medications to cure sickness and
relieve pain. But when people are unwilling to accept help, why should a
monk worry about teaching them? If he really has true Dhamma in his heart,
he is perfectly content to live in solitude. It’s unnecessary for him to
seek students in order to alleviate the discomfort and stress caused by an
irrepressible urge to teach others the way – an urge which merely adds to a
person’s sense of discontent, anyway. Lacking sincerity in the Dhamma that
the Lord Buddha strove so earnestly to realize, such a person, though he
calls himself a teacher, is one only in name.
Acariya Mun said he had
complete confidence that he was mentally and physically attuned to living
alone because his heart was supremely tranquil, possessing genuine Dhamma.
Dhamma means tranquillity. A heart filled with Dhamma is a heart whose
serenity transcends everything. Acariya Mun naturally preferred living in
forested mountain areas since these places were conducive to dwelling
sublimely with Dhamma.8 He considered teaching others to be a special
situation. It was an obligation he performed occasionally and not an actual
necessity as was living by Dhamma– an essential aspect of his life to the
very end. Otherwise, he would not have enjoyed a convenient daily existence.
When we possess Dhamma,
understand Dhamma, and abide in Dhamma, we are unperturbed by things in the
world, and so do not go searching for dukkha. Where Dhamma abides, there is
happiness and tranquility. According to natural principles, Dhamma abides in
the hearts of those who practice it; so happiness and tranquility arise in
the hearts of those practitioners. It cannot arise in any other place.
Acariya Mun was always
extremely circumspect when teaching Dhamma. He never taught
indiscriminately, for Dhamma itself is never indiscriminate. He never
practiced Dhamma in a random fashion but always followed well-established
principles, practicing within the confines of the Noble tradition recorded
in the Buddhist scriptures. Understanding did not arise in him in a random
fashion either – it arose in progressive stages following the principles of
truth. Acariya Mun advised practicing monks to guard against being
indiscriminate by always keeping the strictures of the Teaching and the
Discipline in mind, since they represent the Buddha and the path of practice
he followed. He stressed that the monk who maintains magga and phala – and
maintains the Teaching and the Discipline – is one who is humble and
unassuming, and always careful not to let his actions, his speech, or his
thoughts go astray. Practicing thus, he will be able to stand on his own –
indefinitely.
Having addressed the issue of
teaching Dhamma to others, Acariya Mun again turned his attention to the
nature of his inner Dhamma. He said that the moment of realization, when
Dhamma arises in all its glory within the citta, is a moment that’s
completely unimaginable. Dhamma’s true nature reveals itself in a totally
unexpected manner, as it is inconceivable and impossible to speculate about
beforehand. At that moment, he felt as though he had died and been born
again into a new life – a uniquely amazing death and rebirth. The quality of
awareness, intrinsic to this transformation, was a state of knowing that he
had never before experienced, even though it had always been there,
unchanging. Suddenly, then, it became apparent – spectacular, and
inconceivably amazing. It was this quintessential quality that caused
Acariya Mun to consider – somewhat unconventionally – that it would not be
possible to teach others this Dhamma because they would never be able to
truly understand it.
Since his early days of
practice, Acariya Mun always possessed a very dynamic character. That
distinguishing characteristic was evident at the moment of his final
attainment, which was so unforgettable for him that he would later tell this
story to inspire his disciples. Once his citta had completely overthrown the
cycle of repeated birth and death, it appeared to make three revolutions,
circling around the newly-arisen vivaååa-citta.9 Upon conclusion of the
first revolution, the Pali term lopo – cutting off – arose together with its
essential meaning: at that moment the citta had completed the function of
totally excluding all vestiges of relative, conventional reality. Upon
conclusion of the second revolution, the Pali term vimutti – absolute
freedom – arose together with its essential meaning: at that moment the
citta had completed the function of attaining total release. Upon conclusion
of the third revolution, the Pali term analayo – total detachment – arose
together with its essential meaning: at that moment the citta had completed
the function of wholly severing all attachments. Citta and Dhamma were then
one and the same – ekacitta ekadhamma. The true nature of the citta is
synonymous with the true nature of Dhamma. Unlike relative, conventional
reality, there is no duality. This is vimuttidhamma pure and simple.10 It is
absolute in its singularity and devoid of any trace of relative,
conventional reality within. This pure Dhamma is fully realized only once.
It never requires further perfection.
The Lord Buddha and the
Arahants become fully enlightened only once: the citta and Dhamma being
exactly of the same nature, they have no need to search further. The
khandhas, that make up their conventional existence, are then just khandhas
pure and simple – they contain no defiling elements. The khandhas of an
Arahant remain the same as before, for the attainment of Nibbana does not
alter them in any way. For example, those khandhas responsible for thought
processes continue to perform this function at the behest of their boss, the
citta. By nature, the release of vimutti is already freed of any
intermingling with the khandhas, the citta and the khandhas each existing as
separate, distinct phenomena, each one true within its own natural state.
They no longer seek to deceive or disrupt one another. Both sides exist
peacefully in their distinct natural states, performing their specific
functions until, at death, each constituent element goes its own separate
way.11 When the body finally dies, the purified citta attains yathadïpo ca
nibbuto: just as the flame in a lamp is extinguished when all of the fuel is
exhausted, so too goes the citta according to its true nature.12 Relative,
conventional realities like the khandhas are no longer involved with the
purified citta beyond that point. In truth, nothing of the relative,
conventional world accompanies this citta to create a cause for coming to
birth in the future. Such was the essence of Dhamma that arose in Acariya
Mun’s citta at the moment it completed the three revolutions expressing its
dynamic character. That was the final occasion when the relative reality of
the khandhas and the absolute freedom of the citta joined forces before
finally separating to go their separate ways – forever.13
Throughout the remainder of
that night Acariya Mun considered with a sense of dismay how pathetically
ignorant he had been in the past, being dragged endlessly from one existence
to another – like a puppet. He wept as he thought of how he finally came
upon a pool of crystal-clear, wondrous-tasting water. He had reached Nong
Aw,14 that sparkling pool of pure Dhamma that the Lord Buddha and his
Arahant disciples encountered and then proclaimed to the world over 2500
years ago. Having at long last encountered it himself, he tirelessly paid
heartfelt homage, prostrating himself over and over again to the Buddha, the
Dhamma, and the Sangha. Should people have seen him then, tears streaming
down his face as he prostrated over and over again, surely they would have
assumed that this monk was suffering immensely, shedding tears so profusely.
They probably would have suspected him of beseeching the guardian spirits,
living in all directions, to help ease his pain; or else of being on the
verge of madness, for his behavior was extremely unusual. In fact, he had
just arrived at the truth of the Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha with utmost
clarity, as epitomized in the maxim: He who sees the Dhamma, sees the
Tathagata, and thus abides in the presence of the Buddha, the Dhamma, and
the Sangha. Acariya Mun was simply engaged in the kind of conduct befitting
someone who is overwhelmed by a sincere sense of gratitude.
That night celestial devas of
all realms and terrestrial devas from every direction, paid tribute in a
resounding exclamation of approval that reverberated throughout the world
systems, and then gathered to listen to Acariya Mun expound the Dhamma. But
being still fully engaged in his immediate commitment to the Supreme Dhamma,
he was not yet ready to receive visitors. So, he signaled to the assembled
devas that he was occupied, indicating they should return on a later
occasion. The devas then left, thoroughly delighted that they had seen a
visuddhi-deva on the very night when he attained Nibbana.15
At dawn, Acariya Mun rose from
his meditation seat, reflecting still on the unforgettably amazing Dhamma.
Thinking back to the moment of final release, he recalled the three
revolutions together with the profound subtlety of their essential meanings.
He also reflected with appreciation on the tree that had sheltered him as he
sat in meditation, and the local villagers who had always supported him with
food and other basic needs.
At first, Acariya Mun
considered foregoing his morning almsround that day. He reckoned that the
happiness he felt from his attainment was all that he needed for sustenance.
But he could not help feeling compassion for the local villagers who had
done so much for him. So, while he had no desire to eat, he nevertheless
went on almsround.
Entering the village that
morning he fixed his gaze firmly on the people, having paid little attention
to them before. As he gazed intently at the people who came forward to put
food in his bowl, and at those milling around the houses with children at
play in the dirt, he experienced an extraordinary sense of love and
compassion for them all. The whole village appeared to be especially bright
and cheerful that day, with smiling faces beaming at him as people saw him
come.
Upon return at his mountain
retreat, his heart felt replete with Dhamma, while his body felt fully
satisfied even though he had yet to eat. Neither body nor citta was the
least bit hungry. Nonetheless, he forced himself to eat for the body’s sake,
since it requires nourishment to sustain its life. The food, however,
appeared to have no taste. The taste of Dhamma alone permeated the whole of
his body – and his heart. As the Buddha said: The taste of Dhamma surpasses
all other tastes.16 Eager to hear Dhamma, all the devas came to visit
Acariya Mun the following night. Both terrestrial devas and celestial devas
arrived in groups, hailing from nearly every direction. Each group described
the amazing radiance caused by the incredible power of his Dhamma the
previous night. They compared it to a magnificent tremor that passed through
all the celestial abodes in the vast realms of all the world systems. This
tremor was accompanied by a fantastic incandescence that rendered the length
and breadth of the upper and lower realms ineffably translucent. They told
him:
“Those of us with intuitive
knowledge were able to see unobstructed throughout the entire universe due
to the luminous quality of the Dhamma pouring forth from your person,
venerable sir. Its brilliance was far more radiant than the light of a
hundred or even a thousand suns. It is truly unbearable to think that there
were those who missed seeing such a wonder. Only humans and animals, living
futile earthbound existences, could be so incredibly blind and unperceptive
as to have been unaware of last night’s splendor. Devas everywhere were so
stunned, astonished, and utterly amazed that they let out an emphatic
exclamation of approval to express their exultation at the perfection of
your achievement. If it were not such an absolutely amazing achievement, how
could knowledge of it have been so widespread?
“You, venerable sir, are a
person of saintly virtue, majestic power, and vast influence, capable of
being a refuge to a great number of beings in numerous realms of existence.
All will be able to find blessed comfort in the shadow of your greatness.
Beings of every class – be they humans, devas, or brahmas, living
underwater, on land, or in the air – are rarely fortunate enough to
encounter such perfection. We devas consider ourselves especially blessed to
have met you, venerable sir, having the precious opportunity to pay our
respects to you and to receive your beneficent teaching. We are grateful to
you for expounding the Dhamma to brighten our hearts, leading us on the path
of practice so that we can gradually become aware of how to improve
ourselves.”
When the assemblies of devas
finally returned to their respective realms, Acariya Mun began to reflect on
the tremendous difficulties he had experienced in his effort to realize this
Dhamma. Because his practice had entailed such exceptional hardship, he
regarded it as Dhamma at the threshold of death. Had he not come so close to
death, while struggling to reach freedom from dukkha, then surely he would
never have attained that freedom.
The Spiritual Partner
Sitting in meditation after his
final attainment, Acariya Mun recalled a certain personal matter from his
past – one which he had not taken much interest in before. Here I would like
to tell a story relevant to Acariya Mun’s past. I feel it would be a shame
to leave out such an intriguing story, especially as this type of
relationship may be following every one of you like a shadow, even though
you are unaware of it. Should the story be deemed in any way unseemly,
please blame the author for not being properly circumspect. As you may
already have guessed, this is a private matter that was discussed only by
Acariya Mun and his inner circle of disciples. I have tried to suppress the
urge to write about it here, but the more I tried to suppress it, the
stronger this urge became. So I finally gave in and, after writing it down,
the urge gradually subsided. I must confess that I’m at fault here, but I
hope the reader forgives me. Hopefully, it will provide everyone, caught in
the perpetual cycle of birth and death, something worthwhile to think about.
This story concerns Acariya
Mun’s longtime spiritual partner.17 Acariya Mun said that in previous lives
he and his spiritual partner had both made a solemn vow to work together
toward the attainment of Buddhahood. During the years prior to his final
attainment, she occasionally came to visit him while he was in samadhi. On
those occasions, he gave her a brief Dhamma talk, then sent her away. She
always appeared to him as a disembodied consciousness. Unlike beings from
most realms of existence, she had no discernible form. When he inquired
about her formless state, she replied that she was so worried about him she
had not yet decided to take up existence in any specific realm. She feared
that he would forget their relationship – their mutual resolve to attain
Buddhahood in the future. So out of concern, and a sense of disappointment,
she felt compelled to come and check on him from time to time. Acariya Mun
told her then that he had already given up that vow, resolving instead to
practice for Nibbana in this lifetime. He had no wish to be born again,
which was equivalent to carrying all the misery he had suffered in past
lives indefinitely into the future. Although she had never revealed her
feelings, she remained worried about their relationship, and her longing for
him never waned. So once in a long while she paid him a visit. But on this
occasion, it was Acariya Mun who thought of her, being concerned about her
plight, since they had gone through so many hardships together in previous
lives. Contemplating this affair after his attainment, it occurred to him
that he would like to meet her so they could reach a new understanding. He
wanted to explain matters to her, and thus remove any lingering doubts or
anxieties regarding their former partnership. Late that very night and soon
after this thought occurred to him, his spiritual partner arrived in her
familiar formless state.
Acariya Mun began by asking her
about her present realm of existence. He wanted to know why she had no
discernible form like beings from other celestial realms, and what exactly
was her present condition. The formless being answered that she lived in one
of the minor ethereal states of being in the vast sentient universe. She
reiterated that she was waiting in that realm because of anxiety concerning
him. Having become aware of his desire to meet her, she came to him that
night.
Ordinarily, she didn’t dare to
visit him very often. Though sincerely wanting to see him, she always felt
shy and hesitant. In truth, her visits were in no way damaging to either of
them for they were not of such a nature as to be harmful. But still, her
long-standing affection for him made her hesitant about coming. Acariya Mun
had also told her not to visit too often, for although not harmful, such
visits could nevertheless become an emotional impediment, thus slowing his
progress. The heart being very sensitive by nature, it could well be
affected by subtle emotional attachments, which could then interfere with
the practice of meditation. Convinced that this was true, she seldom came to
visit him.
She was quite aware that he had
severed his connection to birth and death, including former friends and
relatives – and of course the spiritual partner who was counting on him –
with no lingering regrets whatsoever. After all, it was an event that had a
dramatic effect throughout the world systems. But rather than rejoice with
delight, as she would have done in the past when they were together, this
time she felt slighted, prompting an unorthodox reaction. She thought
instead that he was being irresponsible, neglecting to consider the loyal
spiritual companion who had shared his suffering, struggling together with
him through so many lifetimes. She felt devastated now, left alone in
misfortune, clutching dukkha but unable to let go. He had already gone
beyond dukkha, leaving her behind to endure the burden of suffering. The
more she thought about it, the more she felt like one bereft of wisdom who,
nonetheless, wanted to reach up to touch the moon and the stars. In the end,
she fell back to earth clutching her misery, unable to find a way out of
such grievous misfortune.
Despondent, hapless being that
she was, and struggling to endure her misery, she pleaded with him for
assistance: “I am desperately disappointed. Where can I possibly find
happiness? I so want to reach up and touch the moon and the stars in the
sky! It’s just terrible, and so painful. You yourself are like the moon and
the stars up in the sky shining brightly in every direction. Having
established yourself in Dhamma, your existence is never bleak, never dreary.
You’re so completely content and your aura radiates throughout every part of
the universe. If I am still fortunate enough, please kindly show me the way
of Dhamma. Please help me bring forth the bright, pure knowledge of
wisdom,18 releasing me quickly from the cycle of repeated birth and death,
to follow you in the attainment of Nibbana so that I will not have to endure
this agony much longer. May this vow be strong enough to produce the results
my heart desires, allowing me to attain the grace of enlightenment as soon
as possible.”
Convulsed with sobs of anguish,
such was the fervent plea of that sorrowful formless being as she expressed
her hopes of gaining enlightenment. Acariya Mun replied that his intention
in wishing to see her was not to elicit regrets about the past: “People who
wish each other well should not think in that way. Haven’t you practiced the
four brahmaviharas: metta, karuna, mudita, and upekkha?19
The formless spirit replied: “I
have practiced them for so long that I can’t help thinking about the
closeness we once shared practicing them together. When a person saves only
himself, as you have, it is quite natural for those left behind to be
disappointed. I’m in misery because I have been abandoned without any
concern for my welfare. I still can’t see any possibility of easing my
pain.”
He cautioned her: “Whether
practicing on your own or in concert with others, goodness is developed for
the purpose of reducing anxiety and suffering within yourself, not for
increasing them until, being agitated, you become all upset. Isn’t that
right?”
“Yes, but the tendency of
people with kilesas is to somehow muddle through, not knowing which path is
the right one for a smooth, safe passage. We don’t know if what we are doing
is right or wrong, or whether the result will be happiness or suffering. We
know the pain in our hearts, but we don’t know the way out of it. So we are
left to fret about our misfortune, as you see me doing now.”
Acariya Mun said that the
formless spirit was adamant in her complaints about him. She accused him of
making his escape alone, showing no pity for her – she who for so long had
struggled together with him to go beyond dukkha. She complained that he had
made no effort to assist her so that she too could gain release from
suffering.
He tried to console her: “When
two people eat food together at the same table, inevitably one will be full
before the other. It’s not possible for both to be fully satiated at the
same moment. Take the case of the Lord Buddha and his former spouse,
Yasodhara. Although for many ages they had jointly developed goodness of all
kinds, the Lord Buddha was the first to transcend dukkha, returning then to
teach his former spouse so that later she also crossed over to the other
shore. You should consider this lesson carefully and learn from it, instead
of complaining about the person who’s right now trying his best to find a
way to help you. I am earnestly searching for a means to help you cross
over, yet you accuse me of being heartless and irresponsible. Such thoughts
are very inappropriate. They will merely increase the discomfort for both of
us. You should change your attitude, following the example of the Lord
Buddha’s former spouse – an excellent example for everyone, and one giving
rise to true happiness.
“My reason for meeting you is
to assist you, not to drive you away. I have always supported your
development in Dhamma. To say that I have abandoned you and no longer care
for your welfare is simply not true. My advice to you emanates from a heart
whose loving kindness and compassion are absolutely pure. If you follow this
advice, practicing it to the best of your ability, I will rejoice in your
progress. And should you receive completely satisfactory results, I will
rest contented in equanimity.20
“Our original aspiration to
achieve Buddhahood was made for the express purpose of crossing beyond the
cycle of rebirth. My subsequent desire to attain the status of savaka21
instead, was actually a desire aimed toward the same goal: a state free of
kilesas and asava,22 free of all dukkha, the Supreme Happiness, Nibbana. As
I’ve followed the righteous path through many different lives, including my
present status as a Buddhist monk, I have always done my utmost to keep in
touch with you. Throughout this time, I have taught you as best I could with
the immense loving compassion that I feel for you. Never was there a moment
when I thought of forsaking you to seek only my own salvation – my thoughts
were constantly full of concern, full of sympathy for you. I have always
hoped to free you from the misery of birth in samsara, leading you in the
direction of Nibbana.
“Your abnormal reaction –
feeling offended because you suppose that I’ve abandoned you without any
concern for your well-being – is of no benefit to either of us. From now on,
you should refrain from such thinking. Don’t allow these thoughts to arise
and trample all over your heart, for they will bring only endless misery in
their wake – a result incompatible with my objective, as I strive with
heartfelt compassion to help you out.
“Escaping without a care? Where
have I escaped to? And who is it I don’t care about? At this moment I am
doing my utmost to give you every possible assistance. Doesn’t everything
I’ve taught you arise solely out of such compassionate concern as I am
showing you right now? The constant encouragement I have provided comes
straight from a heart full to the brim with a compassion that exceeds all
the water in the great oceans, a compassion that pours forth unsparingly,
without concern that it might run dry. Please understand that helping you
has always been my intention and accept this Dhamma teaching that I offer.
If you just trust me and practice accordingly, you will experience the
fruits of inner happiness for yourself.
“From the day I first ordained
as a monk, I have sincerely practiced the way of Dhamma – never for a moment
have I thought ill of anyone. My motive in wanting to meet with you was not
to deceive you, or cause you harm, but to assist you as best I can with all
my heart. If you refuse to trust me, it will be difficult for you to find
anyone else so worthy of your complete faith. You said you were aware of the
universe trembling that night. That trembling, do you think it was caused by
the ‘Dhamma of deception’ arising in the world? Is that why you’re so
hesitant about taking to heart the advice I have so graciously offered you?
If you understand that Dhamma is indeed the Dhamma of Truth, then you should
consider the trembling of the universe that night as a decisive factor in
your faith, and take comfort in the fact that you still have great resources
of merit. You are still able to listen to a timely exposition of Dhamma,
even though your birth in that formless realm of existence should render
such a thing impossible. I consider it my good fortune to be able to teach
you now. You should feel proud of your own good fortune in having someone to
come and rescue you from the hopeless gloom that your misguided thinking has
caused. If you can think positively like this, I shall be very pleased. Such
thinking will not allow dukkha to bind you so tightly that you can’t find a
way out. It won’t allow Dhamma to be seen as something mundane, or
compassionate concern to be seen as something malevolent.”
As she listened to Acariya Mun
present these reasoned arguments with such loving compassion, his spiritual
partner felt as though she was being bathed in a stream of celestial water.
Gradually she regained her composure. Enchanted by his discourse, her mind
soon became calm, her manner respectful.
When he finished speaking, she
admitted her mistake: “My affection and my hopeless yearning for you have
caused so much trouble. I believed that you had discarded me, going your own
way, which left me feeling neglected. I became terribly disappointed. I
couldn’t stop thinking how useless and rejected I felt, with no one to turn
to. But now that I have received the light of Dhamma, my heart is cool and
contented. I can now put down the burden of misery that I’ve been carrying,
for your Dhamma is like a divine nectar washing over my heart, cleansing it
and making it bright. Please forgive me whatever wrong I have done to you
through my ignorance. I am determined to be more careful in the future –
never shall I make such a mistake again.”
When she finished speaking,
Acariya Mun advised her to take birth in a more appropriate realm of
existence, telling her to cease worrying about the past. Respectfully, she
promised to follow his advice, then made one final request: “Once I have
taken birth in a suitable realm, may I come and listen to your advice as
before? Please give me your blessing for this.” Once Acariya Mun had granted
her request, she immediately vanished.
The formless spirit having
departed, Acariya Mun’s citta withdrew from samadhi. It was nearly five a.m.
and almost light. He had not rested the entire night. Having begun sitting
in samadhi at around eight p.m., he had spoken with the formless spirit for
many hours into the night. Not long afterwards, the same spirit came to
visit him again. This time she came in the bodily form of a beautiful deva,
although in deference to the especially revered monk she was visiting, she
was not adorned in the ornamental style customary of the devas.
Upon arriving, she explained to
him her new situation: “After listening to your explanation, which removed
all my doubts and relieved me of the misery that was tormenting me, I came
to birth in the Tavatimsa heavenly realm – a celestial sphere full of
delightful pleasures, all of which I now enjoy as a result of the goodness
we performed together as human beings. Although I experience this pleasant
existence as a consequence of my own good deeds, I can’t help remembering
that you, venerable sir, were the one who initially encouraged me to do
good. On my own, I would never have had the wisdom capable of accomplishing
this to my complete satisfaction.
“Feeling fortunate enough to be
reborn in heavenly splendor, I am wholly contented, and no longer angry or
resentful. As I reflect back on the immense kindness you’ve always shown me,
it becomes apparent to me how important it is for us to choose discretely in
our lives – concerning everything from our work to our food to our friends
and companions, both male and female. Such discretion is crucial for leading
a smooth, untroubled existence. This is especially true when choosing a
spouse to depend on, for better or for worse. Choosing a spouse merits
special attention, for we share everything with that person – even our very
breath. Every happiness and every sorrow along the way will necessarily
affect both parties.
“Those who have a good partner,
even though they may be inadequate in terms of their intelligence, their
temperament, or their behavior, are still blest to have someone who can
guide and encourage them in dealing with all their affairs – both their
secular affairs, which promote peace and stability in the family, and their
spiritual affairs, which nourish the heart. All other matters will benefit
as well, so they won’t feel they are groping blindly in the dark, never
certain how these matters will turn out. Each partner being a good person,
they compliment each other to create a virtual paradise within the family,
allowing everyone to remain peaceful, contented, and free from strife at all
times. Always cheerful, such a household is undisturbed by temperamental
outbursts. All members contribute in creating this atmosphere: each is calm
and composed, firmly established in the principles of reason – instead of
just doing whatever they like, which is contrary to the very moral
principles that insure their continued peace and contentment. Married
couples work together to construct their own future. Together they create
good and bad kamma. They create happiness and misery, virtue and evil,
heaven and hell, from the very beginning of their relationship onwards to
the present and into the future – an unbroken continuum.
“Being blessed with the chance
to accompany you through many lives, I’ve come to realize this in my own
situation. By your guidance, venerable sir, I have made goodness an integral
part of my character. You have always steered me safely through every
danger, never letting me stray in the direction of evil or disgrace.
Consequently, I’ve remained a good person during all those lifetimes. I
cannot tell you how deeply moved I am by all the kindness you’ve shown me. I
now realize the harm caused by my past mistakes. Please kindly forgive my
transgressions so that no lingering animosity remains between us.”
Assenting to the deva’s
request, Acariya Mun forgave her. He then gave her an inspiring talk,
encouraging her to perfect herself spiritually. When he had finished, she
paid him her respects, moved off a short distance, and floated blissfully up
into the sky.
Some of the resentful comments
she made when she was still a formless spirit were too strange to record
here, so I’ve been unable to recount every detail of their conversation; and
for that I ask your forgiveness. I am not really that satisfied with what
has been written here either, but I feel that without it a thought-provoking
story would have been left out.
The Most Exalted
Appreciation
On the nights subsequent to
Acariya Mun’s attainment of vimutti, a number of Buddhas, accompanied by
their Arahant disciples, came to congratulate him on his vimuttidhamma. One
night, a certain Buddha, accompanied by tens of thousands of Arahant
disciples, came to visit; the next night, he was visited by another Buddha
who was accompanied by hundreds of thousands of Arahant disciples. Each
night a different Buddha came to express his appreciation, accompanied by a
different number of Arahant disciples. Acariya Mun stated that the number of
accompanying Arahant disciples varied according to each Buddha’s relative
accumulation of merit – a factor that differed from one Buddha to the next.
The actual number of Arahant disciples accompanying each Buddha did not
represent the total number of his Arahant disciples; they merely
demonstrated the relative levels of accumulated merit and perfection that
each individual Buddha possessed. Among the Arahant disciples accompanying
each of those Buddhas were quite a few young novices.23 Acariya Mun was
skeptical about this, so he reflected on it and realized that the term
“Arahant” does not apply exclusively to monks.
Novices whose hearts are
completely pure are also Arahant disciples, so their presence did not raise
issue with the term in any way. Most of the Buddhas who came to show their
appreciation to Acariya Mun addressed him in much the following manner:
“I, the Tathagata, am aware
that you have escaped from the harmful effects of that monstrous suffering
which you endured in the prison of samsara,24 so I have come to express my
appreciation. This prison is enormous, and quite impregnable. It is full of
seductive temptations which so enslave those who are unwary that it is
extremely difficult for anyone to break free. Of the vast number of people
living in the world, hardly anyone is concerned enough to think of looking
for a way out of dukkha that perpetually torments their bodies and minds.
They are like sick people who cannot be bothered to take medicine. Even
though medicines are plentiful, they are of no use to a person who refuses
to take them.
“Buddha-Dhamma is like
medicine. Beings in samsara are afflicted with the painful, oppressive
disease of kilesas, which causes endless suffering. Inevitably, this disease
can be cured only by the medicine of Dhamma. Left uncured, it will drag
living beings through an endless succession of births and deaths, all of
them bound up with physical and mental pain. Although Dhamma exists
everywhere throughout the whole universe, those who are not really
interested in properly availing themselves of its healing qualities are
unable to take advantage of it.
“Dhamma exists in its own
natural way. Beings in samsara spin around, like wheels, through the pain
and suffering of each successive life – in the natural way of samsara. They
have no real prospect of ever seeing an end to dukkha. And there is no way
to help them unless they are willing to help themselves by holding firmly to
the principles of Dhamma, earnestly trying to put them into practice. No
matter how many Buddhas become enlightened, or how extensive their teachings
are, only those willing to take the prescribed medicine will benefit.
“The Dhamma, taught by all the
Buddhas, is invariably the same: to renounce evil and do good. There exists
no Dhamma teaching more exceptional than this: For even the most exceptional
kilesas in the hearts of living beings are not so exceptional that they can
transcend the power of Dhamma taught by all the Buddhas. This Dhamma in
itself is sufficient to eradicate every kind of kilesa there is – unless, of
course, those practicing it allow themselves to be defeated by their kilesas,
and so conclude that Dhamma must be worthless.
“By nature, kilesas have always
resisted the power of Dhamma. Consequently, people who defer to the kilesas
are people who disregard Dhamma. They are unwilling to practice the way, for
they view it as something difficult to do, a waste of the time they could
otherwise spend enjoying themselves – despite the harm such pleasures cause
them. A wise, far-sighted person should not retreat into a shell, like a
turtle in a pot of boiling water – it is sure to die because it can’t find a
way to escape. The world is a cauldron, boiling with the consuming heat of
the kilesas. Earthly beings of every description, every where, must endure
this torment, for there is no safe place to hide, no way to elude this
conflagration burning in their own hearts – right there where the dukkha is.
“You have seen the truly
genuine Tathagata, haven’t you? What is the genuine Tathagata? The genuine
Tathagata is simply that purity of heart you have just realized. The bodily
form in which I now appear is merely a manifestation of relative,
conventional reality.25 This form does not represent the true Buddha, or the
true Arahant; it is just our conventional bodily appearance.” Acariya Mun
replied that he had no doubts about the true nature of the Buddha and the
Arahants. What still puzzled him was: how could the Buddha and the Arahants,
having attained anupadisesa-nibbana26 without any remaining trace of
relative, conventional reality, still appear in bodily form. The Buddha
explained this matter to him:
“If those who have attained
anupadisesa-nibbana wish to interact with other Arahants who have purified
their hearts but still possess a physical, mundane body, they must
temporarily assume a mundane form in order to make contact. However, if all
concerned have already attained anupadisesa- nibbana without any remaining
trace of relative, conventional reality, then the use of conventional
constructs is completely unnecessary. So it is necessary to appear in a
conventional form when dealing with conventional reality, but when the
conventional world has been completely transcended, no such problem exists.
“All Buddhas know events
concerning the past and the future through nimittas that symbolize for them
the original conventional realities of the occurrences in question.27 For
instance, when a Buddha wishes to know about the lives of the Buddhas who
preceded him, he must take the nimitta of each Buddha, and the particular
circumstances in which he lived, as a device leading directly to that
knowledge. If something exists beyond the relative world of conventional
reality, that being vimutti, then there can be no symbol representing it.
Because of that, knowledge about past Buddhas depends on mundane conventions
to serve as a common basis for understanding, as my present visit
illustrates. It is necessary that I and all of my Arahant disciples appear
in our original mundane forms so that others, like yourself, have a means of
determining what our appearance was like. If we did not appear in this form,
no one would be able to perceive us.28
“On occasions when it is
necessary to interact with conventional reality, vimutti must be made
manifest by the use of suitable conventional means. In the case of pure
vimutti, as when two purified cittas interact with one another, there exists
only the essential quality of knowing – which is impossible to elaborate on
in any way. So when we want to reveal the nature of complete purity, we have
to bring in conventional devices to help us portray the experience of
vimutti. We can say that vimutti is a ‘self-luminous state devoid of all
nimittas representing the ultimate happiness’, for instance, but these are
just widely-used, conventional metaphors. One who clearly knows it in his
heart cannot possibly have doubts about vimutti. Since its true
characteristics are impossible to convey, vimutti is inconceivable in a
relative, conventional sense. Vimutti manifesting conventionally and vimutti
existing in its original state are, however, both known with absolute
certainty by the Arahant. This includes both vimutti manifesting itself by
means of conventional constructs under certain circumstances, and vimutti
existing in its original, unconditioned state. Did you ask me about this
matter because you were in doubt, or simply as a point of conversation?”
“I have no doubts about the
conventional aspects of all the Buddhas, or the unconditioned aspects. My
inquiry was a conventional way of showing respect. Even without a visit from
you and your Arahant disciples, I would have no doubts as to where the true
Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha lie. It is my clear conviction that whoever sees
the Dhamma sees the Tathagata. This means that the Lord Buddha, the Dhamma,
and the Sangha each denote the very same natural state of absolute purity,
completely free of conventional reality, collectively known as the Three
Jewels.”
“I, the Tathagata, did not ask
you that question thinking you were in doubt, but rather as a friendly
greeting.” 29
On those occasions when the
Buddhas and their Arahant disciples came to visit, only the Buddhas
addressed Acariya Mun. None of the disciples accompanying them spoke a word
as they sat quietly composed, listening in a manner worthy of the highest
respect. Even the small novices, looking more adorable than venerable,
showed the same quiet composure. Some of them were quite young, between the
ages of nine and twelve, and Acariya Mun found them truly endearing.
Ordinarily, the average person
would see only bright-eyed, adorable children. Being unaware that they were
Arahants, one would most probably be tempted to fool around, reaching out
playfully to stroke their heads, without realizing the impertinence of doing
so. When Acariya Mun spoke about this, I thought mischievously that I would
probably be the first to succumb to the urge to reach out and play with
them, despite the consequences. Afterwards, I could always beg their
forgiveness.
Acariya Mun said that, although
they were young novices, their behavior was very mature. They were as calm,
composed, and impressive to see as all the other Arahant disciples. In
short, all the Arahant monks and novices who accompanied each Buddha
exhibited impeccable behavior worthy of the highest respect. They were neat,
orderly, and pleasing to the eye – like immaculately folded robes.
Acariya Mun had always been
curious to know how walking and sitting meditation were practiced at the
time of the Buddha. He also had questions about the proper etiquette to be
used between junior and senior monks, and whether it was necessary for a
monk to wear his formal robes while doing meditation. When such questions
arose in his mind, invariably one of the Buddhas, or an Arahant disciple,
appeared to him in samadhi and demonstrated how these practices were
originally performed in the Buddha’s day. For example, Acariya Mun was
curious to know the correct manner of practicing walking meditation so as to
show proper respect for Dhamma. A Buddha or an Arahant then appeared,
demonstrating in detail how to place the hands, how to walk, and how to
remain self-composed. Sometimes, these demonstrations included explicit
instructions; at other times, the methods were demonstrated by example. They
also showed him such things as the proper way to sit in samadhi, including
the most suitable direction to face and the best seated posture to assume.
Acariya Mun had some strange
things to say about how junior and senior monks showed their respect for
each other. Acariya Mun wanted to know how monks at the time of the Buddha
conducted themselves with appropriate respect toward one another.30 Shortly
after this thought arose, the vision of a Buddha and many Arahant disciples
appeared to him. The Arahants were of all different ages – some were young,
others older, a few being so old that their hair had turned completely
white. A considerable number of small novices of all ages accompanied them.
However, the Buddha and his disciples did not arrive together – each Arahant
arrived individually. Those arriving first sat in the front, while those
arriving later sat further away – without regard for seniority. Even those
novices who arrived earlier sat ahead of the monks who arrived later.
Finally the last monk, a very elderly man, arrived to take the last
available seat – way in the back; but the others showed no sign of shame or
embarrassment. Even the Buddha himself sat down in whichever seat was
available at the time he arrived.
Seeing this, Acariya Mun was
somewhat incredulous. Could it be that the monks at the time of the Buddha
did not respect seniority? It was definitely not an inspiring sight. How
could the Buddha and his disciples proclaim the sasana and then expect
people to have faith in it when the sasana’s leader and his closest
disciples behaved in such an indiscriminate fashion? Instantly, the answer
arose in his heart without the Buddha and his disciples having offered any
comment: This was an instance of pure vimuttidhamma devoid of any trace of
relative, conventional reality – so there was no fixed order of propriety.
They were demonstrating the true nature of Absolute Purity,31 being
perfectly equal for all, irrespective of conventional designations such as
young and old, or high and low. From the Lord Buddha on down to the youngest
Arahant novice, all were equal with respect to their state of purity.
What Acariya Mun had witnessed
was a conclusive indicator that all the Arahant monks and novices were
equally pure.
This having been made clear to
him, he wondered how they deferred to each other in the conventional world.
No sooner had this thought arisen, than the vision of the Buddha and the
Arahants seated before him changed. Whereas before they had been sitting
together in no special order, now the Buddha sat at the head of the
assembly, while the small novices, previously in the front, sat in the last
seats. It was an impressive sight – worthy of the highest respect. At that
moment Acariya Mun clearly understood that this image represented the
traditional way in which monks at the time of the Buddha showed each other
respect. Even Arahants who were junior in rank were obliged to respect those
of their seniors who were practicing correctly but still had kilesas in
their hearts.32 The Buddha then elaborated on this theme:
“The Tathagata’s monks must
live in mutual respect and friendship, as though they were all one single
entity. This does not mean that they are friendly in a worldly way, but
rather that they are friendly in the equal, unbiased way of Dhamma. When my
monks live together, even in large numbers, they never quarrel or display
arrogance. Monks who do not respect their fellows according to the
principles of the Teaching and the Discipline of the Buddha, are not worthy
of being called the Tathagata’s monks. Even though those monks may imitate
the disciples of the Buddha, they are merely impostors making false claims.
As long as monks respect each other according to the principles of the
Teaching and the Discipline – which substitute for the Buddha himself – and
never violate these principles, then wherever those monks live, whenever
they were ordained, whatever their race, status, or nationality, they remain
true disciples of the Tathagata. And whoever is a true follower of the
Tathagata must surely see the end of dukkha one day.”
The Buddha and all his
disciples vanished instantly the moment he finished speaking. As for Acariya
Mun, all his doubts had vanished the moment that vision appeared to him so
clearly.
Concerning Acariya Mun’s doubts
about the necessity of wearing the formal robes when doing meditation: one
of the Arahant disciples appeared to him, demonstrating how it was
unnecessary to wear them every time. He personally demonstrated when and how
sitting and walk ing meditation should be practiced while wearing the formal
robes, as well as the instances when it was unnecessary to wear them. Every
aspect of a monk’s robes was made clear to him, including the correct color
for a monk’s three principal robes. He showed Acariya Mun ochre-colored
robes that were dyed from the heartwood of the jackfruit tree in three
different shades – light, medium, and dark brown.33
Careful consideration of these
episodes is enough to convince us that Acariya Mun always had sound,
acknowledged precedents for the way he practiced. He never jeopardized his
vocation by merely guessing about things he was unsure of. Consequently, his
practice was always smooth, consistent, and irreproachable from beginning to
end. Certainly, it would be hard to find his equal nowadays. Those adopting
his mode of practice are bound to exhibit a gracefulness befitting disciples
of such a fine teacher, and their own practice is sure to progress very
smoothly. However, those who prefer to flout convention are like ghosts
without a cemetery, or orphans without a family. Having forsaken their
teacher they may well modify the practice to suit their own opinions.
Acariya Mun possessed a mysterious, ineffable inner compass to direct him in
these matters, one which none of his disciples could ever match.
|
|
Venerable Acariya Mun wandered
dhutanga in the northern province of Chiang Mai for many years, spending the
annual rains retreat in a different location each year. He spent one rains
retreat in each of the following places: Ban Chom Taeng in the Mae Rim
district, Ban Pong in the Mae Taeng district, Ban Kloi in the Phrao
district, Ban Pu Phraya in the Mae Suai district, and Mae Thong Thip in the
Mae Sai district of Chiang Rai province. He also spent rains retreats at Wat
Chedi Luang in the city of Chiang Mai; in the mountains of Mae Suai
district; and in the neighboring province of Uttaradit. Outside of the
retreat period, he wandered extensively through the provinces of Chiang Mai
and Chiang Rai for a total of eleven years, making it impossible to give a
strict chronological account of all the village communities he passed
through on his travels. In the following account, I shall mention by name
only those villages having a direct bearing on the story as it unfolds.
Except for his stay at Wat
Chedi Luang monastery, Acariya Mun always wandered in solitude, staying in
the wilderness, mountainous areas where danger was ever-present. It is the
exceptional nature of his wandering dhutanga practice and the many insights
into Dhamma, that arose along the way, which make Acariya Mun’s life story
so significant.
This strange and wonderful tale
is unique among the stories of all the dhutanga monks who wandered alone.
Ordinarily, such a lifestyle is believed to be bleak and lonely. Living in
an inhospitable environment, oppressed by danger, and unable to eat or sleep
normally, the sense of fear can be stifling. But Acariya Mun was perfectly
content living a solitary existence. He found it conducive to his efforts to
remove the kilesas from his heart, having always relied on the method of
striving in seclusion to accomplish that goal.
It was only later that other
monks began to seek him out. For example, Acariya Thet of Tha Bo district in
the province of Nong Khai, Acariya Saan, and Acariya Khao of Wat Tham Klong
Phen monastery lived with him for short periods of time. After training them
for a while in the way of practice, he sent them off alone to find secluded
places in sparsely populated forests where villages were far apart – perhaps
at the foot of a mountain, perhaps on a mountain ridge. Villages in that
region were quite small, some consisting of only 4 or 5 houses, others 9 to
10 houses – just enough to support an almsround from one day to the next.
The kammatthana monks who
followed Acariya Mun during that period were extremely resolute, fearless
individuals. They constantly showed a willingness to put their lives on the
line in their search for Dhamma. Therefore, Acariya Mun preferred to send
them to live in places teeming with wild animals, such as tigers, for such
places tended to automatically dispel complacency and stimulate mindfulness
and wisdom, boosting the strength of the citta faster than could otherwise
be expected.
Acariya Mun himself thrived
comfortably in the peace and quiet of these virtually unpopulated mountain
regions. Though human contact was scarce, communication with devas, brahmas,
nagas, and other spirits from various realms of existence was normal for him
– much in the same way that a person knowing foreign languages regularly
communicates with people from other countries. Due to his long-standing
fluency in this type of communication, his time spent living in mountainous
regions was of special benefit to celestial beings.
It was also beneficial to the
local hill tribes, who tended to be straightforward, honest, even-tempered
people. Once they came to know his character and to appreciate his Dhamma,
they revered him so much that they were willing to sacrifice their lives for
him. Hill tribes and forest peoples such as the Ekor, Khamu, Museur, and
Hmong are generally considered to be rather scruffy, unattractive, primitive
people.
But Acariya Mun found them to
be handsome, clean-looking people who were courteous and well-behaved,
always treating their elders and local leaders with great respect. They
maintained a good community spirit, and there were hardly any troublemakers
in their villages back then. They placed so much trust in their elders,
especially the village headman, that when he spoke everyone paid attention
and obediently complied with his wishes. And they were not opinionated,
making them easy to teach.
Those so-called wild,
uncivilized jungles were actually inhabited by good, honest, moral people.
There, unlike in the jungles of human civilization, theft and robbery were
virtually unknown. Jungles consisting of trees and wild animals aren’t
nearly so dangerous as the civilized jungles of human society – places
teeming with all kinds of perilous kilesas where greed, hatred, and delusion
are constantly on the assault.
They inflict deep internal
wounds, gradually eroding a person’s physical and mental health until the
damage becomes acute. Such wounds are extremely difficult to treat. In any
case, most people can’t even be bothered to look for suitable care. Though
such kilesa-inflicted wounds tend to fester menacingly, those who are
afflicted usually neglect their injuries, hoping they will somehow heal by
themselves.
This sort of kilesa-infested
jungle exists in the hearts of all human beings – men, women, monks, and
novices – without distinction. Acariya Mun said that he used life in the
wilds as a means of cutting back this wild inner jungle, which otherwise
could be so savage and disturbing that the heart never experienced any peace
and quiet. At least by living alone in the wilderness he could quell the
kilesas enough to feel comfortable and relaxed. He felt that this was the
only sensible way to use our natural human intelligence, and thus not
squander the good fortune inherent in human birth.
Monks who sought out Acariya
Mun in the wilderness tended to be especially courageous and
self-sacrificing, so he trained them in ways that suited their
uncompromising attitude and the harshness of their environment. Training
methods that he found appropriate for himself were suitable for them as
well. If necessary, they were willing to die to achieve their goal. As long
as they lived, they were dedicated to the struggle for Dhamma in order to
transcend the world and end the perpetual cycle of birth and suffering.
The training methods that
Acariya Mun employed with the monks he encountered in Chiang Mai differed
from those he previously used. They were far more rigorous and
uncompromising. The monks who came to train under his guidance were mostly
resolute individuals. They paid scrupulous attention to the kilesas arising
within themselves in an attempt to reduce their strength and choke them off.
They were not concerned that his admonitions might be too harsh or too
intense. In fact, the intensity of his tone increased as the Dhamma under
discussion became more profound. Those focusing on a certain level of
tranquility were reinforced in that calm state, while those concentrating on
investigative analysis followed every nuance of his reasoning to discover
new techniques for developing wisdom.
The discourses that Acariya Mun
delivered to his students in Chiang Mai were especially profound because his
knowledge of Dhamma was by then complete. Another factor was the high degree
of understanding that the monks who sought his guidance already possessed.
They were absolutely determined to strive for higher and higher levels of
Dhamma until they reached the ultimate goal. Besides his usual admonitions,
Acariya Mun also had some very unusual techniques for thwarting the monks
whose thoughts tended to go astray. He used these techniques to trap
‘thieves’ and catch them in the act. But these were no ordinary thieves. The
thieves that Acariya Mun caught lurked inside the hearts of monks whose
thoughts liked to steal away to everything imaginable – in the usual way of
the kilesas.
A STRANGE INCIDENT occurred
while Acariya Mun was staying in the mountains of Chiang Mai – an incident
that should never have happened in the circle of kammatthana monks. I hope
you will forgive me for recounting what I heard. I feel it may be a
thought-provoking lesson for anyone who finds himself in a similar
situation. This story was known exclusively within the inner circle of
Acariya Mun’s senior disciples, and Acariya Mun’s own assessment of the
whole matter was crucial. A certain senior monk living with him at the time
related the story as follows:
One afternoon he and another
monk went to bathe in a rock pool located near a path leading to the fields
of the local village, which was quite a long distance away. While they were
bathing, a group of young women happened to pass by on their way to work in
the fields – something that had never before occurred while they were
bathing. When the other monk spied them walking past, his mind immediately
wobbled, his mindfulness failing him as the fires of lust flared up and
began smoldering inside him. Try as he might, he couldn’t manage to reverse
this situation. While fearful that Acariya Mun might become aware of his
predicament, he was equally afraid that he might disgrace himself. From that
moment on, his mind was constantly fluctuating as he desperately tried to
come to grips with the problem. Nothing like this had ever happened to him
before, and he felt miserable about it.
That same night Acariya Mun,
investigating on his own, became aware that this monk had encountered
something unexpected and was consequently very distraught, caught between
feelings of infatuation and apprehension. The monk struggled through a
sleepless night, trying to resolve the dilemma. The next morning Acariya Mun
did not say anything about it, for he knew that the monk was already fearful
of him; confronting him would only make matters worse. When they met, the
monk was so ashamed and apprehensive he was almost trembling; but Acariya
Mun just smiled amicably as though he didn’t know what had happened. When it
came time to go on almsround, Acariya Mun found an excuse to address the
monk.
“I can see how earnest you are
in pressing on with your meditation practice, so you needn’t go on almsround
today. The rest of us will go, and we will share our food with you when we
return. Providing food for one extra monk is hardly a problem. Go and
continue your meditation practice so that the rest of us may share the merit
you make as well.” He said this without looking directly at the monk, for
Acariya Mun understood the monk better than the monk understood himself.
Acariya Mun then led the others on almsround while the monk forced himself
to do walking meditation. Since the problem arose due to a chance encounter
and not an intentional one, it had been impossible to prevent.
Realizing that, Acariya Mun did
what he could to assist him. He was well aware that the monk was doing his
utmost to solve the problem; so, he was obliged to find a clever means of
helping him without further upsetting his mental state.
When they returned from
almsround, the monks shared their food with the monk, each putting some in
his bowl. Acariya Mun sent someone to inform the monk that he could take his
meal with them or alone in his hut, whichever he preferred. Upon hearing
this, the monk quickly went to eat with his fellow monks. Acariya Mun
ignored him when he arrived, but, later spoke gently to him in order to
soothe his injured psyche and mitigate his sense of remorse. Although he sat
with the other monks, he ate only a token amount of food so as not to appear
impolite.
Later that day, the other monk,
who had also bathed at the rock pool – the one who would later tell this
story – became suspicious, being as yet unaware of the whole story. He
wondered why Acariya Mun treated that monk with a deference he had never
seen before. He figured that since Acariya Mun was being so supportive, his
friend’s meditation practice was undoubtedly very good. When he found the
opportunity, he went to ask about his meditation. “Acariya Mun said that you
didn’t have to go on almsround because you’re intensifying your efforts, but
he didn’t indicate how good your meditation is. So, how is your meditation
going? Please tell me about it.”
The monk gave a wry smile. “How
could my meditation be good? Acariya Mun saw a poor, miserable soul and he’s
just trying to help, using his own skillful methods. That’s all.”
His friend persisted in
attempting to get to the truth, but the monk continued to deflect his
questions. Finally his friend confronted him directly. He asked, “What did
you mean when you said that Acariya Mun saw a poor, miserable soul? And how
is it that he’s trying to help?” Exasperated, the monk relented. “There is
no need to tell Acariya Mun about this. Anyway, he already knows me better
than I know myself, so I feel fearful and ashamed in his presence. Did you
notice anything unusual when we were bathing together at the rock pool
yesterday?” The other monk said that he hadn’t noticed anything, except for
a group of women passing by. So, the monk confessed, “That’s just it. That’s
why I’m so miserable right now, and why Acariya Mun wouldn’t let me go on
almsround this morning. He was afraid I would pass out and die right there
in the village should I happened to see her again. How could my meditation
be any good? Do you understand now how good the meditation of this miserable
fellow is?”
The other monk was stunned.
“Oh, my gosh! What is it between you and those women?”
“Nothing,” answered the monk,
“except blindly falling in love with one of them and having my meditation
going to pieces. What appeared in its place was a beautiful image – a crazy
infatuation crushing down on my heart all night long. Even now this madness
continues unabated, and I just don’t know what to do about it. Please, can
you do something to help me?”
“You mean it still isn’t any
better?”
“No.” The monk’s voice sounded
wretchedly pathetic.
“In that case, I have a
suggestion. If you can’t suppress this thing, then it is not prudent for you
to stay here any longer – things will only get worse. I think it’s better
that you move away from here and find another place to do your practice. If
you don’t feel up to asking Acariya Mun about this, then I will speak to him
for you. I’ll inform him that you wish to go look for another secluded place
because you don’t feel so well here. I’m sure he will immediately give his
permission because he is well aware of what’s happening to you. He just
hasn’t said anything about it yet for fear of shaming you.”
The monk readily agreed. That
evening his companion went to speak with Acariya Mun, who immediately gave
his consent. But there was a caustic element latent here. Acariya Mun said
rather cryptically: “A disease arising from karmic attraction is hard to
cure. Contagions spread quickly when their original cause still remains.”
And that was all he would say on the matter. Even the monk who went to speak
with him didn’t understand his connotation.
Everyone kept quiet about this
matter. The monk never spoke directly to Acariya Mun about it; his friend
never mentioned it to anyone else; and Acariya Mun kept the whole thing to
himself. Although fully aware of the truth of the matter they all behaved as
if nothing had happened. No one spoke openly about it.
The next day the monk went to
take leave of Acariya Mun, who consented without mentioning the matter. The
monk then left and went to stay near another village quite a distance away.
Had this not been a true case of karmic attraction, as Acariya Mun had
hinted, then surely the monk would have been well out of danger there. But,
alas for the uncertainty of karmic consequences: things turned out exactly
as Acariya Mun had suggested. Shortly after the monk left Acariya Mun, the
young woman, who shared the same karmic connection, ended up moving to the
other village by a fortuitous coincidence, and their paths crossed again.
This itself is very interesting, since it was most unusual for hill tribe
women to stray so far from home.
Later, after Acariya Mun and
his group of monks had departed from the first village, they heard that the
monk had disrobed, returning to lay life because he couldn’t put up with the
constant strain. His kamma had come full circle: he married the pretty
Museur woman and settled in that village.
This was a genuine case of
mutual kamma. Without such a karmic connection, how could it have been
possible? The monk who told this story insisted that his friend became
infatuated the moment he saw the woman, having never seen or spoken with her
before. This was con- firmed by the other monks who were living there. They
lived together in the monastery the whole time, never having any occasion to
get involved with the villagers. Besides that, they were living with Acariya
Mun in a place safe from such liaisons. There can be no doubt that an
enduring karmic bond existed between them. The monk once told his friend
that mere eye contact with her was enough to make him feel giddy and lose
all presence of mind, and an irresistible passion gripped his heart so
tightly he could scarcely breath. Those powerful emotions plagued him
relentlessly, leaving him in such an emotional quandary that he felt
completely demoralized. Realizing his predicament, he tried to escape. But
fate pursued him, again casting its spell over him. And that was it – he
succumbed.
Those who have never had such
an experience may smile; but others who have, know that we cannot all
imitate the Arahant Sundara Samudda by simply floating up and out to
safety.1 Normally, hill tribe people are not overly familiar with monks; but
if kamma is involved, then such incidents can happen. No one is exempt from
kamma, for kamma has jurisdiction over those who create it. Acariya Mun was
fully aware of this truth. Although he tried using skillful means to help
the monk, the outcome was probably inevitable. For this reason, he didn’t
make any direct attempt to intervene. In the final analysis, in a world
where everyone lives under the authority of kamma, matters must be allowed
to take their natural course. I have included this story in the hope that it
may serve as a timely reminder for anyone finding himself in a similar
situation. As always, I trust you will forgive any indiscretion on my part.
PREVIOUSLY I MENTIONED Acariya
Mun’s special talent for catching ‘thieves’, a technique for reading minds
and catching stray thoughts that kept his students watchful and alert. When
a kammatthana monk with an especially bold, resolute character came to see
him in Chiang Mai, Acariya Mun used this teaching technique to good
advantage. Unlike those less earnestly committed, these monks were not apt
to react in a negative way. Being fully dedicated to the cause of Dhamma, as
soon as Acariya Mun admonished them about their faults, they were willing to
do their best to rectify them. No matter how pointedly he admonished them,
they did not feel ashamed or apprehensive when their mistakes were exposed.
Acariya Mun was a consummate
teacher and his message went straight to the heart of his listeners. Whether
sharing his own personal knowledge or pointing out the shortcomings of his
students, he was always frank and outspoken. He remained candid and
impartial in his criticism with the intention of giving as much help as he
possibly could. His students were in no way contemptuous. They never refused
to accept the truth; nor were they conceited about their own achievements,
as often happens in a group of meditators.
His Dhamma explanations were
invariably adapted to the individual needs of his students, touching only on
the points that were essential to the individual’s level of practice. When
he determined that a student was practicing correctly, he encouraged him to
step up his efforts. But when he felt that someone’s meditation was faulty
or potentially dangerous, he pointed this out as a way of encouraging the
student to abandon that practice.
For monks who went to him with
doubts or questions, his explanations were unerringly right to the point;
and, as far as I know, his students were never disappointed. It’s safe to
say that everyone who went to him with a question about meditation practice,
could have expected to receive expert advice, for meditation was his field
of greatest expertise. His knowledge and understanding of every aspect of
meditation were unparalleled. Every facet of his Dhamma teaching benefited
from his lyrical presentation, captivating the listener and demonstrating an
eloquence which no one today can equal. His comments on moral virtue were
engrossing to his listeners, while his discourses on the different levels of
samadhi and wisdom were exceptional. His audience became so absorbed that,
being satiated in the Dhamma they heard, their feeling of satisfaction often
lasted for days thereafter.
DURING THE PERIOD when Acariya
Mun pushed himself relentlessly toward realization of the Supreme Dhamma, he
lived alone in mountain caves or forest retreats. As he waged an all out
assault on the kilesas, his efforts were directed inward at all times. Only
during hours of sleep did he relax this persistent introspection.
Mindfulness and wisdom were his constant companions throughout that
exhaustive investigation to uproot the kilesas. He carried on a continuous
dialogue with the kilesas, mentally attacking and counterattacking them with
mindfulness and wisdom. His sheer determination to go beyond dukkha was the
catalyst for these conversations, which were not rhetorical encounters.
Rather, they were internal contemplations using mindfulness and wisdom to
rebut the kilesas. No matter how they tried to evade him, no matter what
tricks they used to rebuff or entangle him, Acariya Mun used mindfulness and
wisdom at each step of the way to follow their movements, and to corner and
crush them into submission – until, finally, he emerged victorious. Wherever
he found the kilesas still having the upper hand, he made an effort to
upgrade his arsenal – mindfulness, wisdom, faith, and perseverance –
increasing their strength with each new challenge until it exceeded that of
his archenemy. Triumphant at last, as we already know, the world inside his
heart shook – maggañana had destroyed the king of the vatta-citta.2
This was how Acariya Mun
applied himself in the ultimate battle. He did not place any time
constraints on his walking and sitting meditation as he strove day and
night, wielding mindfulness and wisdom to secure victory. Having finally
cleared through the dense jungle of kilesas, supreme-mindfulness and
supreme-wisdom, that were his weapons of choice in this campaign, ceased to
be meaningful or relevant. Mindfulness and wisdom became routine faculties
to be engaged in normal mental processes. He used them to think about one of
the many aspects of Dhamma or to engage in other mental activities, letting
them fade away when their services were no longer required.
Previously, they needed to be
in a constant state of alert to combat the kilesas. Once victory was
achieved, if nothing came along to stimulate his thoughts, he existed much
as though he were mentally idle – a simpleton. Mindfulness and wisdom, which
for so long had been caught up in the heat of intense struggle, were nowhere
to be found. All that remained was a timeless tranquillity that nothing
could disturb, eclipsing everything else in his heart. Left totally to
itself, free of all external influences, his heart did not think about
affairs of the past or the future. It was as though everything had
disappeared along with the kilesas – only emptiness remained.
The Boxer
When Acariya Mun accepted a
group of monks as his students, he held regular meetings where he instructed
them in the way of practice. If he noticed that a monk’s attitude was
unbecoming, or his behavior offensive, he took the opportunity to openly
rebuke him. While in meditation, knowledge about the unseemly behavior of
his students might arise in his mind as visual images, or else he might
psychically read their errant thoughts. He then devised some cunning method
to bring this to the culprit’s attention, assuring that greater care and
restraint was exercised in the future.
The visual nimittas that arose
in Acariya Mun’s citta during meditation varied according to the overall
situation of the person who was the principal cause of that vision. To give
you an idea of the nature and the scope of his nimittas, there is the story
of the monk who was a rather famous boxer as a layman. Giving up his
profession to ordain as a monk, he developed a strong faith and decided to
practice kammatthana. Aware of Acariya Mun’s excellent reputation as a
revered meditation master, he set out to find the place where Acariya Mun
was staying. But as he set off, he unwittingly carried in his bag ten
pictures of boxers in various boxing poses. With these photos, he traveled
from Bangkok to Chiang Mai, searching for Acariya Mun in that mountainous
region. Finally arriving at Acariya Mun’s wilderness retreat, he paid his
respects and explained his reasons for coming. Acariya Mun accepted him
without offering any comments.
During the night Acariya Mun
must have thoroughly investigated this monk; for, the following morning,
when all the monks gathered to eat, he came in and immediately began
speaking about the new arrival.
“This monk came here for the
express purpose of learning about Dhamma. Looking at his behavior, I can
find nothing offensive – it’s commendable. Why then did he exhibit such
dreadful conduct last night? As I sat in meditation, he approached and stood
right in front of me, just a few feet away. He then proceeded at some length
to assume various boxing poses, before gradually backing away. As he slowly
faded from my view, he continued to shadow box, kicking first right and then
left as he went.3 What’s the story with this monk? Was he a boxer before he
ordained as a monk? Is that the reason he gave me a lengthy boxing
exhibition?”
While he spoke, all the monks,
including the former boxer, sat motionless in bewildered silence. Acariya
Mun turned to the former boxer, whose face had gone pale.
“What do you have to say for
yourself? What did you have in mind, behaving in such a manner? At least you
didn’t take a punch at me!” As it was time to go on almsround, Acariya Mun
said nothing more that morning. Nor did he bring the matter up later, when
instructing the monks at the evening meeting. But during the night he was
again confronted with the same problem. So, he brought it up again the
following morning.
“What’s your real purpose for
coming to me? Last night, there you were again, displaying your boxing
skills, jumping and kicking all over the place. It lasted nearly all night.
Such behavior is not normal for someone whose intentions are noble. What did
you have in mind before you came to see me? And what are your thoughts now
that you are here? Please tell me the truth, or else I won’t be able to let
you stay on here. I’ve never experienced anything quite like the events of
the last two nights.”
The monk sat trembling, his
face ashen, as though he was ready to faint. One of the other monks,
noticing his worsening condition, requested an opportunity to speak
privately with him.
“Please be forthcoming and tell
Acariya Mun your true feelings about this matter. He’s asking you about it
only because he wants to ascertain the truth, not because he has any
intention to hurt you. None of us, who are living here with him, are saints,
free of kilesas. We are bound to make mistakes and so must accept his
admonitions. All of us live here as his disciples. Being our teacher, he’s
like a father and a mother to us. As a teacher, he has an obligation to
reprimand anyone who does something noticeably wrong. A teacher must keep an
eye on his students – for their own sake, educating them by questioning and
criticizing them as circumstances require. I myself have been subjected to
many such castigations; some even more severe than the one you received.
Acariya Mun has even ordered some monks to leave the premises immediately,
only to relent and allow them to stay on when they realized their faults and
accepted the blame. Please think carefully about what he just said to you.
My own feeling is that you shouldn’t be unreasonably afraid. If you have
anything on your mind, just express it truthfully. If you feel you have done
nothing wrong, or you cannot recall where you made a mistake, tell him
straight out that you cannot seem to recollect your past errors. Then put
your fate in his hands, letting him take what action he sees fit, and accept
the consequences. The matter will then resolve itself.”
When the other monk finished
speaking Acariya Mun continued:
“So what do you have to say for
yourself? It’s not that I want to find fault with you for no good reason.
But as soon as I close my eyes I have to watch your antics blocking my view
for the rest of the night. Why would a monk behave like that? It dismays me
to see it every night. I want to know what kind of sinister motives you may
have for persisting in such conduct. Or do you think that my own intuition,
which has always been reliable in the past, is now playing tricks on me, and
contaminating you in the process? I want you to tell me the truth. If it
turns out that you’re innocent, my intuition being at fault, then that means
I’m just a crazy old monk who doesn’t deserve to live with a group of
students like this – I will only lead them astray. I’ll have to run off and
hide myself away like some lunatic, and immediately stop teaching others.
Should I persist in teaching such crazy knowledge to the world, the
consequences would be disastrous.”
The other monk again encouraged
his friend to speak up. Finally, the former boxer moved to answer Acariya
Mun. In a ghostly, trembling voice, he blurted out, “I’m a boxer”, and then
fell silent.
Acariya Mun sought
confirmation: “You’re a boxer, is that right?”
“Yes.” And that was all he
said.
“Right now you’re a monk; so,
how can you also be a boxer? Do you mean you traveled here boxing for money
along the way, or what?”
By this time, the monk’s mind
was in a daze. He could offer no coherent response to Acariya Mun’s
inquiries. The other monk took up the questioning in an effort to help him
regain his mental focus: “Don’t you mean that you were a boxer in lay life,
but now that you are a monk you no longer do that?”
“Yes. As a layman I was a
boxer, but after ordaining as a monk I stopped boxing.”
Acariya Mun saw that his
condition didn’t look very good, so he changed the subject, saying it was
time to go on almsround. Later, he told the other monk to go and question
him privately, since his fear of Acariya Mun prevented him from being
coherent. After the meal this monk found an opportunity to put his questions
in private. He discovered that the new monk had previously been a well-known
boxer in the Suan Kulap boxing camp. Becoming disillusioned with lay life,
he ordained as a monk and set off to find Acariya Mun.
Once he had the whole story,
the monk related it to Acariya Mun, who made no further comment. It was
assumed that this would be the end of the matter, especially since Acariya
Mun spoke directly to the former boxer during the evening meeting. But that
wasn’t to be the case. That night, Acariya Mun again investigated the matter
for himself. In the morning, he confronted the former boxer once more in
front of everyone.
“It’s not merely that you were
once a boxer – something else is hidden there as well. You should go and
carefully reconsider this whole affair. If it was simply a matter of being a
boxer in lay life, the matter should have been settled by now. It should not
keep recurring in this way.”
That was all he said.
Later, the monk who had become
familiar with the former boxer went to see him. After further questioning he
discovered that the new monk had the ten pictures of boxers in his
possession. After looking at them, his friend became convinced that they
were the cause of all the trouble. He advised him to either throw them away,
or burn them. The boxer monk agreed, and together they burned the whole lot.
After that, everything returned to normal and this matter never surfaced
again. The former boxer was diligent in his practice, always conducting
himself admirably. He lived contentedly with Acariya Mun from then on.
Acariya Mun was always especially kind to him – never again did he allude to
his past. Afterwards, when the opportunity arose, his fellow monks teased
him about that incident. Referring to his scolding from Acariya Mun, he
said, “I was half-dead and in such a daze I didn’t know what was what, so I
answered him like a half-dead idiot.” Addressing the monk who helped him, he
continued, “If you hadn’t been so kind, I’d probably have gone hopelessly
mad. But Acariya Mun was remarkably clever – as soon as he saw I was losing
my wits, he quickly put a stop to the whole affair, acting as though nothing
had ever happened.”
This is an example of the type
of visual nimitta that might arise in Acariya Mun’s meditation. He regularly
used the knowledge he gained from such visions to teach his students – a
means no less significant than his ability to read the thoughts of others.4
ACARIYA MUN HAD MORE
sensational experiences while living in Chiang Mai than during any other
period of his life. Some of these phenomena appeared exclusively within his
citta; others surfaced in the world around him. They included many amazing,
stimulating insights – knowledge of a kind never occurring to him before.
Living alone in particular, he encountered a myriad of mysterious phenomena
far too numerous to mention. The citta in its natural state of knowing is
like that: knowledge and understanding arise continuously, both during
meditation and in engagement with normal daily activities. It’s strange, and
truly wondrous, considering that the citta had previously been blind and
ignorant, never imagining it possessed the ability to perceive the phenomena
that arise each moment. It was as if such phenomena just came into being,
even though they have actually existed since time immemorial.
Only when the citta enters into
a state of total calm do these functions cease. All manner of phenomena are
excluded from the samadhi state, so nothing arises to affect the citta in
any way. As the citta rests with Dhamma, Dhamma and the citta merge. The
citta is Dhamma, Dhamma is the citta. This is a state of complete unity
where the citta and Dhamma are one and the same, without any trace of
duality. Conceptual reality does not exist: all concepts of time and space
are transcended. There is no awareness of the body, or the mind, and
concepts of pain and pleasure do not arise. As long as the citta remains
there and doesn’t withdraw from that state – whether it’s for a period of
days, months, years, or eons – then conventional realities such as anicca,
dukkha, and anatta will not disturb it, for it is a state in which all
duality ceases – entirely. If, for instance, the mundane physical body were
to break up and disintegrate while the citta remained quiescent in
nirodhadhamma – meaning the cessation of conventional reality – the citta in
that state would be completely unaware of what was happening.5
In truth, the state of nirodha
is one in which the cessation of conceptual reality is only temporary – not
lasting for years, as that is highly unlikely. It may be compared to a deep,
dreamless sleep. During that time, the sleeper is completely unaware of body
and mind. No matter how long he remains in deep, dreamless sleep, that
condition stays the same. Only after waking up does one become aware of
normal physical and mental sensations.
Deep states of samadhi,
including nirodhasamapatti, all exist within the realm of relative,
conventional reality, however. Only the vimutticitta has gone completely
beyond it. And if the citta entering into these samadhi states is already
liberated from every aspect of relative, conventional reality, then that
pure visuddhi-citta is in no way affected by such conventional levels of
attainment. It remains vimutticitta, free from all constraints of time and
space – akaliko. It’s absolutely impossible to conceptualize the nature of
vimutti-citta, so any attempt to speculate about its qualities is only a
waste of time and effort. The citta that enters into a state of total
quiescence, free from all conceptual reality, simply ceases to function, as
those conditioned phenomena – that would ordinarily be involved with the
citta – temporarily disappear. Later when the citta has withdrawn from deep
samadhi into upacara samadhi, or back into the normal state of visuddhi-citta,
it functions normally, receiving and processing sense data as it sees fit.6
Whether in upacara samadhi, or
in its normal waking state, Acariya Mun’s citta was always receptive to a
multitude of phenomena. The difference was in the depth, scope, and quality
of the experience. If wishing to investigate something thoroughly, he would
enter into upacara samadhi to get a more extensive view. Clairvoyance and
clairaudience, for example, require a state of upacara samadhi. In this calm
state one can perceive whatever one wishes to know about the forms and
sounds of people and animals – and much, much more. Fundamentally, it’s no
different from seeing with the physical eyes and hearing with the physical
ears.
Tigers in Disguise
Acariya Mun said that,
excepting the few who had visited large towns in the region, most of the
hill tribe people in Chiang Mai had never seen monks before. Early in his
travels, Acariya Mun and another monk went to live in the mountains about a
mile and a half from a hill tribe village. They camped in the forest, taking
shelter under the trees. In the morning, when they went to the village for
alms food, the villagers asked why they had come. Acariya Mun said they had
come to collect alms. Puzzled, the villagers asked him what that meant.
Acariya Mun explained that they had come to collect offerings of rice. They
asked him if he wanted cooked rice or uncooked rice. When he said cooked
rice, they got some and put a little in each of their alms bowls. The two
monks then returned to their camp and ate the plain rice. Lacking faith from
the very beginning, the villagers were very suspicious of the monks. That
evening the village headman sounded the bamboo clapper to call everyone to a
meeting. Referring to Acariya Mun and his disciple, he announced that there
were now two ‘tigers in disguise’ staying in the nearby forest. He said that
he had yet to determine what kind of tigers they were, but they weren’t to
be trusted. He forbade the women and children to enter the forest in that
area; and men who went were warned to go armed and in groups lest they
should be attacked by the two tigers.
As it happened, Acariya Mun was
beginning his evening meditation at precisely the time the announcement was
made to the village community. So, Acariya Mun, who was the object of this
warning, was also privy to the whole affair. He was deeply saddened by the
senseless accusations; but, instead of feeling angry or discouraged, he felt
only ineffable loving compassion for the local villagers. He was concerned
that the majority might naively believe such slanderous talk and, therefore,
be burdened by its dreadful moral consequences until they died – at which
time they might well be reborn as tigers. Early the next morning, he
informed his disciple of what he had seen.
“Last night the village headman
assembled everyone and announced that we are ‘tigers in disguise’. We were
both accused of being tigers who are disguised as monks in order to deceive
them into trusting us so that we can then destroy both their persons and
their properties. Because of this, they have no faith in us at all. If we
were to leave here now while they still harbor these negative thoughts, they
may all be reborn as tigers when they die – a grievous kamma indeed. So for
their benefit, I think it’s incumbent on us as monks to remain here and put
up with the situation for a while. We must endure the ensuing hardships
until they’ve changed their attitude before we move to another location.”
Not only did the villagers
distrust them, but groups of three or four armed men often came to keep an
eye on them. Sometimes, they stood watching from a distance. But at other
times, seeing Acariya Mun walking meditation, they came closer and stared at
him from the end of his walking path, or from the side of it, or even stood
right in the middle of it. They glanced around, surveying the whole area for
about 10 to 15 minutes, then left. This surveillance routine continued day
after day for many weeks.
The villagers showed no concern
whatsoever about the personal welfare of these two ‘tigers’. They were not
interested in whether or not they had enough food and other necessities to
survive. Thus, the living conditions of these two tigers were difficult in
the extreme. The most they received on almsround was plain rice. On some
days, it was just barely enough to satisfy them; on other days, it wasn’t
nearly enough, even though they drank a lot of water with it as well.
Since there was no cave or
cliff overhang in which they could take shelter, they lived and slept under
the trees, putting up with exposure to the sun and the rain. When it rained
in that area, it tended to rain all day. After the rain abated and things
dried out a bit, they went looking for dry leaves and grasses to construct a
make-shift thatched roof, giving them some limited protection against the
weather. It provided enough cover to survive from day to day, albeit with
much discomfort. When it rained heavily, they sheltered under their
tent-umbrellas with the cloth sheeting hanging down around them as
protection against the cold wind.7 Often the rain was accompanied by strong
winds that came howling down out of the mountains, blowing their umbrellas,
soaking their belongings, and leaving both monks drenched and shivering. If
it happened during the daytime, they could at least see what they were doing
while collecting their requisites to look for some cover. But when it
occurred at night, the situation was extremely trying. They were unable to
see even as the rain poured down and the cold wind blasted through the
trees, causing branches to break off and crash down around them. They were
never sure of surviving this onslaught of rain, wind, cold, and loose debris
flying at them from all directions. During such hardships, they just endured
the best they could. They had to abide the heat, the cold, the hunger, the
thirst, and the uncertainty of their existence while they waited for the
villagers’ mistrust to subside. Even though they received only plain rice,
their supply was, at best, erratic. Drinking water was hard to come by; so
they had to walk down to the foot of the mountain to fill their kettles,
carrying the water back up to serve their daily needs. Despite such an
impoverished existence, the villagers showed no sympathy for their plight.
In spite of the hardships,
Acariya Mun felt free of anxieties and responsibilities as his meditation
practice progressed unhindered. He took great pleasure from listening to the
calls of the various wild animals in the surrounding forest. Seated in
meditation under the trees late at night, he constantly heard the sounds of
tigers roaring close by. Curiously, those huge tigers rarely ventured into
the area where he was seated. Occasionally, a tiger did approach Acariya Mun.
Perhaps suspecting him to be wild game, it snuck in to have a look. But as
soon as the tiger saw him make a move, it leapt off into the forest in
alarm, and was never seen again.
Nearly every afternoon, three
or four men came to check them out. They stood around whispering among
themselves without a word to Acariya Mun, who, in turn, ignored their
presence. When they arrived, Acariya Mun focused his citta on their
thoughts. They, of course, never suspected that he knew what they were
thinking or what they were whispering about. It’s unlikely they even
considered the possibility that someone could be privy to their thoughts,
which they indulged in unrestrainedly. Acariya Mun focused his attention on
everyone who came.
As was to be expected of a
reconnaissance party, he discovered that they were primarily looking to find
fault with him in some way. Instead of taking precautions against such
findings, Acariya Mun responded with great compassion. He knew that a
majority of the villagers were subject to the corrupting influence of a
small minority.
Acariya Mun remained at this
site for many months; yet, the villagers persisted in trying to catch him at
suspicious doings. Their sole purpose was to find him doing something that
would confirm their worst fears. Although they were sincerely committed to
this, they never tried to chase him away: they merely took turns spying on
him. The villagers must have been surprised that despite many months of
continuous surveillance, they still couldn’t catch him doing anything wrong.
One evening while sitting in
meditation, Acariya Mun became psychically aware that the villagers were
assembled for a meeting concerning his case. He could hear the village
headman questioning the others about the results of their surveillance: What
had they been able to determine so far? Those, who had taken turns observing
the two monks, said the same thing: they could find no evidence to confirm
their suspicions. They were worried that their suspicious attitude might be
doing them more harm than good.
“Why do you say that?” The
headman wanted to know.
They replied: “As far as we can
tell, there’s nothing in their conduct to confirm our assumptions about
them. Whenever we go to check them out, either they are sitting still with
their eyes closed, or they’re calmly pacing back and forth, not looking here
and there like most people do. People who are tigers in disguise, poised to
attack their prey, would hardly behave like that. These two monks should
have exhibited some sort of incriminating behavior by now, but we’ve seen
nothing so far. If we keep treating them like this, we may suffer the
consequences. The correct approach would be to speak with them to find out
about their motives. Presuming their motives to be sinister may well reflect
badly on us all.
“Good monks are hard to find.
We have enough experience to tell good monks from bad ones. These monks
deserve our respect. Let’s not hastily accuse them of treachery. To find out
the whole story, let’s go speak with them. Let’s ask them why they sit still
with their eyes closed, and why they pace back and forth – what are they
searching for?” A decision was reached at the meeting to send a
representative to question the monks. In the morning, Acariya Mun spoke to
his companion: “The villagers are beginning to have a change of heart. Last
night they held a meeting about their surveillance of us. They have decided
to send someone here to question us about their suspicions.”
Just as Acariya Mun foresaw, a
village representative arrived that very afternoon to question him: “What
are you searching for when you sit still with your eyes closed, or pace back
and forth?”
Acariya Mun replied, “I’ve lost
my buddho. I’m searching for buddho while sitting and walking.”
“What is this buddho? Can we
help you find it?”
“Buddho is the most precious
gem in the three worlds of existence – a jewel of all-pervading knowledge.
If you help me find it, that’ll be excellent. Then we will all see buddho
quickly and easily.”
“Has your buddho been missing
long?”
“Not long. With your help we’ll
find it a lot faster than if I look for it alone.”
“Is buddho something large?”
“Neither large nor small, it’s
just the right size for all of us. Whoever finds buddho will become a
superior person, able to perceive anything he wishes.”
“Will we be able to see the
heavens and the hells?”
“Of course. Otherwise, how
could we call it superior.”
“What about our dead children,
and our dead spouses, can they be seen?”
“You can see anything you want
once buddho is yours.”
“Is it very bright?”
“It’s much brighter than
hundreds, even thousands, of suns. The sun is not able to illuminate heaven
and hell, but buddho can penetrate everywhere, illuminating everything.”
“Can woman and children help
search for it too?”
“Everyone can help – men,
women, young and old, all can join in the search.”
“This superior buddho, can it
protect us from ghosts?”
“Buddho is superior in
countless ways. It is superior in the three worlds – kama-loka, rupa-loka,
arupa-loka. All three of them must pay homage to buddho. No being anywhere
is greater than buddho. Ghosts are very afraid of buddho – they must bow
down and worship it. Ghosts are frightened of people who search for buddho
too, even though they haven’t found it yet.”
“This buddho jewel, what color
is it?”
“It’s a bright, sparkling jewel
with countless colors. Buddho is a special asset of the Lord Buddha – a
gleaming aggregate of knowledge, not a material thing. The Lord Buddha
bequeathed it to us many years ago, but since then it’s gone missing and we
no longer know how to find it. But it’s location is not so important. If
you’re trying to find it, what’s important is to sit and walk thinking
“buddho, buddho, buddho” exclusively within your heart. Keep your attention
focused within your body, not letting it wander outside. Fix your awareness
firmly on the repetition of “buddho, buddho”. If you can manage to do this,
you may even come across buddho before I do.”
“How long must we to sit and
walk searching for buddho before we find it?”
“To begin with, sit or walk for
about 15 to 20 minutes at a time. Buddho doesn’t want you to spend too much
time searching for it yet. It’s afraid you’ll grow tired and so be unable to
keep up with it. Losing interest, you will not want to search anymore. Then
you’ll miss it altogether. This is enough to get you started. If I elaborate
any further, you won’t remember it all, thus jeopardizing your chances of
meeting buddho.” With these instructions in mind, the villager returned
home. He didn’t take leave of Acariya Mun in any special way, because that
was not the hill tribe custom. Deciding that it was time to go, he simply
got up and left. As soon as he arrived at the village, everyone gathered
around to hear what had taken place. He explained why Acariya Mun sat still
with his eyes closed and why he paced back and forth: he was searching for
the precious gem buddho and not, as they had presumed, because he was a
‘tiger in disguise’. He then explained Acariya Mun’s brief instructions on
how to find buddho. Once the villagers knew the method, everyone – from the
headman on down to the women and older children – began to practice,
mentally repeating “buddho”.
Several days later, something
truly amazing happened. The Dhamma of the Lord Buddha arose clearly in the
heart of one of the villagers. While mentally repeating the word “buddho”
over and over again as Acariya Mun had suggested, one man in the village
found Dhamma: his heart attained a state of peace and calm. A few days
earlier, the man had dreamed that Acariya Mun was placing a very large,
bright-shining candle on top of his head. The moment Acariya Mun set the
candle on his head, his whole body, from the head on down, was brightly
illuminated. He felt overjoyed as the radiance, spreading out around him,
illuminated the surrounding area as well. Soon after he attained this state
of tranquility, he went to tell Acariya Mun about his achievement, and about
the amazing dream he had prior to it. Acariya Mun then gave him additional
instructions on how to proceed with his practice. As it turned out, his
progress was very quick: he was soon able to psychically know other people’s
thoughts. He informed Acariya Mun of this very matter-of-factly in the
forthright manner typical of forest people.
Sometime later, this man
declared to Acariya Mun that he had examined Acariya Mun’s citta and had
clearly seen its characteristics. Playfully, Acariya Mun asked if he could
see much evil in his citta. The man answered without hesitation, “Your citta
has no focal point whatsoever – only an absolutely incredible radiance
shining within. Your preeminence is unrivaled anywhere in the world. I’ve
never seen anything like it. You’ve been here about a year now, why didn’t
you teach me about this right from the beginning?”
“How could I teach you? You
never came to ask me any questions.”
“I didn’t know you were a
supreme master. Had I known, I’d have come for sure. Now we all know you’re
an extremely clever person. When we came asking you why you sat still with
your eyes closed and what you were looking for as you paced back and forth,
you told us your buddho was lost and asked us to help you find it. When
asked to describe it, you said buddho is a bright, sparkling jewel, but in
truth the real buddho is your heart. The missing buddho was simply a clever
ploy to persuade us to meditate on buddho so that our hearts could become
bright like yours. Now we realize that you’re a supremely wise person whose
only desire was for us to discover the supreme buddho in our own hearts,
thus ensuring our long-term welfare and happiness.”
The news of this man’s
attainment of Dhamma spread rapidly through the community, further arousing
everyone’s interest in buddho meditation so that even small children took it
up. Their faith in Acariya Mun thus reinforced, their reverence for his
teaching steadily increased. No one ever mentioned ‘tigers in disguise’
again.
From that time on, the man who
had learned to meditate carried Acariya Mun’s alms bowl back to his forest
retreat every day after the almsround. After Acariya Mun finished eating, he
would then seek advice on his practice. On the days when he had business to
attend to, he told someone to inform Acariya Mun that he wouldn’t be
available to carry the alms bowl. Although quite a few men and women in the
village learned to meditate, this first man was the most accomplished. When
people are satisfied, everything else naturally falls into place. For
instance, previously these people were not the least bit interested in how
Acariya Mun ate or slept, or even whether he lived or died. But later when
faith and respect arose in them, those things that previously were scarce
soon became plentiful. Without having to be asked, the villagers joined
forces to make him a walking path. They also built him a hut and a platform
on which to sit and have his meal. When they came to help, they disguised
their praises of him in reproachful tones. “Look at that walking meditation
path. It’s all overgrown with vegetation. You’d have to be a wild boar to
penetrate that thicket. And yet, you still insist on walking there. You’re
really weird, you know. When we ask you what the path is for, you say it’s a
place to search for buddho – I’ve lost my buddho. When asked why you sit
still with your eyes closed, again you say you’re looking for buddho. Here
you are a supreme master, yet you don’t tell anyone about it. You’re the
strangest person we’ve ever known, but we like you just the way you are.
Your bed is a carpet of moldy smelling leaves strewn over the ground. How
could you stand it all these months? It looks like a pig’s lair. Looking at
it now, we feel so sorry for you we could cry. We were very stupid, all of
us. We didn’t realize what a wonderful person you are. Worse than that, a
few of us accused you of having sinister motives, convincing the rest to
dislike and distrust you. Finally now the whole village trusts and reveres
you.”
Acariya Mun said that, when
hill tribe people decided to trust and respect someone, their belief was
heartfelt and unequivocal. Their loyalty was unconditional – they would
sacrifice their lives if they had to. They took what they were taught to
heart, conducting themselves accordingly. As they became more familiar with
the method and more proficient in their practice, Acariya Mun taught them to
steadily increase the amount of time they spent doing buddho meditation.
Acariya Mun stayed with those
people for over a year – from February of one year to April of the following
year – until he finally left. However, because of his great compassion for
them, taking leave of them was very difficult for him. They were very
reluctant to see him go. They assured him that, were he to remain there
until he died, the whole community would arrange for his cremation. Those
people were willing to put their complete trust in him out of a deep sense
of love and devotion. Unmistakably, they had seen for themselves the good
results of his teaching. And to their credit, they were smart enough to see
their own faults as well. Once they came to know him as a truly virtuous,
highly respected monk, they realized their mistake and so begged his
forgiveness. He forgave them, later telling his disciple that their amends
were complete. This meant that the two of them were then free to go
somewhere else.
But taking leave of them was no
simple matter. Acariya Mun said that it was moving beyond description to
witness their affection and deep devotion as they beseeched him to stay.
Having heard that he was preparing to leave, the whole village came out,
weeping and pleading with him until the entire forest was disturbed by the
commotion. It sounded as though they were mourning the dead. While
explaining his reasons for leaving, he tried to comfort them, assuring them
that such distress was unwarranted. He counseled self-restraint, which is
the way of Dhamma.
When they calmed down,
seemingly resigned to his departure, he began to leave his forest retreat.
Then, something totally unexpected happened. All the villagers, including
the children, ran after him. Surrounding him on the path, they proceeded to
snatch away his requisites. Some grabbed his umbrella, his bowl, and his
water kettle, while others clutched at the robes he wore or clung to his
arms and legs, trying to pull him back again – acting just like children.
They were determined to not let him go.
Acariya Mun was obliged once
again to explain his reasons for leaving, consoling them until they calmed
down. Finally they agreed. But no sooner had he started walking off than the
crying began and they rushed to drag him back again. Several hours passed
before he eventually got away. Meanwhile, the whole forest was disturbed by
noisy scenes of hysteria that were heartrending to watch. The initial
epithet ‘tigers in disguise’ meant nothing to them then. In its place had
arisen deep reverence and attachment for a man of supreme virtue. In the
end, these hill tribe people couldn’t hold back their emotions. As they
gathered around him crying and pleading, their many voices merged into a
crescendo: “Hurry back to visit us again. Please don’t be gone long, we miss
you so much already it’s breaking our hearts.”
Having arrived in the area
surrounded by suspicion and dissatisfaction, Acariya Mun departed amid
emotional scenes of affection and attachment. He had managed to turn
something unseemly into something beautiful, so enhancing its value
immensely – as befits one ordained as a disciple of the Buddha. The Buddha’s
disciples never hold grudges or look to blame others. Should anyone dislike
them, they will try to help that person with loving compassion. They never
take offense at other people’s misbehavior nor do they harbor feelings of
animosity that could lead to mutual recriminations. A heart full to
overflowing with loving compassion inspires faith in those ablaze with
kilesas by providing them with a peaceful, dependable refuge. A heart of
such loving grace possesses virtuous qualities that are unparalleled in the
world.
Later when listening to Acariya
Mun tell this story, we couldn’t help sympathizing with the hill tribe
people. We formed in our minds a clear image of those chaotic scenes in the
forest – as though we were watching a movie. We could imagine the villagers’
potent faith, ready to sacrifice anything for this man of supreme virtue.
All they asked was a chance to bask in his aura of loving kindness, thus
continuing to enjoy a life of prosperity. So they cried and pleaded with
him, clutching at his arms and legs, pulling on his robes and other
requisites, until he returned to the small eating platform with the thatched
roof that had been a source of such contentment. Though an incredibly moving
occasion, the time had come for him to move on. No one can possibly negate
the transient nature of the world. The driving principle of constant change
keeps everything moving – nothing can halt its progress. For this reason,
when the right time came, Acariya Mun had to leave, though he fully
understood the position of those faithful villagers who were so emotionally
attached to him.
Although Acariya Mun was once
labeled a ‘tiger in disguise’ by the hill tribe people, it is well known
that he was, in truth, a ‘pure one’ who existed as ‘an incomparable field of
merit for the world’.8 Acariya Mun left that mountain community in order to
follow his natural inclination – to be of the most benefit to the greatest
number of people. Buddhism is a priceless inheritance that has always been
an integral part of our very existence. But, perhaps it too could fall prey
to insidious accusations of being a ‘tiger in disguise’ much in the same
manner that Acariya Mun did. It could end up being severely damaged by
people whose views are hostile to Buddhist principles and traditions. In
truth, this process has already begun, so we should not be complacent. If we
fail to fulfill our obligations, we may forfeit this inheritance, only to
regret it later.
ACARIYA MUN FOLLOWED the way of
sugato.9 When living deep in the forests and mountains he was constantly of
service to the hill tribesmen, or else the devas, brahmas, ghosts, nagas,
and garudas. He was always compassionately assisting the world in some way
or other. In human society he taught monks, novices, nuns, and lay people
from all walks of life without exception. People everywhere sought him out
to hear his instructions. They all gained an enormous benefit from his
teachings, always delivered in a thorough, coherent manner that would be
hard for anyone else to equal.
While he lived in the mountains
of Chiang Mai, the hill tribe people received great joy, listening to his
Dhamma discourses in the late afternoons. Later at night, he taught Dhamma
to devas from various levels of existence, always responding to their many
inquiries. Teaching devas was a heavy responsibility, since it was difficult
to find another monk with the same psychic skills to stand in for him.
Teaching people was a responsibility that could be delegated to others – at
least the people listening would gain enough understanding to derive some
benefit if they made the effort. Acariya Mun’s relationship with devas of
all realms was of primary importance to him. So his biography is
interspersed with stories about them at different times in different places,
right to the very end.
Not so long ago I went to pay
my respects to a vipassana kammatthana acariya of the highest caliber, a
senior monk with an exceptionally kind, gentle disposition who is greatly
revered by monks and lay people all over Thailand.10 When I arrived he was
discussing Dhamma with several of his close disciples, so I took the
opportunity to join them. We began by discussing various practical aspects
of Dhamma, eventually coming around to the subject of Acariya Mun, who had
been his teacher. In the past, he lived under Acariya Mun’s tutelage in the
remote mountains of Chiang Mai, training with him at a forest retreat that
was several days walk from the nearest town. It’s hard to find words to
describe the many remarkable, amazing stories he told me that day. I shall
relate the ones I feel are appropriate here, while the others I shall skip,
for reasons I explained earlier.
This acariya said that, besides
his undoubted purity of heart, Acariya Mun also possessed many unique
abilities that inspired awe in his students and assured their vigilance at
all times. He said he couldn’t possibly remember all of the strange, unusual
stories he had heard from Acariya Mun; so, I urged him to tell me what he
could remember. His words would serve as a memorial – a source of
inspiration for future generations. This is what he said:
“Acariya Mun knew everything I
was thinking – what more can I say? I felt as though I were on a tight leash
day and night, such was the vigilance I applied to observing my mind.
Despite my best efforts, he could still catch my errant thoughts, publicly
exposing them for everyone to hear. My meditation was actually quite good
while staying with him, but I couldn’t always prevent stray thoughts from
arising. We should never underestimate the mind’s ability to think
incessantly, day and night – non-stop. How many of us can catch up with our
thoughts long enough to restrain them effectively? So I was constantly on
guard, for he was better at catching my thoughts than I was! Sometimes he
brought up thoughts that I’d forgotten having. Suddenly, I was made to
recall thoughts that had long since past.”
I asked the acariya if Acariya
Mun had ever scolded him. He told me:
“Occasionally he did; but, more
often he read my thoughts, then used them as a way of teaching me Dhamma.
Sometimes other monks were listening as well, which really embarrassed me.
Fortunately, if other monks sat listening, Acariya Mun never revealed the
name of the offender – he merely spoke about the relative merits of the
thoughts in question.”
I wanted to know why he thought
Acariya Mun scolded him sometimes. He said:
“Do you know the word
puthujjana?11 It means a mind denser than a mountain of stone, careening out
of control. It doesn’t consider whether thoughts are good or bad, right or
wrong – which was a sufficient reason for him to give a scolding.”
I asked him if he felt afraid
when Acariya Mun scolded him.
“Why shouldn’t I have been
afraid? My body may not have been shaking, but my mind certainly was. I
almost forgot to breathe at times. I have no doubt that Acariya Mun truly
did know the minds of others – I experienced it myself. He could literally
collect all my thoughts, then confront me with them later. For example, from
time to time I rather foolishly thought about going off on my own. If such a
thought occurred to me at night, early the next morning, as soon as I
encountered him, Acariya Mun immediately started lecturing me: ‘Just where
do you think you’re going? It’s far better here than anywhere else. It’s
best that you stay here with me …’ and so on. He never let these thoughts
pass undetected. ‘It’s more enjoyable here. Staying here and listening to
the Dhamma is better than going off on your own.’ He never would consent to
my going. I believe he was worried that my meditation practice might
deteriorate, so he tried to keep me under his tutelage the whole time. “The
thing that terrified me about him was, day or night, whenever I decided to
focus my citta’s attention on him, I saw him staring back at me. It seemed
he never took a rest! There were nights when I didn’t dare lie down because
I could visualize him sitting right in front of me, scrutinizing me every
moment. Whenever I focused my citta on external objects, I invariably found
him there looking at me. Because of this, my mindfulness was constantly
alert.
“As his students, we were
forced to be mindful. Following him on almsround, we carefully kept our
thoughts under control, restraining our minds from straying beyond the
confines of our bodies. Were we careless, we could expect to hear about it –
sometimes immediately. Consequently, we exerted mindfulness over our
thoughts – at all times. Even then, he could usually find something to
lecture us about, and always with good reason. Inevitably, at least one monk
among us gave Acariya Mun cause to speak out. During the evening meeting,
Acariya Mun might speak in a scolding tone about some rather strange affair
that seemed to make no sense. As soon as the meeting adjourned, the monks
would quietly ask around to find out whose thoughts he was censuring that
day. Eventually one of the monks confessed that, as strange as it might
seem, he actually had been thinking such nonsense. Living with Acariya Mun
was a wonderful experience, for fear of him always promoted a mindful
attitude within each of us.”
This acariya told me that when
he first arrived in Chiang Mai, he went to stay at one of the local
monasteries. Having been there less than an hour, he saw a car pull into the
monastery grounds and come to a stop right in front of the hut he had just
moved into.
“When I looked out to see who
had come, there was Acariya Mun! Hurrying down to receive him, I
respectfully asked why he had come. He replied without hesitation that he
came to pick me up. He said that he knew the night before that I would be
coming. I asked if someone had informed him that I would be arriving in
Chiang Mai. He replied that it was beside the point how he learned of it –
he knew about it and wanted to be here, so he just came on his own. Hearing
that, I became apprehensive. And the more I considered the implications, the
more apprehensive I grew. Later, when I was living with him, all my fears
were confirmed.
“If our minds were free of
conceited opinions when we received his Dhamma discourse, then we became
pleasantly absorbed in listening. His entire discourse was Dhamma – pure and
simple; and it engaged our full attention more than anything else we had
ever heard. On the other hand, if a monk listened halfheartedly, burdened by
the weight of worldly thoughts, then we soon perceived fire in his
discourse, and the offending monk would promptly feel the heat. In giving a
talk, Acariya Mun was not concerned about whose kilesas his words might
disturb – his Dhamma rushed to confront the kilesas at just that point where
they were most prolific.
“Occasionally, he did identify
a monk by name, confronting him directly. ‘Why were you meditating like that
last night? That’s not the right way to meditate, you must do it this way’
Or, ‘Why were you thinking like that this morning? If you want to avoid
being ruined by such harmful thinking, then don’t think like that again. Why
don’t you think and act in ways that the Lord Buddha has taught us? What’s
the matter with you? We’re here to train ourselves in the way of Dhamma in
order to get rid of wrong attitudes and erroneous thinking. We are not here
to indulge our thoughts, burning ourselves with them the way you’ve been
doing.’ Those who wholeheartedly accepted the truth, lived contentedly with
him, and he didn’t say much to them. But any furtiveness caused him deep
misgivings, as though the offending thoughts were fire burning him, and he
would suddenly make a surprising comment about it. If, however, the monk
realized his mistake and changed his attitude, then nothing further was said
and the matter rested there.”
Powerful Magic
One evening, a group of hill
tribesmen from a village near Acariya Mun’s residence began wondering among
themselves whether Acariya Mun had any magic formulas to ward off and chase
away ghosts. So they decided to go the next day to ask if he had anything he
could give them. Early the next morning, Acariya Mun related this incident
to the monks living with him:
“Last night while sitting in
meditation I overheard a group of hill tribesmen in the village wondering if
we monks might have some magic formula for warding off and chasing away
ghosts. They intend to come here today to ask us about it. Should they come,
give them the formula “buddho, dhammo, sangho” to meditate on. It’s an
excellent formula against ghosts, for the only things that ghosts fear in
this world are the Buddha, the Dhamma, and the Sangha. Not a single ghost
would dare stand against them.”
That morning, just as Acariya
Mun had foreseen, the hill tribesmen came to request a magic formula against
ghosts. Acariya Mun gave them the formula “buddho, dhammo, sangho” as well
as the method for using it. Assuring them that ghosts were terrified of this
formula, he told them to mentally recite “buddho”, “dhammo”, or “sangho”,
whichever they preferred.
With Acariya Mun’s instructions
fresh in their minds, they began what they thought to be a ritual for
warding off ghosts, unaware that, in truth, he had given them a meditation
subject. Using this method, they attained samadhi before long. The next
morning they rushed off to see Acariya Mun and told him what had happened.
He assured them that they were practicing the formula correctly, and because
of that, ghosts in the area were terrified and bound to run away. Now
protected by the power of Dhamma, they no longer had to fear ghosts. In
fact, ghosts had already begun to fear even those people in the village who
couldn’t yet meditate.
Being inherently good, honest
folks, hill tribe people were easy to teach. When Acariya Mun instructed
them to meditate each day, they took up the practice with such sincerity
that before long some of them were getting exceptionally good results. Their
hearts became brightly illuminated and they were able to know the minds of
other people, including those of the monks in the monastery, just like the
man in the previous story about ‘tigers in disguise’.
On visits to the monastery they
spoke to Acariya Mun about their meditation practice, describing their
extraordinary perceptual abilities. Some of the monks were astonished, and
worried that these people might be able to read their thoughts. Though timid
by nature, they nonetheless wanted to find out what the people knew. They
couldn’t resist the temptation of asking for specific information about
their own thoughts. The hill tribesmen told them the truth. Still not
convinced, the monks challenged them. Unfazed by a display of their own
ignorance, they cross-examined the hill tribesmen closely to find out if
they truly could read thoughts. It was as though they believed that their
minds were tightly sealed by hundreds of impenetrable layers. The hill
tribesmen answered with the customary frankness of forest people who are
uninhibited by social formalities – answers which left the monks feeling
very vulnerable. After that, they remained apprehensive that these people
might have access to everything they were thinking.
These same hill tribesmen
casually informed Acariya Mun that they knew about the state of his citta,
having checked it out first, before checking on that of the other monks.
“What’s my citta like – is it
afraid of ghosts?”
“Your citta is devoid of all
traces of conventional reality. All that’s left is Nibbana in a human body.
Your citta is absolutely supreme – it fears nothing.”
After that, the villagers made
no further mention of ghosts. Those accomplished in meditation informed the
others who gradually came to have faith in Acariya Mun and the Buddhasasana,
thus losing interest in the business of ghosts. Every morning they gathered
together in the village center to offer alms to the monks. Having placed
some food in each monk’s bowl, they received a blessing from Acariya Mun. He
taught them to show their appreciation by exclaiming “sadhu” together in a
loud voice, allowing the devas to rejoice in their offerings and receive a
portion of the merit as well. Each day the villagers responded faithfully by
loudly calling out “sadhu”. Acariya Mun had them exclaim “sadhu”, for he
knew from the devas, who came to hear his Dhamma talks every night, that
this sound reached them in the realms where they lived. Hearing this sound,
they knew that Acariya Mun was living in the area.
DEVAS WHO VISITED Acariya Mun
were invariably escorted by a leader who was in charge of the group. These
groups represented many different realms of existence. Some were terrestrial
devas from near and far. Many were from the various celestial realms
mentioned in the Buddhist texts. When a group of devas intended to pay
Acariya Mun a visit, he always knew their time of arrival in advance. If he
knew, for instance, that a group intended to arrive at two or three a.m., he
would take some rest beforehand, getting up to enter samadhi only when the
time approached to receive them. If, however, they were scheduled to arrive
around midnight, he would first enter and then wait for them in samadhi.
This was accomplished in two stages. First, he practiced normal meditation
until he attained a deep state of calm, where he rested for a while. Then,
as the time approached, he withdrew to just the right meditative level to
receive his intended visitors. There, he knew intuitively whether or not
they had arrived, or whether they were still on their way. Having
acknowledged their arrival, he then discussed with them whatever seemed
appropriate for their particular circumstances.
Had he remained in a deep state
of samadhi, his visitors would not have been able to have access to him. In
normal waking consciousness, on the other hand, one would have to be a very
skilled person indeed to be able to acknowledge and interact with beings
from other realms. Even were he able to acknowledge them, it would still be
easier to accomplish this at the appropriate level of samadhi. For this
reason, upacara samadhi – the access gate – is a level suitable to nearly
every eventuality. Acariya Mun became an expert in these matters during his
sojourn at Sarika Cave many years before. At that time, he had been an
ordained monk for twenty-two years. By the time he passed away, after
spending a total of sixty years in the robes, he had become a true master of
these matters. Everyone in the world has the same potential for perceiving
such phenomena as Acariya Mun had – they need only to develop it.
But, very few can develop his
exceptional skills. However, even though they fell short of his total
mastery, if people could develop at least some skill, it would be sufficient
for witnessing such things. Instead, being unable to see them, people tend
to believe that such phenomena do not actually exist in the world around
them.
It’s difficult to convince
people who lack sufficient knowledge of Dhamma for endowing their hearts
with a strong spiritual basis. Should our hearts develop the principles of
Dhamma – principles certifying the true nature of all phenomena – and gain
the necessary skills, then no amount of denial could possibly negate what we
clearly see for ourselves. Even if everyone on earth insisted on denying the
existence of such things, it would merely be an empty denial. The true
nature of what we perceive remains unchanged – nothing can possibly alter
it. Truth does not depend on beliefs or opinions of any kind. It is true
according to immutable natural principles.
ACARIYA MUN WANDERED far and
wide throughout most of the remote and mountainous districts of Chiang Mai
province, traveling more extensively there than in any other province. He
remained in Chiang Mai much longer than he did in other places, largely
because it was suitable for meditation. It was conducive to the many kinds
of insights that were a unique feature of his practice. He claimed there
were many reasons for his long sojourn there. First of all, the environment
was suitable to meditation. Secondly, he felt sorry for the hill tribes
people who needed his assistance, and was reluctant to abandon them.
Although it was sparsely populated, many extraordinary individuals lived in
that area. They needed proper training and encouragement to insure their
steady progress and to avert disappointment and reversal to their old ways.
And then there were all the devas whom he was determined to assist.
Groups of devas and nagas
usually came to ask questions and listen to his discourses at least twice a
month. He said that, at night, he was always busy receiving visitors from
all over the celestial and terrestrial realms. Before speaking with Acariya
Mun, the leader of each group would announce the approximate number of devas
present on that occasion: for instance, ten or a hundred thousand celestial
devas are here today, or one to ten thousand terrestrial devas, or five
hundred to a thousand nagas.
Almost daily, when he walked
meditation in the late afternoon, Acariya Mun would be informed of the hour
of arrival of one group or another from these different realms.
Occasionally, he received the information later on during seated meditation.
There were nights when several different groups announced their impending
visit; and he had to arrange specific times for each group so that their
visits did not overlap. He did not have them come simultaneously, because
relative spiritual development varied among the different realms and his
Dhamma teaching had to vary accordingly to be appropriate for each group.
Since one group preferred hearing a certain aspect of Dhamma, while another
group preferred something different, Acariya Mun arranged separate visits to
ensure that his discourse was suitable to everyone present. This was done
for his own convenience, as well as that of his visitors. Such obligations
were a major part of the reason for his long stay in Chiang Mai. As a matter
of fact, the number of devas of all types who visited him there well
exceeded the number of people, nagas, garudas, and other spirits combined.
In reality, very few individuals can achieve telepathic communication with
devas, which is essential for teaching them.
Devas often complained to
Acariya Mun that, unaware of the existence of devas, human beings have no
understanding about devas and are not interested in knowing that devic
existence is another state of sentient existence adhering to the principles
of kamma. Devic existence is irrelevant to most human beings, who fail to
recognize that devas also have hopes and aspirations, just like everyone
else. Rarely did devas encounter a man of supreme virtue, like Acariya Mun–
a man who possessed the intuitive insight to realize that animals, humans,
devas, and all other forms of existence are undeniably real and should be
honored as such. They could not help feeling an overwhelming sense of joy
upon meeting him. They so enjoyed coming to pay him their respects, ask him
questions and listen to his teaching. They wanted to imbibe his exquisite
Dhamma to nourish their hearts, thus increasing their happiness and
well-being and sustaining their whole existence. For this reason, devas
everywhere venerate anyone possessing extremely high virtue.
Relating that devas are just as
important as all other living beings, Acariya Mun understood their
intentions and sympathized with their meritorious aspirations. He stated
that, intent on improving themselves, the devas who came to him for
assistance greatly outnumbered the human beings who visited him. Still, they
remain a mystery to people who lack the proper psychic skills. Though
appearing on the surface to be an insoluble problem for human society, it
need not be an insurmountable obstacle for a person wishing to truly know
and understand these things. For those skilled in the ways of the citta,
psychic communication is just as normal as any other aspect of human
experience. Certainly Acariya Mun considered it commonplace, allowing him to
function effectively with devas throughout his life. Regardless of where he
lived, he always remained in contact with devas requiring his assistance.
This was especially true in Chiang Mai province, because such beings
preferred to contact him when he was living in remote, isolated places, free
from human congestion. The forests and mountains of Chiang Mai were ideal in
this respect. Acariya Mun had few social obligations there, so he could
devote more time to his deva visitors.
A STRANGE INCIDENT occurred
while he was living among the Museur people deep in the mountains near Ikaw
Village. A group of devas from Germany came to visit him. They wished to
hear a discourse that would give them a ‘victory formula’. Focusing his
citta on their request, an appropriate Dhamma verse arose: “akkodhena jine
kodham.” It means conquer anger with lack of anger.12 Acariya Mun elaborated
on this theme with the assembled devas.
“Conquer anger with lack of
anger, remember this. For anyone hoping to achieve victory, this is the most
important Dhamma to practice. Consider it well – it is the main source of
peace and happiness in the world. Love and kindness – these are an effective
deterrence against an evil such as anger. By helping to reduce anger’s power
to destroy human and devic societies alike, loving kindness fosters peace
and prosperity everywhere. Thus, this loving attitude is a prerequisite for
social harmony– one we should all strive to develop. In a world lacking this
victory formula, dissatisfaction and unrest will arise at the very least. At
the extreme, the world will be consumed by mortal strife. Anger and
resentment can never defeat our enemies, for they are evils that succeed
only in indiscriminately destroying us and everyone close to us. The more
anger is used, the more the world we live in becomes a sea of flames,
burning uncontrollably toward total annihilation.
“Anger is actually a type of
fire that’s inherent in the nature of this world. Although it has no
physical properties, it does succeed in creating havoc in its wake. So
anyone desiring a stable, sensible world – a place worth living in – should
realize the disastrous harm that the fires of anger and resentment can
cause; and refrain from ever using them. Starting a fire like this merely
causes oneself and everyone else to suffer. Mutual feelings of affection and
loving kindness among all living beings maintain the world in its proper
equilibrium. Oppressive forces of unrestrained anger and selfish pride
should never be allowed to run rampant, causing a never-ending cycle of
destruction.
“With his acute wisdom, the
Lord Buddha realized the indisputable harm caused by anger. He saw the value
of loving kindness as a gentle force that can spontaneously join all living
beings in a sense of mutual harmony and goodwill, for all share a common
desire for happiness and a common dislike of pain. For this reason, he
taught that love and kindness were powerful means of maintaining peace and
security in the world. So long as living beings still have loving kindness
in their hearts, there’s every chance that their desire for happiness will
be fulfilled. But should their hearts become estranged from thoughts of
loving kindness, then even with all the material comforts, their lives will
still be devoid of genuine peace and happiness. Angry, hateful people tend
to encounter only trouble, feeling resentful and annoyed wherever they go.
“Once we know with certainty
that Dhamma is something truly beneficial to us, we can clearly see that a
heart full of brutality is like a blazing fire gradually destroying
everything in its path. We must then urgently strive to overcome these
dangers as best we can. You may never again get such a good opportunity; so,
take advantage of it now and avoid regrets in the future. The world is in a
constant state of change and that changing world is situated right here in
the bodies and minds of us all.”
Such was the essence of the
‘victory formula’ that Acariya Mun gave to the devas from Germany. As soon
as Acariya Mun finished speaking, they gave a thunderous “sadhu” in unison
that echoed throughout the world systems. Acariya Mun asked how they knew
where he was staying since, in human terms, they lived so far away. They
replied that they always knew precisely where he was staying. More than
that, devas from Thailand regularly visit the devas of Germany. In truth,
devas don’t consider the distance between countries like Thailand and
Germany to be very great, the way human beings do. They simply think of it
as an area through which they can easily and naturally pass back and forth.
Whereas humans travel by foot or by vehicle, devas transport themselves by
means of a supernormal power that is equivalent to transferring
consciousness to a particular destination – it arrives there instantly. So
devas can move around much more easily than human beings.
Acariya Mun said that the devas
from Germany regularly came to listen to his Dhamma talks, much in the same
way that terrestrial devas came from all over Thailand to hear him. Both
celestial and terrestrial devas tended to show their respect for him in a
similar fashion. If Acariya Mun was living with a group of monks, devas who
came to see him never passed through the area where the monks had their
living quarters. Besides that, they tended to arrive very late at night when
all the monks were asleep. Upon arrival, they circumambulated Acariya Mun
clockwise, three times in a calm, composed manner. When they departed –
again circumambulating him clockwise three times – they first withdrew to a
respectful distance. When they reached the edge of his living area, they
simply floated into the air like puffs of cotton. All types of devas
demonstrated their respect for him in this fashion.
ACARIYA MUN FOUND the mountains
of Chiang Mai to be an ideal environment for meditation. Heart free and mind
unencumbered, he lived a life of complete ease, abiding sublimely in Dhamma
– Dhamma was the enduring source of comfort in his life. With no intrusions
taking up his time, he was free to meditate whenever he wished. He lived a
very healthy, contented life there. As for his teaching obligations, the
devas, who came only at night, were beings of a refined nature, so they were
hardly a burden. Sometimes in the afternoon or early evening he gave helpful
advice to the local lay community. The monks living under his tutelage
assembled for instruction in the evening, at about seven p.m. Most of his
students had already achieved a certain level of proficiency in the practice
of samadhi and in the various stages of wisdom. Being wholly committed to
the practice, they listened to his teaching, striving to attain magga, phala,
and Nibbana.
When Acariya Mun taught a group
of monks, whose individual levels of mental development varied, he always
structured his discourses to encompass all levels of practice, from basic
samadhi through the higher levels of wisdom to the most subtle level of all
– the realization of Nibbana. Monks, skilled in meditation, became so
absorbed in the successive stages of his discourse that they lost all sense
of time and place.
Practicing monks were usually
given a talk lasting for at least two hours. But the monks were less
interested in the time than they were in the flow of his Dhamma discourse,
as they were able to gradually increase their own understanding with each
successive stage. Consequently, listening to Dhamma in an attentive,
thoughtful manner is itself a valuable meditation practice, one that is
equally as important as other methods. For his part, the teacher is
determined that his audience realize the truth of what he teaches – every
step of the way. He points out the kind of thoughts that are truly harmful,
as well as those that are truly beneficial; so, his students will understand
which thinking is faulty and should be abandoned, and which has merit and
should be developed further. More than at any comparable time, those
focusing their undivided attention on the citta – the focal point of Dhamma
– can expect to attain some degree of calm in samadhi; or receive various
techniques for investigating with wisdom, while they listen to the teacher
discuss these topics. Thus, the diligent meditator can progress step by step
while listening to his teacher’s instructions. Receiving an insight into one
aspect of Dhamma today, another aspect of Dhamma tomorrow, students manage
to strengthen their mindfulness and wisdom every time they listen. Since the
teacher has realized the Truth of Dhamma within himself, he can point
directly to that same Truth existing within his students. Listening to his
detailed explanations, they can progressively develop their skills in all
aspects of samadhi and wisdom, allowing them to successfully pass through
each level of meditation practice until they reach the highest Dhamma.
Dhutanga monks have always
considered hearing Dhamma an essential part of their practice, one they seek
to maintain as long as there is a skilled teacher to whom they can listen.
For this reason, truly dedicated dhutanga monks like to search out a teacher
who can guide them in their meditation practice. They cherish and revere a
teacher in whom they feel they can put their complete trust. His advice is
sincerely taken to heart, carefully contemplated, and wholeheartedly put
into practice. They routinely consult with him, asking for specific advice
on any doubtful points arising in their practice, then adjust their practice
according to his recommendations. For this reason, dhutanga monks have
always preferred to gather around eminently qualified meditation masters,
such as Acariya Mun and Acariya Sao. Both of those great teachers had
unusually large numbers of disciples among the dhutanga monks of Thailand’s
Northeast region.
But in Acariya Mun’s case, once
he moved to Chiang Mai he resolved to avoid his fellow monks and practice
deliberately on his own, without the added burden of responsibility that
teaching entails. In the beginning, he wanted to accelerate his drive for
the ultimate goal. Later, he found it conducive to living in comfort. All
the same, he had to accept certain obligations to teach monks as well as lay
people, and it’s well known that he had many disciples all over Thailand. In
the period before Acariya Mun went off alone to make his decisive push in
the wilds of Chiang Mai, he often mentioned that, spiritually, he still was
not strong enough – either in his own practice, or in his ability to teach
others. So he resolved to go away and practice with the utmost diligence
until no doubts – of any kind – remained in his heart. From that time on, he
never mentioned anything about lacking sufficient strength.
Big Brother Elephant
Once Acariya Mun was wandering
dhutanga in the Chiang Mai mountains with two other monks, Acariya Khao of
Wat Tham Klong Phen monastery in Udon Thani province and Acariya Maha Thong
Sak of Wat Suddhawat monastery in Sakon Nakhon province. As they reached a
narrow gap in the path leading up the mountain, they chanced upon a large,
solitary elephant whose owner had released it and then wandered off
someplace. All they could see there was a gigantic elephant with huge
six-foot tusks searching for food – quite a fearsome sight. They conferred
among themselves about how to proceed. This was the only path up the
mountain, and it allowed no room for going around the elephant. Acariya Mun
told Acariya Khao to speak with the elephant, which was eating bamboo leaves
at the side of the path. Standing about twenty yards away with its back to
them, it had yet to notice their approach. Acariya Khao addressed the
elephant:
“Big brother elephant, we wish
to speak with you.”
At first, the elephant didn’t
clearly hear his voice, but it did stop chewing the bamboo leaves.
“Big brother elephant, we wish
to speak with you.”
Clearly hearing this, the
elephant suddenly swung around to face the monks. It stood stock-still, its
ears fully extended.
“Big brother elephant, we wish
to speak with you. You are so very big and strong. We’re just a group of
monks, so weak and so very frightened of you, big brother. We would like to
walk past where you’re standing. Would big brother please move over a bit so
that we have room to pass by? If you keep standing there, it really
frightens us, so we don’t dare walk past.”
As soon as he finished
speaking, the elephant immediately turned to the side and thrust its tusks
into the middle of a clump of bamboo, signaling its intention to let them
pass, unharmed. Seeing it facing the clump of bamboo, Acariya Mun told the
others that they could continue on as it would not bother them now. The two
monks invited Acariya Mun to walk between them, Acariya Khao walking in
front and Acariya Maha Thong Sak following behind. They walked past in
single file only six feet from the elephant’s rear end, without incident.
But as they were walking away, the hook on Acariya Maha Thong Sak’s umbrella
got tangled by chance in some bamboo just a few yards past the elephant. It
defied all attempts to extricate it, so he was forced to struggle with it
for quite some time. Terrified of the elephant – which was now looking right
at him – he was soon drenched in sweat. Fighting desperately to disentangle
the hook, he glanced up at the eyes of the elephant, which stood there like
a huge stuffed animal. He could see that its eyes were bright and clear. In
truth, its countenance inspired affection rather than fear, but at that
moment his fear remained strong. When he finally did get free, his fear
subsided, and he realized that this elephant was a very endearing animal.
Seeing that they were all safely past, Acariya Khao turned to the elephant.
“Hey, big brother, we’ve all
passed by now. Please relax and eat in peace.”
As soon as he finished
speaking, the sound of crunching, breaking bamboo filled the air.
Later the monks praised this
intelligent elephant, agreeing it was an animal that inspired affection and
sympathy. The only faculty it lacked was the ability to speak. As they were
discussing this, Acariya Maha Thong Sak was curious to hear Acariya Mun’s
reaction, so he asked: “Were you able to read that elephant’s mind the whole
time, from the moment we spoke to it until we passed clear of it? Since it
was so endearing, I’d really like to know. When it first heard us call out,
suddenly turning around to face us in an agitated fashion, I was sure it was
about to charge and crush us to pieces right then and there. But as soon as
it understood the situation, it had a change of heart – almost like a person
in an animal’s body – and quickly thrust its tusks into the middle of that
clump of bamboo and stood very still. Clearly it seemed to be telling us:
‘You little brothers can come now. Big brother won’t do anything. Big
brother has put away his weapons. Believe me, come along.’ ”
Acariya Maha Thong Sak then
teased Acariya Khao:
“Acariya Khao is really
amazing, speaking with an animal as though it was just another human being:
‘Big brother, your little brothers are frightened and dare not pass. Please
make way so that we can go by without fearing big brother.’ As soon as it
received this bit of flattery, it was so pleased that it immediately
prepared to make way for us. But this little brother was really clumsy. I
got past big brother only to get my umbrella hook caught up in the bamboo.
Try as I might I couldn’t get it free. It was determined to keep me there
with big brother. My heart sank at that moment – I was afraid that big
brother wouldn’t play fair.”
Acariya Mun laughed heartily
hearing Acariya Maha Thong Sak teasing Acariya Khao about being clever
enough to talk to an elephant. He assured them that he had been paying
attention to the elephant’s mental state.
“Of course I was focusing my
attention there. I’ve read the minds of birds and monkeys with far less
reason than this. This was a matter of life and death, how could I avoid
it?”
Acariya Maha Thong Sak wanted
to know what the elephant was thinking when Acariya Mun focused on it.
“When it first heard us, it was
startled – that’s why it turned around so quickly. It thought only of
preparing to fight. But seeing us dressed in yellow robes, it knew
instinctively that we could be trusted, for it’s quite used to seeing monks.
Its owner has long since trained it not to endanger them. So when Acariya
Khao addressed it in a pleasant tone, calling it ‘big brother’, it was
hugely pleased and immediately got out of the way.”
“Did it understand every word
that Acariya Khao said to it?”
“Of course it did. Otherwise,
how could it be trained to haul logs down from the mountains? If it couldn’t
understand, it would probably have been disposed of as useless long ago.
This kind of animal must be trained until it knows man’s language well
before it can be made to perform various tasks. This particular elephant is
over a hundred years old. Look at its tusks – they’re almost six feet long.
It must have lived among people for a long time. Its owner is relatively
young, yet he’s still able to drive it to work. How could it not understand
human speech? It’s certain to have no problem.”
“What was it thinking when it
turned and stuck its tusks into the clump of bamboo?”
“Well, it understood the
situation, as I said, and so was giving way to us. It didn’t think of doing
anything else.”
“Did you focus on its mind the
whole time we were walking past it? What was it thinking just as we walked
by?”
“All I saw was the elephant
giving way. It wasn’t thinking about anything else.”
“The reason I asked: I was
worried that as we were walking past it might have thought it would like to
attack us – just for sport, as animals sometimes do.”
“You have an uncommonly
prolific imagination, Maha Thong Sak. If you enjoyed thinking and asking
probing questions like this about matters of substance then you could
certainly expect to transcend dukkha one day. But you’re like most people –
you insist on wasting your time thinking about inane matters instead of
useful ones, and you probably don’t care to change. Are you going to keep
pondering this matter, asking about that elephant all night without the
slightest regard for Dhamma?”
With this warning, Acariya Maha
Thong Sak dropped the whole affair. He was afraid that pressing the matter
further would result in an even more severe rebuke.13
MANY MONKS WERE REBUKED for
speaking carelessly to Acariya Mun or speaking without good reason. Some
even went mad afterwards. One rather obtrusive monk lived with Acariya Mun
for a short while. When Acariya Mun made a comment, this monk liked to chime
in expressing his own views. When he first arrived, Acariya Mun frequently
warned him to mind his own business. He advised him to keep a close watch on
his thoughts and restrain the impulse to speak out. Monks dedicated to the
practice must know how to properly conduct themselves. Those who are mindful
will see the inadequacies of a mind that wants to flow out. But it seems
that this monk was not as interested as he should have been in Acariya Mun’s
teaching.
Acariya Mun had a unique habit
of taking the animals, or the people, that he encountered on almsround as
objects of contemplation, using them to teach the monks walking behind him.
He commented out loud on what he observed, as though speaking to no one in
particular. One day, he spied a cute little calf playfully running around
its mother. At first it didn’t see the monks approaching; but as they came
abreast, it looked around startled and raced to its mother’s side, nuzzling
in under her neck, then peering out to look at the monks with fear in its
eyes. Seeing the calf run up to her, the cow quickly turned her head to look
in the direction of the monks, then remained impassive, as animals do when
they are accustomed to seeing monks daily. But the calf remained under her
chin, staring out distrustfully. Observing them, Acariya Mun commented in a
general way about the difference between the reaction of the calf and that
of its mother.
“That cow is quite unperturbed,
but its calf is so frightened it looks like it wants to pick her up and
flee.14 As soon as it got a glimpse of us, it ran bawling to its mother for
help. People are just the same – they rush to find a reliable refuge. If
they are near their mother, they will run to her. If they are near their
father, they will rush to him. People invariably lean on family and friends
for support. Rarely do they think about relying on themselves. When we are
young, we expect to rely on other people in one way; when we grow up, we
expect to rely on them in another way; and when we grow old, we still expect
to rely on others in yet a different way. Very few of us turn inward,
looking for support within ourselves. By constantly looking for someone else
to lean on, we tend to foster our own weakness and so never allow ourselves
to become truly self-reliant.
“We monks are the same as lay
people. Having ordained, we become lazy about studying. Worrying that it
will be painful and difficult, we become lazy about practicing the way. We
never seem to finish what we start, for no sooner do we have a good idea and
begin to put it into practice than laziness creeps in, blocking our
progress. Lacking the ability to help ourselves, we have to look to others
for support. Otherwise, we couldn’t carry on in this life. The maxim: attahi
attano natho – oneself is one’s own refuge – is meaningless for us if we
cannot breath through our own noses. Dhutanga monks who are dedicated to the
practice shouldn’t always have to depend on others for life and breath.
“Listen to your teacher, think
about what he teaches, and commit yourselves to attaining it. Don’t let his
teaching just slip through your grasp to no avail. Be persistent. Consider
what he says and follow his example until you see the benefits within
yourselves. Then you no longer need to lean on him for support. You’ll be
breathing through your own noses, meaning you will have developed the
knowledge and wisdom needed to rid yourselves of dukkha. Gradually, you will
become more confident, more self-reliant, until finally you become
full-fledged, fully-independent monks in your own right.”
Acariya Mun brought up this
matter to give the monks on almsround with him something to contemplate. As
he paused for a moment, the rather obtrusive monk began to prattle away on
his own without considering the impropriety of such an intrusion. Perhaps
this monk’s idiocy struck a dissonant chord deep within Acariya Mun, for he
turned around and gave him a severe rebuke that took the other monks aback,
making them all somewhat apprehensive.
“You must be mad! You’re like a
rabid dog that pounces and chews furiously on any old piece of wood tossed
at it. Why don’t you look inside yourself where this madness arises. You’ll
go crazy if you don’t curtail this sort of mindless prattle.”
Acariya Mun then turned around
and walked back to the monastery without another word. Arriving at the
monastery, the monks noticed something peculiar about the obtrusive monk –
he seemed stunned, eating very little. Seeing his odd behavior, the monks
kept quiet, as if nothing had happened. They were afraid he would feel
embarrassed. For the rest of the day life in the monastery continued as
normal, each monk applying himself to his meditation. But later, during the
night when all was quiet, they heard someone cry out in a deranged,
incoherent voice. They immediately rushed over to find the monk lying in his
hut, tossing deliriously about, mumbling something about being sorry for
offending Acariya Mun so rudely. Shocked by this sight, some of them hurried
off to get the local villagers to help take care of him. They brought some
herbal remedies for him to take, then massaged his limbs for a while until
he finally calmed down and fell asleep for the rest of the night. The next
morning someone took him to a doctor for treatment. His condition soon
improved, though he did have occasional relapses. When he was well enough to
travel, they sent him home. There was no further news about his condition
after that.
Acariya Mun’s reprimands varied
with circumstances. A mild scolding was usually sufficient to promote
mindfulness in the present and increase vigilance in the future. However, if
someone did something that prompted a severe reprimand, but lacked the good
judgment to make use of it, then it could well be damaging, as we have seen.
So monks living with Acariya Mun tended to be exceedingly vigilant and
always self-controlled. Just because they had lived with him for a long time
didn’t mean they could expect to get overly familiar with him, for he was
the type of person who didn’t readily countenance familiarity in anyone. His
students could never afford to be complacent – sometimes even the deer
that’s wary of hunters gets shot.
Youthful Exuberance
Occasionally, when the monks
living with him were highly attained individuals, Acariya Mun conducted
himself in a naturally easy-going and relaxed manner, as one would expect
among people of equal status who are all well-acquainted. He was not so
stern and strict at such times. But his whole demeanor could change
dramatically according to the situation. He behaved quite differently in one
set of circumstances than he did in another, treating each individual as a
separate case. His disciples were constantly amazed at the quickness and
novelty of his responses to the situations that emerged around him.
Acariya Mun used to tell the
monks an amusing story about his youth that illustrates his dynamic
character. I shall retell it here for it demonstrates the incredible changes
that a person can go through. Back in the days when Acariya Mun was still a
young layman, he used to compete in local folk singing contests known as maw
lam.15 One day he attended a large fair in a neighboring village where
thousands of people had gathered. Suddenly, he felt emboldened to get up on
stage and sing in competition with a talented young woman who was a renowned
folk singer in those parts. Perhaps he thought it would be fun to have a go
at her on stage, or perhaps he felt a little bit in love – who knows? At any
rate, jumping up on stage, he found the young woman quite willing to accept
his challenge. By the time they sang through several sets of verses, it
became clear that young Mun was losing the contest. As it happened, a savior
appeared just in time. Chao Khun Upali,16 who was then a young man several
years older than young Mun, had come to the same fair and was in the
audience at the competition. Obviously his friend was losing badly, and
things were getting worse with each new set of verses. Continued much
longer, the girl would probably have driven him off the stage in disgrace,
for she was a seasoned performer and young Mun was a mere novice. Acting on
a bold impulse, Mun had leapt up on the stage only to meet a ferocious
tigress, her mouth full of fangs, while he was just a pup sporting a few
baby teeth. Jan, as Chao Khun Upali was called then, anxiously thought that
if his friend persisted, she would skin him alive, then sell his hide. He
thought to himself: Mun doesn’t know a tiger when he sees one. He just sees
a young lady – he doesn’t realize he’s about to be slaughtered. I’ll have to
do something now to save his hide. If I don’t, it’ll be on sale in the
market for sure. Having thought this, Jan jumped up on the stage and began
shouting:
“Damn it Mun! I’ve been looking
for you all over the place! Your mother fell from the top of the house – I’m
not sure if she’s still alive or not. I saw her lying there in a heap on the
ground and tried to help, but she insisted I go look for you. I’ve been
running around all day trying to find you. I haven’t eaten a thing and I’m
worn out.”
Both Mun and the young lady
were stunned into silence by this ruse. Mun immediately asked about his
mother’s condition.
“Jan, how is my mother?”
Jan pretended to be so
exhausted he could hardly speak.
“I think she’s probably dead by
now. I’m about to die myself now from hunger and exhaustion.”
With that he grabbed Mun’s arm,
dragging him from the stage before a crowd of thousands of shocked
onlookers, and ran with him as fast as possible. By the time they reached
the village outskirts, Mun was desperate to find out more about his mother.
“What was my mother doing on
the top of the house to make her fall?”
“I don’t really know what
caused her to fall. Seeing her lying there on the ground, I rushed to help.
But she sent me right off to look for you, so I came straight away. I didn’t
have a chance to get the full story.”
“As far as you could tell, was
my mother going to die?”
“We’re on our way now to find
that out for ourselves.”
When they had walked
sufficiently far from the village that Jan reckoned Mun wouldn’t dare go
back alone at such a late hour17 his whole demeanor abruptly changed as he
frankly told Mun that nothing had happened to his mother.
“I put on that act because I
couldn’t bear to see your old lady mop the floor with you. I was afraid
she’d skin your hide and sell it in the market. That would have been
humiliating for me, and for our whole village. She was about to emasculate
you there just for the fun of it. So I tricked you both into believing this
story, at the same time convincing the crowd that you had to flee the scene
because of a real emergency – not because you’d lost the will to fight. I
rushed you away before anyone had a chance to catch on to my ruse. Even that
feisty old lady of yours couldn’t help being overwhelmed by my ingenious
scheme. Did you see how taken in she was? Alarmed by what I said, she
watched us leave with heartfelt sympathy for you and your mother. I saved
you from the hell she had in store for you. Now what do you think, wasn’t
that an ingenious scheme?”
“Oh no! What a shame! Damn you
Jan, look what you’ve done to me! I was having a great time chopping her to
pieces! By dragging me away, you spoiled my fun. I never imagined you’d do
this to me. I’d like to have another go at her right now. I’d be the one
sending her hide to the market!”
“Ha! You were being
slaughtered, and I saved your life! And now you’re bragging about how good
you were. Maybe I should take you back right now so your old lady can put
you on the chopping block again.” “Look, seeing she was a woman, I figured
I’d go easy on her at first, hoping she’d get overconfident. When I had her
where I wanted her, I planned to tie her up, throw her in a sack, and sell
her to the highest bidder. You failed to understand my strategy – I was
baiting her, like a tiger luring a monkey.”
“If you’re so smart then how
come you fell for my little sham to pull you away from her devilish
clutches. You were so shocked you almost started crying shamelessly right in
front of your lady friend. Who’d have ever considered you capable of bagging
the old girl? It was obvious – she was about to tie you up and throw you off
the stage in full view of thousands of people. Stop bragging so much Mun!
You should appreciate my brotherly efforts to save you from defeat at the
hands of that woman.”
That night Mun and Jan both
ended up missing the fair they had so looked forward to attending.
ALTHOUGH THEY WERE STILL in lay
life at the time, such stories about these two sages matching wits were
fascinating to hear. Despite the worldly nature of the conversation, it
demonstrates how clever people converse – each new retort captures the
imagination. When Acariya Mun related stories about the two of them, we
became so absorbed listening that we could almost visualize them as they
spoke. There are lots of stories about these two men matching wits, but a
few examples should be enough to give the reader an idea of what I mean. The
clever ploys they used as young men gave an early indication of their
intelligence. Eventually entering the monkhood, both became great sages.
Chao Khun Upali Gunupamacariya and Acariya Mun Bhuridatta Thera are renowned
throughout Thailand as present day sages of the highest caliber.
I have used the diminutives Jan
and Mun because that’s how Acariya Mun himself told the story to his
students during relaxed moments when there was a break in the usual tense,
guarded atmosphere the monks felt when they were around him. I sincerely
apologize to both of these esteemed venerables, and to the readers as well,
if anything I’ve written is deemed inappropriate. Had I written the story in
a more formal style, the meaning would not have come across so effectively.
Such familiarity implies a mutual respect among peers and is commonly used
between close friends of all ages. Moreover, I find it convenient to write
the story the way I originally heard it. It allows us a glimpse of these two
renowned elders as high-spirited youths having a good time, which we can
then compare with our usual image of them as absolutely amazing monks who
completely renounced the world.
Although Acariya Mun preferred
to keep to the present, rarely speaking about the past, he liked to sing the
praises of Chao Khun Upali’s cleverness from time to time. On one occasion,
when they were discussing the story of Lord Vessantara,18 he asked Chao Khun
Upali about the mother of Lady Madri, a character in the story. He hadn’t
seen her name mentioned in the scriptures, and thought perhaps he had missed
it. Chao Khun Upali’s response was immediate:
“What, you’ve never seen or
heard of Madri’s mother? Everyone in town knows about her. Where’ve you been
looking that you haven’t come across her yet?”
Admitting that he hadn’t come
across her name in the scriptures, Acariya Mun wondered where it was
mentioned.
“Scriptures? What scriptures?
What about that loudmouth Mrs. Op who lives in the big house at the
crossroads on the way to the monastery?”
Acariya Mun was puzzled. He
couldn’t recall any mention of a monastery in the story. Which crossroads
and what monastery was he referring to.
“You know, Madri’s mother whose
house is right next to yours. How could you not know Madri and her mother?
How pitiful – Madri and her mother live in your own home village and you
don’t even recognize them. Instead, you go searching in the scriptures. I
feel embarrassed for you.”
The moment Chao Khun Upali said
that Madri and her mother lived in his home village, Acariya Mun caught on
and was able to recollect them. Prior to that he was puzzled, for he kept
thinking of the Vessantara Jataka story. He said that Chao Khun Upali was
very clever at skillfully matching wits, using wordplay and riposte in
unexpected ways to keep his listeners off balance, thus making them use
their intelligence. Acariya Mun used to laugh when he told us about falling
victim to Chao Khun Upali’s little artifice.
ACARIYA MUN SPENT one rains
retreat near the village of Ban Nam Mao in the Mae Pang district of Chiang
Mai province. Sakka, the heavenly devaraja, frequently came to visit,
bringing a large retinue with him. Even in the dry season, when he went off
into the mountains alone and stayed in Dok Kham Cave, Sakka brought his
followers to visit him there.
Usually numbering well over one
hundred thousand on those occasions, they came more often and in larger
numbers than other groups of devas. If some in his retinue had never come
before, Sakka first explained to them the proper way to listen to Dhamma.
Acariya Mun usually took metta appamañña brahmavihara19 as the theme of his
discourse because these devas were especially fond of that subject.
Being very isolated, tranquil
places, Ban Nam Mao and Dok Khan Cave brought more groups of devas from many
different realms to visit Acariya Mun than did any of his other locations.
These beings showed great respect for Acariya Mun, and for the place where
he lived.
Upon entering the area, they
were always careful to bypass his walking meditation path which the
villagers had smoothed out with sand: it was sacrosanct. Nagas, too, avoided
passage across the path when arriving for a visit. On occasions when their
leader had to pass through that area, he always circled around the head of
the meditation path. Sometimes the nagas sent a messenger to invite Acariya
Mun to attend a function, much as humans do when they invite monks to local
functions. The messengers always avoided crossing his meditation path.
Occasionally, when they were unable to avoid crossing over some of the sand
that the villagers had scattered around that area, they would first sweep
the sand away with their hands, and then crawl across. Standing up again,
they walked to Acariya Mun’s residence. Their behavior was always
wonderfully composed.
Acariya Mun believed that if
human beings, the custodians of the sasana, have a true interest in Dhamma
and a deeply-rooted feeling of genuine self-respect, they should exhibit the
same reverential behavior toward the sasana as devas and nagas do. Although
we’re unable to see for ourselves how those beings show their respect, the
teachings of Buddhism address all such matters in full. Unfortunately, we
humans are not as interested in them as we should be. We seem more intent on
creating a stifling, negligent attitude within ourselves, thus failing to
experience the kind of happiness we could otherwise expect. In truth, the
sasana is the wellspring of all virtuous conduct, which assures happiness to
those adhering to the venerable principles of Buddhism.
Acariya Mun continually
emphasized that the heart is the most important thing in the world. A heart
that is vulgar ends up vulgarizing everything with which it comes into
contact. Much like a filthy body, it soils whatever it touches – no matter
how nice and clean it may initially be – making it filthy too in the end. So
Dhamma cannot escape being tainted by a vulgar heart. Even though Dhamma
itself is perfectly pure, it becomes tarnished as soon as it’s embraced by
someone with a corrupt heart – like a clean cloth being rubbed in the dirt.
For example, when a wicked person tries to impress others with his knowledge
of the Buddhist scriptures, nothing good ever comes of it. Vulgar people who
are stubborn and unyielding about religious matters are just the same; and
no matter how extraordinary Buddhism is, they are unable to derive any of
its benefits. They merely proclaim themselves to be Buddhists but they never
understand the real significance of Buddhism and how it applies to them
personally.
The actual truth about the
sasana is this: we ourselves are the sasana. No matter how good or bad our
actions are, whatever subsequent degree of happiness or suffering we
experience – all directly affect the sasana. The word “sasana” means the
correct way of living as practiced by each individual. If we think the
sasana exists outside of ourselves, then our understanding is wrong, and so
our practice too is bound to be wrong. Anything which is wrong is more or
less useless. It can be made useful only at the expense of the
righteousness, dignity, and integrity of each individual. Put simply and
clearly: if we are wrong in our hearts, then whatever we do turns out wrong.
For instance, calculations don’t add up; clothes don’t fit properly; traffic
regulations are ignored; married couples deviate from accepted norms,
failing to honor their vows; parents and children are at logger-heads;
wealth is ill-gotten, its distribution inequitable; the authorities flout
the laws of the land which are designed to keep peace; rulers and their
constituents cannot seem to work together for the common good according to
the law, and so become distrustful, behaving like enemies.
Regardless of how we experience
the harmful consequences, the disappointment and misfortune that result from
wrong actions will inevitably arise right where they are committed – in the
heart. The cause being wrong, the effect is bound to be harmful. When we
wrong someone, the harmful consequences from that action are unavoidable,
even in cases where we are unaware of having wronged that person. The
wrongdoer must necessarily receive the full results of his actions. It’s no
use thinking that we can somehow avoid the unpleasant consequences –
whatever they are, they will definitely manifest themselves someday. By
remaining indifferent or negligent about wrongdoing, we face the clear
prospect of personal misfortune here and now in this lifetime. Looking any
further ahead than this would merely amount to grasping at shadows and
missing the real issue. The sasana is not a shadowy specter, deluding people
into ignorance. It’s a path that unerringly reveals the Truth in all its
many aspects. Followers of the sasana, who deviate from the path and then
unfairly accuse it of having failed them, are inextricably compounding their
own miserable predicament. The sasana, as always, remains pure and
unperturbed.
Acariya Mun always stressed
that people who accept the Truth, embodied in Buddhist principles, receive
the blessings of Dhamma. Being cool and calm themselves, all their
relationships tend to be the same as well. The world they live in is a
peaceful place where they are unlikely to suffer the kind of contentious
bickering that causes acrimony and engulfs both parties in heated
recriminations. The reason people never experience the happiness they long
for is that they allow a fiery, inflamed mentality to dictate their attitude
in everything from business dealings to workplace, from legal proceedings to
marketplace. Wherever they go, whatever they do – they are as hot as fire,
so they find it hard to maintain a balance in their lives. Such people never
seem to consider dousing the bonfire they constantly carry in their hearts
so as to gain enough breathing room to relax, balance themselves, and find
some measure of happiness.
Acariya Mun said that during
his whole life as a Buddhist monk he enjoyed investigating the Dhamma taught
by the Lord Buddha, whose incomparable breadth and depth are infinitely
greater than those of the vast oceans. In all truth, the sasana is so
inconceivably profound and subtle that it’s virtually impossible to
investigate every aspect of it; and the results attained from each
successive stage of the practice are so amazing that they defy description.
He insisted that only his concern that others would think him crazy kept him
from continuously prostrating himself to the Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha. He
would consider it his occupation otherwise, performing it easily and
joyfully without ever experiencing fatigue or boredom. He was absolutely
certain that, whatever happened, he would always be inseparable from the
Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha – akaliko. In stark contrast, the world of anicca,
dukkha, and anatta constantly smothers the hearts of living beings, leaving
them forever distressed and resentful.
The Mysterious Effects of
Kamma
Once while he was meditating,
deep in the Chiang Mai mountains, Acariya Mun saw a vision of a woman and a
small novice walking back and forth through the area, nearly every night in
the late hours. Becoming suspicious after a while, he asked why they were
there. They told him that they were worried about the fate of an unfinished
stupa20 which they were building together when they died. The small novice
was the woman’s younger brother, and they had worked together to construct
the stupa. Their concern about the stupa and their regrets at having died
before its completion made them feel a strong, persistent obligation to it.
Although reborn into a state of anxiety, they were not as tormented by it as
might be expected. Still, they could not feel decisive about being reborn
into another realm of existence.
So Acariya Mun advised them:
“You should not be concerned about things that have already come and gone,
for they are truly irredeemable. No matter how convinced you may be that you
can turn back the clock – it’s just not possible. Anyone supposing they can
will experience nothing but frustration when their hopes fail to
materialize. The future, having yet to come, shouldn’t be clung to either.
What has already happened should be let go of as being past. What has yet to
arrive should be let go of as its time is not yet ripe. Only in the present
is it possible to accomplish something meaningful.
“If your dream of building that
stupa were meant to come true, then you would have had a chance to finish it
first instead of dying unexpectedly. Now you are trying to deny death. Not
only that, you still long to complete the stupa even though it is now wholly
impossible. So, now you have erred twice in your thinking. If you continue
on hoping to fulfill this wish, you will compound your mistake yet a third
time. Not only is your thinking affected by this, but your future state of
birth and your well-being in that state will also be adversely affected.
Such an unreasonable aspiration should not be allowed to continue.
“In building a stupa, we hope
to acquire merit and goodness – not bricks and mortar. The value you obtain
from building a stupa is the merit that you gain from this action – merit
which results from your efforts and which rightly belongs to you. You
shouldn’t worry about gross material things like bricks and mortar that can
never fulfill your desires anyway. People everywhere who gain merit by doing
good deeds take with them only the merit they’ve thus acquired, not the
material things they gave away as donations. For example, contributing to
the construction of a monastery, a monk’s residence, an assembly hall, a
road, a water tank, a public building, or any other offering of material
goods, are simply the outward manifestations of the good intentions of those
wishing to be generous. They are not the actual rewards of generosity,
meaning that material offerings themselves are not merit or goodness or
heaven or Nibbana, nor are they the recipient of such rewards. For, over
time, all material things disintegrate and fall apart. “The spiritual
qualities that are gained from the effort and the generosity required to do
charitable works are experienced internally as merit and goodness. The
inspiration behind the good intentions to make such donations is the heart
of each individual donor. The heart itself is virtuous. The heart itself is
meritorious. It is the heart that exists as heaven or magga, phala and
Nibbana, and the heart that achieves these attainments. Nothing else could
possibly achieve them.
“The unfinished stupa that you
two were building lacked the conscious capacity to have good intentions for
its own spiritual improvement. Your concern for it stems from a covetous
mentality that is a hindrance to you even though it is directed at holding
on to something good. Clinging to it is not in your best interest. Your
procrastination here is retarding your progress to a favorable rebirth.
Instead of trying to take the whole thing with you, had you two been
satisfied with the merit you made from working on that stupa, you would both
have comfortably gone on to a favorable existence long ago – for merit is
the mainstay of a good rebirth. And merit is never transformed into
something bad. It remains virtuous forever – akaliko.
“It’s a mistake to be unduly
concerned for things past. There is no way you can possibly finish that
stupa now, so you shouldn’t set your hearts on such a hopeless endeavor. The
power of the merit you have made impacts you here in the present. So, don’t
waste your time thinking about the past or the future when now you should be
reaping the good results of what you’ve already done. Correct your thinking
and soon you will be able to pass on, free of anxiety. Turn your attention
to the present. It contains all the virtues necessary for magga, phala, and
Nibbana. The past and the future are impediments you must overcome without
wasting any more time.
“I feel really sorry for you
two. You’ve done some very meritorious work for the sake of a happy future,
only to get so bogged down in your attachment to mere bricks and mortar that
you can’t freely move on. If you both make the effort to cut these
attachments from your hearts, before long you will be free of all binding
ties. The strength of your accumulated merit is ready and waiting to take
you to the rebirth of your choice.”
Acariya Mun then explained to
them the essential meaning of the five moral precepts, a code of conduct
applying equally to all living beings.
§ First: Every living being
values its own life, so no one should destroy that intrinsic value by taking
someone else’s life. This results in very bad kamma.
§ Second: All beings cherish
their own possessions. Even if they don’t appear to have much value, the
owner values them nonetheless. Regardless of its worth, nothing belonging to
another person should be debased by theft or robbery. For such actions
debase not only their possessions, but their hearts as well. Stealing is a
terrible act – so never steal.
§ Third: Husbands and wives,
children and grandchildren, all love each other dearly. They do not want to
see anyone taking liberties with their loved ones. Their personal rights
should be respected and their private space should be off limits to others.
Spousal infringement is extremely damaging to people’s hearts, and as such
is an act of incalculable evil.
§ Fourth: Lies and
prevarication destroy other people’s trust, causing them to lose all
respect. Even animals abhor deceit, so one should never hurt others by using
false, deceitful language.
§ Fifth: Alcohol is by its very
nature intoxicating and immensely harmful. Drinking it can cause a perfectly
normal person to go crazy and steadily waste away. Anyone wishing to remain
a normal, sane human being should refrain from drinking any form of liquor
because it damages physical and mental health, eventually destroying people
and everyone else around them.
Each of these five moral
precepts has its own special benefits. By maintaining the first one, we can
expect to enjoy good health and longevity. By the second, our wealth and
property will be safe from criminal attack or other misfortune. By the
third, family members will keep faith with each other, and live contentedly
without unwanted interference. With the fourth, we will be trusted because
of our integrity. When our speech is charming and pleasant, humans and devas
alike will respect and cherish us. Honest people pose no threat to
themselves or anyone else. And by maintaining the fifth precept, we will be
clever, intelligent people who are not easily misguided nor readily thrown
into confusion.
People who maintain moral
virtue tend to reassure living beings everywhere by promoting a sense of
satisfaction and mutual trust. Immoral people, on the other hand, cause
untold suffering by harming people and animals all over the world. Those who
value their own existence should understand that all people value themselves
similarly, and should, therefore, refrain from harming others in any manner.
Due to the supportive, protective power of moral virtue, honest, virtuous
people can expect to be reborn into an elevated, heavenly existence. Thus it
is vital to maintain high moral standards – the result will surely be a
heavenly destination in the next life. Remember this Dhamma teaching,
practice it diligently, and your future prosperity is assured.
By the time Acariya Mun
finished advising the small novice and his sister, both were delighted by
his teaching and requested the five moral precepts from him, which he gave
them. Having received the moral precepts, they respectfully took leave of
Acariya Mun, and immediately vanished. The power of their accumulated merit
and the goodness they cultivated from attending to his discourse and taking
the five precepts, led the two to be quickly reborn in the Tavatimsa
heavenly realm. They then regularly visited Acariya Mun to hear his
teaching. On their first visit they thanked him for his kind assistance in
illuminating the way out of the vicious cycle they were in, allowing them to
finally enjoy the pleasure of the heavenly existence they had anticipated
for so long. They told him that they now realized the great danger that
attachments pose to the heart, and the delay they can cause in moving on to
a favorable birth. Having received his compassionate advice, they were able
to transcend all their concerns and be reborn in a heavenly realm.
Acariya Mun explained the
nature of emotional attachments to them, pointing out that they are a
hindrance in many different ways. The wise always teach us that at the
moment of death we should be careful not to have emotional attachments to
anything whatsoever. The danger is that we may recall, then, an infatuation
of some kind, or even worse, angry, revengeful thoughts about a particular
person. The moment when the citta is about to leave the physical body is
crucial. If at that moment the citta latches on to a pernicious thought, it
may get burned and end up being reborn into a realm of misery, such as one
of the hells, or a world of demons, ghosts, or animals – all miserable,
unfavorable existences.
So when we’re in a good
position to train the citta – when we are in human birth and fully cognizant
of ourselves – we must take decisive advantage of it. As human beings, we
can realize our shortcomings and quickly act to correct them, so that,
later, when our backs are against the wall – at the time of death – we will
be fully prepared to fend for ourselves. We need not be worried about
falling prey to the destructive forces of evil. The more we train ourselves
to sever all emotional attachments, both good and bad, the better our
position will be.
The wise know that the heart is
the most important thing in the whole universe, for material and spiritual
welfare are dependent upon the heart. So, they make a point of training
their hearts in the correct way and then teach others to do the same. We
live by means of the heart, and experience contentment and dissatisfaction
by means of the heart. When we die, we depart by means of the heart. We are
then born again according to our kamma – with the heart as the sole cause.
As it is the sole source of everything that befalls us, we should train our
hearts in the right way so that we can conduct ourselves properly now and in
the future.
When Acariya Mun finished
speaking the newly reborn devas were overjoyed by his teaching. Praising it
highly, they said they had never heard anything quite like it before. Upon
their departure, they circumambulated him three times, then withdrew to the
edge of his living area before floating up into the air like wisps of cotton
borne by the wind.
ONCE, WHILE LIVING in a deep
mountainous region of Chiang Mai, far from the nearest village, Acariya Mun
saw an extraordinary nimitta arise in his meditation. The hour was three
a.m., a time when the body elements are especially subtle. He had just
awoken from sleep and was sitting in meditation when he noticed that his
citta wanted to rest in complete tranquility. So, he entered into a deep
state of samadhi where he remained for about two hours. Then, his citta
began withdrawing gradually from that state and paused at the level of
upacara samadhi instead of returning to normal, waking consciousness.
Immediately, he became aware of certain events.
A huge elephant appeared.
Walking up to Acariya Mun, it knelt before him, indicating that it wanted
him to mount. Acariya Mun promptly climbed up onto its back and sat
straddling its neck. Once he was settled on the elephant, he noticed two
young monks following behind him, both riding on elephants. Their elephants
were also very large, though slightly smaller than the one he was riding.
The three elephants appeared very handsome and majestic, like royal
elephants that possess human-like intelligence and know their master’s
wishes. When the two elephants reached him, he led them toward a mountain
range that was visible directly ahead, about half a mile away.
Acariya Mun felt the whole
scene to be exceptionally majestic, as though he were escorting the two
young monks away from the world of conventional reality forever. Upon
reaching the mountain range, his elephant led them all to the entrance of a
cave that was situated on a hill a short distance up the mountainside. As
soon as they arrived, it turned around, placing its rear to the entrance.
With Acariya Mun still straddling its neck, it backed into the cave until
its rear was touching the back wall. The other two elephants with the two
young monks astride walked forward into the cave and each took a place on
either side of Acariya Mun’s elephant, facing inward as he faced outward.
Acariya Mun then spoke to the two monks as if he were giving them his final,
parting instructions.
“I have reached my final hour
of birth in a human body. Having been completely cut off, perpetual
existence in the conventional world will soon cease altogether for me. Never
again shall I return to the world of birth and death. I want you both to
return and fully develop yourselves first; then, before long, you will
follow in my footsteps, departing this world in the same manner as I am
preparing to do now. Escaping from the world, with its multitude of
lingering attachments and all of its debilitating pain and suffering, is an
extremely difficult task that demands unwavering commitment. You must exert
yourselves and pour every ounce of energy into the struggle for this
righteous cause – including crossing the very threshold of death – before
you can expect to attain freedom from danger and anxiety. Once freed, you
will never again have to deplore death and grasp at birth in the future.
“Having completely transcended
every residual attachment, I shall depart this world unperturbed, much like
a prisoner released from prison. I have absolutely no lingering regrets
about losing this physical body – unlike most people whose desperate
clinging causes them immense suffering at the time of death. So you should
not mourn my passing in any way, for nothing good will come of it. Such
grief merely promotes the kilesas, so the wise have never encouraged it.”
When he finished speaking,
Acariya Mun told the two young monks to back their elephants out of the
cave. Both elephants had been standing perfectly still, one on either side,
as though they too were listening to Acariya Mun’s parting words and
mourning his imminent departure. At that moment, all three elephants
resembled real, living animals, rather than mere psychic images. At his
command, the two elephants, carrying the young monks, slowly backed out of
the cave, facing Acariya Mun with an imperiously calm demeanor all the
while. Then, as Acariya Mun sat astride its neck, the hindquarters of
Acariya Mun’s elephant began to bore its way into the cave wall. When half
of the elephant’s body had penetrated the wall of the cave, Acariya Mun’s
citta began to withdraw from samadhi. The nimitta ended at that point.
Having never experienced such
an unusual nimitta before, Acariya Mun analyzed it and understood its
meaning as being twofold. Firstly, when he died, two young monks would
attain Dhamma after him, though he didn’t specify who they were. Secondly,
samatha and vipassana are valuable assets for an Arahant to have from the
time of his initial attainment until the time he passes away. During this
whole period, he must rely on samatha and vipassana to be his ‘Dhamma
abodes’,21 easing the discomfort that is experienced between the citta and
the five khandhas, which remain interdependent until that moment – popularly
known as ‘death’ – when the mundane khandhas and the transcendent citta22 go
their separate ways. At death, samatha and vipassana cease to function,
disappearing like all other mundane phenomena. Following that, nothing
further can be said.
Most people would have been
terrified to see the elephant they were riding bore its rear end into the
wall of a cave. But in the event, Acariya Mun felt unperturbed – he simply
allowed the elephant to complete its appointed task. At the same time, it
was heartening for him to know that two young monks would realize Dhamma
around the time of his death, either just before or soon after. He said it
was very strange that, in his parting instructions to them, he spoke about
his own impending death as though his time had already come.
Unfortunately, Acariya Mun
never revealed the names of those two monks. Hearing this story from him, I
was so eager to find out their names that I completely neglected to consider
my own shortcomings. I kept trying to imagine which of my fellow monks they
might be. I’ve kept an eye on this matter ever since Acariya Mun passed
away. But even as I write his biography I still don’t have a clue who these
auspicious monks might be. The more I think about it, the more I see the
folly of jumping to conclusions.23
No one has admitted to being
one of those monks – which is understandable. Who would publicize their
attainments like that? Such achievements are not rotten fish to be peddled
about merely to attract a swarm of flies. Anyone attaining that level of
Dhamma must possess a very high degree of intelligence and propriety. Would
he then be so stupid as to broadcast his achievements so that fools could
laugh at him while the wise deplore it? Only the gullible would get excited
about such news – like those in the story of the panic-stricken rabbit who,
hearing a loud thud, imagined the sky was caving in.24
My own foolishness about this
matter has eventually subsided, so I have written it down for your
consideration. I deserve blame for any impropriety here, for such stories
are usually shared only between a teacher and his inner circle of disciples
so that no one is adversely affected. I know I deserve the criticism, and I
hope, as always, that you will be kind enough to forgive me.
Hungry Ghosts
Giving helpful advice to
nonphysical beings from many diverse realms of existence was a serious
responsibility that Acariya Mun continued to fulfill right up to the time of
his death. He was in constant communication with such beings wherever he
lived, but more so in the mountain regions. There, in remote wilderness
areas, far from human habitation, one group or another visited with him
almost every night. Even hungry ghosts, awaiting offerings of merit
dedicated to them by their living relatives, came to seek his assistance. It
was impossible to tell how long they had been dead, what family or
nationality they had once belonged to, or even whether or not those ghosts
had any living relatives left at all. In contacting Acariya Mun they hoped
that, out of compassion, he would assist them by finding their living
relatives and telling them to make donations, dedicating a portion of the
merit to the dead to help lessen their torment and suffering and make their
lives more bearable. Many of them had already suffered unspeakable miseries
in hell for such a long time that it was impossible to calculate the length
of their stay in terms of human existence. When they were finally able to
rise clear of the hell realms, they still could not evade such misfortune
sufficiently to experience some measure of comfort; instead, their suffering
continued unabated. For beings who are stuck with the consequences of their
evil kamma, it matters little which state of existence they are born into,
since very little changes to help alleviate their suffering.
Hungry ghosts used to tell
Acariya Mun they had no idea how long it would take them to work their way
through the consequences of their evil deeds. They clung to one desperate
hope: if he could kindly inform living relatives of their plight, those
relatives might be willing to share the merit of their good deeds with them,
allowing them to escape from such unbearable torment. When he questioned the
hungry ghosts about their relatives, they talked about another world
altogether, one that was incomprehensible to him. Having died and been
reborn in one of the realms of hell, some had remained there for tens or
even hundreds of thousands of years in nonphysical existence before being
released into another lesser state where they had to work through the
remainder of their evil kamma. Their ghost-like existence then lasted
another five hundred to a thousand nonphysical years, so it was quite
impossible to trace their family lineage. Such was the cruel irony of their
karmic dilemma: by the time that the most severe consequences of their kamma
were exhausted and only the lesser aspects remained – a state where they
could finally receive assistance from their relatives – they had lost all
track of their families. So they had no choice but to suffer that karmic
misery indefinitely, without any idea when it would end. Such ghosts
resembled stray animals who have no owners to care for them.
Other hungry ghosts could be
helped somewhat, for they died only recently and their kamma was not so
severe – meaning that they were in a position to receive merit dedicated to
them by their relatives. Since they had living relatives whose names and
addresses they could recall, Acariya Mun was able to give them some
assistance as long as their families lived in the vicinity where he was
residing. Once he knew who they were, he looked for an opportunity to speak
with them. He advised them to dedicate to their dead relatives, who awaited,
the merit they made by performing special religious functions – or more
commonly, by daily offerings of food to the monks. Some ghosts are able to
receive a portion of the merit made by generous people everywhere even
though it is not specifically dedicated to them. Therefore, Acariya Mun
always made such dedications while extending loving kindness to all living
beings. According to the specific nature of their kamma, some ghosts can
receive merit dedicated by anyone, while others can receive only the merit
that is personally dedicated to them by their relatives. Acariya Mun said
that ghosts live a very peculiar type of existence. From his extensive
experience with them, he always found ghosts far more bothersome than any
other class of nonphysical beings. Having no recourse to merit of their own,
ghosts depend on and always feel indebted to others for their survival.
Should these others fail them, the ghosts are left completely destitute.
Their dependence on others puts them in the extremely difficult position of
never being able to stand on their own.
Generosity and other forms of
merit-making are vitally important as the key elements for laying a
foundation of individual self-reliance in this and in all future lives. All
living beings are the product of their kamma. They themselves must take full
responsibility for the consequences they encounter. No one else can accept
that responsibility because no one can experience the kamma generated by
another. Births, both good and bad, and the relative degrees of comfort and
pain one experiences therein, are the sole responsibility of the individual
who created the circumstances that produced these outcomes. No being can
substitute for another in this regard. Even those who expect no benefit from
their actions still receive the karmic credit for them.
Acariya Mun was an expert in
matters concerning ghosts, devas, brahmas, yakkhas, nagas, and garudas.
Although he did not always reveal the extent of his knowledge, he had the
ability to explore endless varieties of phenomena within the many gross and
refined nonphysical states of existence that lie beyond the range of human
perception. His stories about ghosts were quite hair-raising – even those
without fear of ghosts couldn’t help but feel trepidation about the
mysterious powers of kamma. He said that if only people could see their own
and other people’s good and bad kamma in the way they see substantive
things, like water and fire, no one would dare do evil anymore than they
would dare walk into a blazing fire. Instead, they would be eager to do only
good – which has the cool, refreshing quality of water. Trouble would
gradually diminish in the world as each person worked to guard himself
against the dangers of evil.
ONCE WHEN ACARIYA MUN was
explaining about heaven, hell, and the ghost realms to the monks, one of his
senior disciples spoke up: “Since people cannot actually see heaven and hell
or the various nonphysical beings like ghosts, devas, garudas, and nagas,
they can’t fully understand the ultimate consequences of their actions. But
you can see all those things, so wouldn’t it be a good idea for you to
elucidate them for the benefit of people everywhere? All are natural
phenomena which were clearly understood by the Lord Buddha and his Arahant
disciples. No one has ever faulted the Buddha and his disciples for teaching
people about them, so I don’t see why anyone should object to your doing so.
People are likely to show the same appreciation for your amazing talents as
we, your disciples, do.”
Acariya Mun was adamant in his
response:
“The kind of craziness that you
suggest will destroy us both. I have never considered speaking out publicly
about this matter. Should I do so, you and I and the rest of the monks
sitting here would end up being a bunch of lunatics. And once the whole
monastery has gone mad, what kind of monastic asylum do you think would
accept us all? The sasana was proclaimed and taught with discretion – to be
practiced, understood, and spoken about with discretion. This nonsense you
suggest – is it really a matter of discretion, or is it something foolhardy?
Think about it. In my opinion, the very thought of it is crazy, let alone
actually suggesting it. Even though people might survive listening to us
talk about it, we ourselves would surely be doomed. So why bring it up?
“If you consider the tangible,
visible things all around us, people everywhere are quite capable of dealing
with them in an appropriate, reasonable manner. Although Dhamma is the
Supreme Truth, it still counts on the involvement of people in the world, so
we should always work to harmonize the proprieties of society with the Truth
of Dhamma. The Buddha was the first to clearly know and understand the true
nature of all phenomena. He spoke about them with absolute assurance, but he
was always impeccably discreet in the way he handled these issues. Speaking
publicly about any of them, he invariably took the specific circumstances
and the people he was addressing into consideration. He spoke then only with
the utmost discernment and discretion. “Knowledge and understanding about
the diverse nature of nonphysical phenomena is a prerogative of the one who
has attained that kind of perception. But talking away indiscriminately
about such knowledge is quite abnormal, so normal people are reluctant to
listen. This is not intended to be a criticism of anyone. Rather, what’s
important to keep in mind here is that those who do possess such knowledge
should act properly according to the principles of Dhamma – for their own
benefit and for the benefit of everyone associating with them. Being
convinced of the amazing nature of what we have perceived is not sufficient
reason to speak out about things which may encourage others to go mad. Those
people, who are keen on listening to such talk simply because their
religious conviction is dependent on hearing about amazing phenomena, are
already on the road to madness. So I don’t approve of conviction and
amazement of this kind. I’d prefer that the kind of discernment the Lord
Buddha taught us be used by people in their convictions, and in their sense
of amazement. Even though we aren’t all exceptionally wise, at least there’s
hope that enough good judgment will be shown to maintain the sasana,
preserving it for the future.
“Let me ask you this: Suppose
you had a certain amount of money which could be useful to you if you were
clever, but harmful to you if you weren’t. How would you handle it when
going into a crowd of people to insure that both you and your money were
safe?”
The senior disciple replied:
“I’d take every reasonable precaution to look after my money.”
“How exactly would you go about
looking after it in a large crowd of people to avoid any possible danger?”
“If I felt it was appropriate
to spend some of my money there, I’d take care to count out and hand over
the necessary amount without allowing anyone to see the larger amount that I
still had with me. That amount I’d keep well hidden from view to avoid any
possible danger.”
Acariya Mun then said: “Okay
now, let’s suppose that you possess a certain knowledge and understanding
about ghosts and other nonphysical beings. How would you handle that
knowledge discreetly in relation to others so that it would be of some
benefit to them without becoming an issue of widespread, public notoriety,
which could be harmful to both you and the sasana?”
“I’d have to use the same kind
of care in handling such knowledge that I’d use in handling my money.”
“Just a moment ago, you implied
that I should broadcast my knowledge about such phenomena to the general
public without ever considering the consequences. Why was that? I figure
that the average discriminating person would never suggest what you just
did, and yet you spoke right up. If you don’t even have the common sense of
the average person, what will anyone find to admire in you? I fail to see
anything at all admirable in your thinking. Should someone reproach you for
lacking judgment, how would you defend yourself when confronted with the
truth of this accusation? Think about it: Which are the greater in this
world, the wise or the foolish? And how would anyone be able to reasonably
maintain the sasana and preserve its continued welfare by following the
suggestion you made to me just now?”
His disciple replied: “Thinking
about it now, I feel that what I suggested was totally wrong. I spoke up
because hearing about such amazing things has so inspired me that I wanted
to share this knowledge with people everywhere. I assumed they would
probably be inspired as well and so benefit enormously from it. But I never
considered the obvious adverse consequences that such a disclosure would
have for the whole sasana. Please be kind enough to forgive me – I don’t
want to see this tendency to be indiscreet become ingrained in my character.
I shall try to be more circumspect in the future so that it doesn’t happen
again. “If someone reproaches me for lacking judgment, I will gladly admit
my mistake for I clearly deserve the criticism. Until you asked me just now,
I had never really considered whether or not the fools outnumber the wise.
Now I realize that there must be many more fools in this world, since in our
village communities there are very few wise people who care about moral
issues. Mostly, people don’t seem to know what they’re here for and where
they are going. They aren’t very interested in thinking about why they do
things and whether they do right or wrong, good or bad. Being satisfied with
whatever is easy and convenient at the moment, they simply let fate decide
their future. I understand all this a lot better now. Those people who are
capable of reasonably maintaining the sasana and preserving its continued
welfare must be wise and discerning people who lead others in an even,
harmonious manner so that everyone can benefit from their example. A wise,
discerning teacher is the cornerstone of success in the same way that a
capable leader is essential to all affairs in all walks of life.”
Acariya Mun took up the
discussion at this point:
“Since you’re capable of
understanding that a wise person is essential to the success of every
endeavor, why don’t you think about what’s important in your own endeavors
as a practicing monk? Spiritual endeavors, being very subtle, are difficult
to fully understand. For this reason, only clever, discerning people can
uphold the sasana to perfection. Here I’m not referring to the kind of
cleverness that causes destruction in the world and damage to the sasana,
but cleverness that discriminates wisely, making decisions favorable to
one’s material and spiritual prosperity. It’s this type of cleverness that’s
implicit in the first two factors of the Noble Eightfold Path: Samma-ditthi
and Samma-sankappo – Right View and Right Thought. And these factors are
personified by someone whose words and actions always follow the principles
of wisdom. “Even Right Samadhi is dependent on the analytical, probing
wisdom of Right View to avoid becoming ‘comatose samadhi’. When the citta
converges into a state of calm, wisdom should always be there, playing a
supportive role. Otherwise, how could those dedicated to understanding the
true nature of all phenomena deal correctly with the knowledge arising
within the citta, or the external phenomena with which it comes into
contact? If wisdom is not there to help, one is bound to make mistakes in
judgment.
“The diversity of internal and
external phenomena that can become involved with samadhi is limitless, the
perception of them being limited only by each individual’s natural
inclinations. Those so inclined will naturally perceive such phenomena and
nothing can prevent them from doing so. But the key factor here is wisdom.
Wisdom analyzes arising phenomena and then chooses the ones that are
suitable to focus on, so that the rest can be allowed to pass by without
causing trouble. Those lacking wisdom will even have a hard time
successfully getting through the samadhi practice: they will find themselves
being pleased with this perception or displeased with that one, ecstatic
about this, despondent about that – all are emotional reactions impinging on
the heart, causing it to become attached. Unless wisdom is present to
effectively deal with them, such disturbing emotional attachments can never
be eliminated. Wisdom can be selective, ignoring what is superfluous to
focus on what is essential thus indicating the direction in which one’s
practice should proceed.
“Our purpose in being ordained
as Buddhist monks is to search for knowledge and wisdom so that we can
develop those virtuous qualities admired by people everywhere. We aren’t
here to parade our ineptitude in front of the kilesas by succumbing to their
devious tricks, but rather to develop clever tactics of our own to
outmaneuver the kilesas, thus countering their tricks. Living without an
adequate means of protection, we leave ourselves in a very precarious
position. The principles of Dhamma and the monastic discipline are a monk’s
protective armor, while mindfulness and wisdom are his preferred weapons. If
we want to remain steady in our practice and be constant in all situations,
we must maintain mindfulness and wisdom in all our daily activities.
Mindfulness and wisdom must permeate all that we think, say, and do –
without exception. Only then can we be certain of our mode of practice.
“I’d really like to see all my
students display uncompromising diligence in their efforts to transcend
dukkha, using mindfulness and wisdom to oversee this work. You will thus
make yourselves worthy recipients of the Buddha’s outstanding teaching which
stresses the importance of using skillful means in all circumstances. I have
no desire to see my students floundering foolishly in a state of confusion
about emotional attachments because complacency and laziness keep them from
doing the work necessary to carry them beyond these dangers. So don’t be
indifferent to the work at hand.
“A practicing monk who is
striving to cross beyond the world of samsara is engaged in the noblest form
of endeavor. No other kind of work is more demanding than the task of
lifting the heart beyond the pain and suffering experienced in samsara.25 It
requires unstinting effort on all fronts – including a willingness to
sacrifice your life. Entrust your life to your own diligent efforts as they
attempt to pull you from the abyss of the kilesas. Unlike other types of
work, there is no room for ambiguity here. If you want to realize the
wondrous results that you have yet to experience, you must persist in
putting your life on the line for the sake of Dhamma. No other method can be
expected to achieve the right result. You must be willing to give your life
to transcend the world of samsara. Only then will you be free of the burden
of dukkha in future births.
“I myself never expected to
survive and become a teacher, for my determination to transcend samsara was
much stronger than my concern for staying alive. All my efforts in all
circumstances were directed toward a goal beyond life. I never allowed
regrets about losing my life to distract me from my purpose. The desire to
maintain my course on the path to liberation kept me under constant pressure
and directed my every move. I resolved that if my body could not withstand
the pressure, I would just have to die. I had already died so many countless
times in the past that I was fed up with dying anyway. But were I to live, I
desired only to realize the same Dhamma that the Buddha had attained. I had
no wish to achieve anything else, for I had had enough of every other type
of accomplishment. At that time, my overriding desire was to avoid rebirth
and being trapped once more in the cycle of birth and death.
“The effort that I put forth to
attain Dhamma can be compared to a turbine, rotating non-stop, or to a
‘Wheel of Dhamma’ whirling ceaselessly day and night as it cuts its way
through every last vestige of the kilesas. Only at sleep did I allow myself
a temporary respite from this rigorous practice. As soon as I woke up, I was
back at work, using mindfulness, wisdom, faith, and diligence to root out
and destroy those persistent kilesas that still remained. I persevered in
that pitched battle with the kilesas until mindfulness, wisdom, faith and
diligence had utterly destroyed them all. Only then could I finally relax.
From that moment on, I knew for certain that the kilesas had been vanquished
– categorically, never to return and cause trouble again. But the body, not
having disintegrated along with the kilesas, remained alive.
“This is something you should
all think about carefully. Do you want to advance fearlessly in the face of
death, and strive diligently to leave behind the misery that’s been such a
painful burden on your hearts for so long? Or do you want to persist in your
regrets about having to die, and so be reborn into this miserable condition
again? Hurry up and think about it! Don’t allow yourselves to become trapped
by dukkha, wasting this opportunity – you’ll regret it for a long time to
come.
“The battlefield for conquering
the kilesas exists within each individual who practices with wisdom, faith,
and perseverance as weapons for fighting his way to freedom. It is very
counterproductive to believe that you have plenty of time left since you’re
still young and in good health. Practicing monks should decisively reject
such thinking. It is the heart alone that engenders all misjudgment and all
wisdom, so you should not focus your attention outside of yourself. Since
they are constantly active, pay close attention to your actions, speech, and
thoughts to determine the kind of results they produce. Are they producing
Dhamma, which is an antidote to the poisons of apathy and self-indulgence;
or are they producing a tonic that nourishes the delusions that cause
dukkha, giving them strength to extend the cycle of existence indefinitely?
Whatever they are, the results of your actions, speech, and thoughts should
be thoroughly examined in every detail; or else, you’ll encounter nothing
but failure and never rise above the pain and misery that haunt this world.”
Acariya Mun’s response to the
monk, who suggested that he teach people indiscriminately about the unusual
phenomena he experienced, was fierce and uncompromising. The gist of his
reply makes for a remarkable Dhamma teaching – one that is seldom heard. It
seems unlikely that the monk deserved a condemnation as strong as Acariya
Mun’s stirring rebuke might have suggested. Perhaps speaking up was his way
of prompting Acariya Mun into giving us a talk. As far as I could tell, if
nothing out of the ordinary happened to strike his heart and provoke a
response, Acariya Mun preferred to speak in a smooth, easy manner –
especially when the subject was very profound. At such times, however, his
listeners often felt something missing and were not fully satisfied with his
teaching. But if someone started something by asking him a question, or if
he became annoyed hearing some monks talk ambiguously about Dhamma, or if
their discussion piqued his interest, then the Dhamma in his heart began to
stir and stream forth, expressing itself in unusual ways that lent fire and
excitement to our listening.
Each time Acariya Mun delivered
a declamation of this kind his audience felt deeply moved in a way that’s
difficult to describe. I myself, having a rather rough temperament, always
preferred listening to his fiery exhortations since they fit so well with my
natural disposition. For this reason, I reckon that those monks who employed
various means to provoke Acariya Mun into fiery talks were in fact using
their ingenuity to come up with clever provocations. Since they probably
intended to benefit from his response, they were not entirely in the wrong.
The resolute Dhamma expositions that inspired me the most invariably
occurred when I asked him probing, prodding questions. His explanations then
were bound to be directed personally at me, unlike the general explanations
meant for all the monks. Once I had lived with him for some time, I came to
know many different ways of eliciting his comments without waiting for him
to bring these matters up himself in a general monastic meeting.
ONCE ACARIYA MUN and three or
four monks were living in a secluded cave in Chiang Dao district. After
passing three nights there, Acariya Mun told the monks that, in his
meditation, he had seen a spacious, inviting cave situated high up a steep
mountain slope in the area nearby. He told them that many Paccekabuddhas26
had resided there in the past, but that nowadays monks couldn’t live there:
the ascent was too steep and the location too high for finding a place
within walking distance where they could obtain alms food. He told the monks
to climb up the mountain to look at the cave, and insisted they take a
supply of food with them. Since there was no path leading up to the
mountain, they would have to climb as best they could until they reached the
summit. The cave was situated a short distance from the very top.
Taking several lay people
along, the monks made the climb to the summit where they found a beautiful,
spacious cave, exactly as Acariya Mun had predicted. The air was clear and
the ambiance pleasant and inviting. The monks were so pleased with their
discovery that they didn’t want to leave. They would have preferred to
remain there indefinitely, practicing meditation. Unfortunately, the cave
was so high up and so far from the nearest village that they had no place to
go for almsround. When the food they brought was nearly exhausted, they had
to come back down to the cave where Acariya Mun resided. Upon their return,
he asked them about their impressions.
“Well, how was the cave, nice
and inviting? Seeing an image of it in my meditation, I felt it was so
beautiful and spacious that I wanted you all to go up and take a look. I was
sure you’d like it. When we first arrived, I didn’t think to examine this
mountain to see what’s here. When investigating it a few days later, I
discovered how many strange, amazing things it contains. That cave you went
to is constantly protected by terrestrial devas. Anyone acting improperly
there can expect to feel the consequences. When I sent you up there, I
forgot to mention that the cave is protected by devas and to warn you to
restrain yourselves and behave properly the whole time. I didn’t want you to
be loud and noisy, which is unacceptable behavior for a monk. I was afraid
that if the devas protecting the cave were displeased, they might cause you
discomfort by precipitating something unpleasant.”
The monks informed Acariya Mun
that they’d prefer to spend a longer time in the cave; but he insisted that,
no matter how attractive the place was, it would not be possible to live
there because no food was available. Acariya Mun spoke of the cave in a very
matter-of-fact way, as though he had actually seen it many times. Of course,
he had never gone up there, the climb being too steep and difficult.
Nonetheless, he spoke about it with the assurance of someone who knew for
certain that the knowledge arising in his meditation was no mere illusion.
Acariya Mun constantly warned
his monks to behave in a careful, restrained manner wherever they went, for
the devas living in those remote places prefer everything to be orderly and
very clean. When terrestrial devas witness such slovenly behavior as a monk
sleeping carelessly, lying on his back spread-eagled like a corpse, tossing
and mumbling in his sleep like an idiot, they feel quite disgusted – regard
less of the fact that it’s impossible for a sleeping person to control his
actions. Devas often approached Acariya Mun to explain how they felt about
this matter.
“Monks occupy positions of
reverence and esteem in the hearts and minds of living beings everywhere, so
their deportment should be guarded and restrained at all times – even while
sleeping. As far as possible, a monk’s appearance should be attractive and
pleasing, never disagreeable or offensive. We hate to see monks behaving
intemperately – like ordinary lay people showing little concern for the
consequences. Especially since the circumspection needed to act with
restraint is well within their capabilities. It’s not our intention to be
critical of all monks. Devas everywhere are grateful for the opportunity to
pay homage to those monks exhibiting exemplary behavior because we all
appreciate virtue and dearly wish to uphold the sasana. We mention this to
you so you can warn your disciples to conduct themselves in a restrained
manner that’s appealing to human beings and devas alike. Monks, who are
worthy of respect, will cause devas of all realms to feel an even deeper
reverence for the sasana.”
In response to what the devas
told him, Acariya Mun always cautioned his disciples to keep all their
requisites in a neat, orderly fashion when staying in remote mountainous
areas favored by terrestrial devas. Even the foot-wiping rags had to be
neatly folded and not just tossed in a heap. His monks were required to
relieve themselves in appropriate places, and latrines were dug only after
careful consideration of the surrounding area. Sometimes Acariya Mun
explicitly told the monks not to make a latrine under a certain tree, or in
a certain area, because the devas residing there, or passing through on
their way to visit him, would be displeased.
Monks who were already well
acquainted with the deva world needed no such caution, for they were fully
aware of the correct way to behave. Many of Acariya Mun’s disciples do
possess this capability. However, because their proficiency in such matters
is developed in the wilds, they are reluctant to speak about it openly,
fearing that learned people everywhere will make fun of them. But within the
circle of kammatthana monks, it’s easy to determine their identity simply by
listening to their discussions about various devas who came to visit them
and the nature of their conversations with these nonphysical beings. At the
same time, we can get an insight into each monk’s level of spiritual
attainment.
The Hypercritical Nàga
At one point Acariya Mun spent
some time living in Chiang Dao Cave – not the long cave in the middle of the
mountain that has become popular with tourists, but one higher up the
mountain. This cave was home to a great naga27 who had kept guard over it
for a very long time. Apparently this naga was rather conceited and had a
tendency to be overly critical of monks. During his stay in the cave,
Acariya Mun became the object of this naga’s constant criticism. It found
fault with nearly everything he did. It appeared incapable of accepting
Acariya Mun’s thoughts of loving kindness, probably as a consequence of its
long-standing enmity toward monks.
At night when Acariya Mun wore
his sandals to do walking meditation, the naga complained about the sound of
his footsteps: “What kind of a monk are you, stomping around like an
unbridled race horse? The sound of your sandals striking the earth shakes
the whole mountain. Did you ever think you might be annoying somebody with
all that noise?” It raised these complaints despite Acariya Mun’s composed
manner of pacing softly back and forth. Hearing the criticisms, he took care
to walk even more softly than before; but still, the naga wasn’t satisfied:
“What kind of a monk are you, walking meditation like somebody sneaking
around hunting birds?” Occasionally, Acariya Mun’s foot would stumble on a
stone in the meditation path, causing a slight thumping sound which elicited
another reproach: “What kind of a monk are you, bucking up and down your
meditation path like a chorus dancer?” There were times when Acariya Mun
leveled out the surface of his meditation path to facilitate smooth, easy
walking. As he moved stones around and put them neatly into place, the naga
complained: “What kind of a monk are you, always moving things around –
you’re never satisfied. Don’t you realize that all your fussing about gives
others a splitting headache?”
Acariya Mun had to exercise
special care with whatever he did at that cave. Even then, this opinionated
naga would find an excuse to criticize him. Should his body move slightly
while he slept at night, he could sense psychically upon awakening that the
naga had been criticizing him for tossing, turning, wheezing, snoring, and
so on. Focusing his attention on this angry, hypercritical naga, Acariya Mun
always found its head sticking out, peering at him intently, as though it
never took its eyes off him. Vicious-looking and mean-spirited, it refused
to accept any merit dedicated to it and was determined to indulge in
feelings of anger that burned like a fire inside its heart. Seeing that it
compounded its evil kamma all the time, Acariya Mun felt truly sorry for the
naga. But as long as it showed no interest in reasonable discourse, it was
impossible for him to help in any way. All it could think about was
fault-finding. On one occasion, Acariya Mun explained the general principles
underlying a monk’s life, specifically mentioning his own purpose and
intentions:
“My purpose for being here is
not to cause trouble to somebody else, but rather to work as best I can for
my own benefit and the benefit of others. So you should not entertain
ignoble thoughts, thinking that I’m here to cause you harm or discomfort. I
am here consciously trying to do good so that I can share the merit of my
actions with all living beings without exception. That includes you as well,
so you needn’t be upset thinking that I’ve come just to annoy you.
“Physical activity is a normal
feature of people’s everyday life. Comings and goings are part of living in
this world – only the dead cease to move about. Although as a monk I am
always self-composed, I’m not a corpse in repose: I have to inhale and
exhale, and the force of my breathing varies from one posture to another. My
breathing continues to function while I sleep, as does my whole body; so,
naturally, there will be some sounds emitted. The same is true when I awaken
and begin walking-meditation, or perform chores. There is some sound, but
always within the bounds of moderation. When have you ever seen a monk
standing frozen stiff like a corpse, never moving a muscle? Human beings
don’t behave like that.
“I try hard to walk as
carefully and softly as possible, but still you complain that I walk like a
race horse. In truth, an animal like a race horse and a virtuous monk
mindfully walking meditation could not be more different, one from the
other. You should avoid making such comparisons. Otherwise, you become a
wretched individual aiming for a berth in hell. It’s impossible for me to
satisfy all your unreasonable whims. If, like everyone else, you expect to
find happiness and prosperity, then consider your own faults for awhile and
stop lugging the fires of hell around in your heart all the time. Only then
will you find a way out.
“Criticizing other people’s
faults, even when they really are wrong, merely serves to increase your own
irritation and put you in a bad mood. My behavior here is in no way improper
for a monk, yet you keep carping about it constantly. If you were a human
being, you’d probably be incapable of living in normal society: you’d see
the world as one big garbage dump and yourself as pure solid gold. Such
feelings of alienation are due to emotional turmoil caused by your
hypercritical attitude – which gives you no peace. The wise have always
condemned unjustified criticism of others, saying it brings terrible moral
consequences. So why do you enjoy doing it with such a vengeance, and such
indifference to the painful consequences? I’m not the one who suffers from
your criticism – it is your own emotional health that’s adversely affected.
Such ill effects are quite obvious, so how can you be unaware that your
whole attitude is wrong? I’m fully cognizant of everything you are thinking,
and at the same time, I have always forgiven you. You concentrate on doing
terrible things that consume your mind and ravage your heart as though you
can’t get enough of doing evil. Were your condition a disease, it would be
an untreatable one.
“I have been trying to change
your mental attitude, just as I’ve long been trying to help many other
living beings. Human beings, ghosts, devas, brahmas, yakkhas, and even great
nagas far more powerful than yourself, have all accepted the truth of the
Lord Buddha’s teaching on kamma. None, except you, have angrily criticized
the value of Dhamma, which is revered throughout the world systems. And
you’re so peculiar that you won’t accept the truth of anything at all. The
only pleasure you take is in making derogatory remarks and angrily censuring
people who have done nothing wrong. You devote yourself to these as though
they were propitious actions. But the wise have never thought that such
actions foster peace and security. When you finally slough off the skin of
this ill-fated existence, you won’t then encounter a pleasant, pain-free
existence, unaffected by the evil consequences of your actions.
“I apologize for speaking so
candidly about the principles of Dhamma, but my intentions are good. Nothing
malicious is intended in my remarks, regardless of what misconceptions you
may have. Since the very beginning of my stay here, I have tried to do
everything in a careful, restrained manner, for I know that this is your
home and I’m concerned that my presence here may inconvenience you. Although
I am well aware that you’re an individual who delights in looking for things
to criticize, I still can’t seem to avoid being seen in a disparaging light.
I myself experience genuine contentment, unaffected even by constant
criticism. But, I worry that the repercussions of your dogged pursuit of
evil will be extremely unpleasant for you. I did not come here in search of
wickedness or evil. Being quite sure that everything I do and say emanates
from a pure heart, I have no fear that my actions will incur any unpleasant
moral consequences.
“As soon as intelligent people
begin to understand the difference between secular matters and spiritual
ones, they tend to appreciate virtuous conduct, admiring all wholesome,
meritorious actions performed for the sake of peace and happiness. From ages
past, the wise have always taught living beings to feel good about being
virtuous. So why do you adhere to the maverick notion that it’s all right to
strip yourself of virtue and wallow in evil? You seem to detest virtue so
dreadfully much that you can’t be bothered to reflect on your own vices.
Although I won’t be experiencing the dire consequences that await you, still
I fear for you in that miserable state. You must stop thinking in ways that
are harmful, for the mean intent behind your actions has the power to
deprive you of all moral value. Such undesirable consequences, bringing
unimaginable torment, are what I fear more than anything else in the world.
The whole world dreads old age, sickness, and death, but I don’t fear them
nearly so much as I fear evil and its attendant consequences.
“People with kilesas tend to
eschew spiritual principles, preferring instead the things that religious
tenets proscribe. So ordaining as a Buddhist monk to practice the Teaching
and the Discipline requires us to undergo an agonizing character
transformation. Even though I knew how difficult it would be to oppose the
kilesas, I nonetheless felt compelled to join the monkhood and endure the
severe hardship. The extreme discomfort caused by constantly opposing the
kilesas – that’s what makes the practice so difficult. But if we desire to
transcend kamma and the defiling kilesas that create it, we must endure such
torment – for kilesas always steadfastly resist the teachings of the Lord
Buddha.
“I’ve come here to practice,
living in this cave like a worthless social outcast, solely because I fear
evil and its consequences. I did not come here to harm or trouble anyone.
Nor do I feel contempt for any living being. I respect them all as friends
whose lives are also subject to the law of kamma, and who are thus all of
equal intrinsic value. I dedicate the merit of my actions equally to all
beings with the hope that they may live in contentment wherever they may be.
I have never taken the arrogant attitude that I’m a human being ordained as
a Buddhist monk and therefore superior to my companions in birth, ageing,
sickness, and death.
“You too exist within the
sphere of kamma, so you ought to humbly reflect on how your own faults
affect you. Criticizing others without proper consideration will never bring
you good results – it merely piles up the ill effects of bad kamma, which
then linger on indefinitely. You should feel dismayed by your errant
behavior and drop this dangerous practice. Only then can you hope to become
a good individual with a chance for a better, happier birth in the future.
Then your mean, angry heart will soften, and you can avoid being engulfed in
misery forever. “All living beings in the universe – from humans and animals
to devas, brahmas, and yakkhas – cherish happiness and loathe suffering.
They do not have an aversion for Dhamma simply because they can’t yet put it
into practice. Dhamma has always been the quintessential nature of the
universe. Those beings who are in a position to practice Dhamma find great
satisfaction in it – for instance, human beings. Their state of birth makes
them well suited to the practice of Dhamma.
“You yourself are a living
being who’s fully capable of distinguishing between good and bad, and thus
choosing what’s most beneficial for you. So why do you do just the opposite?
I’m puzzled that you seem content to revel in those things which the wise
abhor while scorning those which the wise applaud. You know about dukkha and
you hate it, yet you strive to produce the very causes that bring you great
unhappiness and discomfort. The wise tell us that our efforts to find fault
with others produce consequences that cause greater and greater unhappiness
– exactly what you shamelessly do all the time. You may not be interested,
but although I’m fully aware of your despicable thoughts, I’ve always
forgiven you. I’m not angry or offended, but I do feel sorry for you. Thus,
I have decided to tell you the plain truth. Should it prove useful to you, I
shall be pleased for your sake. I receive no unpleasant consequences from
your thoughts for I’m not the one who engages in them. All I experience are
peace, serenity, and loving compassion that have long been my heart’s
abode.”
The naga didn’t make any
comment as Acariya Mun explained these various aspects of Dhamma, but it did
experience the rise of some salutary thoughts while listening: This monk
talks a lot of sense. But right now I’m unable to do as he says, being still
too content with my old ways. Perhaps I’ll have more interest in my next
existence. This monk has many awesome qualities – he even perceives things
that should be unknowable. How can he know my private thoughts? I live in a
hidden world, yet somehow he sees me. Over the years, many monks have come
to stay in this cave, but none have known about my existence, much less my
thoughts. I’ve even forced some of them to flee because I couldn’t stand
having them around.28 But this monk knows everything, including my thoughts.
Even while sleeping he remains aware. Later, he can tell me exactly what I
was thinking, as if he hadn’t been asleep at all. Why am I so opinionated
that I can’t take what he teaches to heart and put it into practice? Like he
said: I must surely have some very grave kamma. Despite knowing the
despicable nature of my mind, he still makes an effort to explain how his
daily activities are not intended to bother me. My present state of
existence is certainly unfortunate. He’s right when he says that I’m quite
capable of distinguishing between good and bad. Yet I’m hampered by my
wretched conceit, meaning that my next life will probably be just as
unfortunate as this one – and so on indefinitely.
After a short pause Acariya Mun
asked the naga if it had managed to understand any of his explanations on
Dhamma. The naga replied: “I understand everything you so kindly explained
to me. But unfortunately, I’m burdened by some very grave kamma and I’ve yet
to grow weary of my wretched condition. I’m still debating this matter with
myself and I haven’t come to any definite conclusions. My heart tends to
gravitate toward a state of degradation, as it always has, so it balks at
listening to the Dhamma you are teaching.” Acariya Mun asked the naga what
it meant by saying that its heart lied to gravitate toward a state of
degradation.
The naga answered: “My heart
enjoys finding fault with you all the time, even though you’ve done nothing
wrong – that’s just the way my heart is. I don’t know how to convince myself
of the harmful effects of this tendency so that I can correct it and
practice the way of virtue from now on.”
Acariya Mun offered some
encouragement:
“Careful consideration will
convince you that such bad tendencies are truly harmful. Once you are
persuaded, then evil will naturally begin to fade from your heart, ceasing
to be so conspicuous in the future. But by assuming that these tendencies
are beneficial and then encouraging them, you will naturally tend to think
in an endless variety of ways that are detrimental to you. Unless you hurry
to improve things now, you’ll keep on doing evil until you are completely
beyond help. I cannot do this job for you. I can give some guidance, but
it’s up to you to make the necessary adjustments in your character. The onus
is on you to press ahead, trying to accomplish this as best you can. Once
you do, you will see the dangerous aspects of your character gradually
diminish as beneficial qualities develop, displacing them until all that’s
left is pure, simple virtue, untainted by any form of evil. By placing your
faith in the Dhamma of the Lord Buddha, which has always helped living
beings to transcend dukkha, you will always be contented living under its
protective influence. Never feeling distraught, never disturbed, you will
remain even-tempered in every situation. You won’t be moved to praise one
thing as good or criticize another as bad, and so suffer the resulting
consequences – conduct that’s contrary to the way of the wise.”
At the conclusion of these
remarks, the naga promised to make an effort to follow Acariya Mun’s advice.
In the days that followed, Acariya Mun kept an eye on it as he continued
with his own practice. He noticed some improvement, as the naga was able to
restrict its hypercritical tendencies by exercising some measure of control
over them. But he also noticed that this effort caused the naga much
consternation. So finding some excuse to leave the cave, he moved on – which
pleased the naga. His association with it ended there.
From that time on, Acariya Mun
alluded to the story of this naga as a means of elaborating on various
aspects of human nature, for the personal benefit of those listening. The
gist of what he said is worth repeating here, hopefully so that the reader
can learn some valuable lessons from his teaching.
Acariya Mun explained that good
and evil do not arise on their own but are dependent on habitual ways of
behaving that gradually become part of one’s character. If our tendency is
to do evil, it is very difficult to remedy because everything we do tends to
flow in that direction. If it is our tendency to do good, we become more and
more skillful and assertive as we progress in that direction. For this
reason, clever parents will try to train their children in the way of
goodness from a very early age – before it becomes too late. When necessary
they will entrust them to the care of someone who is suitably supportive so
that their children’s upbringing is not simply left to chance.
Children begin to learn about
basic common principles from a very tender age. But unlike learning in the
classroom, this learning process is not interrupted by time or season. Such
basic common principles are more firmly implanted in children’s characters
than any of their school subjects, for these things exist all around them –
at home, in school, and everywhere else. Children are constantly taking
lessons from what they see, hear, taste, smell, and touch in the world,
remembering well what they have learned. A child’s senses are its natural
blackboard. The impressions imprinted there are pregnant with moral
significance; that is, matters of good and evil. They constantly pick up
impressions from their playmates and the adults in their lives, as well as
from movies and other entertainment that is normally available to them. Such
everyday impressions are a child’s true teachers; and children are all too
willing to learn new ideas that are constantly conveyed to them. Contact
with evil affairs can definitely induce a child to follow evil ways, while
good influences can definitely induce a child to go the way of virtue.
Children naturally take the things they see and hear as examples to emulate;
and, over time, this establishes a pattern of behavior that defines a
child’s character. Once these patterns have become ingrained, the children
will speak and act according to the good or evil orientation thus
established.
The fact that some people
readily take satisfaction in doing evil and are unwilling to change, while
others just as readily take satisfaction in doing good and cherish moral
virtue all their lives, indicates the fundamental importance of character
development. Those left to their own devices easily abandon the effort to
resist their bad tendencies – even before they have seen enough satisfactory
results to encourage perseverance. Consequently, basic character development
is absolutely essential for all people. This means that nothing should be
done carelessly or thoughtlessly, for once such tendencies become habitual
they are difficult to correct. The importance of this principle becomes
apparent as we strive to develop positive character traits until they become
part of our very nature; for instance: being reasonable about how and where
we travel; being reasonable about how we spend our money so that everyone in
the family benefits; and being reasonable in our eating and sleeping habits
so that we do not overindulge in them. All such exemplary behavior patterns
should be enthusiastically developed until they become instinctive. The
inner resistance we meet in the early stages of training will naturally give
way to a smooth, easy character transformation. This transformation itself
is sufficient proof that character training is well within our capabilities.
But we must be willing to persevere in the beginning.
Training is required to make
any kind of work successful. Just as we must undergo training in order to
succeed in our professions, so the heart and mind must be trained in order
to obtain optimum results. Only after death are we beyond the need for
training. Wishing to gain proficiency in something, we must work at it,
practicing until we are well-skilled in it. Character training develops a
skill which is synonymous with virtue. Take this message to heart, consider
it well, and put it into practice – your efforts will surely be rewarded
with a wealth of personal virtue. Such was the gist of Acariya Mun’s
teaching on character training. I have included it here to help those who
are developing Dhamma in this way.
The Death of the Arahant
While Acariya Mun lived in
Chiang Dao Cave, numerous nimittas appeared in his meditation, some of them
quite extraordinary. Here I shall mention only a few. In the late hours of
almost every night he received a wide range of deva visitors from the upper
and lower celestial realms who arrived in groups of varying sizes at
appointed times.
Arahants also came regularly to
hold inspirational conversations on Dhamma with Acariya Mun. Each Arahant
showed him the manner in which his passing away into total Nibbana had
occurred.29 Some were Arahants who had passed away in the Chiang Dao Cave,
while others had attained total Nibbana elsewhere. Such demonstrations were
accompanied by an inspiring explanation of the sequence of events that had
taken place.
Hearing Acariya Mun talk about
those Arahants, I felt dismayed and somewhat discouraged by my own
unfortunate circumstances. There I was a human being with eyes, ears, and
mental faculties just like Acariya Mun; yet, I couldn’t accomplish the
things that he did. On the one hand, I was elated to hear his stories; on
the other, I felt disheartened. I found myself laughing and crying at the
same time, but I kept my tears to myself for fear that my fellow monks would
think I was mad. In fact, at that time, deep inside, I really was a bit mad.
The inspirational conversations
that Acariya Mun had with the Arahants were so captivating that it’s hard to
find anything else in the world that compares with them. I shall try to
faithfully recreate the essence of those conversations here, though I fear I
may not do them proper justice. Here is the gist of what the Arahants said
to Acariya Mun.
“All Arahants possess superb
qualities within their hearts that are most amazing – intrinsic virtues
unsurpassed in the human and deva worlds. Each Arahant who appears in the
world following the Lord Buddha does so only with the greatest of
difficulty. Each is like a gold mine cropping up spontaneously in the middle
of an emperor’s imperial city – a very rare occurrence indeed. An Arahant’s
lifestyle contrasts sharply with worldly lifestyles because an Arahant’s
life is invigorated by Dhamma. Although his body is composed of the same
physical elements as those of everyone else, the heart maintaining that body
is pure, and such purity of heart invigorates every aspect of the physical
element. “You yourself have now completed the task of filtering from your
heart all possible causes of existence, thus becoming one of the Arahants.
Being one whose heart will never again give rise to birth and existence, you
have become another incomparable source of merit for the world to venerate.
So we’ve come to visit you now to show our appreciation for your
achievement, which because of its enormous difficulty, is seldom
accomplished. Although many people desire to attain what you have, very few
succeed when they are faced with the difficulties. People born into this
world instinctively cling to their parents and relatives for support. Hardly
any of them realize the importance of relying on their own hearts as their
mainstay. The vast majority of people just drift aimlessly, accomplishing
nothing of real value – their numbers are beyond reckoning. So the
appearance in the world of a fully-enlightened Arahant is a remarkable event
that benefits living beings throughout all the world systems. Your
attainment of purity has made you an enormous boon for humans, devas, and
brahmas alike. You are also well-versed in the universal language of the
heart, which is far more important than any other form of communication. All
the Buddhas, and certain categories of Arahants, use the language of the
heart when giving assistance to living beings, for it is the universal
language of sentient beings throughout the universe. Contacting and teaching
nonphysical beings is achieved exclusively by means of this universal form
of communication. Those communicating in the language of the heart can
understand each other much more quickly and easily than would normally be
the case.” After concluding his inspirational conversation with Acariya Mun,
each Arahant would then demonstrate the manner in which he had passed away
into total Nibbana. Nearly every Arahant who came allowed him to observe the
posture in which this was achieved. Some Arahants demonstrated how they had
died and passed into total Nibbana while sitting cross-legged in samadhi.
Some demonstrated how they were reclining on their right side in the ‘lion’s
posture’30 at that time. Others showed him how they were standing still in
the middle of the meditation path; still others revealed how they were
pacing back and forth in meditation at the time of their total Nibbana. The
sitting and reclining postures were the most common – relatively few
Arahants passed into Nibbana while walking or standing.
Their deaths were demonstrated
in a precise manner, showing every detail right up to the final moment. As a
seated Arahant passed away, he slumped over gently like soft cotton, while
his body ceased to function and became perfectly still. It was more
difficult to discern the exact moment when an Arahant reclining in the
‘lion’s posture’ passed away. His breathing was the only visible sign of
life and that became ever more refined as he lay quietly, as if asleep,
without the slightest movement in any part of his body, until his breathing
gradually ceased altogether. Those Arahants who demonstrated death in a
standing posture stood erect, assuming a reflective pose with the right hand
placed on the left hand, head slightly bowed and eyes firmly closed. They
appeared to reflect momentarily before slowly slumping into a heap on the
ground – first in a sitting position, then slumping gradually further,
until, softly, like cotton wool, they lay on the ground. Arahants, who died
while walking in meditation, paced back and forth about six or seven times
before gently slumping to the ground where they lay perfectly still. When
giving these demonstrations, the Arahants came to within six feet of Acariya
Mun so he could clearly view every aspect of their passing away, which
created a lasting impression in his heart. Listening to him recount those
episodes, I felt the urge to shed tears. I had to turn my face to the wall
as this strange feeling overcame me. Otherwise, I might have created a stir,
which could have become an embarrassing epilogue to this story. The total
Nibbana of those Arahants was accomplished with a serene gracefulness that
stands in marked contrast to the distress typically suffered by most people
at the time of death. I was so moved by hearing how each Arahant passed away
that I simply couldn’t hold back my tears. Those amazing individuals were
taking final leave of the world of conventional reality with all its chaos
and confusion – which is an amazing thing to contemplate. I am sure that
anyone else who listened would have been deeply affected in the same way.
Three Arahants attained total
Nibbana at the cave in Chiang Dao – two while reclining in the ‘lion’s
posture’ and one while walking meditation. Prior to giving Acariya Mun a
visual demonstration of how his death had occurred, each Arahant gave him a
detailed explanation of why he had chosen to pass away in that posture. Very
few died while standing or walking. Many more did so while sitting, but the
majority passed away while reclining. On the basis of what he had seen,
Acariya Mun came to the conclusion that over the centuries many Arahants had
passed away in Thailand. As far as I can remember, they included the three
Arahants at the cave in Chiang Dao, one in the Wong Phra Chan mountains, one
at Tago Cave in Lopburi province, one at Khow Yai in Nakhon Nayok province,
and one at Wat Dhatuluang monastery of Ko Kha district in Lampang province.
There were others as well, but unfortunately I can no longer recall them.
“Nibbana” is a term used
exclusively with reference to Buddhas, Paccekabuddhas, and Arahants, all of
whom have expunged from their hearts every trace of the kilesas leading to
future birth. It is not a term associated with living beings who still have
kilesas, for those beings continue to accumulate the seeds of future births
in their hearts constantly, thus making the designation “Nibbana” entirely
inappropriate for them. Having died here, they are reborn there; dying
there, they’re reborn somewhere else. Negligent human beings who’ve made no
effort to develop virtuous qualities in this life so as to enhance their
future lives, may well be reborn as animals after they die. The
opportunities for birth as an animal are more numerous than those for birth
in the much higher human, deva, and brahma realms. So those who prefer
making bad kamma may be on one of the many paths to rebirth in the animal
kingdom, which is far more diverse and extensive than the higher realms. But
animals, humans, and devas all have one thing in common: the burden of
emotional attachments that causes them to be reborn over and over again –
indefinitely. Consequently, the term Nibbana does not apply to them.
The only ones who deserve the
designation “Nibbana” are those individuals who have completely eradicated
the kilesas from their hearts – extinguishing them forever, even while they
are physically alive. At the moment of passing away, they have no lingering
attachments that could bind them to the round of samsara – not even to the
body that’s starting to decompose. Absolutely no attachment or concern for
anything anywhere exist in their hearts. Thus they bid final farewell to the
world with no trepidation, having no expectations of experiencing karmic
consequences in another realm of existence – a source of endless
frustration. The heart that has attained absolute freedom is constant,
unchanging, and wholly contented. It harbors no expectations at all
concerning conventional realities such as the body. Therefore, not even an
atom of the conventional world could enter and affect the heart’s state of
total purity. The word “Nibbana” refers to the total purity of one who is
never agitated or melancholy – neither sorrowful in life nor regretful at
death – but always imperturbably unchanging throughout.
Nibbana is a special term used
with reference to a special type of individual. No one who has yet to purify
his heart would dare assume this title. Nibbana is not a kind of personal
property, like an orchard or a farm, which can be taken over by powerful
interests even without the owner’s consent. Whoever wants to take possession
of Nibbana must make the effort to develop it within the heart – there is no
hope for those who merely lie around waiting for it to appear.
Acariya Mun, the subject of
this biography, received inspirational Dhamma from many Arahants. He has
received national acclaim and respect from faithful Buddhists everywhere. He
achieved this renown by faithfully practicing the Dhamma until he realized
the Truth in his own heart, where nothing false existed. He was able to
understand that things like organic life are inherently false; and as such,
he let go of them so they no longer burdened his heart. The true Acariya Mun,
no longer subject to change, was the Truth of the Dhamma he realized. That
Dhamma remains true – forever. Unlike all other things which are inherently
unstable and so of limited duration, the passage of time has no effect
whatsoever on it.
The Spiritual Warrior
Acariya Mun became seriously
ill on many occasions while living deep in the wilderness areas of Chiang
Mai – sometimes he came very close to death. Had he been like most people,
totally dependent on doctors and their medicines, he would probably have
succumbed long before. But Acariya Mun was able to survive by using the
curative powers of Dhamma to treat himself. He said that as soon as the
symptoms of illness began to appear the ‘therapeutic qualities of Dhamma’
immediately arose in response and began to effect a cure. Such was his
temperament that normally he showed little interest in conventional
medicines. Even in old age when his vitality was steadily declining, he
continued to prefer the ‘therapeutic qualities of Dhamma’ to maintain
well-being in his body elements.
Acariya Mun once stayed with
several other monks in a mountainous area full of malaria. One of the monks
happened to contract the disease, but not a single medicine was available to
treat it. When the fever was at its worst, it raged continuously all day.
Acariya Mun visited the monk every morning and evening to instruct him in
the use of investigative techniques for reducing fever – meditation methods
he himself always used with good results. But since their levels of
spiritual attainment were so different, this monk was incapable of
investigating in the same way as Acariya Mun could. Each time his fever
intensified, he had to simply wait for it to abate on its own. He had
developed no effective methods for bringing it down himself. Eventually
becoming rather exasperated, Acariya Mun scolded him:
“It seems you’re a Maha31 in
name only, since the knowledge you have learned is obviously of no help when
you really need it. What’s the point of studying to be a Maha if you’re just
going to waste a lot of paper and then come away empty-handed? The knowledge
gained from studying should benefit you in some way, so I cannot figure out
what you’ve been learning that’s so completely useless. Here you are
virtually dying of fever, but your learning can’t help alleviate your
condition even a little bit. What’s the purpose of all that learning anyway?
It doesn’t make sense to me. I can’t figure it out. I haven’t learned any
grade of Pali studies – not one. I have learned only the five kammatthana32
that my preceptor gave me at my ordination, which I still have with me
today. They are all I need to take care of myself. They don’t make me weak
like you – you’re as weak as you are educated. In fact, you are weaker than
a woman with no education at all! You’re a man and a Maha, so why all this
weakness? When you get sick, you exhibit no manly characteristics, nor any
indication of the Dhamma you learned. You should take all your masculine
equipment and exchange it for a woman’s, thus completing your metamorphosis.
Maybe then the fever will abate a bit. Seeing that you’re a woman, the fever
may be reluctant to torture you so much.
“Instead of seeing some
reassuring signs of defiance and courage when I visit you, all I see is a
weak display of self-pity. Why don’t you investigate those kammatthana in
the Pali studies you’ve learned? What does dukkham ariyasaccam mean to you?
Does it mean weakness? When having a fever, just cry and long for your
parents, is that what it means? If you cannot bear even the painful feelings
arising from a fever, in a truly life-threatening crisis you’ll be
overwhelmed and unable to cope. Even now you can’t manage, so how can you
ever hope to understand the true nature of the Noble Truth of Dukkha? Anyone
wanting to transcend the mundane world must realize unequivocally the truth
inherent in each of the Noble Truths. But as soon as the Truth of Dukkha
awakens and begins to become a little active, you lie down and admit defeat.
What do you expect to gain from that?”
Having given this fiery piece
of advice to probe the monk’s character, Acariya Mun paused quietly for a
moment. He then noticed that the monk was sobbing, tears streaming down his
face. So Acariya Mun quickly found an excuse to leave and return to his hut,
telling the monk not to worry – he would soon get better. He assured him
that he had only pretended to give him a hard time.
Reconsidering the matter that
night, Acariya Mun decided to try a different type of medicine, since the
remedy he had just prescribed was probably too harsh for the patient – he
just was not strong enough to take it. From the next morning onward, he
changed his approach completely, never again displaying any fierceness with
that monk. From then on he assumed a sympathetic, comforting attitude,
pampering the monk in a way that was very uncharacteristic of him. His
speech was sweet and gentle, like large quantities of molasses being poured
out every morning and evening, until the whole area seemed sweet and
fragrant, suiting that monk’s outbreak of weakness perfectly. He watched
over his patient’s progress, giving him these sugarcoated pills every
morning and evening until it was clear that both the patient and his fellow
monks were contented. The patient continued to improve with each passing day
until finally he made a complete recovery, a process that lasted many
months. Obviously this particular medicine was effective beyond all
expectations.
Such are the therapies of a
clever doctor who always has the intelligence to adjust his treatments
according to the circumstances and then administer them appropriately.
Consequently, he is an excellent example for the rest of us who are
searching for wisdom, which is why I have included the preceding incident.
Those who are interested should be able to gain some benefit from reading
it, for it concerns the skillful means of a clever man whose wisdom was so
sharp that he was never stymied by any turn of events.
Rather than remaining passive
in a critical situation, Acariya Mun instinctively preferred to analyze the
crisis with mindfulness and wisdom. When he was sick, or when his
investigations uncovered some particularly insidious kilesas that he found
to be especially obstructive – these constituted critical situations.
Instead of feeling resigned, his citta responded by circling the problem day
and night until he found an ingenious method to deal with the crisis,
allowing him to overcome it gradually and move on unhindered. From the
beginning stages of his practice to the very end, he invariably experienced
good results from this approach.
When the monks living with him
became ill, he usually advised them to develop meditative techniques for
relieving the symptoms so they would not become overly dependent on
medications. At the same time, he wanted them to develop those techniques
into methods for investigating Dhamma. Acariya Mun believed that physical
and mental pain are direct manifestations of the Truth of Dukkha; and as
such, they should be investigated until that Truth is understood. He did not
expect his monks to simply succumb to pain as though they had never before
received training in Dhamma.
Acariya Mun acquired many
techniques from the illnesses he suffered. He never let the pain of his
illness subdue him without probing into the nature of that pain as best he
could. At such times, he believed it imperative to investigate pain to the
very limit of one’s ability in order to determine whether or not mindfulness
and wisdom can cope with the task at hand. When found to be deficient, they
could be modified and improved until their performance is deemed
satisfactory. When the highly trained forces of mindfulness and wisdom enter
into combat with feelings of severe pain, the heart will not be apprehensive
as it confronts the Truth of Dukkha – which is a genuine Truth. Mindfulness
and wisdom are then fully up to the task. They remain unshakable while being
buffeted on all sides by an onslaught of pain coming from every conceivable
direction. In the midst of this intense pain, they are able to narrow down
the scope of their investigation until it focuses sharply on the very
principles of Truth. Such mental training employs the factors of
mindfulness, wisdom, faith, and effort, instilling them with greater
strength and courage. For precisely this reason, Acariya Mun liked to
emphasize the investigation of painful feelings to his disciples. When the
moment of truth arrives and the body is about to break up, one should
experience no fear of the agonizing pain that emerges at that moment.
Investigating as prescribed, the meditator clearly perceives the true nature
of both body and feelings, meaning that he lives in comfort and dies
triumphant. Such is the path of the warrior who emerges truly victorious to
become a superior individual. He conquers himself, becomes superior within
himself – and is fully contented. Acariya Mun was an exemplary teacher in
every aspect of his practice. His persistence, fortitude, courage,
frugality, and all-round ingenuity were outstanding qualities that put him
in a class of his own in the present day and age. It would be very difficult
for any of his disciples to surpass him. He possessed celestial hearing and
celestial sight, as well as paracittavijja: the ability to communicate
psychically with beings as diverse as animals, humans, ghosts, devas,
brahmas, yamas, and nagas.33 He could see not only animals and humans with
their gross physical bodies, but also the subtle nonphysical forms of ghosts
and devas. He knew the intimate joys and sorrows of human beings and could
read their innermost thoughts.
Monks who lacked mindfulness to
supervise their thoughts, letting their minds wander constantly, often
became aware of those thoughts only when they heard Acariya Mun give voice
to them. Some of the more pathetic ones were so bemused that they did not
realize Acariya Mun was referring to them. It wasn’t necessary to be in his
presence – just living together with him in the same monastic community was
sufficient reason for caution. Any monk mindlessly giving rein to wild
thoughts was sure to hear something unusual from Acariya Mun when eventually
they met. But especially at risk were those who dared to let their minds
wander in his presence. It didn’t matter what he was doing at the time – he
might be instructing the monks, or having a conversation, or whatever. He
would give the culprit a tongue-lashing or use some unusual ploy to get his
attention. Only when he felt disinclined to respond did he allow such
thoughts to pass unchallenged.
According to the accounts of
many senior disciples who lived with him in Chiang Mai, Acariya Mun’s
mastery of such faculties as celestial hearing, celestial seeing, and
thought reading, was so amazing it could be frightening. His ability to read
thoughts was so lightning quick that those entertaining unwholesome thoughts
almost invariably heard about it. Consequently, monks who lived with him
needed to guard their sense faculties very carefully. If not, they certainly
got caught for they could not elude his penetrating genius and find a safe
way to hide.
Once, due to his fear of
Acariya Mun, a monk thought about the ferocity of Acariya Mun’s admonitions.
When the monk next saw him, Acariya Mun immediately addressed the question.
“Almost everything we use –
from our food to our requisites to the robes we wear – must pass through
various stages of preparation before being turned into useful items. Rice
must be planted, harvested, and cooked; wood must be cut, sawed, and planed;
and cloth must be woven and sewn into robes. Isn’t that right? These things
don’t become finished products ready for use or consumption unless a lot of
work is done on them. Food and shelter are the product of man’s labor. They
do not simply materialize from nowhere. Only corpses are totally inactive,
lying lifeless and having no need to provide for their own livelihood. With
no reason to adjust their behavior, they have no need for a teacher to scold
them and give instructions. But you are alive and still seeking a teacher’s
guidance. Yet you’re unreasonably afraid of your teacher, citing his fierce
admonitions as a rationale. Then again, if your teacher simply kept his
mouth shut, you would probably accuse him of failing to teach you and thus
be even more upset. In the final analysis, nothing quite suits you. Your
thoughts jump around like a monkey jumping up and down in the trees. If it
keeps jumping about long enough, it will jump on a rotten branch and end up
in a heap on the ground. Which do you want to be? Do you want to be a monkey
jumping on a rotten branch, or a monk with a teacher to guide you?”
Sometimes, he confronted the
culprit directly, motivating him to become more mindfully aware of his own
thoughts. At other times, he simply made some oblique, sarcastic reference
to a monk’s thoughts. The objective in either case was to warn a student
that his thoughts had not passed into oblivion, but could return again to
haunt him. He was made aware of his mistake so that in the future he could
exercise more restraint in his thinking.
Sometimes, in order to inspire
his disciples in their practice, Acariya Mun gave a fiery discourse in which
he offered himself as living proof of what could be achieved through
perseverance and courage in the face of death.
“If you allow the fear of death
to stop you from practicing meditation with uncompromising diligence, you
will be obliged to come back and die time and time again in future births.
Those who can overcome their fear of death will be able to reduce the number
of future births until eventually they transcend birth and death altogether.
Never again will they return to bear the burden of dukkha. While persevering
unflinchingly in the face of excruciating pain, I myself passed out three
times – yet I did not die. I managed to survive and become your teacher.
None of you have ever persisted in your efforts to the point where you
passed out, unconscious. So, what makes you so afraid of dying? If you don’t
actually experience what it’s like to die, it is unlikely you’ll ever see
the wonders of Dhamma. Whether you believe it or not, this is the method I
used to realize Dhamma. So there is no way I can teach you to merely take it
easy: Eat a lot, sleep a lot, and be lazy – then the kilesas will take
fright. I cannot teach that because that’s not the way to instill fear in
the kilesas. Such an attitude will only amuse the kilesas: ‘We thought these
monks had come to be diligent, so why are they lying around like breathing
corpses? These breathing dead are hardly worthy of admiration’.”
After Acariya Mun finished
speaking, a certain monk in the audience thought to himself that persevering
to the point of passing out was excessive: If I have to reach the point
where I pass out, unconscious, I don’t want to go to Nibbana yet. I’ll just
put up with the pain and suffering of this world like everyone else. I’ve
got lots of company. If going to Nibbana means pushing oneself to the extent
of passing out, then whoever wants to go is welcome to do so, but I’m not
going – that’s for sure. Life in the world is surely painful, but not nearly
as painful as being rendered unconscious. Besides, if we have to pass out
before we can attain Nibbana that means there’s not much difference between
Nibbana and a drug-induced coma. Who wants that? I certainly don’t. I have
no desire to pass out. Just seeing someone else faint scares me to death,
let alone having it happen to me. Before long Acariya Mun began speaking
again, this time in heated tones that penetrated forcibly into the monk’s
reverie.
“You don’t believe me, huh? Do
you think I’m lying to you just for fun, or what? If you do not trust me,
please leave! Why stay here being a burden on this monastery? I did not
invite you to come here – you came on your own, so you should leave on your
own. Don’t wait to be thrown out! It’s useless for you to stay here anyway –
the Buddha’s teaching wasn’t proclaimed for idiots like you! Your way of
thinking is entirely inappropriate for a monk wearing the yellow robes. A
Buddhist monk is one who puts his faith in Dhamma. But since your ideas
contradict the Lord Buddha’s path to liberation, it is obvious that you
don’t trust me or the Dhamma. You are welcome to go anywhere to eat and
sleep in comfort without having to trouble yourself with meditation
practice. If you come to realize the Truth of Dhamma using this method,
please come back and have mercy on this stupid old monk. I shall raise my
clasped hands to the heavens to honor your gracious majesty’s benediction!
“I teach the truth when I say
that anyone expecting to transcend dukkha must be fearless when facing
death. But you don’t believe it’s true. You figure it is better to die and
be reborn in this world so you can continue carrying your burden of misery
wherever you go. If you want to go on like this, that’s your business. But,
don’t come here and contradict the teaching of the Lord Buddha. If you do,
you will be a thorn in the Buddha’s side and an obstacle blocking the path
of those truly wishing to follow him. Opinions like yours are not only
wrong, but, should you decide to give voice to them, you will become an
enemy of Buddhism and religious people everywhere. I assumed that you came
here to develop yourself spiritually and so uphold the sasana. I never
imagined you were going to ruin yourself and then destroy the sasana and
devoted followers of the Lord Buddha as well. But now I realize that you
have come like an executioner to destroy everything. You’d better change
your attitude right away. Otherwise, you will certainly ruin yourself and
take a lot of other people with you – and that would be a terrible shame.
“The Lord Buddha is said to
have passed unconscious three times as he strived to attain enlightenment.
Don’t you believe it is true? If you don’t, perhaps you suppose the Buddha
was lying to us. A person like you, who ordains as a dhutanga monk but still
refuses to trust the Buddha and his Dhamma, is someone devoid of intrinsic
human value. Your opinions make you no different than a breathing corpse – a
living, stinking corpse that somehow manages to keep breathing from one day
to the next. What do you say? Which path are you going to choose for your
own safe passage? I have no better path to offer you than the one I have
already specified. It is the path that the Lord Buddha and all the Arahants
have taken. There is no easier, more esoteric path. I have followed this
path from the time of my ordination up to the present, and it is the source
of the Dhamma that I teach to all my disciples.”
This was one of the most
impassioned declamations ever given by Acariya Mun – right to the point and
full of fireworks. What I have recreated here is merely a sample, not the
full substance of what he said by any means. Those listening were so shaken
and intimidated they nearly sank through the floor. Never in their lives had
they heard anything like it. By going straight to the point, these fiery
expositions caused his audience to see the truth of his words, and thus
submit to it, even as they felt frightened to death of him.
Realizing the truth of what he
heard, the monk, whose thoughts provoked this barrage, gradually acquiesced
until he accepted it totally and without reservations. As that happened, the
intensity in Acariya Mun’s voice gradually subsided until he sounded quite
conciliatory. When he was convinced that the monk had accepted the truth, he
finished speaking and adjourned the meeting.
As it disbanded, there was a
stir of excitement. The monks asked one another who had dared entertain
thoughts so perverse to have elicited such a fierce response from Acariya
Mun that his voice raged furiously, like thunder and lightning. There must
have been some provocation; otherwise, he would never have given a blazing
admonition like that. Those thoughts must have affected him so acutely that
he couldn’t resist unleashing the full force of his reason. Eventually, the
monk in question owned up to the thoughts that I have mentioned before.
Normally dhutanga monks did not
conceal their thoughts and opinions from one another. If their thoughts
became the subject of Acariya Mun’s rebuke, they invariably admitted their
lapses in judgment when they were questioned later. Although the monks
usually found it amusing when a fellow-monk was roasted by Acariya Mun, they
also became conscious of their own shortcomings. Such shortcomings could be
easily exposed on almsround, or on some other errand outside the monastery,
where a monk encountered an emotionally stimulating object that stuck in his
mind and became a preoccupation. Such indiscretion was likely to elicit the
kind of fierce response that frightened everyone within earshot and prompted
nervous glances all around. Terrified of Acariya Mun, ashamed in front of
his friends, the culprit was usually shaking as he sat, rooted to his seat,
with his head bowed and not daring to look up. When the meeting was over,
the monks would ask around and find out that, as always, there was indeed
one in their group whose thoughts caused Acariya Mun’s rebuke. It was rather
a pity, for those monks had no intention of offending Acariya Mun. Like
people everywhere with kilesas, they were emotionally susceptible to things
in their environment. Their mindfulness was simply too slow in catching up
with the lightning quickness of their minds – thus, Acariya Mun’s frequent
scoldings. Acariya Mun was extremely quick at reading other people’s
thoughts. Monks who lived with him had no doubts whatsoever about this. He
was able to read our errant thoughts and then caution us about them with
unerring accuracy. Only on occasions, when he could not be bothered to say
anything, did he remain quiet. Though his rebukes were frequent, he did
relax occasionally to let us catch our breath. Otherwise, we’d probably have
suffocated to death. Because of my incurable restlessness, I myself was
chastised more often than most. But those of us who endured and lived
patiently with him over a long period of time were usually energized in our
meditation practice. We developed a firm anchor in our hearts as a result of
his exhortations which constantly forged, tempered, and beat our practice
into shape. Constant vigilance, and the restraint it fostered, made it
possible to cultivate the mindfulness and wisdom necessary to resist
incidental temptations. In the context of the art of magic, it can be
compared to learning the necessary skills and then testing them out against
the teacher until one is impervious to attack. Calm and secure in the
knowledge that their harmful potential has been neutralized, one can
withstand guns and swords, unperturbed.34 In the context of Dhamma practice,
it means one can stand firm in the face of evocative emotions and
temptations that normally arouse desire, without fear of being influenced or
seduced. In other words, remaining unperturbed in all situations.
The trouble is, most people
react to talk about Nibbana by feeling oddly dejected and dismayed. It
doesn’t put them in a good mood as does talk about worldly matters. Having
no personal experience of
Nibbana, they probably think
that it’s not as enjoyable as the humdrum things they are accustomed to. Not
only has the present generation lost interest in Nibbana – even our parents
and grandparents were not much interested, nor did they encourage others to
take an interest. At most, they may have encouraged their family to go to
the local monastery from time to time to take the precepts and hear Dhamma.
Perhaps they sometimes encouraged their families to do meditation practice
to calm them down a bit and keep their behavior within acceptable limits. Of
course, one way or another they did manage to advise their family and
friends to do just about everything else, until fed up with hearing their
advice, most people no longer bothered to take it.
Undoubtedly, most people have
already decided that Nibbana must be a very silent place, there being no
music or entertainment and no one to indulge them in their favorite
pastimes. They probably see it as a place devoid of anything stimulating or
exciting; and therefore, they don’t want to go there. They fear dropping
into a still, silent hell without a soul in sight: there would be no family,
no friends, and no sounds, ever, of birds and cars, or laughter and crying.
It appears to be a rather bleak, undesirable place in every way. So people
who still harbor ambitions do not want to go to Nibbana. And even if they
did, they would be unable to go, for their ambitions would hold them back
and make them hesitate.
People who can truly attain
Nibbana are those who have absolutely no worldly ambitions or involvements.
Being neither passionate nor impassive, neither relaxed nor tense, but
remaining perfectly balanced, they are naturally centered in the Middle Way.
Having no desires, no expectations, and no longings, they take no enjoyment
from worldly pleasures, which merely agitate the heart and cause
frustration. Always imperturbable, they experience only an exquisite, serene
happiness that contrasts sharply with the happiness of those whose hearts
are corrupted by worldly concerns. Such mundane happiness, being ambiguous
and fluctuating, is always fleeting, and unreliable. It resembles murky,
muddy water. It’s like food that’s spicy, sour, bland, and salty all at
once: besides causing indigestion and uncomfortable drowsiness, it is not
very appetizing. So people should carefully examine the things they
encounter every day and test them to discover which ones are advantageous
and which are not. Then they can filter out the unwholesome elements and
prevent them from piling up in their hearts until their numbers overwhelm
and there is no room to store them all. Otherwise, wherever they look, they
will see only this accumulation of misery that they’ve collected.
When it comes to
self-discipline, the wise are much more clever than we are. Everything they
do, say, or think is directed precisely toward achieving their intended
objective. They are not at odds with the Truth, nor arrogant and conceited
about their achievements. When cautioned, they quickly take the warning to
heart as a useful lesson, which is quite different from the way the rest of
us react. By following the example of the wise, we will become reasonable,
moderate people who refuse to follow those desires that have ruled over our
hearts for so long. Our efforts to overcome those desires will thus
transform our hearts in a way that definitely results in a degree of
contentment that’s clearly evident to us. Even without millions in the bank,
our own exemplary conduct, plus what little wealth we do possess, will be
sufficient to keep us happy. Clever people manage their lives in a way that
is conducive to peace and security. They don’t feel the need to rush around
trying to make vast sums of money in order to maintain a sense of happiness
in their lives. Wealth may bring a measure of happiness, but those who enjoy
a moderate amount of wealth, righteously acquired, will inevitably be far
more contented than those who acquire their wealth by unscrupulous means.
Though its actual ownership is not disputed, dubious wealth doesn’t really
belong to its owner in any genuine sense. For under the laws of true
justice, kamma condemns such gains, bestowing fruits of misery as just
rewards for the future. Wise people view this prospect with great
trepidation; but we, of lesser intelligence, still prefer to scramble
headlong after our desires, selfishly indulging in pleasures that come along
without ever getting enough to satisfy our appetites. No matter how hard we
try, we never seem to experience the kind of contentment that we long for.
DURING HIS YEARS in Chiang Mai,
Acariya Mun received numerous letters from Chao Khun Dhammachedi of Wat
Bodhisomphon monastery in Udon Thani province. In his letters, Chao Khun
Dhammachedi, who had been a disciple of Acariya Mun since his youth, always
invited him to return to Udon Thani. Acariya Mun never replied to those
letters, nor did he accept the invitation. Then in the year 1940, Chao Khun
Dhammachedi traveled from Udon Thani all the way to the isolated region
where Acariya Mun lived to invite him personally, and thus gave him a chance
to answer all the correspondence he had received. He told Chao Khun
Dhammachedi that he had read all his letters, but he reckoned they were
small and insignificant compared to the ‘big letter’ that had just arrived;
so, now he was ready to reply. That said, both monks laughed heartily.
At the first opportunity, Chao
Khun Dhammachedi personally invited Acariya Mun to return to the province of
Udon Thani where he once lived so many years before. Chao Khun Dhammachedi
informed him that his disciples in Udon Thani, missing him very much, had
asked him to invite Acariya Mun on their behalf. This time he could not
object – he had to accept. Chao Khun Dhammachedi suggested they work out a
timetable for picking up Acariya Mun and escorting him back to Udon Thani.
They decided on the beginning of May 1940.
As his departure from the
mountain retreat became imminent, large groups of terrestrial devas pleaded
with him to stay. Being very reluctant to see him leave, they told him that
devas from all realms experienced peace and contentment while he lived
there, due to the power of loving kindness which emanated from him and
issued in all directions – day and night. Feeling very happy in his
presence, they all greatly revered him. They were unwilling to have him
leave for they knew that their sense of contentment from his presence would
soon fade. Even their social cohesion could be affected as a result.
Acariya Mun told them that,
having given his word, he must leave. He must honor his promise – he
couldn’t possibly renege on it. Unlike most people, a monk’s word is a
solemn covenant. A monk is a man of virtue so he must remain true to his
word. If he goes back on a promise, his virtue immediately disappears and
his worth as a monk is then devalued. So a monk must preserve his moral
integrity.
When May arrived Acariya Mun
and the monks accompanying him to Udon Thani left their mountain retreat and
began the long trek to the city of Chiang Mai where they stayed at Wat Chedi
Luang monastery. Acariya Oon of Wat Tipayaratananimit monastery arrived with
some lay supporters at about the same time to receive Acariya Mun and to
escort him to Udon Thani. Acariya Mun remained at Wat Chedi Luang monastery
for about one week. During that time, a large group of his local devotees
came to persuade him to extend his stay in Chiang Mai for the benefit of
everyone there. But having accepted the invitation to Udon Thani, he could
not delay his departure.
Before he left, Chao Khun
Rajakawi asked him to give a special talk on the occasion of Visakha Puja35
to serve as a remembrance for his many devotees. At that time, I had just
myself arrived in Chiang Mai and so listened to this discourse with great
interest. He spoke for exactly three hours that day; and what he said was so
impressive that I have never forgotten it. Here is the essence of what he
said:
“Today is Visakha Puja. It
celebrates the day the Lord Buddha was born, the day he attained
enlightenment, and the day he passed away into Parinibbana. The birth of a
Buddha stands in marked contrast to the births of all other beings. In being
born, the Buddha did not succumb to worldly illusions about birth, life, or
death. More than that, through the power of his all-encompassing wisdom, he
was able to realize the true nature of birth, life, and death – attaining
what we call ‘enlightenment’. At the appropriate time he bid farewell to his
khandhas, which were the tools he relied on to develop virtue to perfection;
and then passed away – sugato, as befits a world teacher who is absolutely
beyond reproach.
Before departing his physical
body, which had reached the end of its natural life, he bequeathed the
Dhamma to the world, intending that it represent him and fulfill the role of
teacher in his stead. Such a gift is worthy of our complete faith, and
worthy of any sacrifice.
“As you know, we are born as
human beings because we possess sufficient inherent goodness to make it
possible. But we shouldn’t take ourselves and our inherent goodness for
granted by neglecting to develop virtuous qualities in this life to enhance
our future lives. Otherwise, the human status we enjoy may disappear to be
irrevocably eclipsed by a low, undesirable birth. Be it high status or low
status – with happiness of every possible degree up to the Ultimate
Happiness, or pain and suffering of every possible degree down to the most
excruciating – we ourselves are responsible for our own life circumstances.
Don’t think that only those presently affected by adverse circumstances
experience such things. As potential life situations, they are shared in
common by everyone, becoming our own personal heritage if and when we create
the conditions for them. For this reason, the Buddha taught that we should
never look down on other people, holding them in contempt.
Seeing someone living in misery
or abject poverty, we should reflect on the possibility that one day we
could also find ourselves in such a position, or one even worse. At the
moment of reckoning, none of us has the power to avoid the consequences of
our actions. All of us share the same capacity to make good and bad kamma,
so it’s possible that some day we will be in their position and they will be
in ours. The sasana is a doctrine that we can use to examine ourselves and
others, enabling us to correctly choose the best possible way forward. In
this respect it has no equal.
“Throughout my many years as a
monk I have remained firmly committed to the practice of examining myself,
striving always to discriminate between the good and the bad things arising
within me from moment to moment. I now clearly realize that the heart is the
principal instigator in the creation of kamma. In other words, our hearts
are the source of all kamma – kamma that belongs solely to the one who makes
it. There should be no doubt about this. Those doubting the existence of
kamma – and so, disbelieving of its effects – blindly take their own
situation for granted until they’re beyond redemption. Although they’ve been
born and raised by their parents, such people fail to see the value of the
mother and father who gave them life and sustenance. They look no further
than their own selfish existence, unaware of how awful it really is, for
they care little that they were born and raised by parents who supported
their growth and development in every way. A child’s body is nourished by
the food and drink its parents provide, allowing it to grow up strong and
healthy. If such actions are not kamma, what then should they be called? And
if the nourishment the body receives in this way is not the fruit of kamma,
then what else, in truth, could it be? “Obviously there is a root cause for
all the goodness and evil, all the happiness and suffering experienced by
people everywhere in the world. When someone’s reckless thinking leads him
to commit suicide – there’s a reason behind it. The root cause, kamma,
manifesting itself within the heart, can have such an impact on a person
that he actually takes his own life without realizing that the kamma he has
already created is playing a role. What is that but total blindness?
“Kamma exists as a part of our
very being. We create kamma every moment, just as the results of our
previous kamma arise to affect us every moment. If you insist on doubting
the existence of kamma and its results, then you are stuck at a dead end.
Kamma is not something that follows us like a dog following its master. On
the contrary, our very thoughts, speech, and actions are kamma. The true
results of kamma are the degrees of happiness and suffering experienced by
all beings in the world, including those beings who live out their lives
unaware of kamma. Such ignorance is also a karmic consequence.”
I myself listened to this talk
with heartfelt satisfaction as I had long been keenly interested in Acariya
Mun. I experienced such a deep sense of joy about him and his Dhamma that I
felt as if I were floating on air. I felt that I simply couldn’t hear
enough. I have given you the gist of what he said so that all of you, who
had no opportunity to hear him speak, may understand something about the
nature of your kamma. Kamma being something common to us all, it is possible
you may recognize you own kamma in his words.
When he finished speaking,
Acariya Mun rose from his seat and prostrated himself in front of the main
Buddha image. Chao Khun Rajakawi told him how much everyone had enjoyed the
outstanding discourse he had just delivered. Acariya Mun replied that it
might well be his “final encore” since he probably wouldn’t return to give
another talk due to his declining years. This was his way of telling
everyone present that he would not return to Chiang Mai again before he
died. As it turned out, this was true – Acariya Mun never again returned to
Chiang Mai.
After remaining several more
days at Wat Chedi Luang monastery, Acariya Mun finally left, heading first
for Bangkok. Somdet Phra Maha Wirawong and the other senior monks, together
with scores of lay supporters, escorted him from the monastery to the train
station. Also present was a host of devas. Acariya Mun said that devas
filled the sky around him in every direction as they, too, came to escort
him to the station. They remained, hovering in the sky, even after he
reached the station, waiting to send him off before returning to their
respective realms. A chaotic scene ensued as he had to greet the scores of
monks and lay people who were gathered there, while he simultaneously tried
to psychically bestow his blessing upon all the devas who hovered in the air
for a final blessing from him. In the end, he was able to turn his undivided
attention to the devas and bestow his final blessing only after he had
finished speaking to all the people and the train began pulling out of the
station.
He said he truly felt sorry for
those devas who held him in such high esteem that they were reluctant to see
him leave. They showed all the same signs of distress and disappointment
that human beings do. Some even continued to hover behind the train as it
sped down the tracks, until finally Acariya Mun felt it necessary to tell
them to return to their respective realms. They departed reluctantly,
wondering if he would ever come back to assist them again. In the end they
were to be disappointed, for he never did return. He never mentioned whether
the terrestrial devas of Chiang Mai came to visit him later on when he lived
in the provinces of Udon Thani and Sakon Nakhon.
|
|
Upon arriving in Bangkok,
Acariya Mun went to stay at Wat Boromaniwat monastery, following the
instructions telegrammed from Somdet Phra Maha Wirawong. Before he departed
for Udon Thani, many people came to see him at Wat Boromaniwat with
questions. Some of these questions were rather unusual, so I have decided to
include them.
Question: “I understand that
you maintain only one rule instead of the full 227 monastic rules that all
other monks keep. Is that true?”
Acariya Mun: “Yes, I maintain
only the one rule.”
Question: “Which one do you
maintain?”
Acariya Mun: “My mind.”
Question: “So, you don’t
maintain all 227 rules?”
Acariya Mun: “I maintain my
mind by not allowing any wrong thoughts, speech, or actions that would
violate the prohibitions laid down by the Buddha, be they 227 in number or
even more than that. Those who doubt whether or not I maintain the 227
monastic rules can think and say what they please. As for me, from the day
of my ordination I have always maintained strict control over my mind, as it
is the master of body and speech.”
Question: “You mean we have to
maintain our minds in order to maintain the moral precepts?”
Acariya Mun: “What else would
you maintain to develop good moral virtue, if not your mind? Only the dead
have no need to look after their minds, much less their actions and speech.
The wise have never claimed that dead people have a moral bias, it being
impossible for corpses to show willful intent. If corpses did have morality,
then it would be a dead and useless one. But I am not a corpse, so I cannot
maintain a dead man’s morality. I must do what befits one fully endowed with
both good and evil tendencies – I must maintain my mind in moral virtue.”
Question: “I’ve heard it said
that keeping our actions and speech in good order is called morality, which
lead me to understand that it’s not really necessary to look after the mind.
That’s why I asked.”
Acariya Mun: “It is quite true
that morality entails keeping our actions and speech in good order. But
before we can put our actions and speech in good moral order, we must
consider the source of moral virtue. It originates with the master of body
and speech – the mind – which makes them behave properly. Once we have
established that the mind is the determining factor, we must ascertain how
it relates to action and speech so that they stay in good moral order that
is a source of comfort to us and others alike. It’s not only moral virtue
that the mind must deal with. The mind supervises the performance of every
activity we engage in, making sure that it’s done in a proper, orderly
fashion to produce excellent results each time.
“Treating an illness requires
diagnosing its cause, then devising an effective cure before it develops
into a chronic condition. Taking care of morality requires the mind to be in
effective control. Otherwise, the result will be a tarnished morality that’s
patchy, and full of holes. Such splintered, inconsistent virtue is truly
pitiful. It moves people to live an aimless existence and inevitably causes
an adverse effect on the entire religion. Besides that, it’s not a source of
comfort to the person practicing it, nor is it admired by his peers.
“I have never done much
studying. After I ordained, my teacher took me as a wandering monk into the
mountains and forests. I learned Dhamma from the trees and grasses, the
rivers and the streams, the cliffs and the caves. I learned it from the
sounds of birds and wild animals, from the natural environment around me. I
didn’t study the scriptures long enough to become well-versed in the
teaching on moral virtue; and my answers to your questions tend to reflect
that primitive education.
I feel rather inadequate for my
inability to provide answers that would be suitably eloquent for your
edification.”
Question: “What is the nature
of morality and what constitutes genuine moral virtue?”
Acariya Mun: “Being mindfully
aware of our thoughts; knowing which things are appropriate to think about
and which are not; taking care how we express ourselves by way of body,
speech, and mind; controlling these three factors so that they remain within
the confines of what is morally acceptable. By properly adhering to these
conditions we can be confident that the moral nature of our behavior is
exemplary and we are never unruly or offensive. Apart from such exemplary
conduct in body, speech, and mind, it’s difficult to say what genuine moral
virtue is, since it’s impossible to separate its practice from the person
who maintains it. They are not distinct entities, like a house and its owner
– the house on one hand, the owner on another. Trying to distinguish between
moral virtue and the person who maintains it is very problematic, so I
wouldn’t want to do it. Even the peace of mind resulting from the practice
of moral virtue cannot actually be separated from that moral virtue. If
morality could be isolated in this manner, it would probably have been on
sale in the stores long ago. In such a case, people’s moral virtue would
probably become a lucrative target for thieves to steal and sell off to the
highest bidder, leaving many people totally deprived. Like all other
possessions, moral virtue would then become a source of anxiety. It would
cause Buddhists to become weary of striving for it, and insecure about
holding onto their acquisition. Consequently, the inability to know what
precisely constitutes genuine moral virtue is a way to avoid the dangers
arising from moral issues, thus allowing virtuous individuals a clever way
to gain peace of mind. Being very wary of the inherent dangers, I have never
thought of separating myself from the moral virtue that I practice. Those
unwilling to make this separation remain content wherever they go, whatever
they do, for they never have to worry about losing their moral virtue. Those
who see it as something separate from themselves might worry so much that
they end up coming back as ghosts after death to anxiously watch over their
store of accumulated virtue. It would be like dying people who fret about
their wealth, and therefore, get stuck in a frame of mind where they return
as ghosts to keep anxious watch over their accumulated riches.”
Complete Self-assurance
One day a prominent elder of
Wat Boromaniwat invited Acariya Mun for a private conversation with him.1 He
began with a question. “When you are living alone in the mountains and
forests, preferring not to be bothered by monks or lay people, whom do you
consult for solutions when a problem arises in your practice? Even though I
live in the capitol, which is full of learned scholars who can help me clear
up my doubts, still there are times when I find myself so completely baffled
that no one is able to help me resolve those dilemmas. I know that you
usually live alone; so when questions arise, who do you consult or how do
you deal with them? Please explain this to me.”
Boldly, Acariya Mun replied:
“Please allow me to answer you
with complete self-assurance which I gained from studying fundamental
natural principles: I consult Dhamma, listening to it both day and night in
all my daily activities, except in sleep. As soon as I wake up, my heart is
immediately in contact with Dhamma. As for problems, my heart carries on a
constant debate with them. As old problems are resolved, new ones arise. In
resolving one problem, some of the kilesas are destroyed, while another that
emerges starts another battle with the kilesas that remain. Every
conceivable type of problem, from the grossest to the subtlest, from the
most circumscribed to the most comprehensive, all of them arise and are
fought within the heart. Consequently, the heart is the battleground where
kilesas are confronted and then eliminated each time a problem is resolved.
“I am not so interested in
thinking about whom I would consult if problems arise in the future. I’m
much more interested in attacking the immediate ones that set the stage for
the kilesas lurking in the background. By demolishing them at every turn, I
gradually eliminate the kilesas from my heart. So, I do not concern myself
with consulting other monks to help solve my problems and rid my kilesas,
for it’s much quicker to rely on the mindfulness and wisdom that arise
continuously in my heart. Each time I’m faced with a problem, I am clearly
conscious of the maxim attahi attano natho2 – oneself is one’s own refuge –
so I use methods I devise from my own mindfulness and wisdom to immediately
solve that problem. Instead of trying to glean answers from the scriptures,
I depend on Dhamma, in the form of mindfulness and wisdom, that arise within
me, to accept the challenge and find a solution that allows me to proceed,
unimpeded. Although some problems are so profound and complex they require a
sustained, meticulous investigative effort, they are no match for the proven
effectiveness of mindfulness and wisdom in the end. So they too dissolve
away.
“I have no desire to seek the
companionship of my fellow monks just so they can help me solve my problems.
I much prefer to live alone. Living all alone, solitary in body and mind,
means contentment for me. When the time comes for me to die, I shall pass
away unencumbered by concerns for the past or the future. At the moment my
breath ceases, all other matters will cease with it. I apologize for
answering your question so unintelligently. I’m afraid my reasoning wasn’t
very eloquent.” The elder, who had listened attentively, was so
wholeheartedly convinced by what he heard that he complimented Acariya Mun.
“You are an exceptional person, as befits one who truly likes living alone
in the mountains and forests. The Dhamma that you have presented here cannot
be found in the scriptures because the Dhamma recorded in the texts and the
natural principles of Dhamma arising in the heart are really quite
different. To the extent that the Dhamma in the texts was recorded directly
from the mouth of the Lord Buddha by those possessing a level of purity
equal to his, to that extent, it is pure and unadulterated. But transcribers
of the texts in later generations may not have been so genuinely pure as the
original ones, so the overall excellence of the Dhamma as subsequently
recorded may have been moderated by its transcribers. For this reason, it is
understandable that Dhamma arising fresh from the heart would be different
from what is recorded in the scriptures, even though they are both within
the scope of what we consider “Dhamma”.
“I have no more doubts
concerning the question I rather stupidly asked you. Still, such stupidity
does have its own benefits, for had I not made a stupid inquiry, I would not
have heard your sagacious reply. Not only have I sold my stupidity today,
but I have also bought a lot of wisdom. You might also say that I’ve
discharged a load of ignorance to acquire a wealth of wisdom.
“I do have one other question
though. After the Lord Buddha’s disciples took leave of him to go out and
practice on their own, they returned to ask his advice when problems arose
in the course of their practice. Once he helped clear up their doubts, they
again returned to their respective locations. What was the nature of those
problems that the Buddha’s disciples sought his advice on?”
Acariya Mun replied:
“When someone is available for
help with quick, timely results, people, who by nature prefer to depend on
others, will opt for the shortcut, certain that it is better than trying to
go it alone. Except, of course, when the distances involved make traveling
there and back entirely impractical. Then they are obliged to struggle as
best they can, relying on the strength of their own mindfulness and wisdom,
even if this does mean slower results.
“Being omniscient, the Lord
Buddha could help solve people’s problems and resolve their doubts much more
clearly and quickly than they could expect to do on their own. Consequently,
disciples of his, who experienced problems or had doubts, felt obliged to
seek his advice in order to resolve them as quickly and decisively as
possible. If the Lord Buddha were alive today and I was in a position to
visit him, I too would go to ask him questions that I have never been able
to resolve to my satisfaction. In that way I could avoid having to trudge
along laboriously, wasting precious time as I’ve done in the past.
“Still, reaching definite
conclusions on our own, while practicing alone, is a laborious task that we
must all undertake, for, as I’ve mentioned, we must ultimately depend on
ourselves. But having a teacher who elucidates the correct way of practice
and then recommends the right methods to follow helps us see practical
results quickly and easily. This contrasts sharply with results we achieve
from guesswork when we are practicing alone. I have seen the disadvantages
of such uncertainty in my own practice, but it was an unavoidable situation
as I did not have a teacher to instruct me in those days. I had to make my
way tentatively, stumbling and picking myself up, making numerous mistakes
along the way. The crucial factor was my resolve, which remained
single-minded and unyielding. Because it never lapsed, never waned, I was
able to smooth out the rough patches in my practice, little by little, until
I gradually achieved a true sense of satisfaction. That contentment gave me
the opportunity to get my balance on the path of practice; and this, in
turn, allowed me to look deeply into the nature of the world and the nature
of Dhamma in the way I’ve already mentioned.”
The elder asked many more
questions of Acariya Mun, but having covered the most important ones, I
shall pass over the rest.
WHILE STAYING IN BANGKOK,
Acariya Mun was regularly invited out to eat in private homes, but he
declined, for he found it difficult to take care of bodily necessities after
he finished eating.
When he felt the time was
appropriate, Acariya Mun left Bangkok and headed for Korat where he had been
invited to stay by devotees in Nakhon Ratchasima. Staying at Wat Pa Salawan
monastery, he received numerous visitors who came to ask him questions.
There was one which was especially interesting that Acariya Mun himself
recounted to me – one which I have never forgotten even though I tend to be
forgetful. Perhaps I suspected it would one day form part of his biography!
This question was asked as a means of discovering the true nature of Acariya
Mun’s attainment, and whether he was actually worthy of the popular acclaim
he received. The questioner was an ardent student of the way of kammatthana
who earnestly sought the truth.
Questioner: “When you accepted
the invitation to come to Korat, was it simply because you want to help your
devotees here, or have you also come hoping to strive for the attainment of
magga, phala, and Nibbana?”
Acariya Mun: “Being neither
hungry nor deluded, I am not searching for anything that would create dukkha
and cause me trouble. Hungry people are never content as they are, so they
run around searching here and there, latching on to whatever they find
without considering if their behavior is right or not. In the end, their
acquisitiveness scorches them like a blazing fire. Deluded people are always
searching for something. But I have no delusion, so I am not searching.
Those who are not deluded have no need to search. Everything is already
perfect within their hearts, so why should they bother? Why should they get
excited and grasp at shadows when they know perfectly well that shadows are
not genuine truths. Genuine truths are the Four Noble Truths, and they are
already present within the minds and bodies of all living beings. Having
fully understood these truths, I am no longer deluded; so what else would
you have me seek? I’m still alive and people need my help, so I assist them
– it’s as simple as that.
“It’s much easier to find
precious stones than it is to find good people with Dhamma in their hearts.
One virtuous person is more valuable than all the money in the world,
because all that money cannot bring the world the kind of genuine peace and
happiness that a beneficent person can. Just one such individual is capable
of bringing so much enduring peace and happiness to the world. The Lord
Buddha and the Arahants are excellent examples of this. Each virtuous person
is more precious that any amount of wealth, and each realizes that good
deeds have far greater value than money. As long as they remain virtuous and
people around them are contented, they don’t care if they are poor. But
fools, preferring money over virtue and virtuous people, will do anything to
get money. They can’t be bothered about the consequences of their actions,
no matter how wicked or depraved they may be. Even the devil is so disgusted
and so fearful they will wreak havoc among the denizens of hell that he’s
reluctant to accept them as inmates. But such fools care about only one
thing: getting their hands on some money, no matter how ill-gotten. Let evil
settle the accounts, and to hell with the devil! Virtuous people versus
wicked people, material wealth versus the virtues of Dhamma, this is how
they differ. Sensible people should think about them right now before it’s
too late to choose the correct path.
“Ultimately the varying results
that we experience depend on the kamma we make. We have no choice but to
accept the consequences dictated by our kamma – remonstrations are of no
avail. It’s for this very reason that living beings differ so widely in
everything from the type of existence they are born into, with their
different bodily forms and emotional temperaments, to the degrees of
pleasure and pain they experience. All such things form part of one’s own
personal makeup, a personal destiny for which each of us must take full
responsibility. We must each bear our own burden. We must accept the good
and the bad, the pleasant and the painful experiences that come our way, for
no one has the power to disown these things. The karmic law of cause and
effect is not a judicial law: it is the law of our very existence – a law
which each one of us creates independently. Why have you asked me this
question anyway?”
This remarkably robust
response, which I heard about from Acariya Mun as well as from a monk who
accompanied him on that occasion, was so impressive that I have never
forgotten it.
Questioner: “Please forgive me,
but I have heard your excellent reputation praised far and wide for a long
time now. Monks and lay people alike all say the same thing: Acariya Mun is
no ordinary monk. I have longed to hear your Dhamma myself, so I asked you
that question with this desire in mind. Unfortunately, the lack of
discretion in the way I asked may have disturbed you somewhat. I’ve had a
keen interest in practice for many years, and my heart has definitely become
more and more peaceful throughout that time. I feel that my life has not
been wasted, for I have been fortunate enough to encounter the Buddhasasana
and now have paid homage to a renowned teacher revered for his excellent
practice and superb virtue. The clear, precise answer you gave me a moment
ago exceeded my expectations. Today my doubts have been allayed, at least as
far as is possible for one still burdened with kilesas. It’s now up to me to
carry on with my own practice as best I can.”
Acariya Mun: “The way you
phrased your question prompted me to answer as I did, for in truth I am
neither hungry nor deluded. What else would you have me search for? I had
enough of hunger and delusion back in the days when I was still
inexperienced in the way of practice. Back then, no one was aware of how I
nearly died striving in the mountains and forests before I felt secure in my
practice. It was only later as people began to seek me out that my fame
started to spread. But I didn’t hear anyone praising me at the time when I
passed out, unconscious, three times and barely survived to tell about it.
This renown came only long after the event. Now everyone lauds my
achievements, but what’s the use in that?
“If you want to discover the
superior qualities latent within yourself, then you must take the initiative
and practice. It’s no use waiting until you are dead and then invite monks
to chant auspicious verses for your spiritual benefit. That’s not what we
call ‘scratching the place that itches’ – don’t say I didn’t warn you. If
you want to get rid of that itch, you must hurry and immediately scratch the
right place; that is, you must intensify your efforts to do good in order
get rid of your attachment and concern for all material things of this
world. Possessions like wealth and property do not really belong to us – we
lay claim to them in name only. In doing so, we overlook our true worth. The
wealth we accumulate in this world can be used wisely to bring us some
measure of happiness. But if we’re very stupid, it can soon become a blazing
fire that completely destroys us.
“The venerable individuals who
transcended dukkha in ages past did so by accumulating virtuous qualities
within themselves until they became an important source of refuge for all of
us. Perhaps you think they had no cherished possessions in those days. Do
you honestly believe that wealth and beauty are something unique to the
present day and age? Is that why you’re so immoderate and self-indulgent? Is
our country so lacking in cemeteries to cremate or bury the dead that you
figure you won’t have to die? Is that why you’re so rashly overconfident?
You are constantly worried about what you will eat and how you will sleep
and how to keep yourself entertained, as if the world were about to vanish
at any moment and take everything with it. So you rush around scooping up
such a mass of useless stuff that you can hardly lug it all around. Even
animals don’t indulge themselves to that extent, so you shouldn’t assume
that you are so much more exalted and clever than they are. Such blind
ignorance will only make matters much worse. Should you fall on hard times
in the future, who knows? You may find yourself even more destitute than the
animals you disparage. You should start laying the groundwork for a proper
understanding of this matter right now, while you are still in a position to
do so.
“I must apologize for speaking
so harshly, but it is necessary to use harsh language to persuade people to
abandon evil and do good. When nobody is willing to accept the truth, this
world of ours will see the sasana come to an end. Virtually everyone has
done a certain amount of gross, evil kamma in the past for which they must
inevitably suffer the consequences. People who still do not understand this
are unlikely to see their own faults enough to remedy the situation.
Instead, they tend to fault the Teaching for being too severe – and so the
situation remains hopeless.”
At this point the author would
like to apologize to all you gentle readers for having been so presumptuous
and indiscreet in what I’ve just written. My purpose was to preserve for
posterity the way that Acariya Mun taught Dhamma on certain occasions. I
tried to present it in a manner that reflected his speech as accurately as
possible. I wanted to record it for the sake of those wishing to contemplate
the truth of his teaching. Being thus reluctant to reduce the forcefulness
of his remarks, I tried to disregard any qualms I had and wrote precisely
what he said. Wherever Acariya Mun sojourned, people constantly came to see
him about Dhamma questions. Unfortunately, I cannot recall all the questions
and answers that have been recounted to me over the years by monks who were
present on those occasions. I noted down and remember only those answers
which especially impressed me. I have forgotten those that failed to make a
strong impression; and now they are gone.
AFTER A SUITABLE INTERVAL,
Acariya Mun left Nakhon Ratchasima to resume his journey to Udon Thani. When
his train pulled into the station at Khon Kaen, a crowd of local people were
waiting to invite him to break his journey there and stay in Khon Kaen for
awhile. Since he was unable to accept the invitation, his devotees in Khon
Kaen were disappointed at missing the opportunity to meet with him.
Finally arriving in Udon Thani,
Acariya Mun went to stay with Chao Khun Dhammachedi at Wat Bodhisomphon
monastery. People from the provinces of Nong Khai and Sakon Nakhon, as well
as Udon Thani, were waiting there to pay their respects. From there he
proceeded to Wat Non Niwet monastery where he remained for the rainy season
retreat. Once a week on observance day, during the rains retreat that year,
Chao Khun Dhammachedi took a group of public officials and other lay
supporters to hear Acariya Mun’s Dhamma talks in the evening. It was, of
course, Chao Khun Dhammachedi himself who had taken so much trouble to
invite Acariya Mun to return to Udon Thani. He had trekked through the thick
forests of Chiang Mai to personally offer that auspicious invitation. All of
us, who met Acariya Mun and heard his Dhamma after he arrived in Udon Thani,
owe Chao Khun Dhammachedi a sincere debt of gratitude. Chao Khun Dhammachedi
was always keenly interested in the way of practice. He never tired of
talking about Dhamma, no matter how long the conversation lasted. He was
especially appreciative when the Dhamma discussion dealt with meditation
practice. He felt great respect and affection for Acariya Mun. Therefore, he
took a special interest in his well-being while he stayed in Udon Thani,
constantly asking people who had seen Acariya Mun recently how he was
getting along. In addition, he always encouraged people to meet with Acariya
Mun and get to know him. He would even tirelessly escort those who did not
dare go alone. His efforts in that respect were outstanding and truly
admirable.
During the dry season following
the rains retreat, Acariya Mun preferred to wander off into the countryside,
seeking seclusion where he could practice the way of Dhamma in a manner most
suitable to his character. He liked to stay in the vicinity of Ban Nong Nam
Khem village, which was located about seven miles from the town of Udon
Thani. He lived for long periods in this area because it had pleasant
forests that were conducive to meditation practice.
His presence in Udon Thani
during the rains retreat greatly benefited both the monks and the general
public from the town and surrounding districts. As news of his arrival
spread, monks and lay people from the area gradually began to converge on
the monastery where he resided in order to practice with him and hear his
Dhamma. Most of these people had been disciples of his from the time he
lived in the area before going to Chiang Mai. Upon receiving word that he
had returned, they were overjoyed at the prospect of seeing him again,
offering him alms, and hearing his advice. He was not very old yet, being
only about 70 then. He was still able to get around without much trouble. By
nature he tended to be quick and agile anyway, always ready to get up and
move on, never staying too long in one place. He much preferred to wander
with no specific destination, hiking through the mountains and forests where
life was peaceful and undisturbed.
Past Lives
In Udon Thani, just as they had
in other places, the local people often came to Acariya Mun with questions.
While some of their questions were very similar to the ones that he had
received many times before, the more unusual ones arose from the views and
opinions of certain individuals. Among the more commonly asked questions
were those dealing with past-life associations3 of living beings who have
developed virtuous qualities together over a period of many lives, and how
such inherent character traits have continuity in their present lives. Other
questions dealt with past-life associations of husbands and wives who had
lived together happily for many lifetimes. Acariya Mun said that people had
more doubts about these questions than any others.
As for the first question,
Acariya Mun did not specify the exact nature of what he was asked. He merely
mentioned the question of past-life associations in a general way and gave
this explanation: “Things like this must originate with the establishment of
volitional intent, for that determines the way the lives of specific
individuals become interrelated.”
The second question was more
specific: How is it possible to determine whether the love between a man and
a woman has been preordained by previous association in lives past? How can
we distinguish between a loving relationship based on past-life connections
and one which is not?
Acariya Mun replied:
“It is very difficult to know
with any certainty whether or not our love for this person or our
relationship with that person has its roots in a mutual affinity developed
over many lifetimes. For the most part, people fall in love and get married
rather blindly. Feeling hungry, a person’s tendency is to just reach out and
grab some food to satisfy that hunger. They will eat whatever is available
as long as it is sufficient for their day-to-day needs. The same can be
applied to past-life associations as well. Although such relationships are a
common feature of life in this world, it is not at all easy to find genuine
cases of people who fall in love and get married simply due to a
long-standing past-life association. The problem is, the kilesas that cause
people to fall in love don’t spare anyone’s blushes, and they certainly
don’t wait patiently to give pastlife affinities a chance to have a say in
the matter first. All the kilesas ask is that there be someone of the
opposite sex who suits their fancy – that’s enough for passion to arise and
impulsively grab a hold. Those kilesas that cause people to fall in love can
turn ordinary people into ‘fighters’ who will battle desperately to the
bitter end without respect for modesty or moderation, no matter what the
consequences might be. Even if they see they have made a mistake, they will
still refuse to admit defeat. Even the prospect of death cannot make them
abandon their fighting style. This is what the kilesas that cause people to
fall in love are all about. Displaying themselves conspicuously in people’s
hearts, they are extremely difficult to control.
“Anyone who wants to be a
reasonable, responsible person should avoid giving these kilesas their head,
never permitting them to charge on ahead unchecked. So you must exercise
enough self-control to insure that, even if you know nothing about your
past-life associations, you will still have an effective means of reining in
your heart – a means of avoiding being dragged through the mire and down a
steep, dark precipice. Unless you are an accomplished meditator with an
aptitude for perceiving various types of phenomena, you will find it very
difficult to access knowledge about your past lives. Whatever the case, you
must always have enough presence of mind to maintain proper self-control.
Don’t let those offensive kilesas burst their banks, pouring out like flood
waters with no levee to contain them. Thus you will be able to avoid sinking
deep into the great quagmire of unbridled love.”
Questioner: “What should a
husband and wife, who have lived together happily in this life and wish to
remain together in the next life, do to insure that they’ll be reborn
together in the future? Is it enough that they both hold the same desire for
meeting again in future lives?” Acariya Mun: “That desire merely creates the
prospect of achieving one’s intended objective; but if that desire is not
accompanied by concrete action it will not bring the expected results. Take
the example of someone who desires to be rich. If that person is too lazy to
go out and earn his wealth, then there is no way he’ll ever be rich. To
stand any chance of success, an intention must be supported by a concerted
effort toward reaching that goal. It’s the same with a husband and wife who
wish to maintain their loving relationship, living together happily in each
successive life. To avoid being separated, their viewpoints must be
analogous, and they must remain faithful to each other. They must refrain
from taking advantage of each other because this destroys their mutual trust
and leads to dissatisfaction. They must cherish virtue, behave properly, and
trust each other. By establishing a mutual understanding about their
partnership and then making a sincere effort to foster their future together
by doing what is beneficial to it, they can expect to fulfill that desire
for it is well within their power to do so. On the other hand, should the
opposite hold true – with either the husband being good while the wife is
bad, or vice versa, with one or the other doing only that which pleases him
or her – then no matter how many hundreds of resolutions they make together,
they will all come to naught. Their very actions will perforce undermine
their desire. And what about you? Do you cherish the desire to be together
with your wife above all other wishes?”
Questioner: “I desire nothing
more than the fulfillment of this wish. Wealth and all its trappings, rank,
title, royal status, heavenly bliss, or spiritual attainment – none of these
would mean anything without my wife, who is my one true love. This is the
major focus of every person’s desire, so we must wish for a loving mate
first of all; then other desires can be considered in due course. That is
why I had to ask you about this matter first, although I was embarrassed and
afraid you might scold me. Such is the reality of the world we live in,
though people are often too shy to speak about it.”
Acariya Mun laughed: “That
being the case, you have to take your wife wherever you go, right?”
Questioner: “I’m ashamed to say
that it’s really concern about my wife that has prevented me from ordaining
as a monk all this time. I am worried that she’d be awfully lonely with no
one there to advise and reassure her. My children just bother her for money
to buy things, making a nuisance of themselves all the time. I don’t see how
they can offer her any security or peace of mind. I can’t help worrying
about her. “There’s another thing I don’t understand. The Dhamma teaches
that the heavenly realms are inhabited by both male and female devas, much
like the human world. Beings there live a blissfully happy existence,
enjoying a variety of pleasures that make it a very inviting place to live.
But, unlike here on earth or in the heavens, it seems that no distinction is
made between male and female beings in the brahma realms. Doesn’t it get
kind of lonely there? I mean, they have no one to cheer them up or humor
them when they get in a bad mood. And Nibbana is even worse – there is no
involvement with anything whatsoever. One is absolutely self-reliant in
every way. Without the need to depend on anyone or anything for help, there
is no need for one to become involved with others in anyway. One is truly
independent. But how can one possibly take pride in anything there?
Ordinarily, someone reaching an exalted state like Nibbana should expect to
be honored and praised by the other beings who live there. At least in the
world, a prosperous person who has wealth and social status receives praise
and admiration from his fellow human beings. But those going to Nibbana find
only silence – there’s no question of receiving praise and admiration from
their peers. Which makes me wonder how such total silence can truly be a
state of happiness. Please forgive me for asking such a crazy, unorthodox
question, but unless I find out from someone who really knows the answer,
this dilemma will continue to trouble me to no end.”
Acariya Mun: “The heavenly
realms, the brahma realms, and Nibbana are not reserved for skeptics like
you. They are reserved for those who can realize their own true inner worth.
Only such people realize the value of the heavenly realms, the brahma
realms, and Nibbana because they understand that the value of each
successive realm increases relative to the virtuous qualities inherent in
those who would attain them. Somebody like you can hardly dream of attaining
such states. Even if you wanted to, you wouldn’t be able to go as long as
your wife was still around. Were she to die, you would still be unable to
stop yearning for her long enough to start wishing for a heavenly existence.
The way you feel, even the exalted brahma realms and Nibbana cannot compare
with your wife, since those states cannot take care of you like she can.
Thus, you don’t want to go, because you are afraid that you will lose the
one who takes care of all your needs.”
Acariya Mun and his questioner
both laughed heartily, then Acariya Mun continued: “Even the kinds of
happiness we experience here in the human world vary widely according to
individual preferences. It is comparable to the way our sense faculties,
which coexist in the same physical body, deal with different types of
sensations. For example, the eyes prefer to see forms, the ears prefer to
hear sounds, the nose prefers smells, the tongue prefers tastes, the body
prefers tactile sensations, while the mind prefers to perceive mental
objects – each according to its own natural bias. They can’t all be expected
to have the same preference. Partaking of a good meal is one way to find
pleasure. Living happily married together is yet another form of pleasure.
The world has never been short of pleasant experiences, for they are an
indispensable part of life that living beings everywhere feel obliged to
pursue. There are forms of happiness experienced here on earth; there are
others experienced in the heavenly realms, and still others in the brahma
realms. Then there is the “happiness” of Nibbana which is experienced by
those who have totally eradicated the vexatious kilesas from their hearts.
Their happiness is something entirely different from the worldly happiness
of those with kilesas.
“If the happiness you receive
from your wife’s company is really all you need, then why bother looking at
sights and listening to sounds? Why bother eating or sleeping? Why bother
developing virtuous qualities by giving donations, maintaining morality, or
doing meditation? All you need do is live with your wife and let that
happiness be the sum of all happiness you would otherwise receive from these
sources. You could save yourself a lot of trouble that way. But can you
actually do it?” Questioner: “Oh no, sir! How could I possibly do that? What
about all those times when we quarrel with each other? How could I make all
my happiness dependent on her alone? That would just complicate my life even
more.”
Acariya Mun said this man had a
rather bold, forthright character and, for a layman, he had a very keen
interest in moral virtue. He was deeply devoted to Acariya Mun who usually
made an effort to give him special attention. This man used to come to see
Acariya Mun and casually start up a conversation when there were no other
visitors around. Normally, other people could not bring themselves to ask
Acariya Mun the kinds of questions he did. He was extremely fond of his wife
and children, while his fond devotion for Acariya Mun made him a frequent
visitor at the monastery. If he came and found Acariya Mun with visitors, he
would simply pay his respects, then go off to help the monks with the air of
someone who feels quite at home in a monastery. He chose those occasions
when no visitors were present to ask the questions that intrigued him. And
Acariya Mun was kind enough to oblige him nearly every time.
Acariya Mun was exceptionally
clever at recognizing a person’s basic character traits; and treated each
individual according to his assessment. Whether speaking casually or giving
a discourse, he always tailored his remarks to fit the audience, as you can
no doubt see from what I have written so far.
WHILE ACARIYA MUN lived at Wat
Non Niwet monastery in Udon Thani, numerous monks came to seek his guidance,
and many spent the rains retreat under his tutelage. In those days, Wat Non
Niwet monastery was a much quieter place than it is today. There was very
little traffic back then and very few people came to visit. By and large,
people who did come to the monastery were those with a genuine interest in
making merit and developing virtuous qualities – unlike nowadays when people
tend to come and disturb the monks’ peaceful environment whether they intend
to or not. Back then, monks could practice as they pleased without
disturbance. Consequently, many monks developed themselves spiritually,
becoming a source of contentment not only to themselves, but also to the
local people who looked to monks for refuge. Acariya Mun instructed the
monks in the evening. He usually began with a general explanation of moral
virtue, followed by samadhi and then wisdom, going briefly through them
stage by stage until the highest level of absolute freedom – the essential
goal of Dhamma. He then went back and gave a comprehensive exposition of how
a monk should practice to attain the various stages of Dhamma that he had
outlined. For monks engaged in meditation practice, he always emphasized the
vital importance of mindful adherence to the monastic code of discipline.
“Only a monk who is firm in his discipline and respectful of all the
training rules can be considered a full-fledged monk. He should not
transgress the minor training rules merely because he considers them to be
somehow insignificant. Such negligence indicates someone who feels no shame
about immoral behavior, and it may eventually lead to more serious
transgressions. A monk must strictly adhere to the monastic code of
discipline to make sure that his moral behavior is not punctuated with
unsightly blemishes or gaps. In that way, he feels comfortable and confident
living among his peers. He need never be concerned that his teacher or his
fellow monks will be critical or reproachful. For the inner monk in your
heart to reach perfection, starting from Sotapanna and progressing to
Arahant, you must be steady and relentless in your effort to attain each
successive level of both samadhi and wisdom. If you persevere in this
manner, these faculties will arise and continue to develop until they are
able to scrub clean that filthy mess of defilements in your heart.
“A monk’s conduct and speech
should be absolutely above reproach. His citta should be absolutely superb
by virtue of the Dhamma qualities that he develops step by step: samadhi,
pañña, vimutti, and vimuttiñanadassana.4 A monk should never be dreary or
sad. He should never appear undignified, shunning his fellows because a
guilty conscience is eating away inside him, troubling his heart. This is
contrary to the way of the Lord Buddha, whose splendid internal conduct and
external behavior were irreproachable. Following in his footsteps, a monk
must muster the resolute courage to abandon all evil and do only good. He
must be a man of integrity who is honest with himself and his peers while
being faithful to the Dhamma and the Discipline. He will thus be supported
by his exemplary practice everywhere he goes. The brightness of his
mindfulness and wisdom will light the way as his heart will be suffused with
the taste of Dhamma. He will never find himself trapped in a state of
delusion with no means of escape. Such are the characteristics inherent in a
true disciple of the Lord Buddha. Study them carefully and take them to
heart. Adhere closely to them as the basis for a bright, trouble-free future
when you can claim them as your own valuable, personal possessions.”
This was how Acariya Mun
usually instructed practicing monks. MONKS WHO HAD DOUBTS or questions about
their practice could consult individually with Acariya Mun during the day
when the time did not conflict with his daily routine. His daily life had a
regular pattern that he tended to follow without fail wherever he stayed.
Rising from his meditation seat early in the morning, he walked meditation
outside his hut until it was time to go on almsround. After collecting alms
food in the village and eating his morning meal, he again walked meditation
until noon and then took a short rest. Once rested, he sat in meditation for
awhile before continuing his walking meditation until four p.m. At four, he
swept the open areas around his residence. When he finished, he bathed, and
again practiced walking meditation for many hours. Upon leaving his
meditation track, he entered his hut to do several hours of chanting.
Following that, he again sat in meditation late into the night. Normally, he
slept no more than four hours a night. On special occasions he went entirely
without sleep, sitting in meditation until dawn. When he was young, he
displayed a diligence in his practice that none of his contemporaries could
match. Even in old age he maintained his characteristic diligence, although
he did relax a bit due to his strength, which declined with each passing
day. But he differed significantly from the rest of us in that his mind
showed no signs of weakness even as his health gradually deteriorated.
Such was the life of a great
man who set a perfect example for us all. He never neglected his personal
responsibilities, nor did he relax the relentless effort which had been such
an important source of strength, spurring him on to that gratifying victory
deep in the mountains of Chiang Mai, as we have seen. As human beings, we
all possess attributes that should allow us to duplicate Acariya Mun’s
achievement. In actual practice, those able to achieve the kind of
unqualified success that he did are far and few between. Despite the fact
that the world is now grossly overpopulated, very few people indeed will see
their hopes fulfilled by attaining this exalted goal. In the present age,
such an attainment is very rare.
The outstanding difference
between someone like Acariya Mun and the rest of us is the degree of
diligence and determination he applied to the pursuit of knowledge and
understanding, an effort firmly grounded in the four iddhipada: chanda,
viriya, citta, and vimamsa.5 And when the causes are so different, the
results are bound to be radically different as well – so much so that it’s
almost unbelievable how varied they can be from one person to the next. But
the good and bad results that people receive from their actions are evident
everywhere in the world around us, and they cannot be denied. We must
acknowledge the obvious: that a mixture of goodness and evil, happiness and
suffering arises in each and every one of us. There is no way we can divest
ourselves of them. Among modern-day acariyas, Acariya Mun’s life story is
splendidly unique. A rich story, it flowers and bears fruit from beginning
to end. Magnificent every step of the way, it is a life worthy of everyone’s
heartfelt respect. He is now revered far and wide in places where people
have heard about his excellent reputation. It’s a great shame that so many
Buddhists who were keenly interested in Dhamma never heard of him while he
was still alive. Although they might have very much wanted to meet a man of
such exceptional virtue, they never had a chance to do so. This was largely
because he did not like to frequent crowded places like towns and cities. He
found life in the mountains and forests far more satisfactory his entire
life.
Many monks who were dedicated
to the practice of Dhamma also experienced great difficulty in reaching him.
The dirt roads were hardly passable in those days – and anyway, there were
no vehicles. They had to hike for days in order to reach the places where he
liked to stay. Those who were unaccustomed to hiking just couldn’t manage
it. Their excuses for not going varied. Some monks were simply not
courageous enough to accept the plain truth about Dhamma that he taught.
Some were afraid that food and other necessities would be in short supply
and of poor quality. Some were afraid they could not eat just one meal a day
as he did. Where Acariya Mun was concerned, monks tended to create any
number of obstacles for themselves, most of them appearing insurmountable.
Although their aspirations were sincere, such concerns amounted to
self-imposed barriers that prevented them from gaining the benefit of their
good intentions. In the end, they realized the kind of monk he really was
only long after he had passed away and they heard the story of his life. He
epitomized the sasana which has preserved magga and phala from Lord Buddha’s
initial attainment down through the countless number of Arahants who have
maintained magga and phala to this day. The essence of the sasana has been
transmitted by means of supatipanno, uju, ñaya, samicipatipanno
savakasangho6 as practiced by all those who have attained magga, phala, and
Nibbana. They are like a vast stream of the great deathless ocean of
Nibbana, shimmering forth from the pristine nature of those who have
practiced to perfection what the Buddha taught.
Acariya Mun was one of the
Arahants of this present age. He passed away not so long ago on November 10,
1949, about 20 years ago.7 The story of his passing away will be described
later when we reach the final chapter of his life. In any case, physical
death has existed since time immemorial and will continue to exist as long
as some form of conventional reality still remains. What arises must pass
away. What remains unconditionally is the prodigious wonder of the Lord
Buddha’s infinite compassion, wisdom, and absolute freedom, all of which are
enshrined in the sasana. Such intrinsic qualities being exactly the same,
Acariya Mun’s unqualified compassion, wisdom, and absolute freedom remain
unchanged in the same way as those of the Lord Buddha. For us, it is
essential that we faithfully practice the way laid down by the Buddha – the
degree of success we have will depend on the amount of time and effort we
put into the practice. This is something we should all take an interest in
while we are still alive. Without making an effort to practice, no results
can be achieved, and the opportunity will be irrevocably lost.
ONE OF THE ANSWERS that Acariya
Mun gave to the people of Nakhon Ratchasima especially caught my attention.
Here is a summary of what he said:
“Don’t think and act as if you,
your family and friends, and the society you live in will never have to face
the cemetery. Otherwise, when death comes – as it does to everyone in the
world – you will find yourself hopelessly unprepared and so risk sinking
into the kind of unfavorable state no one would wish for. Whatever you
think, say, or do should be accompanied by some recollection of the
cemetery, which symbolizes death, for cemeteries and kamma go hand in hand.
Reflection on death will encourage reflection on kamma, which in turn will
cause you to reflect back on yourself.
“Don’t get cocky, thinking
you’re so smart, when in truth you are always at the mercy of kamma. Such
arrogance will merely lead to your own misfortune. You should never take the
attitude that you are smarter than the Buddha – that great, all-knowing
teacher who, unlike people with kilesas who feel very cocky, never relied on
conjecture. In the end, such people become trapped in the bad kamma that
their own arrogant assumptions have created for them.”
Such straight talk can be quite
startling in its effect, inducing the listener to submit wholeheartedly to
the truth about kamma. It cuts through all the self-importance that causes
us to overlook our true place in this world. I have revisited the subject of
kamma here for I feel that what I previously wrote on the subject is
inadequate, since it failed to capture the full impact of what Acariya Mun
taught. This oversight has just come to my attention, which shows just how
unreliable our memories are. In fact, they easily mislead us, blocking the
truth from view. So please forgive me for going over the same material again
from time to time.
ACARIYA MUN HAD the knowledge
and the ability to confer Dhamma excellence on his monk disciples. As a
result, many of them developed into veritable Bodhi trees8 in their own
right. This type of Bodhi tree is extremely difficult to plant and nurture
to maturity for it tends to be surrounded by hazards. Many disciples of his
who became senior acariyas are still alive today. Some of them I have
already mentioned by name. Acariya Mun’s senior disciples include such
well-known acariyas as Acariya Sing and Acariya Maha Pin from Ubon
Ratchathani, Acariya Thet from Tha Bo in Nong Khai, Acariya Fan from Sakon
Nakhon, Acariya Khao of Wat Tham Klong Phen in Udon Thani, Acariya Phrom
from Dong Yen village of Nong Han district in Udon Thani, Acariya Lee of Wat
Asokaram in Samut Prakan, Acariya Chob and Acariya Lui from Loei province,
Acariya Sim and Acariya Tei from Chiang Mai, and Acariya Kongma from Sakon
Nakhon.9 There are still many others whose names I cannot recall. Each of
these acariyas possesses certain exceptional qualities setting him apart
from the rest. Each is outstanding in his own distinct way, and all are
worthy of the highest respect. Some being quite famous, they are well-known
to monks and lay people across the country. Some by nature prefer to live in
quiet seclusion. There are senior disciples of Acariya Mun possessing
exceptionally virtuous qualities who remain virtually unknown because they
naturally prefer to live in anonymity.
More than any other teacher in
the Northeast region of Thailand Acariya Mun was able to firmly establish
monks in bodhidhamma. Bodhi means wisdom. The Bodhi of the Lord Buddha is
called Enlightenment; but in the case of these acariyas I would prefer to
simply call it bodhidhamma, as befits their humble status and the forest
tradition to which they belong. Establishing a monk in bodhidhamma is very
similar to raising a child. First the monk is taught how to develop a firm
basis in moral discipline. Then he’s taught how to use that moral excellence
as a basis for his meditation practice, focusing inward to develop
sufficient knowledge and understanding that will allow him to safely look
after himself. The spiritual development of each and every monk represents
an extremely difficult challenge because implanting virtuous qualities
deeply into the heart of someone who is oppressed by the kilesas is always a
very demanding task. The teacher must be on his guard at all times,
exercising complete mastery over every type of kilesa so that the student
remains earnestly motivated to undergo the training. Persistent practice
under a good teacher allows the student a chance to bring his own character
into harmony with Dhamma and so steadily grow in confidence and
determination.
On our own, we all suffer from
kilesas. Everyone coming to train under a teacher is equally full of kilesas.
So it is difficult for them to find the strength necessary to drag one
another to safety. I believe the most difficult task any human being can
undertake is that of trying to transform an ordinary monk into a monk who’s
truly worthy of the highest respect. That task is further complicated when
the teacher tries to encourage the student to shift from his original,
mundane position up to the transcendent levels of Sotapanna, Sakadagami,
Anagami and Arahant.10 The degree of difficulty increases dramatically with
each successive level of attainment. In all likelihood, insects will come
along and chew at its roots, boring into them until the whole tree topples
to the ground before the nascent Bodhi tree has a chance to sprout and
branch out, developing into a useful specimen. This is what we usually see
happen. Seldom do the roots grow deep enough to resist the ravages of wind,
rain, and insects. When we plant an ordinary tree in the ground we can
expect it to soon bear fruit. When, however, we try to establish a monk in
Dhamma, he always appears on the verge of falling over. Even if no apparent
dangers are on the horizon, he will go out looking for something to trouble
him, thus causing himself a lot of harm. All of which makes developing a
monk difficult indeed. If you don’t believe me, just give it a try: ordain
as a monk and try following the monastic discipline laid down by the Buddha.
What’s the bet you’ll be hungry for supper before the sun has even set.
Forgetting all about your newly-shaved head, you will be itching to travel
about all the time, sight-seeing, listening to sounds, smelling this,
tasting that, and touching things that are nice and soft. Morning, noon, and
evening – never will there be enough to satisfy your appetite. Soon you’ll
forget all about your status as a monk. It’s unlikely that you will ever
take an interest in cultivating that inner Bodhi tree, for your heart will
never accept reason and persevere with the monk’s training long enough to
gain genuine peace of mind.
Left unattended, the Bodhi tree
of the heart will gradually wither and shrivel up. Harmful influences will
then have the upper hand. What Bodhi tree could stand erect against such an
onslaught? The bodhi of a monk is sensitive to those influences, so his
heart may easily be swayed by such discordant elements. If his bodhi cannot
withstand the pressure, it will topple hopelessly to the ground. Thus it is
an extremely difficult task to establish bodhi properly. Those who have
never tried to establish bodhi in their hearts don’t know how potent those
negative influences can be. They attempt to fertilize the nascent Bodhi tree
with substances that only serve to stunt its growth, eventually ruining it
altogether. Consequently, such Bodhi trees tend to have a dreary look about
them, as if they were going to die at any moment from a profound shortage of
noble virtue.
I have experience in planting
such Bodhi trees and looking after them. And due to a lack of sound
judgment, I’ve had my share of disappointments. So I am well aware of how
difficult they are to establish and take care of. They always seem to be on
the verge of withering up and dying. Even today I cannot say for sure
whether or not this Bodhi tree of mine will grow and mature nicely, or
simply deteriorate, since as a rule it threatens to take a turn for the
worse. In fact, I haven’t seen enough progress to be able to gauge the level
of decline – steady decline seems to be the norm. Preferring to look for
stimulation that is invariably harmful, this type of bodhi can easily
destroy itself without any outside help.
Anyone who makes the agonizing
effort to oppose his heart’s natural inclinations until it submits to the
authority of Dhamma is able to develop bodhi to perfection. Such a person is
truly worthy of veneration. Acariya Mun is a classic example of a teacher
who develops bodhi so thoroughly that he becomes a reassuring source of
comfort to all his disciples. Acariya Mun carefully cultivated his Bodhi
tree until the trunk was strong, the branches extensive, the foliage thick,
and the fruits and flowers abundant. It was always a peaceful source of
shade for those who sought to shelter there. Although he has already passed
away, just reading the story of his life is enough to arouse faith in him
and the Dhamma he practiced. It’s almost as though he never passed away at
all.
Acariya Mun (circa 1940)
Acariya Mun’s residence at Wat
Nong Pheu monastery. The meeting hall at Wat Nong Pheu monastery where monks
assembled for the morning meal and evening meetings.
Acariya Maha Boowa standing in
front of a typical forest monk’s hut. The stretcher (covered with a white
canopy) carrying Acariya Mun’s dying body from Ban Nong Pheu to Ban Phu,
accompanied by scores of monks and lay supporters.
|
|
After departing Chiang Mai,
Acariya Mun stayed two rains retreats at Wat Non Niwet monastery in Udon
Thani. Following the second retreat, a group of lay devotees from Sakon
Nakhon, headed by a longtime disciple, Khun Mae Num Chuwanon, came and
invited him to return with them for the spiritual benefit of people there.
When he readily agreed, all concerned were delighted, and arrangements were
made to escort him there. Upon arriving in Sakon Nakhon in late 1941,
Acariya Mun first resided at Wat Suddhawat monastery. Soon monks and laity
were arriving daily to pay their respects and seek his advice.
While at Wat Suddhawat,
somebody came with a camera and asked permission to take his photograph to
keep as an object of worship. In all, Acariya Mun allowed his picture to be
taken three times: on this occasion in Sakon Nakhon; previously, when he was
staying in Nakhon Ratchasima; and later, at Ban Fang Daeng in That Phanom
district of Nakhon Phanom province on his return from Acariya Sao’s
funeral.1 The photographic prints that his devotees collect as objects of
worship today are reproductions of pictures taken on these three occasions.
But for these, there would be no photographic images to remind us what he
looked like. It was not easy to get permission to take Acariya Mun’s
picture. Those who tried were on pins and needles, fidgeting nervously as
they waited drenched in sweat, looking for a good opportunity to broach the
subject with him. Well aware that he rarely gave permission for such
activities, they were afraid that if they did not handle the situation
properly, then he might simply dismiss them with a curt retort.
Acariya Mun stayed at Wat
Suddhawat monastery for awhile before moving to a small forest monastery
near the village of Ban Na Mon which, being very quiet and secluded both day
and night, suited him perfectly. The monks and novices living with him were
an impressive sight – they said very little, but packed quite a punch. That
is to say, instead of chatting among themselves, they preferred to put
effort into their practice, each monk sitting in his own hut or walking
meditation out in the forest. At four o’clock in the afternoon they all
emerged from their living quarters to sweep the grounds together. With the
whole area swept clean, they drew water from the well and carried it around
to fill up the water barrels used for cleaning their feet and washing their
alms bowls. These chores completed, everyone bathed together at the well in
an admirably quiet, composed manner. They performed each daily chore with a
remarkable self-control, always applying mindfulness and wisdom to analyze
the nature of the tasks at hand – no one absentmindedly engaged in idle
conversation. As soon as the day’s duties were finished they separated, each
monk returning to his hut to sit or walk in meditation as he saw fit.
When the monks returned to
their huts, the monastery appeared deserted. A visitor happening to arrive
then would not have seen a single monk simply standing around or sitting
idly. Had the visitor ventured into the surrounding forest, he would have
discovered some of the monks pacing back and forth on their meditation
tracks, and others sitting peacefully in their small huts, all preferring to
practice quietly, in solitude. They came together for almsround and the
morning meal, or when there was an evening meeting, and only occasionally
for other required duties. Even on almsround, each monk walked to and from
the village with cautious restraint, mindfully intent on his meditation
practice. They were not negligent, walking along casually gazing here and
there, chatting with anyone who chanced to pass by. His monks truly were an
inspirational sight to see as they walked for alms with such dignified
composure.
Back in the monastery, the
monks sat together investigating the food in their alms bowls as they
prepared to eat. They reflected on the dangers inherent in attachment to
food. Remaining mindful as they ate, they gave no indication that they were
enjoying the food. With their attention focused on the contents of their
alms bowls, they refrained from talking and did not allow their gaze to
stray from the task of eating. They chewed their food carefully to avoid
making loud, impolite noises that could disturb the others. The meal over,
they helped each other put everything neatly away and swept the place clean.
Each monk washed his alms bowl, dried it with a cloth, and carefully placed
it in the sun for a few minutes. Only then did he put his alms bowl away in
the appropriate place.
These duties completed, each
monk returned to the seclusion of his own living quarters, turning his full
attention to training his heart and mind in the manner of practice best
suited to him. Sometimes a monk exerted himself to the limit; at other
times, less so. In either case, he concentrated solely on his practice,
unconcerned about how many hours passed or how much energy he expended.
Basically, his objective was to make sure his mind remained focused on the
meditation subject he had chosen to control it until that focus of attention
became a mental object he could rely on to direct his heart toward peace and
calm. Such calm, in turn, helped him to concentrate his mental focus on the
cause and effect relationships inherent within whichever phenomena his
wisdom then chose to investigate, allowing him to gradually attain
increasingly more subtle levels of Dhamma as he progressed toward the
ultimate goal. While applying himself assiduously, he always tried to make
sure that his mode of practice was correct for the level of Dhamma he was
working on.
It is extremely important that
a monk have mindfulness at every stage of his practice. It is also essential
that a monk use wisdom when his practice reaches those levels of Dhamma
where wisdom is indispensable. Mindfulness, however, is always indispensable
– at all times, in all activities. Whenever mindfulness is missing, effort
also is missing. Lacking mindfulness, walking and sitting meditation are
just empty postures void of anything that could be called “right effort”.
For this very reason, Acariya Mun stressed mindfulness more than any other
aspect of a monk’s practice. In fact, mindfulness is the principal
foundation supporting every aspect on every level of meditation practice.
Practiced continuously, it eventually develops into the kind of
supreme-mindfulness that fosters the highest levels of wisdom. Mindfulness
must be used intensively at the preliminary level of developing meditative
calm and concentration. In all succeeding levels of practice, mindfulness
and wisdom must be developed in tandem, working as a team.
Acariya Mun taught his monks to
be very resolute and courageous in their practice. Anyone who was not
earnestly committed to the practice was unlikely to remain with him for
long. About once a week he called a meeting and gave a talk; on other nights
he expected the monks to expedite their efforts on their own. Those with
doubts or questions about their practice could consult him without having to
wait for the next meeting. An aura of Dhamma pervaded the atmosphere around
him, giving his students the feeling that magga, phala, and Nibbana were
truly within their reach. His reassuring presence gave them the
determination and courage necessary to pursue their practice to the limit,
conducting themselves in a manner that suggested they had the highest
attainments in their sights. When meditating, they made little distinction
between day and night; each monk strived in earnest regardless of the hour.
On moonless nights, candle lanterns illuminated meditation tracks around the
whole area. On moonlit nights, monks walked meditation by the light of the
moon, each practicing with a sense of urgency that allowed him very little
time for sleep.
ACARIYA MUN’S PROFICIENCY in
chanting the suttas was unrivaled. He chanted suttas alone for many hours
every night without fail. He would chant long discourses, like the Dhamma-cakka-pavattana
Sutta and the Maha Samaya Sutta, nearly every night. Occasionally, he
translated the meaning of the suttas for our benefit, translations based on
his own personal experience. He spoke directly to their essential meaning,
often bypassing the strict rules of Pali grammar normally used to maintain
uniformity in translations. The undeniable clarity of his translations
allowed his audience to glimpse the fundamental message of the ancient texts
he quoted. Amazingly, he translated Pali better than the accomplished
scholars, though he had never studied Pali in any formal way. No sooner had
he mentioned a Pali phrase than, without even a pause, he had translated it
as well in a quick, fluent style that defied belief. For instance, when
citing passages from the Dhamma-cakka-pavattana Sutta or the Maha Samaya
Sutta during the course of his talks, he gave fast, simultaneous
translations worthy of a tenth grade Pali scholar.2 I say the tenth grade
because I have heard ninth grade Pali scholars translate and they tend to be
slow and plodding. They deliberate quite a long time over each passage and
even then they are not very sure of their translations.
Not only was Acariya Mun quick,
he also was boldly confident of the truth of his words. Having clearly
experienced the truth of their essential meaning himself, he was certain of
his translations. Pali verses arose spontaneously in his heart, which he
then elaborated on in a way that differed somewhat from classical
interpretations. For example, vata rukkha na pabbato, which he translated
as: “gale force winds can uproot whole trees, yet they can’t move a mountain
of stone.” This is an example of one Dhamma verse that arose spontaneously
in his heart, along with the translation, while he was giving a talk to the
monks. What I just wrote about the ninth and tenth grades of Pali
scholarship shouldn’t be taken too seriously. It is merely a figure of
speech used by monks in the forest tradition – no offense is intended. We
forest monks tend to act a bit like monkeys that have grown accustomed to
living in the wild: even if they are caught and raised as pets, they still
retain their old habits. They can never really adapt to human behavior.
Please excuse me for presuming to compare Acariya Mun’s translations with
those of Pali scholars. Some readers may feel that I have overstepped the
mark here.
IN DUE TIME ACARIYA MUN left
Ban Na Mon and moved to Ban Khok, just over a mile away, where he spent the
rainy season retreat. Since it was difficult to find a better location, the
monastery was located only half a mile from the village. Still, the place
was very quiet. Not more than eleven or twelve monks stayed with him at any
one time in either of those places due to the limited number of available
huts. It was while he resided at Ban Khok that I arrived. He was kind enough
to accept me as a student, although I was about as useful as an old log. I
lived there like a ladle in a pot of stew. I feel ashamed just thinking
about it now: this useless log of a monk staying with an absolutely
brilliant sage of such universal renown.
All the same, I do feel easier
about writing his story from this period onward. Up to this point in the
story I have felt somewhat hampered, and not a little frustrated, by the
fact that most of my information comes secondhand from senior disciples who
lived with him in the early years. In preparation for writing this
biography, I spent many years going around to meet those acariyas,
interviewing them and writing down their memories, or taping my
conversations with them. All this material then need to be carefully
arranged in chronological order before it could be presented in a
meaningful, readable format – a very demanding task. From now on I shall be
writing about what I myself witnessed in the final years of Acariya Mun’s
life. Although this part of the story may not impress the reader as much as
what has gone before, as the author I feel relieved to be writing from
personal experience.
ACARIYA MUN SPENT the rains
retreat at the Ban Khok forest monastery with a small group of monks, all of
whom remained healthy and contented throughout the three months. Acariya Mun
called a meeting about once a week, both during the retreat period and after
it was over. Although his discourses usually lasted for two to four hours,
his audience was so completely absorbed in meditation practice that thoughts
of weariness and fatigue never crossed their minds. For his part, Acariya
Mun was completely absorbed in delivering the Dhamma, expounding the nature
of cause and effect in a reasonable way that struck a chord with his
listeners, all of whom were genuinely searching for Truth. The Dhamma he
presented was delivered straight from a heart that had realized this Truth
with absolute clarity – leaving no room for doubt. Only one doubt remained:
Could the monks actually do the practice the way he described it.
He delivered his discourses in
a manner reminiscent of times past when the Lord Buddha delivered a
discourse to a gathering of monks. We can be sure that the Lord Buddha’s
discourses were concerned solely with the great treasures of Dhamma; that
is, he spoke only on subjects directly related to magga, phala, and Nibbana.
Thus, monks listening to him were able to attain magga, phala, and Nibbana
one after another, in steady succession, right up until the day of his final
passing away. Because the Buddha’s teaching emanated directly from an
absolutely pure heart, the Dhamma he delivered was incomparably superb. This
was magga and phala, pure and simple, and his listeners were able to emulate
his teaching to perfection.
The Dhamma that Acariya Mun
delivered was spontaneous Dhamma of the present moment – refined and
purified in his heart. He did not theorize or speculate when he spoke. His
audience already had their own doubts and uncertainties about the practice,
and further speculation would only have served to increase those doubts.
Instead, as they listened, his Dhamma gradually dispelled their doubts.
Those who heard his wonderful expositions were able to use them as a way to
significantly reduce their kilesas. Beyond that, they could be used to
conclusively eliminate all doubts.
ACARIYA MUN CHANTED suttas
every night for several hours. On a night when no meeting was held, he left
his meditation track at about eight o’clock and entered his hut to quietly
chant suttas at length before resuming seated meditation until it was time
to retire. On meeting nights, his chanting began later, after the meeting
was over. This meant that his normal schedule was delayed when there was a
meeting so that he retired later than usual, at midnight or one a.m.
One evening, hearing him softly
chanting in his hut, I had the mischievous urge to sneak up and listen. I
wanted to find out what suttas he chanted at such length every night. As
soon as I crept up close enough to hear him clearly, however, he stopped
chanting and remained silent. This did not look good, so I quickly backed
away and stood listening from a distance. No sooner had I backed away than
the low cadence of his chanting started up again, now too faint to be heard
clearly. So again I sneaked forward – and again he went silent. In the end,
I never did find out what suttas he was chanting. I was afraid that if I
stubbornly insisted on standing there eavesdropping, a bolt of lightning
might strike and a sharp rebuke thunder out. Meeting him the next morning I
glanced away. I did not dare to look him in the face. But he looked directly
at me with a sharp, menacing glare. I learned my lesson the hard way: never
again did I dare to sneak up and try to listen in on his chanting. I was
afraid I would receive something severe for my trouble. From what I had
observed of him, if I persisted there was a real chance I’d get just what I
was asking for.
It was only later, after long
association with him, that I clearly understood just how well he perceived
everything going on around him. Thinking about it now, how could he possibly
have been unaware that I was standing there like an idiot and listening so
intently. It’s obvious – he was fully aware. But before making any comment,
he wanted first to wait and check out this stubborn, silly monk. Any further
such behavior was bound to invoke a severe response. What amazed me was:
each time I crept close to his hut he stopped chanting straight away. He
obviously knew exactly what was going on.
Fellowship with Pigs
One day, shortly after my
arrival – during a time when I was extremely wary of Acariya Mun – I laid
down in the middle of the day and dozed off. As I slept, Acariya Mun
appeared in my dream to scold me:
“Why are you sleeping like a
pig? This is no pig farm! I won’t tolerate monks coming here to learn the
art of being a pig. You’ll turn this place into a pigsty!” His voice
bellowed, fierce and menacing, frightening me and causing me to wake with a
start. Dazed and trembling, I stuck my head out the door expecting to see
him. I was generally very frightened of him anyway; but, I had forced myself
to stay with him despite that. The reason was simple: it was the right thing
to do. Besides, he had an effective antidote for pigs like me. So, I was in
a panic. I stuck my head out, looking around in all directions, but I didn’t
see him anywhere. Only then did I begin to breathe a bit easier. Later when
I had a chance, I told Acariya Mun what happened. He very cleverly explained
my dream in a way that relieved my discomfort – a tolerant approach that I
don’t always agree with, since soothing words can easily promote
carelessness and complacency. He explained my dream like this:
“You’ve just recently come to
live with a teacher and you are really determined to do well. Your dream
simply mirrored your state of mind. That scolding you heard, reproaching you
for acting like a pig, was the Dhamma warning you not to bring pig-like
tendencies into the monkhood and the religion. Most people do only what they
feel like doing, failing to take into account the value of their human birth
and the consequences of their actions. This makes it difficult for them to
fully realize their human potential. There’s an old saying that someone is
‘not all there’. It refers to a basic lack of human potential arising from
callous insensitivity to the fact that human beings possess intrinsic
qualities that are superior to those of animals. This attitude promotes such
degrading behavior that some people end up damaged almost beyond repair – an
empty human shell lacking all intrinsic goodness. Even then, they are
unaware of what has happened to them, or why.
“If we possess sufficient
mindfulness and wisdom, Dhamma can guide us in investigating this matter for
ourselves. Your dream was a good, timely warning – learn from it. From now
on, whenever you’re feeling lazy you can use it as a means of stirring up
the mindfulness necessary to overcome your indolence. This type of dream is
exceptionally potent. Not everyone has a dream like this. I appreciate such
dreams for they effectively stimulate mindfulness, keeping it constantly
vigilant. This in turn accelerates progress in meditation, allowing the
heart to attain calm with relative ease. If you take this lesson that Dhamma
has provided and put it consistently into practice, you can expect to
quickly achieve meditative calm. Who knows, you may even penetrate the true
nature of Dhamma ahead of those who have been practicing meditation for many
years. That dream of yours was very worthwhile. It wasn’t a bad omen by any
means.
“Don’t be excessively
frightened of your teacher – it will only cause you to feel uncomfortable
all the time. Nothing of benefit can be gained from unreasonable fear of the
teacher. He has a moral obligation to educate his students, using every
means available to him. It’s not your teacher you should fear, but evil, for
evil leads directly to suffering. I don’t accept monks as my students just
so I can castigate them for no good reason. The training a monk undertakes
is a stringent one, following principles laid down by the Buddha. A
teacher’s guidance must follow the strict logic of these principles. If he
deviates from this path, neither he nor the student benefits in any way.
“So put your mind at ease and
work hard at your practice. Effort is key – don’t become discouraged and
ease up. Dhamma belongs to everyone who truly desires it. The Buddha did not
limit the possession of Dhamma to a particular individual. Everyone who
practices in the right way enjoys the same right of ownership. Don’t forget
that auspicious dream. Reflect on it often, and all pig-like tendencies will
fade into the background – as magga, phala, and Nibbana draw ever closer.
Then it’s only a matter of time before the domain beyond dukkha appears.
It’s inevitable. I’m truly pleased about your dream. I have trained myself
with a similar fiery intensity and I’ve always had good results. I found it
imperative to use such methods throughout my years of practice, and now
occasionally I must use similar methods to train my students.”
Acariya Mun used this
interpretation of my dream to console a youngster who was new to the
training. He was concerned this kid might lose heart and give up trying to
make an effort, thus rejoining the fraternity of pigs. That’s why he
resorted to this method of teaching. His teaching methods always displayed
an unparalleled ingenuity. I often went to speak with him during that early
period when my mental state was fluctuating between periods of progress and
periods of decline – a time of particular stress and uneasiness for me – and
he advised me in the same comforting manner. As soon as I paid my respect to
him, he asked me how my citta was doing. If it happened to be a time when my
meditation was progressing nicely, I told him so. He then voiced his
approval and encouraged me to keep up the good work so that I could quickly
transcend dukkha. If my meditation was deteriorating, I replied that my mind
was so bad it seemed all traces of happiness had gone. He then adopted a
sympathetic attitude:
“That’s too bad. Where’s it
gone? Well, don’t be discouraged. Just put maximum effort into your practice
and it will reappear for sure. It has simply wandered off somewhere. If you
accelerate your efforts it will come back on its own. The citta is like a
dog: it inevitably follows its owner wherever he goes. It won’t just run
away. Intensify your practice and the citta is bound to return on its own.
Don’t waste time thinking about where it’s gone to. Wherever it’s gone, it
can’t possibly run away. If you want it to return quickly, concentrate your
efforts. Any discouragement will only boost the citta’s ego. Thinking you
really miss it so much, it will play hard-to-get. So stop thinking about the
citta you’ve lost. Instead, think “buddho”, repeating it continuously, over
and over again. Once the word “buddho” has been mentally established by
repeating it continuously in rapid succession, the citta will hurry back of
its own accord. Even then, don’t let go of buddho. Buddho is the citta’s
food – as long as there is food, it will always come running back. So repeat
“buddho” constantly until the citta has eaten its fill, then it will have to
take a rest. You too will feel satisfied while the citta rests calmly. When
it’s calm, it ceases to run madly about looking to cause you trouble. Keep
this practice up until you cannot chase it away, even if you want to. This
is the perfect method to use with a mind whose ravenous appetite is never
satiated. As long as it has enough food, it will not leave even if you try
to drive it away. Follow my advice and the state of your citta will never
again deteriorate. Buddho is the key. So long as its food is there, it won’t
stray. Do as I say and you’ll never again experience the disappointment of
seeing your citta get worse time and time again.”
This was yet another technique
employed by Acariya Mun to teach those of us who were really stupid. But at
least I believed him – in my own stupid way. Otherwise, I would probably
still be chasing after a mind in perpetual decline without any chance of
ever catching it. I’ve written about this matter for the sake of those
readers who may glean some useful ideas from the way a clever person teaches
a stupid one. It is not my intention to glorify my own stupidity or the
lenient treatment that I received from Acariya Mun at that time.
FOLLOWING THE RAINS RETREAT,
Acariya Mun returned briefly to Ban Na Mon and then moved on to Ban Huay
Kaen, settling in the nearby forest for awhile. From there he moved to an
abandoned monastery at the base of a mountain near the village of Ban Na
Sinuan, remaining there for several months. While he was there, he came down
with a fever which lasted for days, curing himself as usual with the
‘therapeutic power of Dhamma’.
In April 1942 he traveled to
Ubon Ratchathani to attend the funeral of his teacher, Acariya Sao. Once the
cremation ceremony was completed, he returned to Ban Na Mon for the rains
retreat. During that retreat Acariya Mun employed a wide variety of methods
to press his students to maximize their efforts, exhorting them to be
diligent in their practice. He called a meeting once every four days
throughout the entire rains period, helping many monks to develop in Dhamma
and attain inner strength. Many experienced unusual insights which they
reported to Acariya Mun. I had the privilege of listening to those
experiences, although I was not as accomplished in my practice as many of
the others. Many memorable things occurred during that rains retreat –
things that I have never forgotten. I will remember those outstanding
experiences for the rest of my life.
During that retreat period
Acariya Mun began to use tough, coercive measures with us, treating us more
like old footrags. Until then, he had used relatively gentle methods,
turning a blind eye to our shortcomings. He probably decided that the time
was right to get tough with us. If he continued to tolerate our lapses
indefinitely, he would feel burdened all the time and his students would
never awake from their slumber long enough to open their eyes and see the
earth, the sky, the moon and the stars. As a result, all the monks were
eager to do meditation practice and excited about the insights they gained
from their efforts. Monks routinely described their inner experiences to
Acariya Mun so that he could help them to further their understanding. At
the same time, he would point out how they could perfect those aspects of
their practice that still needed improvement. He did his best to answer
every question that was put to him. Those question-and-answer sessions, when
he gave advice to specific individuals, were engrossing expositions on the
practical aspects of Dhamma. His responses to the monks who approached him
about their meditative experiences were never predictable, being dictated by
the specific nature of the experience or the question under discussion. He
always answered in the manner best suited to the individual student,
elucidating points of practice and recommending techniques appropriate for
his specific level of practice. Those of us, who had the privilege of
listening in, especially enjoyed hearing about the meditation experiences
and questions posed by monks whose practice had reached an advanced stage.
We were truly captivated then, wishing for those discussions never to end.
We were keen to hear such exchanges very often and so imbibe this Dhamma to
our heart’s content.
ACARIYA MUN ADDRESSED many
different topics during the course of a meeting. He told us about his past
lives. He recounted the initial stages of his own practice, including
insights into various phenomena arising in his meditation. He elaborated on
the methods he used in his struggle to extricate himself from the quagmire
of samsara to the point where he verged on transcending the world of
conventional reality, and how that final transcendence actually occurred.
Talk of his supreme attainment made those of us, who yearned for this
transcendent Dhamma, eager to attain it ourselves. This prompted some of us
to feel a bit dejected, wondering if we really had enough inherent potential
to successfully reach that sphere of Dhamma that he had realized to
perfection. Perhaps we would remain stuck in this quagmire forever, unable
to escape from the deep pit of samsara. How is it he can attain freedom, yet
we still cannot arouse ourselves from sleep? When will we be able to realize
the same transcendent freedom he has? This sort of thinking had the
advantage of awakening a persistent determination in us to tolerate the
difficulties and press ahead with our efforts. This in turn facilitated
every aspect of the practice. We were so inspired and energized by the
Dhamma he so kindly elucidated for us that all sense of weariness and
fatigue vanished. Our faith in him gave us the necessary strength to
willingly shoulder the heaviest burdens.
The Lord Buddha taught us to
associate with the wise. The truth of this is obvious to students living in
the presence of a good teacher, listening day in and day out to his
uplifting instructions. Their enthusiasm gains momentum as his teaching
gradually permeates deep into the fabric of their being, and his virtuous
qualities eventually infuse their characters. Although they cannot hope to
match him in every respect, at least they exemplify their teacher’s virtues.
The opposite also holds true: the more we associate with fools, the worse
off we are. These two teachings of the Buddha are equally valid: we can
become good through association with good people, or we can suffer harm
through association with bad people. If we observe someone who has spent a
long time training under a good teacher, it is evident that he has gained
some steadfast principles from that relationship. Conversely, it’s obvious
that those who get mixed up with fools will eventually display the same
foolish characteristics – or perhaps worse ones.
Here I am referring to the
external fools we meet in society. But you should understand that there are
still other, internal fools buried deep within the personalities of each and
every one of us – even wellmannered people like monks and nuns who wear the
sacred Buddhist robes, openly proclaiming themselves to be disciples of the
Lord Buddha. By inner fool, I mean the craven stupidity and timidness that
makes us shrink from facing up to the mind’s baser instincts, which are just
waiting to express themselves in ignoble, degrading ways. Many people are
unaware of the repugnant forces buried within their minds. But even people
who are aware of them tend to believe that as long as those things remain
hidden inside and do not express themselves in speech or actions, then their
repugnance is not really an issue. In truth, all bad things, regardless of
where they exist, are intrinsically repugnant by nature. It’s not necessary
for bad instincts to express themselves externally to be considered
repugnant. They are already frightfully repugnant in and of themselves and
must be dealt with as such.
That wisest of sages, the Lord
Buddha, taught us to renounce all bad things and root them out, completely
eradicating them from our hearts. The Lord Buddha and his Arahant disciples
were perfect examples of this: Both their hearts and their conduct were free
from blemish. Wherever they lived they always remained unperturbed and
sublimely contented. In my opinion, based on personal observation, Acariya
Mun was another monk free from blemish. I say this with complete confidence,
accepting full responsibility, for I am certain that it is true. Any
skepticism should be directed at me, not Acariya Mun – his escape from the
snares of Mara is already well completed.
AFTER THE RAINS RETREAT,
Acariya Mun continued living at Ban Na Mon for many months. Just prior to
the next retreat he moved back to Ban Khok, but not to the same forest
monastery where he previously lived. He stayed in a new monastery, built and
offered to him by Acariya Kongma Chirapuñño. He found the location quite
suitable, comfortably spending the rains retreat there in good health. As
usual, he held regular meetings to instruct the monks.
In summary, Acariya Mun stayed
continuously in the area around Ban Huay Kaen, Ban Na Sinuan, Ban Khok, and
Ban Na Mon in the Tong Khop district of Sakon Nakhon province for three
successive years, including three rainy season retreats. As usual he taught
the nonphysical beings who contacted him, though fewer devas came in Sakon
Nakhon and their visits were far less frequent than those of devas in Chiang
Mai. It was probably because the region was less remote, and thus less
secluded. They tended to come only on religious festival days, such as Magha
Puja, Visakha Puja and the observance days at the beginning, the middle, and
the end of the rains retreat. Other than that, relatively few devas came to
visit him.
Only a small group of monks
actually spent these rains retreats with him due to a limited number of
available huts. He could not accept new arrivals unless there were
vacancies. The situation was different outside of the retreat period. Then
monks from many different places came to train under him. Following the
retreat, a steady flow of monks came and went at his monastery, and he
always very kindly made a special effort to instruct them in their practice.
In the dry season, following
the third rains retreat, a group of lay people from the village of Ban Nong
Pheu Na Nai went to see Acariya Mun, and invited him to return with them to
live near their village. He accepted their offer, and was escorted to their
village in the Na Nai subdistrict of Phanna Nikhom in Sakon Nakhon province,
where he spent the next rains retreat. He traveled the distance from Ban
Khok to Ban Nong Pheu hiking through thick forest, camping out along the way
each night. Making his way through rough, wooded terrain the entire way, he
finally arrived several days later.
Soon after his arrival, he came
down with a severe case of malaria. The symptoms of this strain of malaria
alternate between bouts of very high fever and shivering cold chills. It’s a
punishing affliction that lasts for months. Anyone falling victim to such
severe malaria lives to dread it because the fever never quite seems to go
away. It may last for years, the symptoms returning again and again after
apparently having been cured. The fever can disappear for fifteen days, or
maybe a month; and then, just when one thinks it’s finally cured, it
resurfaces. Sometimes several months may elapse before it returns.
I previously described how
malarial fever caused in-laws to lose patience with each other. If the
son-in-law came down with it, his wife’s parents soon became fed up with
him. If one of his wife’s parents had it, the son-in-law soon got fed up.
The patient became a burden on the rest of the family because – although he
couldn’t do any heavy work – he still ate a lot, slept constantly, and then
complained bitterly no end. Malaria is a most tiresome illness which tries
everyone’s patience. Its effect was compounded by the fact that in those
days there were no effective medicines for curing malaria as there are
today. A person contracting it just had to wait for it to disappear on its
own. If it refused to go away, it could easily become a chronic condition,
dragging on for years. Young children who became infected usually had
swollen, distended bellies and pale, anemic complexions. Natives of the
low-lying plains, who had moved to settle in forested areas, tended to be
the worst victims of this strain of malaria. Indigenous forest inhabitants
were not immune, though their symptoms were seldom so severe as those of
people who came from open, lowland areas.
Malaria was also common among
dhutanga monks, as they normally liked to wander extensively through
forested mountain areas. Were this dreaded disease something valuable,
something to boast about, then I myself could boast with the best of them,
having suffered its devastating effects many times. It scares me just
thinking about it now. I was hit with a case of malaria my very first year
at Ban Nong Pheu, an ordeal that severely chastened me. Fever plagued me the
entire rainy season, then lingered on intermittently into the dry season,
refusing to completely go away. How could I fail to be chastened? Being
fully sensitive to pleasure and pain like everybody else, monks naturally
dread the thought of pain and discomfort.
Once Acariya Mun became settled
at Ban Nong Pheu, the number of monks coming to stay with him on a regular
basis steadily increased. As many as twenty to thirty monks came each year
to spend the rains retreat with him. In addition to the monks who lived in
the monastery, many others stayed close by in the vicinity of other small
villages. A few monks lived together in some locations, five or six in
others, and occasionally nine or ten in some places. Each of these groups
stayed in separate places, all within walking distance of Acariya Mun’s
monastery. As many as thirty to forty monks from the surrounding area used
to assemble at his monastery on uposatha observance days. Combined with
resident monks, the total assembly easily reached fifty or sixty. Outside
the retreat period, it sometimes exceeded that number, as monks continuously
arrived at Ban Nong Pheu seeking Acariya Mun’s guidance. During the day they
dispersed into the thick forest surrounding the monastery grounds to do
their practice in solitude. The forest in this region was many tens of miles
wide, while its length was almost unlimited as it extended along a series of
overlapping mountain ranges that seemed to stretch on forever.
In those days, virtually the
whole region from the district of Phanna Nikhom south to the province of
Kalasin was blanketed by forests. For this reason, Acariya Mun’s monastery
at Ban Nong Pheu proved to be an excellent central location for dhutanga
monks of the kammatthana tradition who were obliged to attend regular
recitations of the Patimokkha3 and receive Dhamma instructions from their
teacher. Those wanting to come with questions about their meditation
practice could easily do so. During the dry season, his disciples wandered
off into the surrounding mountains, living and practicing in the many caves
and under the overhanging rocks scattered throughout the rugged terrain.
Numerous small settlements of thatched huts dotted the mountain ridges where
five or six families eked out a living, growing crops. Many dhutanga monks
relied on those communities for their daily alms food. But they could live
conveniently anywhere in the region’s thick forests since small village
communities of ten to thirty houses were scattered throughout.
The village of Ban Nong Pheu
was situated in a rather broad valley completely surrounded by mountains.
The villagers made a living by farming the land they could clear. Beyond
that, forested mountain ranges stretched in every direction, making it an
ideal place for dhutanga monks who easily found the kinds of secluded sites
they preferred. Consequently, large numbers of dhutanga monks lived
throughout the region, in the rainy and the dry seasons alike. Many went to
see Acariya Mun regularly, and then wandered off again to practice in the
mountains, walking down from there to hear his instructions, then returning
to continue their practice. Some traveled from other provincial districts,
or even other regions, to train with him at Ban Nong Pheu, especially in the
dry season when travel was more convenient.
Lay people also made the
arduous journey to pay their respects to him and hear his advice. They
traveled by foot from locations all around the region, some, quite far away.
Everyone came by foot, except for the elderly and women who, unaccustomed to
hiking, hired ox carts to take them to the monastery. The dirt track
extending from the main district of Phanna Nikhom to Ban Nong Pheu was about
twelve miles long, following a path that cut straight up through the
mountains. Following a more circuitous route around the base of the
mountains, the distance was about fifteen miles. Those unaccustomed to
hiking would never make it if they took the direct route, since there were
no villages along the way where they could find food and shelter. The more
circuitous route had only a few villages, spread far apart; so it wasn’t
very convenient either. Monks traveling to see Acariya Mun went on foot,
there being no road to Ban Nong Pheu that was suitable for motorized
traffic. What public transport there was in those days went along the main
provincial highways, and then only infrequently. Latecomers usually missed
their ride and wasted a whole day waiting for the next one.
DHUTANGA MONKS PREFERRED
traveling by foot. They found riding in vehicles inconvenient, since they
were usually crowded with people. A dhutanga monk considered hiking from
place to place simply another aspect of his meditation practice. Once he
determined which mountain range or forest he wanted to head for, he focused
on his practice and started his journey as though he were walking in
meditation and the forest trails were his track. He did not fret about where
the next village might be or whether he would reach it before dark. He
resolved to walk until dusk, then look for a place to rest for the night.
The next morning he walked on until he reached the nearest village. There he
collected alms food from the local inhabitants as he passed through. He was
satisfied to eat whatever they offered. The quality of the food was usually
poor, but that didn’t worry him – if it was sufficient to keep him going
from one day to the next, he was contented. Having eaten his meal, he
continued on his journey peacefully until he reached his destination. There
he searched until he found a site in the forest that best suited his
personal requirements. He paid special attention to the availability of
water – a vital requisite when living in the wilds. Having set up camp in a
suitable location, the dhutanga monk turned his attention to the task of
intensifying his efforts internally, alternating walking and sitting
meditation around the clock, day and night. Bolstered by mindfulness and
aided by the contemplative faculties of wisdom, he concentrated on a Dhamma
theme that suited his temperament, thus inducing his heart to drop into the
peaceful calm of samadhi. Withdrawing from samadhi, he focused on developing
wisdom by investigating whichever phenomena arose in his field of awareness.
Subjects included impressions from the external environment that constantly
impinged on his sense faculties, and aspects of his internal environment,
such as the physical elements and the sense organs, which continually
fluctuate as they remain constantly in motion. He meditated on
viparinamadhamma: that all things perpetually come and go, subject to the
instability of constant change. He could not afford to be apathetic toward
anything that might entangle his heart. He used wisdom to thoroughly analyze
his body and mind to clearly understand their true nature, gradually letting
go of any attachment to them. Wisdom was the tool he used to excavate the
entire root system of the kilesas, relentlessly destroying them trunk,
roots, and all. His mind was fixed on a single purpose: investigating all
arising phenomena. Everything that made contact with the mind was
scrutinized in terms of the ti-lakkhana4 to gain insight into its true
nature, thus eliminating the kilesas associated with it. Any dhutanga monk
who felt uncertain about his mode of practice returned to Acariya Mun as
quickly as possible to ask him for clarification. As soon as his doubts were
cleared up, he left, returning to the seclusion of the mountains to press
ahead with his spiritual development.
Many dhutanga monks relied on
Acariya Mun to give them guidance in meditation. There was not sufficient
room in his monastery to accommodate them all. So, after receiving his
instructions, they went to live in the surrounding hills and forests.
Spreading out in different directions, either alone or in pairs, each monk
looked for a secluded place to set up camp that was within walking distance
of Acariya Mun’s monastery. In that way they could return to see him with
minimum inconvenience. Depending on individual preferences, some monks lived
three or four miles away, others between five to eight miles, while a few
might have lived as far as twelve to fifteen miles from him. Monks traveling
a distance of twelve miles or more to consult Acariya Mun remained overnight
in his monastery before walking back to their respective locations.
The trails that connected
forest and mountain hamlets then were very different from the provincial
roads seen everywhere today. They were mere dirt tracks that those
communities had used for ages to keep in touch with one another; and all the
local people were familiar with the routes. Since the villagers seldom made
long treks to visit one another, the trails were often overgrown and
obscured by undergrowth. Anyone unfamiliar with this network of trails had
to be very careful not to take a wrong fork and get lost in the densely
forested terrain. One might well end up in an area where there were no
settlements at all. The distance between some communities could be twelve to
fifteen miles of uninterrupted jungle. Such lengthy trails required special
caution, for any traveler who lost his way would almost surely end up
spending the night in the wilderness without any food. Besides that, he
might never safely find his way out unless he chanced upon a hunter who
pointed him in the right direction or conducted him back to the main trail
to his destination.
Harsh Training Methods
Dhutanga kammatthana monks were
motivated by their great enthusiasm for Dhamma. They regularly endured many
hardships: in their wandering lifestyle, in their living conditions, and in
their mode of practice. It was difficult for them to find an excellent
teacher like Acariya Mun, a teacher capable of training them in the
authentic way, thus bringing joy to their practice. Whenever they met him,
they were as excited as small children greeting their parents. The devotion
and affection they felt combined to give them a feeling of complete
confidence in him. Their lives and well-being were placed solely in his
hands. Dhutanga monks naturally tended to have immense faith in their
teacher, revering him so much that they would willingly give up their lives
for him without regrets. Even when living apart from him, they continued to
feel an extraordinary sense of obligation to their teacher. No matter how
much hardship they endured, or how difficult their training was, they were
contented to persevere so long as their teacher was supportive. They could
manage to put up with the deprivations they suffered daily – going without,
as often as not – because they were convinced in their hearts that Dhamma
was more important than anything else. There were times when they had to
sleep in the pouring rain through the night, shivering like little birds.
Still, their determination to endure adversity for the sake of Dhamma never
wavered.
It was always very interesting
to hear dhutanga monks discuss their experiences of wandering through remote
forest areas. The way they practiced, the way they endured – it was pitiable
how, due to extreme deprivations, they lived in the forest like wild
animals, often sleeping on the ground without shelter. They used a variety
of techniques to intensify their meditation, experimenting until they found
the ones that best suited their character. They tried: going without sleep;
reducing the amount of food they ate; fasting entirely for as many days as
they could reasonably manage; walking in meditation all night, from dusk
until dawn; sitting in samadhi for many hours at a stretch; sitting in
samadhi all night, from dusk to dawn; sitting in samadhi on a trail used by
tigers when entering their lair; sitting in samadhi at night on forest
trails frequented by tigers; sitting in samadhi in a cemetery on the day a
corpse was being cremated; sitting in samadhi at the edge of a precipice;
venturing deep into the mountains at night looking for a particularly scary
place to sit in samadhi; sitting in samadhi late at night at the foot of a
tree in a tiger-infested area, relying on the threat of danger to help the
citta attain calm. These methods were all practiced with the same aim in
mind – to torment the citta, and so forcibly tame its unruly nature. When a
monk discovered that any one or more of these techniques matched his
individual temperament, he used it to good effect, focusing his mind and
strengthening his resolve, thus achieving his objective and learning many
valuable lessons in the process. For this reason, dhutanga monks actually
preferred such harrowing practices. Acariya Mun himself had used them and so
liked to encourage his monks to do likewise, insisting that this was the way
clever people trained themselves. These techniques have never been abandoned
– they are still being practiced by dhutanga monks today.
The training we undertake to
develop our spiritual worth requires a fair amount of coercion to be
successful. The hardships we experience are insignificant when compared with
the good results we gain: virtue, contentment, discipline, and firm Dhamma
principles to supervise and maintain our lives – all qualities that people
highly value. Only useless junk and cadavers require no maintenance. The
personal worth we hope to realize will only arise through conscientious
self-improvement, so we should work to maintain this purpose in our lives.
By this means, we will be good, happy, prosperous people now and in the
future. Dhutanga monks therefore deserve a lot of respect for refusing to
allow adversity and hardship to hinder their practice, thus clearing the way
for Dhamma to develop in their hearts.
So long as people are
interested in practicing Dhamma properly, the Buddha’s sasana will last
indefinitely in the world. The sasana rewards those truly desiring Dhamma
who practice accordingly, giving excellent results at every step along the
path. This principle was embodied in the Lord Buddha, who was earnest in his
pursuit of Truth – a Truth that he fully realized and then taught to the
world. Those who truly believe in Buddhism are those who earnestly pursue
Truth. They never practice in a halfhearted, inept manner, thus impeding the
sasana’s progress and devaluing it to the extent that non-Buddhists find
cause to be contemptuous. The genuine sasana are the very Noble Truths that
deserve to be proclaimed and accepted throughout the universe without
concern about their validity, since they are true natural principles
emanating directly from the Buddha’s absolute purity –unless, of course, one
is uninterested in Truth or unable to understand it. In that case, the
sasana may simply be held hostage within the countless diverse opinions of
people whose hearts are totally obscured by a mass of deep-rooted kilesas –
a veil of defilements that the sasana has long since thoroughly penetrated.
Please excuse me for this
lengthy digression – it shows I lack the firm principles needed to restrain
my wayward tendencies. I would like to continue discussing those harsh
training methods that dhutanga monks tended to use until they became second
nature. Diligently practiced, each of these methods produces clear-cut
results. They help diminish the unruly, arrogant nature of the mind, a
condition exacerbated by excessive physical vitality. Reducing the intake of
food, fasting, going without sleep, or other harsh methods, such as walking
or sitting in meditation continuously for long periods of time – all of
these practices provide the heart with the strength required to advance
easily on the path of Dhamma. Other practices are designed for those who are
scared of tigers or ghosts, which when practiced unflinchingly, force the
heart to turn inward where its true sanctuary lies, remaining there until
calm and courage arise. Fears can be alleviated, or even banished, by such
means. The citta then comes to realize its own strength and ability so that
when it is driven into a corner at a truly critical juncture – for example,
when the body is racked by excruciating pain – it has the means to emerge
victorious, and survive. Normally, mindfulness and wisdom are fully aroused
only when the citta is placed in a critical situation. Otherwise, they never
have a chance to realize their full potential.
An excellent way to develop the
capacity of mindfulness and wisdom to act boldly in full knowledge of their
true potential is to use our basic ingenuity, experimenting with various
forceful techniques until we find those that best suit us. Our hearts then
remain unperturbed, regardless of what happens. Each of these methods brings
its own distinct results. Those who have long suffered from fear of ghosts
can rid themselves of this debilitating fear by forcing themselves to spend
the night in a cemetery. Those who are terrified of wild animals, like
tigers, can overcome this fear by forcing themselves to spend the night
alone in terrifying wilderness. Those who have persistent craving for food
can alleviate it, or even overcome it, by drastically reducing the amount
they eat, or by going on fast.
We all appreciate good food. We
tend to believe that eating a lot of good, tasty food will make us happy.
The trouble is: greed never accepts that it’s had enough. It always hankers
for more. No matter how much discontent it causes us, we fail to consider
that the dissatisfaction stems from our tendency to overindulge. So, those
of us practicing Dhamma for the sake of understanding ourselves and our
attachments must investigate such desires and exercise some forceful
restraints on their excesses. In the case of dhutanga monks, this sometimes
takes the form of self-imposed austerities. When a monk notices that a
certain type of food kindles an unseemly craving in his heart, he punishes
the craving by refusing to eat that food. Instead, he eats things that he
feels no desire for. If he feels that he’d like to eat a lot, he eats only a
little instead. Or he may eat only plain rice, even though there are plenty
of other foods to choose from. Those foods which invigorate the body may
hamper his citta by overwhelming its mental faculties, thus making
meditation more difficult. His practice then fails to progress as it should,
despite the fact that he is striving with the same intensity as ever. Once
he realizes the cause of the problem, he strives to eliminate it by
adamantly refusing to follow the greed in his heart. This is the attitude of
a monk truly committed to training himself under the guidance of a good
teacher: he resists any temptation to follow his usual self-indulgent
tendencies. Just as a dhutanga monk trains himself to be moderate and
restrained in what he eats, so too, when he goes to sleep, he determines to
awaken at a predetermined time. He doesn’t just let sleep take its course,
waking him up randomly whenever it so desires. He trains himself to
carefully consider the appropriateness of his actions. He resists doing
anything that may violate the ethical principles of Dhamma and therefore be
inappropriate, even though it may not strictly be in violation of the
disciplinary rules. He strives to inculcate Dhamma within his heart so that
it steadily flourishes, never deteriorating – an extremely difficult task.
So difficult, in fact, that no other endeavor can compare with it. When,
however, we inculcate the ways of the world in our hearts, defilements
easily arise and flourish, then wait there ready to cause harm whenever
we’re off guard. We can never manage to bring them under control. In an
instant, they furtively infiltrate our hearts and multiply until we cannot
keep track of them all. We can be sure they will cause us nothing but
trouble. They arise and flourish so quickly that, within the blink of an
eye, they are everywhere, and we are helpless to catch them. Sexual craving5
is one such defilement – very easy to arise but so difficult to purge.
Sexual craving creates a destructive, offensive state of mind that tends to
express itself with unrivaled audacity. Because everyone in the world is so
fond of it, it becomes emboldened, causing destruction everywhere while
ignoring the moral consequences. It does show some fear of people with
Dhamma in their hearts. But, more than anything else, it is terrified of the
Lord Buddha and the Arahants. Since these Noble Ones have completely
demolished its normal playground, sexual craving does not dare enter their
hearts to prowl around. But it still creates plenty of trouble for the rest
of us who remain under its power.
Dhutanga monks are aware that
these oppressive kilesas are obstructing their spiritual progress. That’s
the reason they torture themselves with such arduous training practices. For
kilesas are not in the least disconcerted by the fact that monks have
ordained into the holy life and wear the yellow robes: the distinctive
‘badge of victory’ for those who defeat the forces of Mara. They invariably
try to convince monks to give up the yellow robes and the spiritual quest
they symbolize, refusing to admit defeat regardless of a monk’s age or
seniority. For this reason, dhutanga monks feel compelled to use coercive
methods in their struggle to eradicate the kilesas from their hearts. They
endure and press ahead in spite of the difficulties, battling pain and
discomfort but never reversing course. Otherwise, the kilesas will make fun
of them as they disgrace themselves and the yellow robes they wear. Even
more damaging is the discredit they do to the monkhood – an order of
spiritual warriors who never accept defeat – and the sasana which is the
principal basis for all mankind. Better they sacrifice their lives to redeem
themselves and the yellow robes, than allow themselves to perish in
disgrace. In that way, they redeem the monkhood and the religion as well.
Dhutanga monks use such
exhortations to embolden themselves to strive for victory, thus honoring the
Dhamma that some day will undoubtedly lead them to that sublime domain
beyond dukkha. Only the Dhamma of the Lord Buddha is capable of showing the
way to that sublime transcendence. It is without a doubt the one straight
path leading to the land beyond suffering. There is not a more esoteric way
that can be taken to avoid the difficulty of putting maximum effort into the
practice. Alternative paths are all littered with stumbling blocks that
constantly thwart the wayfarer’s hopes of success. They inevitably cause
pain and frustration, leading to despair and a lack of confidence that the
chosen way will ever lead to a state of total freedom.
Before emerging as a revered
teacher of such renown, Acariya Mun practiced with the attitude that
cemeteries were irrelevant to him. That is, he was prepared to discard his
body wherever he happened to be when he breathed his last breath. He felt no
qualms about dying for the sake of Dhamma. Later, when instructing his
students, he taught them in a forceful, dynamic fashion that stressed the
sharp, incisive tactics he had honed to perfection in his own practice. His
teaching was mentally stimulating, helping his students constantly develop
new skills to see through the cunning tricks of the kilesas and thus uproot
and destroy them once and for all. Only then would they be safely out of
danger, living contentedly without dukkha. They would no longer meander
through the round of samsara, where one birth changes into another
continuously, but the dukkha, that is carried around in the heart, remains
unchanged – regardless of how many times one is reborn. Since each new life
is merely a new instrument for one’s own destruction, no one should be
satisfied with birth in any realm of existence.
It is equivalent to a prisoner
changing cells within the same prison: as long as he remains imprisoned,
there is no fundamental improvement. The wise well understand the dangers of
the cycle of repeated birth and death. It’s as though with each new birth
the heart has moved into yet another house that is on fire: no matter where
it’s reborn it can never escape the threat of danger. This is but a small
taste of how Acariya Mun routinely taught his dhutanga disciples. Perhaps
some of my readers will discover an affinity for his style of teaching.
ON UPOSATHA OBSERVANCE days,
when as many as forty to fifty additional monks attended from various
locations, Acariya Mun gave discourses on Dhamma that generally differed
from those he gave exclusively to the monks who regularly lived with him.
Although his uposatha discourses were often forceful and profound, they
could not match the ones given regularly to the monks living in his
monastery. Those talks were truly dynamic, and penetrating. Each time he
spoke, the impact of his Dhamma was so powerful it seemed to dispel the
kilesas from the hearts of his listeners, as if the whole world had
momentarily vanished from their awareness. What remained was an awareness of
the heart united in perfect harmony with Dhamma, an experience so amazing
and gratifying it defies description. For days thereafter the dynamic power
of his Dhamma seemed to subdue their kilesas, as though he had issued them
all a defiant challenge. Inevitably, their kilesas gradually reemerged after
several days, until they were finally back in full force. By then, another
meeting had been scheduled where Acariya Mun subdued them once more, giving
the monks a few more days of relief.
All dhutanga monks earnestly
striving to reach the Dhamma that transcends dukkha feel an exceptionally
strong bond with their teacher. Eradicating the kilesas requires that
individual effort be inextricably combined with the help and advice of a
good teacher. When confronted with an intractable problem, a monk practicing
on his own will hurry back to consult his teacher who clarifies the nature
of the problem, allowing the student to understand its underlying causes and
so overcome his doubts. Sometimes while a monk is struggling with a problem
which is too complex for him to resolve on his own, his teacher unexpectedly
explains the solution of that very problem to him, immediately eliminating
that obstacle so his student can proceed unhindered.
Practicing monks are able to
determine the precise levels of Dhamma that their fellows, and even their
teacher, have attained by listening to their discussions about meditation
practice. This knowledge helps to foster an atmosphere of mutual trust
within the circle of practice. When a monk explains the nature of his
experiences and the stages he has passed through, from that description it
is possible to immediately determine the level of Dhamma he has realized.
When a student tells the teacher about his experiences in meditation, or
when he asks advice about a specific problem, he can assess his teacher’s
level of attainment at that time by gauging his responses. If the teacher
has passed beyond that point himself, he is already familiar with those
experiences, and he is able to use them as a starting point to advise his
student on how to proceed. Or, in the case of a specific problem, he is able
to pinpoint the nature of the problem in such a precise way that the student
accepts his advice without reservation. Perhaps a student deludes himself
into thinking he has reached the highest level of Dhamma, having completely
transcended the different stages. But, the teacher, through his own
experience, knows this to be untrue. The teacher must then explain to his
student why he is wrong, pointing out exactly where his thinking went
astray. Once he is willing to accept the validity of his teacher’s
reasoning, he can safely avoid such dangers.
Once dhutanga monks have
discussed the various aspects of meditation practice among themselves and
reach the point where they know and accept the truth of their respective
levels of attainment, there is then no need for further confirmation. The
principles of truth that have been discussed constitute their own proof.
Practicing monks use this knowledge to determine one another’s level of
Dhamma. From the teacher on down to the junior monks, they all rely on
evidence gathered in this way. As for intuitive knowledge of these matters,
it requires an inner faculty to which I can lay no claim. I shall leave this
matter to those with the appropriate expertise. It is a special case
requiring individual skill.
The regular conversations on
meditation that Acariya Mun held with his disciples enabled them to develop
close personal relationships with him. Due to the profound respect this
tutelage inspired, they willingly entrusted their lives to his care. This
deep faith induced them to unreservedly accept as true whatever he told
them, for he always spoke about principles of truth, never presenting mere
opinions or guesswork based on information from other sources.
I myself have always been
someone with strong views, being reluctant to submit to anyone’s judgment.
So I liked to argue with him. In this respect, I admit to being one of
Acariya Mun’s more annoying and contentious disciples. Sometimes I was so
caught up in disputing an issue with him that I forgot I was a student
seeking his guidance – not a teacher instructing him. I still pride myself
on my audacity to speak up, having no sense of misgiving. Although he then
slapped me down and chopped me to pieces, the important thing was: I was
able to learn for myself whether the truth lay in my opinions, or in the
wisdom of my teacher. When I argued with him, it sounded like a shouting
match. The more I pressed my case, the more I realized that he had all the
truth on his side. I had only my inane fallacies, piled up all around me. I
always fought a losing battle. When the dust settled, I thought long and
hard about what he said, respectfully accepting its truth with all my heart.
At the same time, I made a mental note of my misconceptions. On occasions
when I refused to yield to his reasoning because I still couldn’t understand
what he was getting at, I would wait for another opportunity to debate with
him. But I always came away bruised and battered by the power of his
reasoning, my opinions tied in knots. Still, I could not resist smiling to
myself, delighted by the mighty power of his Dhamma.
Although Acariya Mun realized
full well that I was wildly opinionated, he did not scold me or try to force
me to change my attitude. Instead, he could not help but smile when looking
at me. He may have been thinking how insufferable I was; or he may have felt
sorry for this idiot who liked fighting with such diehard assurance. I must
admit: I was never a very fine person. Even today, I still shamelessly argue
with senior acariyas. But it’s paid off for me in the sense that I’ve
learned many unusual lessons this way which form a valuable part of my
education to this day. These monks never seem to mind my intrusions; in
fact, they are often amused by them. It’s not so often that a stubborn old
monk drops by to stir things up. Ordinarily, no one dares come and argue
with one of these acariyas. So when the monks in his monastery hear what’s
going on, they become rather puzzled – and more than a little alarmed.
AFTER LEAVING CHIANG MAI, where
he passed beyond the thick jungle of repeated birth and death, he invariably
had a profound reason in mind when he decided to live in any one place for a
long time, although he kept these reasons to himself. Nakhon Ratchasima was
a case in point. Many monks and lay people there had long developed a true
devotion to Dhamma; so, many of them came to study with him as accomplished
meditators. Later, some followed him to Udon Thani and Sakon Nakhon where
they continued to study with him until he died. The monks and laity from
Nakhon Ratchasima who kept in contact with him were all well established in
meditation practice. Some of those monks have since become famous acariyas
who possess a firm basis of Dhamma in their hearts, and are still teaching
monks and laity today. Many lay devotees have continued to see steady
progress in meditation. Today, they show the way of generosity and spiritual
development to other devotees in the area in a truly commendable fashion.
He next settled at Udon Thani,
where he spent the rains retreat. Chao Khun Dhammachedi, the abbot of Wat
Bodhisomphon monastery, was an influential monk with a large following of
monks and lay supporters. He praised Acariya Mun’s preeminence, encouraging
them all to make his acquaintance, offer donations and, above all, hear his
teaching. Since his ordination, Chao Khun Dhammachedi had been a devoted
disciple, and Acariya Mun reciprocated by showing unusual kindness and
affection toward him – thus, his willingness to stay several years in Udon
Thani.
Later after moving to Sakon
Nakhon and living at Ban Na Mon, Acariya Mun met an elderly, white-robed nun
who ran a small convent in the village. She was a major reason why he
remained there as long as he did: her meditation was exceptionally good. She
had developed a firm basis in Dhamma, so Acariya Mun gave her regular
instructions on practice. He said it was rare to find someone so
accomplished. Acariya Mun’s lengthy residence at Ban Nong Pheu was prompted
by both the significance of the location and the people living in the
village. The place was centrally situated in a very broad valley, completely
surrounded by mountains, making it an ideal environment for the dhutanga
life. Living in the village was an elderly white-robed lay woman who was
approaching eighty. Much like the elderly nun at Ban Na Mon, she was an
accomplished meditator who always received special attention from Acariya
Mun. She consulted him often, walking with difficulty from her home to the
monastery. Shuffling slowly along, supported by a cane, she had to stop for
rest three or four times before she finally arrived at the monastery,
exhausted and out of breath. We all truly felt sorry for her. Seeing her
struggle so painfully, Acariya Mun would feign disapproval: “Why come all
the way out here? Don’t you realize how exhausted you are? Even children
know when they’re tired. Here you are eighty, ninety years old, yet you
still don’t know when you’re worn out. Why do you take all the trouble to
come here?”
Her reply was always
characteristically straightforward and fearless. He then inquired about her
meditation and explained various aspects of Dhamma relating to it. Not only
had this woman developed a solid foundation for her meditation, she also
possessed paracittavijja, the psychic ability to know the fundamental moral
bias of a person’s heart. On top of that, she had a knack for perceiving
unusual external phenomena. Addressing Acariya Mun, she recounted these
extraordinary perceptions with a daring self-assurance that amused him,
causing him to laugh about her indomitable spirit.
“Your citta has long since gone
beyond”, she boldly declared. “I’ve been aware of your citta for a long time
– it’s absolutely without parallel. Since your citta is already so supreme,
why do you continue to meditate?”
Acariya Mun laughed. “I will
resolutely continue meditating until the day I die. A disciple of the Buddha
never allows his resolve to weaken.”
To this she said: “If you still
had more to accomplish, I could understand that. But your heart is already
filled by an exceedingly luminous radiance. How can you go further than that
with meditation? I look at your citta and see its radiance encompassing the
whole world. Your awareness extends everywhere – nothing can possibly
obstruct its scope. But my own citta sadly lacks such supreme qualities,
which is why I must come to ask your help. Please tell me: how should I
practice to attain the same preeminence you have?”
Hearing her discussions with
Acariya Mun, one sensed that her meditation was truly exceptional. Upon
encountering a problem, she inevitably started dragging herself slowly down
the path to the monastery, with her cane keeping her company. Acariya Mun
was especially kind to her: he made a point of advising her every time she
came. On such occasions, the monks would sneak up to listen quietly at one
side of the meeting hall where their discussions were held, eager to hear
her questions and his answers. Because her questions arose directly from her
own experiences in meditation, these exchanges fascinated the monks. Some of
her doubts concerned internal matters, focusing on intrinsic Noble Truths;
other questions related to external affairs and focused on the deva and
brahma realms. If Acariya Mun accepted her understanding of these matters as
being correct, he encouraged her to continue her investigations. But if he
did not agree with the course she was pursuing, he advised her to forgo that
approach, explaining how she should adjust her practice to set it right.
Her claims to knowing their
minds intrigued the monks who, though eager to hear her insights, were also
rather apprehensive about what they might reveal. But she always described
an impressive vision: radiant auras of increasing brilliance, from the young
novices on up to Acariya Mun, resembling the night sky’s array of stars and
planets: some were bright, some less so. It was a majestic sight, for not
even the junior monks or young novices had somber, gloomy states of mind.
Each being admirable, every monk was worthy of respect in his own way as he
strove to improve and refine himself spiritually. Sometimes she recounted
her visits to the brahmaloka, describing how she saw large numbers of monks,
but no lay people. This puzzled her, so she asked Acariya Mun to explain –
which he did.
“The brahmaloka is mostly
inhabited by monks who have already attained the level of Anagami, that’s
why. When a monk who has attained Anagami dies, he is reborn in the
brahmaloka. Very few lay people develop themselves to that level, so they
rarely gain access to the brahma realms. Thus you saw only monks there, but
no lay people. Another thing: if you’re so curious, why didn’t you ask one
of the monks you saw? Neglecting to ask them while you were there, you now
want to come and ask me.”
She laughed. “I forgot to ask
them. I didn’t think about it until I’d come back down, so I decided to ask
you. If I remember, next time I go up I’ll ask those monks.”
Acariya Mun’s explanations
usually had a dual purpose: to expound the truth of the matter, and then to
clear up her doubts. Later he discouraged her from sending out her awareness
to perceive external phenomena, for it used up the valuable time she needed
to spend investigating internal phenomena and the basic principles
underlying them – investigations leading directly to the realization of
magga and phala. Obediently, she practiced as he advised. He often praised
this woman’s meditation practice, telling his monks of her high achievements
in Dhamma – a level of success that many of them could not emulate.
Her practice, no doubt, was a
factor in his decision to live so long at Ban Nong Pheu – the longest
residence of his monastic life. Also, it was a convenient central location
serving all the practicing monks living and wandering in the surrounding
area. Well within walking distance of his monastery were many secluded
places, suitable for practice. Monks had a choice of staying in wooded
lowlands, high mountains, or caves – all being environments conducive to the
ascetic way of life.
Acariya Mun lived at Ban Nong
Pheu monastery for five years. Because of his advanced age – he was
seventy-five years old with failing health when he began staying there – he
remained within the confines of the monastery all year, unable to wander
extensively as he had in the past. He was content to provide sanctuary to
all his disciples earnestly seeking Dhamma. While he was living there, the
devas seldom contacted him, tending to visit only on certain special
occasions. So he concentrated his efforts on assisting the monks and laity
more than he had at other places.
The Therapeutic Qualities of
Dhamma
Ban Nong Pheu monastery was
situated in a dense forest, rife with malaria. As the rainy season
approached, Acariya Mun advised monks, who came simply to visit him, to
hurry and leave before wet weather arrived. In the dry season they could
stay without risk. Monks who fell victim to malaria just had to put up with
the debilitating symptoms. They had no access to anti-malarial medicines,
such medicines being scarce everywhere back then. So, they had to rely on
the ‘therapeutic qualities of Dhamma’ instead. This meant investigating
painful feelings as they arose with an intense, incisive degree of
mindfulness and wisdom. Otherwise, they had no effective means of
alleviating the pain. If successful, they reduced the fever, thus effecting
a cure much quicker than could normally be expected.
A courageous monk who succeeds
through the power of mindfulness and wisdom to overcome the painful feelings
caused by illness, creates thereby a solid base of support that will serve
him well in times of good health as well as in times of sickness.
Ultimately, at the time when death is imminent, he will not feel weak and
disheartened, and thus not be overwhelmed. Having succeeded in establishing
total mastery of the truth about dukkha, he boldly faces the natural process
we call ‘death’. Mindfulness and wisdom have taught him to recognize
dukkha’s intrinsic nature, so he never again worries about pain. He always
maintains the firm basis of truth he achieved through his investigations.
Later, when a critical situation does arise, the mindfulness and wisdom that
he has trained to proficiency will come to his rescue. He can utilize their
investigative skills to override the pain, allowing him to immediately reach
safety. Thus trained, mindfulness and wisdom will not abandon their duty,
leaving him simply to wallow in misery as he did before he came to realize
the true nature of dukkha. On the contrary, they will immediately engage the
enemy. His external manifestations of illness will resemble those of any
other sick person: that is, he will appear just as weak and exhausted as
anyone else. But internally, mindfulness and wisdom will manifest within his
heart like soldiers preparing to do battle. Then no amount of pain will
affect his state of mind. His only consideration will be the inner search
for the true causal basis of the physical body, the painful feelings, the
citta, and the mental phenomena arising in conjunction with it;6 for, this
is precisely where the full intensity of dukkha will converge at that
moment. Since his ability to confront the pain and endure its effects is no
longer a concern, his confidence is unshakable. His primary concern is
whether mindfulness and wisdom will successfully realize the entire truth of
these phenomena in time. Once a monk has investigated a Truth of Dhamma,
like the Truth of Dukkha, until its true nature is fully understood, the
next time he wishes to repeat that accomplishment, he does not allow the
difficulties of the investigation to block his way and needlessly weaken his
resolve. He simply considers what he previously did to enable him to see the
truth so clearly, then reproduces that same effort in the present moment. In
that way, a clear realization of the truth always lies within the powers of
his mindfulness, his wisdom, his conviction, and his persistent effort. The
truth is: pain, body, and citta all exist separately, each one being true
within its own sphere. They in no way conflict or interfere with one
another. By the power of this realization, samudaya – the cause of dukkha –
is conquered, and all apprehension about the pain, the condition of the
illness, or the prospect of dying is vanquished with it. Such fears are
really emotional concerns that demoralize the spirit and lead to a
debilitating sense of frustration. Once this decisive breakthrough is
achieved, the illness is likely to subside as a result. But even if the
symptoms don’t entirely abate, they will not intensify to the point where
the citta is overwhelmed by an onslaught of painful feelings, thus producing
a twofold illness: one of an ailing body, the other of an ailing mind.
In times of severe illness,
dhutanga monks are sure to examine the resultant pain. It’s considered an
essential means of sharpening up mindfulness and wisdom, thus honing their
skills until they are quick enough to keep pace with all mental activity –
thoughts that are inevitably bound up with physical and mental pain. Any
monk showing signs of anxiety or uneasiness when ill is considered a failure
within the circle of practicing monks. Mentally, his samadhi and wisdom are
insufficient to sustain him in a time of crisis. Lacking mindfulness, his
practice is unbecoming and unreliable. This doesn’t fit with a monk’s
obligation to stockpile mindfulness and wisdom as the weapons of choice for
protecting himself in his battles with pain of all kinds. Those who have
developed the qualities needed to remain mindfully self-controlled, never
showing signs of agitation, are considered truly praiseworthy examples of
the warrior spirit typical of practicing monks. In critical situations, they
stand their ground – and fight. The benefits of this to their meditation are
self-evident. Those good results are also noticed by their fellow monks, all
of whom greatly admire a fighting mentality. The others have faith that, no
matter how overwhelming the pain is, a dhutanga monk will never be defeated
– even in death. That is, his mindfulness and wisdom will never accept
defeat, for they are the investigative tools he uses to search for a safe,
trouble-free way to go beyond when it finally becomes impossible to keep
body and soul together.
Anyone practicing Dhamma, who
arrives at the Truth proclaimed by the Lord Buddha, is absolutely certain of
its universal validity. Confronted with the enemy, he will never accept
defeat and withdraw his forces. He is obligated to fight to the death. If it
so happens that his body cannot withstand the pressure – he will let it die.
But he will never relinquish his citta, or the mindfulness and wisdom which
maintain and protect it. He is committed to fighting on to victory. Failure
is never an option. He displays the attributes of a warrior who expects to
be victorious, and thus reach a sanctuary that is truly safe and secure.
Practicing with unwavering faith in the principles of Truth, he is certain
to personify the maxim: dhammo have rakkhati dammacarim – Dhamma protects
those who practice it faithfully. If, however, he practices in a hesitant,
halfhearted fashion, the outcome will only contradict the Truth, never
validate it. It cannot be otherwise, because Dhamma, the svakkhatadhamma,
requires that results be directly correlated with their causes.
Despite all the rewards the
world seems to offer, a dhutanga monk prefers to concentrate on the
immediate, inner rewards offered by the sasana. For example, the peaceful
calm of samadhi and the intuitive wisdom needed to extract the kilesas
piercing his heart; both reward him with a steadily increasing sense of
contentment that is clearly evident, moment by moment. These immediate,
tangible results are the ones a dhutanga monk strives to realize. In doing
so, he cuts through burdensome problems and unresolved doubts. If he truly
has the capability to transcend the world in this lifetime – be it today,
tomorrow, next month, or next year – this feat will be accomplished by means
of his unflagging diligence at each and every moment.
Acariya Mun employed
inspirational teaching methods to reinforce this fighting spirit, regardless
of whether his students were sick or not. He insisted his monks always be
warriors fighting to rescue themselves from danger. But it was in times of
illness that he placed special emphasis on being uncompromising. He worried
they might become dispirited in the face of this challenge. A sick monk
showing signs of weakness or anxiety, lacking the mindful self-control
expected of him, was bound to be severely rebuked. Acariya Mun might
actually forbid the monks in his monastery to care for a sick monk,
believing that weakness, anxiety, and a whining mentality were not the right
way to deal with illness. Sick people react in that way all the time and
never see it as a problem. But a monk, whose status demands that he put up
with difficult situations and investigate them carefully, should never react
like that. It creates a bad example. For if a monk brings this kind of
defeatist attitude into the circle of practice, it may spread like a
contagious disease, easily infecting others.
Think of the mess that might
cause: Monks moaning and groaning, tossing and turning like dying animals.
You are practicing monks, so don’t adopt animal-like behavior. If you begin
thinking and acting like animals, the religion will soon develop animal
characteristics, spreading confusion everywhere – definitely not the way of
the Buddha. We have all been sick at one time or another, so we are well
aware of what someone else feels like when sick. It isn’t necessary for you
to make a public display of your discomfort. If mental anguish and
vociferous complaints were effective cures, then conventional medicines
would not be needed. Whoever fell ill could just whine about his plight in a
loud voice to make the illness go way – easy as that. There would be no need
to spend a lot of time and trouble treating the patient. Can whining really
cure your present illness? If it can’t, why disgust everyone else with your
useless whining? This is a sample of the lecture Acariya Mun might give a
monk whose inability to face hardship was an annoyance to the whole monastic
community.
On the other hand, when he visited a sick monk, who maintained a
strong, mindful calmness, showing no signs of agitation about his condition, Acariya Mun invariably demonstrated his approval. He commended the monk for
his fortitude and gave him some very inspiring words of encouragement. Even
after his recovery, Acariya Mun continued to praise that monk’s mental
toughness, holding him up as an excellent example for the others.
“That’s
how a true warrior in the battle with pain gets the job done. Don’t complain
about the enemy’s overwhelming numbers. Just dig in and fight them all to
the limit of your strength and ability without flinching. Never withdraw
your forces, never accept defeat. Never let the enemy stomp on you while
you’re down. We within the circle of practice must be warriors. It is no use
complaining how extremely painful an illness is – just focus on the pain as
it arises and try to understand its true nature. Regardless of how much, or
how little pain we experience, all pain is a manifestation of the Truth of
Dukkha.”
Any monk who was weak and submissive when faced
with a painful affliction heard a different tune from Acariya Mun.
“If you
want the Truth, but refuse to investigate it because you are afraid of pain,
how will you ever discover where the Truth lies? The Lord Buddha succeeded
in realizing the Truth by thoroughly investigating everything, not by
whining about everything like this useless monk now disgracing himself.
Where did the Buddha ever state that reaching a true understanding requires
moaning and groaning? I didn’t study many books, so perhaps I missed it.
Where in the suttas does it refer to moaning and groaning? If any of you who
are wellversed in the scriptures comes across a passage where it states that
the Buddha extolled the merits of moaning and groaning, please point it out
to me. Then I won’t have to teach monks to trouble themselves about
investigating pain and putting up with difficulties. You can all just moan
and groan until the Truth arises to fill the whole universe. We can then
witness the appearance of wise, sagacious individuals who have succeeded in
reaching magga and phala by the power of their loud moans and groans. They
will be in a position to question the legitimacy, and the current relevance,
of the Dhamma that Lord Buddha proclaimed over 2,500 years ago."
“The Dhamma
of these latter-day sages will be a new, modern Dhamma whose attainment
requires no troublesome investigations. All that’s required to attain magga
and phala is a chorus of moaning and groaning, a method suited to an age
when people prefer to seek righteous results from unrighteous causes – a
pernicious attitude consuming the whole world today. Before long there won’t
be enough room on the planet to hold all these modern-day sages. I myself
have an old-fashioned mentality. I trust what the Lord Buddha taught and
dare not take any shortcuts. I am afraid that, as soon as I put a foot
forward, I would fall flat on my face – and die there in disgrace. That
would be immensely heartbreaking for me.”
Any monk who showed weakness when
in pain could expect such uncompromising treatment. The same kind of
punishing rebuke was meted out to a monk who succumbed to weakness or
discouragement while undertaking any harsh training practice, since they
were obstacles preventing him from making use of the various investigative
techniques at his disposal. Acariya Mun
constantly urged his monks to display the fighting spirit necessary to
overcome these impediments, so they very often heard this dynamic teaching.
For them, seekers of the true Dhamma, his words were a kind of therapy which
roused their courage, invigorated their practice, and kept their spirits
high. Thus buoyed, they were ready to advance triumphantly, step by step, up
the path to that sphere of blissful contentment the Dhamma promises to
reveal. Inspiring commitment, his stimulating instruction dispelled
tendencies toward weakness and laziness that prepare the way for the misery
of samsara.
WHILE ACARIYA MUN lived there, two monks died in the monastery
at Ban Nong Pheu, and another one died close by, at Ban Na Nai. The first to
die was a middle-aged monk who ordained specifically to practice meditation.
Living in Chiang Mai as Acariya Mun’s disciple, he eventually followed his
teacher to Udon Thani, and then Sakon Nakhon – sometimes staying with him,
sometimes practicing alone, until he finally passed away at Ban Nong Pheu.
He was very skilled in samadhi meditation, and, prompted by Acariya Mun’s
constant tutoring, his wisdom practice had already developed a sense of
urgency. He was a very devout, resolute character who gave wonderfully
lyrical talks on Dhamma, in spite of being wholly illiterate. His talks,
quick-witted and clever, were invariably illustrated with skillful similes,
allowing his listeners to easily grasp his meaning. Unfortunately, he had
tuberculosis. Long a chronic illness, it eventually reached a critical stage
while he was living in the monastery. There, early one morning at about
seven o’clock, he passed away in a calm, peaceful manner, befitting one who
had been a genuine practicing monk for so long. Witnessing his final
moments, and then the moment when his breathing stopped, I developed a deep
respect for this monk and his proficiency in meditation.
At death, it is we
who control our destiny. So we must take sole responsibility for our future.
For no one else, no matter how close or dear, can intervene to affect the
outcome. Before that moment arrives, we must develop a means of focusing all
our strength and skill on facing this critical juncture wisely, so as to
extricate ourselves from danger and safely move on. Our final moments will
present us with a significant challenge. All of us, whether we are
well-prepared or not, will eventually be confronted with
this situation. Those of us who have devised clever means for helping
ourselves will fare well. But those of us, who remain ignorant and confused,
will founder helplessly, unable to salvage our fate.
The Lord Buddha
declared: “Kho nu hasa kim anando…." 7 It can be translated essentially as:
When the world is engulfed in lust, anger, and delusion – a blazing bonfire
that rages day and night – how can you keep smiling and laughing all the
time? Why don’t you immediately search for a refuge you can depend on? Stop
this negligence now! Don’t carry on with it until the day you die, or else
you will experience the painful consequences into the future – indefinitely.
The Buddha was cautioning people not to be unreasonably heedless in their
lives. But when people hear the Buddha’s words today, they feel so
embarrassed, so ashamed of their wanton infatuation with sensual pleasures
that they want to hide their faces. Despite their shame, they are still
lured by their desires – loving this, hating that – for this kind of
intransigence has always been an integral part of worldly attitudes. And
they don’t know how to stop themselves. So, sadly, their only response to
the Buddha’s warnings is shame.
The death of the monk at Ban Nong Pheu
should prove a valuable lesson to all of you who are headed toward the same
fate. Please consider the manner of his death carefully. Just as he was
about to pass away, Acariya Mun and the other monks, who were on their way
for alms, stopped by to witness that sad event. Afterwards, Acariya Mun
stood in silent contemplation for a moment; then he spoke to everyone in a
solemn tone of voice:
“There’s no need to worry about him. He has already
been reborn in Abhassara, the sixth brahma realm. He’s all right for now.
But it’s a shame in one way, for had he lived longer and developed his
insight with a little more intensity, he could well have been reborn in one
of the five suddhavasa brahma realms.8 There he would have progressed
directly to the ultimate goal, destined never again to enter the cycle of
rebirth. And what about the rest of you – what kind of rebirth are you
preparing for yourselves? Will it be one in the animal world, the ghost
world, or in the realms of hell? Or will it be as a human, a deva, or a brahma?
Or will it be Nibbana? Which will it be? If you want to know for sure, look
closely at the compass bearing of your heart to see the direction in which
you are headed. Examine yourselves now to find out whether your present course is a good one, or a bad one. Once
you are dead, it will be too late to make adjustments. Everyone knows that
death is final – nothing more can be done after that.”
The second death was
that of a monk from Ubon Ratchathani who came down with malaria and died a
month later. Shortly before it happened, his death was foreseen in the
meditation of another monk who was living there at the time. The monk went
to speak with Acariya Mun the next evening. After discussing various aspects
of meditation practice for awhile, their conversation turned to the sick
monk, and the monk informed Acariya Mun about the vision that appeared in
his meditation.
“Something odd occurred in my meditation last night. I was
investigating in my normal way when I reached a state of calm and suddenly
saw an image of you standing before a pile of firewood, saying, ‘Cremate
that monk right here. This is the best place to do it.’ I don’t fully
understand the meaning of it. Will that sick monk die of malaria? His
condition certainly doesn’t appear to be that serious.”
Acariya Mun
responded immediately.
“I have been investigating this matter for a long
time now. He is bound to die, it cannot be avoided. Still, he won’t have
died in vain. I have seen his mental state: it’s exceptional. So, he’s sure
to fare very well. But I strictly forbid you to mention anything about this
to him. If he finds out that he’s certain to die, he will feel very
disappointed. Then his health will deteriorate even further, and his mental
state could waver to the extent that he misses the excellent rebirth he can
expect now. Disappointment is a very harmful emotion in this respect.”
Several days later, that monk’s condition suddenly took a turn for the
worse. He died calmly at about three a.m. This prompted me to consider how Acariya Mun must have investigated the circumstances that lay behind every
incident that appeared to him during meditation, pursuing them all until he
clearly understood their significance. Then he simply let go, allowing them
to follow their natural course.
One morning, a disciple of Acariya Mun, who
was running a very high fever due to malarial infection, decided to forgo
almsround and fast for the day. He used his investigative skills to battle
the intense pain from early morning until three in the afternoon, when the
fever began to abate. Feeling completely exhausted in the middle of the day,
he drew his attention to and concentrated solely on
those points where the pain was most intense, but without making an effort
to probe and analyze the pain with wisdom. At midday, Acariya Mun
momentarily sent out the flow of his citta to check how the monk was coping
with the pain. Later in the afternoon, while visiting Acariya Mun, he was
surprised to hear Acariya Mun immediately question his mode of practice.
“Why were you investigating like that? How can you expect to understand the
truth about the body, the pain, and the citta, if you merely concentrate
your mind on a single point? Instead, use your intuitive wisdom to analyze
all three of them. In that way, you discover the true nature of each. Yours
is the kind of concentration one expects from a yogi; it has all the
single-minded intensity of a dogfight! It is not the right practice for a
monk wanting to discover the truth about pain. Don’t do it again. It’s the
wrong way to go about realizing the many truths to be found within the body,
the pain, and the citta. During the middle of the day I examined your
practice to see how you were coping with the pain caused by your fever. I
noticed you were just focusing your attention exclusively on the pain. You
were not using mindfulness and wisdom to ease the problem by looking at all
three aspects of it: body, pain, and citta. This is the only effective way
to quell pain, and neutralize the symptoms, so that the fever subsides as
well.”
Tigers Make the Best Teachers
When Acariya Mun believed that a
specific kind of advice would help one of his students, he spoke to him
directly about it. He could be very blunt in his advice to certain monks.
“You’d be better off going to
meditate in that cave than you are living here in the monastery. Characters
like yours prefer tough, coercive measures. Better still, find a tiger to be
your teacher – fear of it will subdue your citta, forcing it to enter into
calm. Realizing Dhamma in this way, you can gain some contentment. Living
here in the monastery is not right for you. Stubborn people need hard things
to soften them up and make them more pliable. Since tigers are such good
tormentors, anyone fearing them should take one as a teacher. It’s much
better than having a teacher you don’t fear. If you are afraid of ghosts,
you should take ghosts as teachers to enforce mental discipline. Take as a teacher
whatever your heart most fears. This is how a clever person forces himself
to submit to the training.”
Before ordaining, the monk he was addressing had
been a real tough guy with a bold, no-nonsense sort of character. If he said
he was going to do something, he did it. He was a rather stubborn person,
but stubborn in the way of a monk. As soon as he heard Acariya Mun’s
resolute advice, he immediately decided to follow it, reasoning something
like this to himself: Surely a monk of Acariya Mun’s caliber would never
send me to be killed by a tiger. I must go and live in the cave he
mentioned. If that means death, I’ll just have to accept it. If I want to
see for myself the truth of what he said, then I must have no qualms about
dying. I’ve heard that he always has very sound reasons for what he says;
and he’s careful to thoroughly examine every situation before speaking.
Anyone who can understand his teaching and put it into practice is bound to
get good results. I must take what he just said very seriously – it came
from an insight into my character, and a genuine concern for my well-being.
It is as though he plucked out my heart and examined it, and has found out
all about me. How can I doubt his advice? If I fail to act on it now, how
can I call myself a monk? I might as well be a lay person. I’m going to live
in that cave – whatever happens. If I die there – so be it. If I don’t, then
all I ask is a chance to realize some amazing Dhamma while I’m there. It’s
obvious that he was talking about me when he referred to being stubborn and
recalcitrant. It’s a true measure of his genius: he knows me better than I
know myself. I know I’m that type of person, one hundred percent. For my own
good, I can’t afford to disregard his advice about tigers. I must do what he
said and subject myself to this agonizing practice
This monk truly was a
stubborn character, reluctant to accept advice from anyone, just as Acariya
Mun indicated. After considering Acariya Mun’s remarks and reaching a
definite decision, he went to take his leave. As he approached, Acariya Mun
immediately asked him where he was going.
“Where are you off to? You look
all dressed up, and ready to march earnestly into battle.”
“I’m going off to
die in that cave you told me about.”
“What! What did I say to you: go die in
that cave, or go meditate there?”
“Well, you told me to
meditate there, not die there. But I know from the other monks that there’s
a tiger living in the cave above the one I’ll be staying in. They say that
the tiger’s cave is just close by – it comes and goes there all the time.
When it goes out to hunt for food, it will pass right in front of my cave,
so I have my doubts about remaining alive there. I was simply voicing my
apprehension.”
“Many other monks have already stayed in that cave, on many
different occasions, and none of them were devoured by tigers. So, why
should a tiger suddenly decide to come gobble you up? What’s the difference
between your flesh and the flesh of those other monks that makes it so much
more likely to whet a tiger’s appetite? Where did you get this savory flesh
tigers like so much that they are waiting to pounce on and devour only you
and no one else?”
Acariya Mun then explained about the deceptive nature of
the mind that deludes people in ways that are far too numerous to easily
keep up with.
“If you don’t examine everything and test it out with a
critical, discerning attitude, you will be tormented by the mind’s myriad
tricks and never learn to tame its unruly nature. You have yet to leave, but
already you trust the whisperings of the kilesas more than the advice of
your teacher. How will you ever manage? Although people the world over have
yet to die, they are all terrified of death. But birth, the enticement
luring them into death, is feared by no one – everyone craves birth. I
cannot figure out why people are so infatuated with birth. Just one birth in
a physical body means immense suffering and anxiety. Suppose human beings
could send up shoots like a clump of bamboo: their eagerness for birth would
increase rampantly. Each person desiring to branch out into hundreds, or
thousands, of additional people, without giving thought to how the combined
fear of so many people dying at once might affect them. The whole world
would become tumultuous with the fear of death and there would be no safe
place to live.
“You are a practicing monk, a trained spiritual warrior. Yet
your fear of death surpasses that of the untrained laity. Why do you let the kilesas harass you in this way? You have the mindfulness and wisdom needed
to defend yourself, so why don’t you use them? Go on the offensive. Chase
out the devious kilesas lurking there in your heart. Then you will realize
how stupid you’ve been, blindly serving their interests, unaware of the power they have over you. A warrior’s victory
depends on his willingness to brave death on the battlefield. If you’re not
willing to die, then you shouldn’t enter the battle zone. Only by braving
death will you be able to defeat your enemies. If you are truly determined
to transcend dukkha, by realizing its true nature, you must view your fear
of death as one form of dukkha – a product of the kilesas stored in your
heart. You can only resolve this matter by making a stand on a battlefield
conducive to victory, like the one I just indicated. Persevere, and you will
come to realize fear’s harmful effects: it stirs the emotions and
demoralizes the spirit, always giving rise to suffering. It is better to
take a defiant stand now. Don’t simply keep clinging to that fear, hugging
it tightly to your chest and burning your heart until you cry out in agony.
Fail to act decisively now and your suffering will continue indefinitely.
“Will you believe in the supreme sanctity of your teacher and the Dhamma? Or
are you going to trust that fear the kilesas have released into your heart
which is depriving you of the very mindfulness and wisdom you need to defeat
it? Looking around, you seem to see only tigers, all coming to tear out your
flesh and make a meal of you. Why is that? Please reflect deeply on the
matter. I assure you that I have used the same combative training method to
good effect in my own practice.”
Such was his delight in the Dhamma he heard
that the monk said he felt his citta glowing bright with courage as he
listened to Acariya Mun’s strong rebuke. When Acariya Mun finished speaking,
the monk took his leave and immediately prepared to go to the cave.
He
arrived at the cave still buoyed by a sense of courage and rapturous
delight. He put down the belongings he carried with him and began to survey
the surrounding area. Then, by some mischance, the thought arose in his mind
that the cave was home to a tiger. With this thought in mind and his eyes
scanning the ground in front of the cave, he spied a tiger’s paw-print in
the dirt. Never considering that it was probably made long before, the sight
of it sent shock waves of fear through him, nearly scaring him out of his
wits. In that instant, he completely forgot his teacher and the sense of
courage that glowed so brightly while he sat listening to him in the
monastery. Fear overwhelmed his heart and he was helpless to prevent it. He
walked over and erased all traces of the paw-print with his foot, but the
fear persisted. Still, he did feel a little better not having to look at it
anymore.
From the moment he glanced down to discover the
tiger’s paw-print, he was terrified – a paralyzing fear lasting all night.
Even during the day, his fear remained; but it became especially intense
once night fell, as he imagined the whole area around his cave to be teeming
with huge tigers. To make matters even worse, he had a sudden recurrence of
malaria, with fever and chills. He felt as though he had fallen into a
living hell devoid of any physical or mental comfort whatsoever. To his
great credit, he was mentally tough enough to resist the temptation to give
up his painful attempts at finding a means to overcome his fear. The
worsening fever, combined with his agonizing fear of tigers, did unsettle
his composure, however, nearly driving him crazy.
Once in a long while he
thought of Acariya Mun’s kindness and the advice he had given, which
temporarily helped to douse the fires of misery burning in his heart. As
symptoms of the malaria became more and more intense, he reflected back on
his earlier intention to sacrifice his life in that cave: Previously, I made
a decision to sacrifice my life here. When Acariya Mun asked me where I was
going, I immediately announced that I was going off to die in this cave. And
as I hiked up here, I felt as though I was walking on air, such was my
determination to brave death. So, why is it that upon reaching the cave and
actually entering the jaws of death, I have now changed my mind and decided
I don’t want to die? Now, I’m so afraid of dying I can hardly hold my own.
I’m exactly the same person I was then. I didn’t exchange my heart for the
heart of some coward. So why do I seem to be a new person with a cowardly
attitude? In the monastery, I was prepared to die. Now that I’m actually
here, I’ve changed my mind. Which is it going to be? Make up your mind right
now – don’t wait any longer. How about this? I’ll go sit in meditation at
the overhanging edge of a steep precipice. If my mindfulness falters, then
let me fall to my death at the bottom of the ravine where the vultures and
the flies can take care of my corpse. There would be no need to trouble the
villagers about it. No one should have to dirty their hands handling the
corpse of a useless monk – my futility might prove contagious. Then again, I
could sit in meditation right in the middle of the path leading to the
tiger’s cave. I’ll make it easy for that tiger when it goes out hunting for
food. It can just sink its teeth into my useless neck and have me for a
snack tonight. Which will it be? Make up your mind quickly – do it now!
His resolve bolstered, he
walked to the front of the cave and stood for a moment, awaiting
inspiration. Weighing his two options, he finally decided to go with the first one: to meditate, seated
precariously on the brink of the steep precipice near his cave. Any slip in
mindfulness, and vultures and flies would be there to take care of his
remains. That decided, he walked over and sat down, facing a deep gorge with
his back to the path the tiger took to and from its cave. He began repeating
“buddho”, intensely aware that, if careless, he could die in an instant.
Seated there meditating on buddho, he kept a vigilant watch on his mind to
see which fear predominated: that of falling down the precipice, or that of
being attacked by a tiger. As soon as it became apparent that fear of the
precipice was the greatest, he gathered his mindfulness and focused
intensively on one of his two meditation themes: either the repetition of
buddho or the recollection of death – depending on which one arose in his
mind at any one moment. Meditating thus, poised on the brink of death, his
citta soon gathered itself into one point of focus, and then suddenly
dropped down to the very base of appana samadhi,9 rapidly converging into a
state of total calm. In an instant, he was oblivious to all the fiery
turmoil that had engulfed his mind for so long. All that remained was the
essential knowing nature of the citta – existing alone, by itself, in all
its amazing splendor. Fear of death had utterly vanished.
The hour was ten
p.m. when the monk’s citta ‘converged’ dramatically into appana samadhi, an
experience so profound that he did not withdraw from that state until ten
o’clock the next morning. Opening his eyes, he saw the sun halfway up the
sky. Since it was already too late for morning almsround, he didn’t bother
to go to the village – he simply went without food that day. Withdrawing
from samadhi, he was aware of a complete absence of fear. In its place was
an amazing sense of courage he had never before experienced. His fever was
gone as well – completely cured that night, and he never again suffered a
recurrence of malaria. He was convinced that the ‘therapeutic powers of
Dhamma’ had cured both his malaria and his fear of tigers. From that day on,
his body was never again plagued by malaria, his mind never again ravaged by
fear. No longer terrified of tigers, he could go anywhere, live anywhere –
unperturbed.
Occasionally, he wished a tiger would show up to test his mental
fortitude. He imagined himself calmly walking right up to it without the
least apprehension. Reflecting on the whole experience, he felt immensely gratefully to Acariya Mun for so kindly teaching him
about the corrupting power of fear. Now that he understood how his mind
worked, he persistently used this coercive style of practice. Preparing to
meditate, he preferred looking for the most frightening places he could
find. For the remainder of his stay there he continued this training, making
a special effort to seek out frightening locations for conducting his
meditation. Noticing that tigers regularly used a certain path, he made a
point of sitting right in the middle of it. While meditating in the cave, he
resolved not to lower his mosquito net because sitting inside a lowered
mosquito net gave more protection from the threat of tigers. Minus that
element of fear his citta was reluctant to drop into the desired state of
calm. Where he sat depended each time on where he felt his citta was most
likely to rapidly ‘converge’ to the very base of samadhi.
Late one night as
he sat out in the open, his citta refused to drop into calm despite his best
efforts. He sat there frustrated for a long time until he finally thought
about the huge tiger that came and went frequently in the area: I wonder
where that tiger is today. It would be nice if it came by here to help my
citta drop into calm. If it passed by, I wouldn’t have to struggle with my
meditation like this – the citta would just instinctively drop into calm.
Not long after thinking of his friend – perhaps after half an hour – he
heard the footsteps of that huge animal walking towards its cave, as though
right on cue. The time was approaching two a.m. Hearing the tiger draw
nearer, he roused himself with a timely warning: Here it comes, right now!
Are you really so casual? Aren’t you afraid it will sink its teeth into your
neck and make a meal of you? If you don’t want to be tiger food, then you
better hurry up and look for a safe place to hide.
As he thought this, he
conjured in his mind an image of the tiger pouncing on him, its gaping jaws
closing in around his neck. The moment he fixed his attention on this mental
image, his citta ‘converged’, dropping rapidly until it reached the very
base of appana samadhi. Instantly all external phenomena completely vanished
from his awareness – himself, the tiger, everything. What remained was
serenity and tranquility – the union of citta and Dhamma as they melded into
one essence of indescribable wonder. His citta rested in that sublime state
for a total of eight hours – from two o’clock that night until ten o’clock
the next morning. Upon withdrawing, he saw the sun was already high, so he again canceled his almsround and went
without food. He then walked over to inspect the place where he heard the
tiger approaching, to see if there were any signs that a tiger really had
passed by. Or had his ears merely been playing tricks on him? Looking at the
ground, he saw the tracks of a huge tiger, about twelve feet behind the spot
where he had been sitting. The tiger’s tracks continued in a straight line
all the way up to its cave, never veering off to the direction where its
friend was sitting in meditation. The whole incident was strange, and quite
amazing.
The experience, in appana samadhi, of the citta fully ‘converging’
into its true base, is an experience that varies according to the natural
inclination of each individual. Some people are inclined by temperament to
experience a very rapid convergence, feeling as though they are falling down
a well. The internal sense faculties cease to function at that time, meaning
they are totally unaware of all external sense impressions. This monk’s
citta was one such case: when it fully ‘converged’ in samadhi, all awareness
of external phenomena ceased as a consequence. As the monk explained it, the
moment his citta fully ‘converged,’ everything that was involved with it in
any way vanished instantly. Only when he withdrew from that state did his
normal awareness of things return. But, he found it difficult to attain this
state unless he was under duress by some external threat. A real threat of
danger forced his citta to ‘converge’ very rapidly – in a split second it
reached its true base. He said this was the reason he liked to seek out
frightening places.
“I find this the most convenient way to develop my
meditation: practicing in places that arouse fear. I actually prefer wild
mountains that have caves frequented by tigers, and tend to shy away from
those that don’t. As you can see: tiger-infested areas are perfectly suited
to a rough character like me – that’s what makes me so fond of them.
“I had
other strange experiences while living in that cave. Besides realizing my
goal to attain deep meditative calm, I also developed several unusual kinds
of psychic awareness. For example, terrestrial devas came some nights to
visit and converse with me. Even stranger still, when someone in the local
village died I always knew about it immediately, though I’m not sure where
this knowledge came from. It simply arose spontaneously in my heart. And it
was invariably correct – never did I find reason to doubt it. My cave was
located about five miles from the village, yet those
people still insisted on coming to request my help in performing the funeral
rites, which was very troublesome for me. As soon as someone died in the
village I was aware of it, knowing straightaway that the next day I’d have
to make another long trek to the village cemetery. And sure enough, the
villagers came once again to bother me. Nothing I said could dissuade them.
They told me that monks were scarce in that area, so they had no other
choice but to disturb me. They believed that the deceased would benefit if a
monk performed the funeral. I sympathized and felt sorry for them, so I had
to go. During periods of fasting, which I found conducive to intensive
meditation, I didn’t want anything to interfere with my practice; but
something usually did come up.
“While living in that cave I always relied on
my friend the tiger to give my meditation practice a timely boost. Every
other night it ventured down in search of food, as all hungry animals do.
But it never showed any interest in me, even though it walked right past me
on its way out. There was only one way down so it had to go that way.”
This
monk had the rather unusual habit of leaving his cave late at night to go
sit in meditation on stone outcrops high up in the mountains. He appeared
wholly unfazed by the danger from wild animals. By temperament, he preferred
to wander alone through the wilds. I have included his story here because it
teaches some valuable lessons. He practiced with unwavering purpose until he
managed to expose the truth of his unruly mind, thus disciplining it and
bringing it under his control. Things once viewed as threats, like tigers,
became friends instead, assisting his practice. He managed to make use of a
wild tiger – a most unpredictable creature – to inspire him in his
meditation practice, thus achieving remarkable results.
ONCE ACARIYA MUN had
settled in the monastery at Ban Nong Pheu, he was contented to encourage the
community of dhutanga monks practicing under his tutelage. As many as twenty
to thirty of them joined him there during retreat periods. Despite the
increasing numbers, however, conflicts that might have caused him concern
seldom arose. Each monk was determined to focus diligently on his own
practice. An harmonious sense of fraternity existed among the monks who all
lived together in unity of purpose. Peacefully
walking together to the village for alms each morning – they were an
impressive sight. A long bench had been constructed in the village where the
monks sat to chant a blessing after receiving offerings of food. Later, back
in the monastery, they ate together in silence, seated in rows according to
seniority. Once they finished eating, each monk washed his own bowl, dried
it thoroughly, replaced its cloth covering, and put it neatly away. When
their morning duties were completed, they separated, each monk walking into
the extensive forest surrounding the monastery to find a secluded meditation
track where he concentrated on his meditation – walking or sitting, as he
preferred. Remaining in the forest until the afternoon chores began at four
p.m., they then returned from their meditation sites to help each other
sweep the monastery grounds clean. Once they finished sweeping, they worked
together to carry water from the well to fill the various water barrels –
water for drinking, water for washing feet, or water for washing their alms
bowls. A quick bath at the well was followed by a resumption of meditation.
On nights when no meeting had been called, they continued to practice as
usual until it was time to retire. Normally, Acariya Mun called a general
meeting once every seven days, though any monk desiring personal advice
could see him on any day. Monks wanting to ask questions about their
practice were advised to approach Acariya Mun at a time during the day when
he was free – usually just after the morning meal, in the early afternoon,
at five in the afternoon, or at eight o’clock at night.
Hearing Acariya Mun
discuss Dhamma and answer questions in the quiet hours of the evening was a
very pleasant experience. Then, many unusual questions were asked by
disciples who came from various locations in the surrounding area to seek
his advice. Some of these questions dealt with internal matters that arose
in the course of a monk’s meditation. Others dealt with external phenomena,
such as devas. The monks who arrived to discuss their practice with him had
varying skills and abilities in meditation. Some had unusual meditative
experiences to relate. We listened eagerly, so mesmerized by his replies
that none of us wanted the sessions to end. Each time we learned valuable
lessons that led to practical methods for improving our meditation and thus
gave us great satisfaction.
On timely occasions, Acariya
Mun recounted edifying stories about his past. He told us about his early
years in lay life: how he ordained, first as a novice, then as a monk. Some
of these stories were so funny they made us laugh; some made us pity him for
what he had gone through; and some, the ones about his attainments, were
just incredibly amazing. Living continuously with a good teacher for a long
time had many distinct advantages. Following his example, his disciples
gradually altered their basic attitudes and ways of behavior, adjusting
their outer conduct and augmenting their inner skills little by little to
match his, until eventually their characters naturally harmonized with his
as much as possible. The secure environment he offered to his disciples
meant that their practice was unlikely to go astray. Constant exposure to
his inspirational teaching gradually allowed the essence of Dhamma to
penetrate deep into their hearts. His intimidating presence promoted the
kind of vigilant self-control that reinforces mindfulness and wisdom. Fear
prevented his disciples from becoming complacent by forcing them to be
extremely circumspect in their behavior and their thoughts. Even then,
despite their best intentions, he could still catch them napping, and then
expose their shortcomings for everyone else to hear. It was extremely
embarrassing to have one’s personal failings exposed like this; but a monk
had to accept the consequences of failing to be properly circumspect.
We all
experienced an indescribable sense of joy, living and practicing with Acariya Mun. But if we held unreasonable opinions, our delight could easily
turn to frustration, for those wrong views became a constant hindrance. I
cannot speak for others, but I’ve always had a rather rough disposition, so
I relied on Acariya Mun to pound me into shape. In that way, I managed to
find some breathing room when the kilesas began to suffocate me. Hearing him
recount the various stages of his own practice, my spirit was so energized I
felt I could float up and walk on the clouds. While listening to him, my
whole being felt light as a wisp of cotton. But later, when I tried to
duplicate this buoyancy on my own in meditation, I felt as though I was
laboring under the weight of a mountain. I met nothing but heavy resistance.
I became so frustrated with myself I wanted to bury my head in the ground to
hide my shame – a fitting humiliation for such a vulgar character who was
loath to accept advice.
I have mentioned my own
coarse, callous nature here to let the reader know just how low the heart
can sink when loaded down with destructive influences, and how hard it can
be to pull it back up again and discipline it in the proper way. If we do
not make a supreme effort now, eventually this tendency will plunge us into
the depths of disaster, regardless of who we are or where we live. Effort
must be used to discipline the heart. Any person who succeeds in subduing
the unruly nature that has burdened his heart from time immemorial and who
is thus living in total freedom – that person deserves the highest respect.
The Lord Buddha and his Arahant disciples are shining examples of this
achievement.
Likewise, I am absolutely convinced that Acariya Mun was one of
the Lord Buddha’s present-day Arahant disciples. He was courageous and
masterful in the way he lived his life, and was never in danger of
succumbing to the power of the kilesas. Even in old age, when he could be
expected to rest and take it easy, no longer needing to exert himself in
meditation practice, he still did as much walking meditation as he always
had – so much so that the younger monks could hardly keep up with him.
Fulfilling his teaching obligations with great compassion, he never lost
hope in his students. His exhortations reflected his resolute character, and
he invariably preferred the rhetoric of a warrior. He delivered his talks
forcefully, aiming to arouse in his disciples the strength and courage
needed to completely transcend dukkha. He rarely compromised or made
allowances for their shortcomings. He did not want to lull to sleep those
very monks who already had a deplorable tendency to show weakness in their
practice.
Acariya Mun had utmost respect for all aspects of the Buddhasasana,
from the theory and practice of Dhamma to its inner realization. And this in
an age when genuine disciples of the Buddha are hard to find. He placed
special emphasis on the thirteen dhutanga observances, which Buddhists
everywhere had long since lost interest in. No one thought to restore them
to the prominent position they deserve. The fact that they have now become
such a significant part of a dhutanga monk’s practice is a direct
consequence of the earnest efforts that Acariya Sao and Acariya Mun made to
revive their use in Thailand’s Northeast region. Both Acariya Sao and
Acariya Mun observed all thirteen of these ascetic practices at one time or
another in their lives, although only the ones I’ve
mentioned earlier were practiced on a daily basis. Other dhutanga
observances, like staying in a cemetery or living out in the open at the
foot of a tree, were practiced so often that these two acariyas became
thoroughly familiar with them. Dhutanga monks in the Northeast today are
descendants following directly in their footsteps.
Acariya Sao and Acariya
Mun were keenly aware of the practical value the dhutanga observances had
for practicing monks. They clearly understood that each of these thirteen
practices was an extremely effective means of closing off the outlets
through which kilesas of dhutanga monks tend to flow. Without the
restraining influence of ascetic practices to stem the flow from those
outlets, dhutanga monks are ‘ascetic’ in name only, their kilesas being free
to roam at will, causing considerable annoyance to everyone. With the help
of the dhutangas, monks can rest assured that their conduct will not be
offensive to others. Each dhutanga practice promotes a virtuous quality,
while its observance reminds a dhutanga monk not to be careless by thinking
in ways that contradict the very virtue he is trying to develop. On guard,
he immediately becomes conscious of any lapses in judgment, which in turn
fosters mindfulness to catch such oversights in the future. Considered in
its entirety, dhutanga asceticism is broad in scope, each separate practice
having a very distinct purpose. Provided a monk understands the true purpose
of each dhutanga he undertakes and then observes them properly, they are
easily capable of totally eliminating his kilesas. They are powerful enough
to deal a decisive blow to every type of kilesa – no kilesa is beyond their
reach.
As long as we dread the hardships involved in observing ascetic
practices, then the kilesas have little fear of us. The hardships that the
kilesas cause us, when there are no ascetic practices to suppress them, are
somehow forgotten, opening the way for us to accuse these practices of being
too difficult – or even obsolete. When our own thoughts become our enemies,
the kilesas are secretly held in high regard; but in our rush to admire them
we fail to realize this. The harmful effects of this supportive admiration
are plain, and plainly infinite in scope.
The monk who truly practices any
one or more of the dhutangas inevitably presents a pleasing, dignified
appearance. His basic needs are easily taken care of. What he eats and where
he sleeps are never a problem for him. He is always contented with the
simple belongings he possesses. Unencumbered by emotional attachments and
material possessions, he feels mentally and
physically buoyant. Even lay people can benefit from undertaking some of the dhutanga practices, just as the monks do, since both monks and lay people
are burdened with the same kinds of kilesas. The dhutanga practices are,
after all, designed to counteract the kilesas, so people from all walks of
life should try their best to make use of them for this purpose. The
dhutangas comprise qualities of Dhamma so supremely profound that it is
difficult to fully comprehend their true magnitude.
I myself do not have as
comprehensive a knowledge and understanding of the dhutanga practices as I
should, but in my own unsophisticated way I have tried my best to do justice
to them. I hope you will forgive my shortcomings in this regard. In truth,
the dhutangas are so profoundly subtle it would be virtually impossible to
fully elaborate on all their outstanding qualities. They have the capacity
to take someone, who is truly devoted to their practice, from the basic
levels of Dhamma all the way to the highest ariya levels. In fact, no Dhamma
attainment is beyond the scope of the dhutangas. As a teacher, Acariya Mun
always led his disciples in observing these ascetic practices, right until
the last days of his life. Only when his strength was completely exhausted
did he let go of them, along with his physical body. Clearly the dhutangas
are essential practices for those intending to purify their hearts of all
vestiges of the kilesas – this truth is undeniable.
I shall refrain from
giving a detailed explanation here of each ascetic observance with its
distinctive merits and importance. Anyone interested in looking into them
can uncover these attributes for themselves. You may discover a degree of
subtlety that proves to be more beneficial to you than simply reading
someone else’s explanation. I have been looking into these practices since
my early days as a dhutanga monk and I continue to gain good results from
them to this day. I have always considered them an essential part of my
overall practice. Anyone intent on seeing an end to the kilesas, from the
most vulgar ones to the most refined, should never overlook the dhutanga
observances, thinking them incapable of doing the job.
His Final Illness
Acariya Mun had already lived for five years at Ban Nong
Pheu monastery when, in March of 1949 – precisely on the fourteenth day of
the fourth lunar month – his body began exhibiting signs indicating the
approaching end of his life. By then, he was 79 years old. On that day there
appeared the first symptoms of an illness that was to worsen until it
finally brought to a close his long life10 – a day that sent tremors through
Acariya Mun’s body elements and shock waves through the community of his
close disciples. Initially there was a light fever, accompanied by a slight
cough. But as the days passed, the symptoms steadily worsened, never showing
the slightest improvement. Obviously abnormal, the constant decline in his
health worried us all. But Acariya Mun himself clearly knew that this was to
be his final illness – an illness no type of medical treatment could cure.
He informed his disciples of this from the very beginning and from then on
never showed any interest in medicines. On the contrary, he seemed annoyed
when someone brought him medicines to take. This he expressed in no
uncertain terms:
“This is the illness of an old man who has reached the end
of the line. No matter what kind of medicine I take, it will never be cured.
All that’s left is the breath in my body, biding its time, awaiting the day
it finally ceases. I’m like a dead tree that’s still standing: no matter how
much you fertilize and water that tree, it is impossible to make it sprout
and flower again. This old dead tree now stands anticipating the day it will
topple over and go crashing to the ground, felled by this very same illness.
I thoroughly investigated my condition long before the symptoms appeared.
That is why I’ve been warning you all: Don’t be complacent. Hurry up,
intensify your efforts now while I am still alive. In that way, I can help
you resolve any problems you may have in the meantime. Missing this
opportunity now may cause you to waste a lot of time in the future. I will
not be here much longer. Soon I shall depart this world, in keeping with the
law of impermanence that follows constantly on the heels of all conditioned
things without exception. Three years ago I warned you that I would not last
more than three years. What more can I say? What I’ve told you, I know to be
inevitable. The work that the round of samsara performs inside the minds and
bodies of human beings and animals alike continues unerringly along its
natural course. Biography of âcariya Mun 372 In just a few months time it
will complete its final task within this body of mine. How can it possibly
alter its appointed task?”
With each passing day his symptoms gradually
worsened. Showing no interest in medicines of any kind, he was clearly
annoyed when people came and urged him to try this remedy or that cure. But
so many people arrived offering ‘cures’ that he had a hard time resisting
them all. Each one touted the effectiveness of the medicine he was offering,
insisting that if he took it he was sure to get better, for it had already
cured many others. They all pleaded with him to try their medicines out of
compassion for them. They wanted him to get better so he could continue to
be of service to his many followers for a long time to come. He often warned
them that medicines were useless for his illness; that only firewood for
cremating the corpse was appropriate. But the more he protested, the more
they beseeched him. So occasionally he yielded to their appeals and took a
small dose of medicine. He was concerned that people would feel disappointed
if they believed he had given up on his condition.
As news of his illness
spread across the region, people began arriving from all directions to visit
him at Ban Nong Pheu. Traveling from locations far and near in all kinds of
weather, a steady flow of monks and laity poured in like the waters from a
monsoon rain. Ban Nong Pheu was situated in a valley surrounded by thick
forest some twelve to fifteen miles from the main highway between Udon Thani
and Sakon Nakhon. Though people had to travel by foot to see him, they
appeared undaunted by the distance and the difficulties it posed. Only the
elderly, unable to make the journey on foot, hired ox carts to take them
there.
By nature, Acariya Mun always preferred to live alone quietly. Even
the monks living with him were discouraged from bothering him unless
absolutely necessary. Consequently, receiving large numbers of well-wishers
disagreed with his natural inclination to remain aloof from such tiresome
affairs. When sick, he had always been reluctant to allow even his close
disciples to take care of him, though he did make certain exceptions. When
he did allow it, the monks attending to his personal needs had to be very
circumspect in his presence. Only monks deemed trustworthy were selected for
these duties. As his health deteriorated, a discerning senior monk was
appointed to oversee all arrangements for his health
care. Since by nature Acariya Mun was very thorough and meticulous, this
monk had to decide what action was appropriate in each instance and then see
that the other monks carefully followed this regimen. For this reason, monks
attending on him were carefully chosen to ensure their behavior did not
conflict with his subtle temperament.
The lay people and the monks, arriving
from various locations around the region with hopes of seeing him to pay
their respects, were first asked to wait until an appropriate time could be
arranged. When the monk handling these matters felt the time was right, he
entered Acariya Mun’s hut to inform him about the visitors. Once permission
was granted, the visitors were taken to see him. After Acariya Mun had
spoken to them for awhile, they respectfully took their leave and departed.
The monks at Ban Nong Pheu monastery had always arranged visits in this
manner for those who came to see him. Visitors were invariably asked to wait
until permission was granted; and then, they were escorted to his hut in
groups at the time which he had agreed to receive them. The exceptions to
this rule were senior disciples, who enjoyed a special, close relationship
with him, being acariyas in their own right. Once Acariya Mun was informed
of their arrival and had given his consent, the acariyas went straight in to
converse with him in private.
As the months passed, his condition continued
to deteriorate. Although the symptoms never became very severe, he always
felt unwell. His illness resembled an armed insurgency gradually escalating
into a full scale war, consuming everything in its path, and leaving its
victim decimated. His disciples were deeply affected. He occupied a special
place at the center of their hearts, so his failing health left them all
distraught. Feeling sad, even dejected, they were not so cheerful as before.
Every conversation began with the topic of Acariya Mun’s illness and moved
on to something else, only to return to his health again as the conversation
ended.
Despite failing health, Acariya Mun
did not neglect his teaching obligations. His compassionate concern for his
disciples never diminished, though he was no longer able to expound the
Dhamma in such detail as before. Having finished his talk, he briefly
answered questions and then promptly adjourned the meeting to return to his
hut for a rest. Incredibly though, while sitting there expounding Dhamma to
the assembled monks, he showed no signs of his illness. He spoke with
characteristic resoluteness in a sharp, lively fashion, his voice booming loudly as if
he never had been sick. When he wanted to emphasize a point, the tempo of
his voice quickened dramatically to drive the point home. He held nothing
back as he spoke. His whole demeanor belied his true condition. Only after
he finished speaking did we all realize how exhausted he was. So we quickly
adjourned to allow him a chance to rest.
ONE EVENING SHORTLY before his
illness began, on the occasion of Magha Puja, the full moon day of February
1949, Acariya Mun began expounding Dhamma to the assembled monks at eight
p.m. and did not finish until midnight, speaking for a total of four hours.
The power of the Dhamma he delivered that night truly amazed the whole
assembly of dhutanga monks who were gathered for that occasion. To those
listening, the entire universe appeared to have vanished without a trace,
replaced in their awareness by the flow of his all-encompassing Dhamma,
radiating forth in every direction. He began by paying tribute to the 1,250
Arahants who had come together spontaneously on this full moon day in the
time of the Buddha.
“On this day 1,250 Arahants assembled spontaneously at
the Lord Buddha’s residence without prior arrangement. They were all
individuals of the utmost purity, completely free of kilesas. The Lord
Buddha himself delivered the Patimokkha exhortation11 that day, making the
occasion a visuddhi uposatha; that is, an uposatha observed among monks who
are all absolutely pure. Compare that assembly with the one gathered here
today. You listen to the Patimokkha being recited among monks who are all
absolutely tainted – not one of you is completely free of kilesas. It is
dismaying to think that, having ordained as a monk, each of you is a son of
the same Buddha as those Arahant disciples.12 Yet, in your case it is just
an empty claim lacking any real substance; like a person having the name
‘Goodman’ who, on the contrary, is so weighed down under his own evil doings
he can hardly move. In the Buddha’s day, monks practiced the Dhamma truly
and so became true monks with a true understanding that concealed nothing
false. Today, the fame and celebrity of some monks is so great that they
rival the sun and the moon, yet their actions sink to the depths of avici.
Where will they ever find virtue, truth, and purity? They merely accumulate
a mass of kilesas and create the evil kamma that goes
with them. Since monks today are not engaged in uprooting the kilesas from
their hearts, how can visuddhi uposatha possibly arise? Once ordained, they
are satisfied with their exalted status as Buddhist monks, taking for
granted that this makes them models of virtue. But they have no idea what
the true virtues of a Buddhist monk really are. If they understood the
meaning of the Patimokkha exhortation that the Lord Buddha delivered, they
would know the true nature of virtue. He condensed the essential meaning of
virtue into this concise statement: Refrain from all evil, develop goodness
and wisdom in abundance, and purify the mind until it is bright and clear.
This is the essence of the Buddha’s teaching.
“Refraining from evil, what
does it mean? Some people refrain from acting in evil ways but still speak
in evil ways. Others may not act or speak in evil ways but still like to
think in evil ways. They continue to amass evil within themselves from dawn
to dusk. Waking up the next morning, they resume – amassing more evil. So it
continues, day in and day out, and they are not interested in reflecting
upon their actions. Convinced they are already virtuous people, they wait
around expecting a state of purity to arise from virtue that exists in name
only. So they never find a state of purity; instead, they find only
defilement and disquiet. This is bound to happen, for anyone intent on
looking for trouble is sure to find it. What else would they find? There is
no shortage of such things in the conventional world we live in.”
This was Acariya Mun’s way of explaining the underlying, natural principles of virtue
to practicing monks in the hope that they would gain a profound insight into
the Truth. He then went on to explain the way of practice that begins with
samadhi and wisdom and ends with the ultimate attainment – absolute freedom.
Discussing all areas of practice fully and openly, his exposition that day
held nothing back. But, since much of what he said has already been covered
in previous talks, I shall not elaborate any further here. The assembly of
monks sat perfectly still the entire time he spoke, no one making the
slightest sound to interrupt the cadence of his voice as he delivered this
eloquent discourse.
As he finished speaking, he made a similar remark to the
one he previously made at Wat Chedi Luang monastery in Chiang Mai. He said,
in effect, that this talk would be the “final encore” of his old age – never would he give another such talk. His
words that night were prophetic, because from that day on he never gave
another profound and lengthy exposition of Dhamma. One month later his
illness began, and his health steadily declined until he finally passed
away.
Despite the physical difficulties he suffered as a result of that
degenerative disease, he insisted on making the effort to walk to the
village for almsround and continued eating only one meal a day from his alms
bowl, as he always had. He did not simply abandon these practices.
Eventually, when he felt that he could no longer walk the entire distance,
he made an effort to walk at least halfway through the village before
returning to the monastery. Seeing that so much walking caused him great
difficulty, lay supporters and senior monks conferred and decided to invite
him to walk only as far as the monastery gate, where offerings of food would
be placed in his bowl. Had they requested him to abstain altogether from
going on almsround, he would surely have demurred – so long as he was still
physically able, he felt obliged to continue. So everyone had to respect his
wishes. They wanted to avoid doing anything that might conflict with his
resolute temperament. He continued walking to the front gate for alms until
he became too weak to make it there and back. At that point, he began
walking only as far as the refectory to collect alms. Only when he could no
longer walk at all did he stop going for alms. Even then, he continued to
eat just one meal a day, which he took in his alms bowl. The rest of us had
to respect his wishes each time. We were all amazed at the endurance of this
noble sage who, refusing to forsake his fighting spirit, conceded nothing to
the kilesas.
As for the rest of us, we would probably be so dispirited at
the very first sign of sickness that someone would have to carry us to the
refectory to eat. It is truly disgraceful: the kilesas always laughing at us
as we lie hopelessly on their chopping block, waiting for them to shred us
to pieces like so much raw meat. What a pathetic sight! Here we are
full-fledged human beings willingly putting ourselves at the mercy of the
kilesas. All of us who carry this shame on our conscience should stop and
reflect on Acariya Mun’s mode of practice. We can then adopt it to safeguard
us in our struggle with these defilements. In that way, we will always
remain faithful to our Buddhist principles – instead of just being the
kilesas’ whipping boys.
Eventually, Acariya Mun’s
condition became so serious that the rest of us felt obliged to undertake
certain precautions. We quietly arranged for groups of three or four monks
to keep a vigil every night sitting beneath his hut. We arranged this
ourselves without informing him, though he may have been intuitively aware
of it. We were concerned he might forbid us to do it, reasoning that it was
a burden on the monks and thus an unnecessary nuisance. Every night small
groups of monks took turns, sitting silently beneath his hut in continuous
shifts that lasted until dawn. Each group stayed for several hours until it
was replaced by the next. This routine was already well established by the
beginning of the rainy season retreat that year. When it became obvious that
his illness had become very debilitating, we conferred among ourselves and
decided to request his permission for two monks to be allowed to sit in
meditation on his verandah. With his consent, two monks were always seated
on his verandah from then on, and two more were seated down below. Besides
the regular shifts of monks who kept watch on him, others were quietly
overseeing the whole arrangement throughout the night.
The end of the rains
retreat saw an increasing number of senior disciples begin arriving from
their own retreat locations to pay him their respects and help look after
his needs. By that time his condition was critical, and becoming more and
more unstable by the day. Eventually, he called all his disciples together
one day to remind them of the proper way to handle his impending death.
“My
illness has now reached its final stage. It is time to think about what will
happen when I die – preparations must be made in time. As I’ve told you many
times, I am going to die – this much is certain. My death is destined to be
a major event affecting not only the general public, but animals as well. I
want you to know that I do not wish to die here at Ban Nong Pheu. If I die
here, it will be necessary to slaughter large numbers of farm animals in
order to feed all the people coming to my funeral. I am only one dying
person, but the death of this one person will in turn cause the deaths of a
great many animals. Crowds of people will travel here to attend my funeral,
but there’s no market in this village where foodstuffs can be purchased.
Since ordaining as a monk I have never for a moment considered doing harm to
any animal, to say nothing of killing them. Compassion has always been the
foundation of my conscious existence. I am continuously extending the spirit
of loving kindness and dedicating the fruits of
my merit to all living beings without exception. I do not want to see any
animal lose the life it cherishes so dearly. I could never countenance
having my own death become a source of enmity between myself and the world’s
animals.
“I want you to take me to Sakon Nakhon so I can die there. That
town has a large marketplace, so my death should not affect the lives of so
many animals. I have yet to die, but monks and lay people are already
arriving here in a steady stream, their numbers increasing each day – clear
evidence of the scale of the problem. Now think of how many people will come
when I finally do die. Many people will mourn my death, but that is not my
concern. I am ready for death – whenever and wherever it happens. I have no
regrets about parting with my body. Having already investigated it
thoroughly, I know that it is merely a combination of elements that have
joined together temporarily, only to break apart again and revert back to
their original elemental nature. What is there to be attached to? What I am
concerned about is safeguarding the local farm animals so they won’t have to
perish as well. I don’t want to see animal carcasses laid out for sale all
up and down the roadsides here. That would be extremely regrettable.
Fortunately, it’s not too late to remedy the situation. I am asking that you
arrange for my departure as soon as possible for the sake of all those
animals that would otherwise die as a result of my death. It is my express
wish that their lives be protected. Does anyone have anything to say? If so,
speak up now.”
Not a single person in the group spoke up. A atmosphere of
quiet despair pervaded the assembly. As the Buddha said: yampiccam na
labhati tampi dukkham: not getting what one wants is truly a form of dukkha.
Everyone realized that whether he went to Sakon Nakhon or remained at Ban
Nong Pheu, in either case the situation was hopeless – he was going to die.
So the meeting remained silent. There was just no way to resolve this
dilemma. In the end, everyone willingly agreed to his request.
Prior to the
meeting, the residents of Ban Nong Pheu village had made it known that they
would feel honored to have him die there. “We will manage all the funeral
arrangements ourselves. We may be quite poor here but our hearts are rich in
faith and respect for Acariya Mun. We will do everything we possibly can to
arrange the funeral here. We won’t let anyone look down
on us saying that the villagers of Ban Nong Pheu couldn’t cremate the body
of even one acariya – instead, it had to be done elsewhere. We don’t want
that kind of reputation. Whatever happens, all of us here are ready to offer
ourselves to Acariya Mun, body and soul. He will remain our cherished refuge
until the day he dies. We can’t allow anyone to take him away. We will
resist to the last breath any attempt to do so.”
So when hearing Acariya
Mun’s explanation for being taken away, their disappointment was palpable,
but they felt they couldn’t object. Although they venerated him so much
their sadness and disappointment at hearing his reasons nearly broke their
hearts, they were forced to accept his decision. They truly deserve a lot of
sympathy. Their willingness to sacrifice everything in their devotion to
Acariya Mun is a gesture I will always treasure. I’m sure that all of my
readers feel the same way.
Many of Acariya Mun’s most senior disciples
attended the meeting, aware as he spoke that he must be moved as soon as
possible. After he had announced his decision and stated his reasons, and
there being no dissenting voices, the monks and laity who were present all
agreed to construct a stretcher suitable to carry him on the long journey
from Ban Nong Pheu to Sakon Nakhon. The next day, a large crowd of lay
supporters and monks brought the stretcher to his hut, awaiting his
departure. An immense sorrow overcame everyone that day. They realized they
were about to lose somebody whom they so deeply cherished and revered. It
was a sorrow so great that local people and monks alike could barely contain
their emotions.
After the morning meal was over and everyone awaited in
readiness for the journey to start, emotions began to run high in the crowd
surrounding his hut as the local people, gathered to see him off, gave vent
to their despair one last time. Many monks and novices swelled the crowd;
they too felt the strain. The deep sadness depressing their hearts slowly
welled up, and tears flowed quietly, dampening their cheeks. At that moment Acariya Mun appeared, carried by a group of his senior disciples – a moment
of further heightened emotion. As the monks carried him down the steps and
placed him on the stretcher, the mixture of affection, respect, and despair
that everyone had kept bottled-up inside freely poured out: men, women,
monks, and novices were no longer able to hold back their flood of tears.
Onlookers wept openly, expressing an
unrestrained and deep sense of sorrow. I myself could not avoid getting
caught up in the despondent mood pervading that sad occasion, despite the
fact that I was accompanying Acariya Mun when he left. The air filled with
sounds of weeping and crying. People called out, begging Acariya Mun,
“Please get better: Don’t pass away from this world leaving us forever in
unbearable sadness.” They were almost inconsolable at that point. In his
great compassion, he sympathized with how poor their community was. This
they knew; yet they couldn’t help but feel terribly miserable watching the
cherished treasure over whom they had faithfully kept watch for so many
years slip away from them forever. He was departing now, and there was
nothing they could do to prevent it.
As Acariya Mun was carried past, the
sounds of their heartfelt laments surged along the path, a tidal wave of
grief inundating the hearts of those who lined the route. As he passed by,
everything appeared gray and bleak, as though their lives had suddenly been
snuffed out. Even the grasses and trees, though insensible to the unfolding
scene before them, appeared to wither up and die in response. As Acariya Mun
left the peaceful shade of the forest sanctuary where he and his disciples
had lived so contentedly – a place where so many ordinary people had come to
find shelter over the years – the monastery suddenly felt deserted, even
though many monks still remained. Suddenly it no longer had that enormous
tree with the thick, broad foliage that had always given so much peace and
comfort to all who came to shelter there. The heartrending, anguished cries
of those wanting to offer their undying devotion to the sasana was an
immensely sad, forlorn sound indeed. They were witnessing the departure of
the one man who embodied the high ideals of their unshakable religious
faith.
Long after the procession had passed through the village and the
sounds of inconsolable grief had faded into the distance, hundreds of monks
and lay people continued to walk behind his stretcher, their long, drawn
faces mirroring the somber, cheerless spirit of the occasion. Walking along
in complete silence like mourners in a funeral procession of a close friend
or relative, they did their best to come to terms with the heartbreak. No
one spoke a word, but in their hearts they pondered long and deeply on their
shattered hopes, the overwhelming feeling being that all was now lost. It
seemed then as if we were taking his corpse away to
dispose of it, even though he was still very much alive. The realization
that all hope was now gone, that he would never return again, had fully sunk
in. The more we thought about it, the sadder we became. Yet we couldn’t stop
thinking about it. We all walked along in a kind of melancholy daze,
contemplating thoughts of despair.
I must confess to being shamefully
inadequate in this regard – the whole journey I thought only of how I was
about to lose my one true refuge in life. No longer would there be someone
to rely on when questions arose in my practice, as they so often did. The
distance from Ban Nong Pheu to the district seat of Phanna Nikhom was
approximately fifteen miles; but the long hours of walking passed almost
unnoticed. Walking behind him, knowing he was dying, I thought only of how
much I was going to miss my teacher. I desperately wanted him to continue
living at the time. His final days corresponded to a crucial stage in my own
meditation practice, a time when I had many unresolved problems to work out.
No matter how much I pondered this predicament, I always arrived at the same
conclusion: my dependence on him would have to be terminated soon. This made
the future look bleak.
His condition remained calm and stable throughout the
long journey – he did not display any obvious signs of ill health. In fact,
he appeared to be lying fast asleep, though of course he wasn’t sleeping at
all. Around midday, the procession reached a cool, shady grove of trees. We
asked Acariya Mun’s permission to take a short rest for the sake of the
large group of people accompanying him. He immediately asked, “Where are we
now?” The moment I heard his voice I was caught off guard by a surge of
affection and emotional attachment. Why was I so deeply moved by this
wonderful, welcome sound? It seemed, suddenly, as though Acariya Mun was his
old self again.
Is this beloved paragon of the three worlds truly going to
abandon me, a poor orphan whose heart is about to break? Will his pure
heart, whose kind assistance has always helped to breathe life into my
spirit, really withdraw from my life and disappear – forever? Such were my
immediate feelings the moment Acariya Mun spoke up. Some people may consider
this a somewhat crazy reaction. But I have no misgivings – I willingly admit
this kind of craziness. For Acariya Mun’s sake, I was so crazy I would
gladly have volunteered to die in his place without the least concern for my
own life. Had it been his wish, I would have happily laid down my life – no second thoughts. I was prepared at a moment’s
notice to sacrifice my life for his. But, alas, it was impossible for him to
accept any sacrifice I might be willing to offer. The truth is that everyone
in the world must inevitably travel the same route: whatever is born must
die. There are no exceptions.
The journey to Sakon Nakhon was planned in two
stages. The first day we walked as far as Ban Phu monastery in Phanna Nikhom
district, where we were to rest for a few days, allowing Acariya Mun a
chance to recuperate before moving on to Sakon Nakhon.13 Leaving Ban Nong
Pheu at nine o’clock that morning, the procession eventually reached Ban Phu
monastery shortly before dark. The journey had taken all day because we
followed the more circuitous route, skirting the edge of the mountains, to
make it easier for him and the many elderly men and women determined to
follow him all the way. Upon arriving, we invited him to rest in a low
pavilion where his needs could easily be attended. It was also a convenient
place for monks and lay people to pay him their respects.
Acariya Mun’s
sojourn at Ban Phu monastery dragged on for many days, his condition
steadily worsening the entire time. Meanwhile, each new day brought visiting
crowds of monks and lay people from the surrounding area. Some even came at
night. All were eager for a chance to meet him and pay their respects.
Though well aware of his illustrious reputation, most of them had never made
his acquaintance. They had heard the news that he was certainly a modern-day
Arahant who would soon pass away into Nibbana. It was rumored that those who
met him would be blessed with good fortune, while those that didn’t would
have lived their lives in vain. So they were all anxious to benefit by
coming to pay him homage. They did not want to feel they had wasted their
birth as human beings.
The very first morning after arriving at Ban Phu,
Acariya Mun demanded to know when he would be taken to Sakon Nakhon. He told
his disciples that it was not his intention to die at Ban Phu – they must
take him on to Sakon Nakhon without further delay. His senior disciples
replied that they planned to wait for a short while for him to recuperate,
then they would proceed to Sakon Nakhon as he requested. So Acariya Mun let
the matter drop for awhile. The next day he again asked the same question.
His senior disciples repeated their reasons and he
remained silent, only to bring it up again later. Time and again he demanded
to know when they would take him to Sakon Nakhon. He said that, by waiting
too long, he would fail to make it in time.
In the end, they asked him to
extend his stay at Ban Phu monastery for a full ten days. By the time four
or five days had passed, he was pressing them constantly to take him to
Sakon Nakhon. Each time, his senior disciples either kept silent or repeated
their previous justifications for staying. Repeatedly he pressed them,
scolding them for waiting so long.
“Are you going to have me die here?! I’ve
told you from the very beginning – I am going to die in Sakon Nakhon. My
time is almost up. Get me there in a hurry! Don’t wait so long!” During the
final three days, his demands to be taken to Sakon Nakhon became
increasingly vociferous.
During his last night there he flatly refused to
lie down and sleep. Instead, he urgently called the monks to his bedside and
told them unequivocally that he could not remain alive much longer. He
insisted on being taken that very night to be sure of arriving in time. He
then had us prop him up, sitting cross-legged in samadhi and facing in the
direction of Sakon Nakhon. As soon as he withdrew from samadhi, he told us
to prepare to leave – he was waiting no longer. We rushed off to call his
senior disciples. They informed him that he would definitely be taken to
Sakon Nakhon the next morning. Following this assurance, his sense of
urgency lessened somewhat, but he still refused to go to sleep, speaking
openly about how he felt:
“My time is almost up, I cannot hang on much
longer. It would be better to leave tonight. In that way, I will be sure to
arrive in time for that critical moment which is now fast approaching. I
have no wish to shoulder the burden of this flaming mass of body elements
any longer. I want to discard the body once and for all so that I needn’t be
concerned with this great pile of pain and suffering ever again. I am
literally on the verge of death right now. Don’t you monks realize that I
could die at any minute? My body is completely useless now. There is no
justifiable reason to keep me in this state of physical torment. All of you
understand my reasons for going to Sakon Nakhon – that’s why we came here in
the first place. So why do you still insist on delaying my departure? Is
this Sakon Nakhon? Why don’t you take me there immediately? I want to go
right now! What are you waiting for? What use is a corpse? It’s not useful
for anything, not even for making fish sauce!
“I have already told you: my body has reached its limit – it simply cannot
last any longer. Isn’t anyone here interested in listening to me and doing
what I say? I have explicitly stated what I want you to do, still no one
seems to listen. If you insist on adopting such an attitude, how will you
ever discover the Truth? If here in my presence, while I’m alive, you are so
stubborn, refusing to believe what I say, how will you ever manage to be
good, reasonable people once I’m dead? I know what I told you to be
absolutely true. I have explained the whole situation to you in a carefully
considered, reasonable manner. Yet, you stubbornly refuse to comply. I am
beginning to lose hope that any of you will develop the principles of sound
judgment needed to uphold the sasana.”
Acariya Mun was very adamant the last
night at Ban Phu – he absolutely refused to sleep that whole night. I
suspect he was afraid that, in his condition, he might never wake up again.
At the time none of us there with him could figure out his reason for
staying awake all night. Only later did the real reason occur to me.
At
seven o’clock the next morning, several trucks from the provincial highway
department arrived to escort Acariya Mun to Sakon Nakhon. Mrs. Num Chuwanon,
as head of the escort, invited him to ride in one of the vehicles. He
readily agreed and asked only whether there were enough vehicles to carry
all of the many monks who were scheduled to accompany him. He was informed
that three trucks had come. If these were not sufficient to transport all
the monks who wanted to go, a return trip would be made to pick up the rest.
Understanding the arrangement, Acariya Mun remained silent. After the monks
had eaten their meal, a doctor injected him with a sedative so that he would
not be disturbed by the bumpy ride. In those days, the roads were quite
rough – full of potholes and in generally poor condition. Having received
the injection, he was placed on a stretcher and carried out to one of the
trucks parked at the edge of the field, there being no road into the
monastery. Soon after, he began to fall asleep. The convoy of vehicles then
began the trip to Sakon Nakhon, arriving there at exactly noon.
Upon
arrival, he was carried down from the truck and placed, still sleeping, in a
hut at Wat Suddhawat monastery. He remained asleep the entire day, not
waking until about midnight. Within an hour of his waking those critical
symptoms – of which he had repeatedly forewarned his seemingly deaf and
blind disciples – became more and more apparent, as if
to say to us all: Now do you see? This is why I kept insisting that you
hurry to bring me to Sakon Nakhon. I want to quickly rid myself of this
messy heap of suffering. The symptoms are fully obvious now. If you still
don’t understand, then take a look. If you still don’t believe what I was
telling you, then watch carefully and consider with all your heart what you
see appearing before you at this moment. Was I telling you the truth or not?
Stop being so deaf, blind, and thoughtless from now on. Otherwise, you will
never find the wisdom needed to save yourselves. What you are witnessing
right now should inspire you to think deeply – so don’t be complacent.
Bhara
have pañcakkhanda: the five khandhas are indeed a heavy burden. In the very
early hours of the morning he began to take leave of this heavy burden –
this heap of intense suffering that no truly wise person wants to encounter
again in the future. The monastery was absolutely quiet that night. No one
milled about to disturb the stillness. Shortly, some important acariyas,
like Chao Khun Dhammachedi from Wat Bodhisomphon monastery in Udon Thani,
arrived at his hut, having come in great haste as soon as they heard the
news. As they entered, they hurriedly sat down in a calm, composed manner,
though their hearts were actually troubled by the obvious deterioration in
his condition. It was a poignant reminder that he could pass away at any
moment. Monks arriving to monitor his condition sat silently in three rows
facing him. Important senior disciples, led by Chao Khun Dhammachedi, sat in
the front, the more junior monks and novices filling the remaining rows. All
sat in complete silence, their eyes fixed on Acariya Mun. Their lower
eyelids were moistened by tears they couldn’t hold back – such was the
intensity of their despair. They knew all hope was lost, for nothing at all
could be done to change the inevitable. They felt as if their own lives were
losing all meaning.
At the beginning, Acariya Mun was lying on his right
side in the ‘lion’s posture’. Fearing this might exhaust him, some monks
gently removed the pillow supporting him so that he came to rest lying on
his back. As soon as he became aware of this, he tried to shift back to his
right side, but he no longer had the strength to move. As he struggled to
turn on his side, some senior acariyas attempted to reposition the pillow so
that it again supported his back. But noticing how very weak he was, they
decided to stop, fearing that it might just make matters worse.
Consequently, when Acariya Mun finally passed away he was lying neither on his back nor on his right side, but
slightly propped up somewhere in between. It was simply impossible to adjust
his posture further under the circumstances. His disciples, mostly monks and
novices with a few lay people, sat in total despair as life slowly ebbed
from his body. So apprehensive were they about his imminent death, they had
almost forgotten to breathe.
As the minutes passed, his breathing gradually
became softer and more refined. No one took their eyes off him for it was
obvious the end was fast approaching. His breathing continued to grow weaker
and weaker until it was barely discernible. A few seconds later it appeared
to cease; but it ended so delicately that no one present could determine
just when he passed away. His physical appearance revealed nothing abnormal
– so different from the death of the ordinary person. Despite the fact that
all his disciples observed his final moments with unblinking attention, not
one of them was able to say with any conviction: “That was precisely the
moment when Acariya Mun finally took leave of this dismal world.”
Seeing no
apparent signs of life, Chao Khun Dhammachedi rather tentatively said, “I
think he’s passed away.” At the same time he glanced down at his watch – it
was exactly 2:23 a.m. So that was taken as the time of death. When death had
been confirmed, the impact of his passing was reflected in the
grief-stricken, tearful faces of all the monks who sat crowded around the
lifeless body. There followed an anguished few moments of low coughs and
soft, incoherent mutterings before the whole room sank into a mood of silent
despair which is beyond the power of words to describe. Our hearts were
plunged into unbearable feelings of emptiness; our bodies sitting there
appeared to be mere empty shells. Several long moments of stilled silence
ensued when the whole world appeared to cease momentarily while Acariya Mun
abandoned his conventional existence and entered into the domain of Ultimate
Happiness where no vestige of conventional reality could disturb him ever
again.
I myself very nearly died of a broken heart along with him as I sat
by his side steeped in pensive sorrow. I could not manage to shake off the
gloomy, somber mood that clouded my heart as he departed the world. I could
do nothing to alleviate the extreme pain of the loss I felt. ‘Living dead’
fittingly describes my sense of hopelessness at that moment.
After a period of silence, his senior disciples had the monks neatly
rearrange his bedding. They laid out his body there for the time being, with
the understanding that next morning they would consult together about making
further arrangements. This accomplished, the monks began filing out of his
room. Though a few remained on the verandah outside the room, most of them
went down below. Even though the whole area surrounding the hut was
illuminated by brightly-lit lanterns, his disciples stumbled around blindly
in dejection, unsure where they were going. Appearing somnolent, almost
drugged, they wandered aimlessly back and forth. Several monks actually
fainted at the time, as though they too were about to expire because life no
longer held any meaning for them. The entire monastic community found itself
in a chaotic state of confusion late that night; all were inconsolable over
the terrible sense of loss they suffered. Monks milled around
absentmindedly, having no clear idea where they were going or why. Such was
the power of utter despondency arising from the departure of that shining
beacon which so illuminated their lives and brightened their hearts.
Suddenly, all sense of comfort and security had evaporated, exposing them to
the uncertainty of living on without a reliable refuge. This cold, dark
constriction in their hearts left them feeling that nothing substantial
remained in the entire universe, nothing they could hold to for support.
Failing to consider that beings throughout the universe have always managed
to find a source of refuge, at that moment they appeared to face a bleak and
uncertain future, as if dire misfortune were engulfing them all. Acariya Mun
had been the one, true refuge. To him they could always confidently entrust
themselves, heart and soul, without reservation.
I mean no disregard to the
Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha, but at that moment they seemed somehow very
distant, making it difficult to reestablish them as a viable refuge. They
did not appear to project the same affirmative presence that Acariya Mun
did; he was always close at hand and ready to help resolve our doubts and
provide us with inspiration. Approaching him with pressing problems that we
were unable to solve on our own, these same burning issues invariably
dissolved away the moment he offered a solution. This salient recollection,
so deeply engraved on my heart, profoundly affected me when he passed away.
I could think of no other person capable of helping me solve my problems.
Who else could I find with such compassion for me? Who else’s advice could I trust? I was afraid of being left
alone, depressed, and hopelessly stuck with my own store of ignorance. Gone
were the easy solutions I had found while living with him. The more I
thought about this dilemma, the more discouraged I became about finding a
safe, painless way out on my own. In my ignorance, I saw no way forward at
that moment; only misery and despair stared me in the face. Sitting there in
front of his dead body, as though I myself were dead, I could think of no
way to save myself and relieve my misery. I sat brooding, a living,
breathing ghost, completely oblivious to time or bodily fatigue. This was
the first time in my life as a monk that I felt so gloomy, frightened, and
confused—and there was no one to help me, no means of extricating myself
from this distress. Each time I glanced down at Acariya Mun’s still,
lifeless body, tears welled up in my eyes and flowed down my cheeks. I was
helpless to stop them. My chest heaved and sobbed as an uncontrollable
emotion arose and lodged in my throat, nearly suffocating me.
Eventually I
regained enough presence of mind to reflect inwardly, admonishing myself: Do
I really intend to die of a broken heart right now? He died free of concerns
and attachments, which are matters of the kilesas. If I were to die now, I
would die as a result of my concerns and attachments. That would be harmful
to me. Neither my despondency nor my death is of any use to me, or to
Acariya Mun. When he was alive, he never taught us to miss him to the point
of death. This kind of longing is the way of worldly people everywhere. Even
though my reason for missing him is associated with Dhamma, it is still
contaminated by worldly concerns, and thus hardly worthy of a Buddhist monk.
Such thoughts are especially inappropriate for someone like me who has set
his sights firmly on achieving the highest level of Dhamma. The Lord Buddha
stated that whoever practices the Dhamma properly is, in fact, worshipping
the Buddha; that whoever realizes the Dhamma, realizes the Buddha as well.
It is clear that my longing is not in perfect accord with Dhamma. To be in
perfect accord with Dhamma I must practice precisely what Acariya Mun taught
me. This is the correct way for me to show how much I miss him. Should I die
while engaged in those harsh training methods that he recommended, I shall
feel confident that my death is in harmony with the principles of Dhamma.
This is the only sensible way to behave. I must not obstruct my own progress
by longing for him in an unreasonable, worldly manner – I’ll only harm
myself.
In this way I regained mindfulness, allowing
reason a chance to intervene and forestall the maelstrom raging in my heart
at the time. And so I avoided being buried alive in my own futility.
The
Funeral
By midmorning, reports of Acariya Mun’s death had spread throughout
the adjacent communities; senior monks and government officials of all
levels had heard the news. All hurried to the monastery, anxious to pay
their last respects to his body. While gathered there, they conferred with
Acariya Mun’s senior disciples to reach a consensus on the most suitable way
to arrange the funeral. They were determined that it be conducted in a
manner reflecting his exalted status as a distinguished acariya, greatly
revered nationwide. At the same time, they arranged to have news of his
death broadcast over the radio and printed in the newspapers so that his
faithful followers would have access to the news wherever they might be.
No
sooner had reports of his death begun to circulate than groups of monks and
lay devotees began pouring into the monastery from all directions to pay
their last respects. From the time his death was announced until the day his
body was cremated, a steady flow of visitors came daily to pay their
respects. People living close by came and returned home the same day. But
those living some distance away had to stay in the monastery overnight –
transportation being less convenient then, than it is today.
During Acariya
Mun’s earlier stay at Ban Phu monastery, the people who came to see him had
offered so many gifts of various kinds it was hard to keep track of them
all. The amount of gift offerings he received from the faithful was
extraordinary – a trend which continued until the day of his death. Like
rainwater in the monsoon season, donations flowed into the monastery in a
continuous stream. In his lifetime he had always been the recipient of much
largess, regardless of whether he was staying near a population center or
deep in the mountains. Even when staying in the remotest locations, there
were invariably generous people willing to make the effort to trek through
thick forest so they could offer him something
special. By nature, Acariya Mun was always generous and self-sacrificing: he
gave away everything he was offered to assist others. He never thought of
keeping things for himself and he never regretted his beneficence. He gave
away everything he received, irrespective of what it was or how much it may
have cost. In terms of actual poverty, perhaps no monk was poorer than
Acariya Mun. The combined amount of all the donations he received during his
life was prodigious, but the amount he gave away in charity was equally as
great, if not greater. Whatever he was given, he very soon passed on to
someone in need. Even on occasions when he had nothing to give away, he
thought of other ways to be of help, though he did this unobtrusively. His
beneficence often provided nearby monasteries with much-needed assistance.
As the result of a life of self-sacrifice, even after his death people from
all over the region continuously arrived with offerings to place before his
body as it lay in state at Wat Suddhawat monastery.
Prominent senior monks,
in consultation with local government officials, decided that it would be
best to keep Acariya Mun’s body for several months before proceeding with
the cremation. Agreement was reached that the cremation should take place
during the period of the waxing moon in January of 1950. With this in mind,
they arranged a special casket to hold the body.
At four o’clock that
afternoon, a large crowd of laity, monks, and novices came to attend the
funeral bathing rites for his body. When this ceremony was completed, his
body, still draped in his monk’s robes, was wrapped in many layers of white
cloth and placed respectfully in the special casket. The casket’s entire
front panel was made of glass, allowing those coming from afar, who had
never before seen him, to view his body. No one was to be disappointed. The
community of monks, headed by Chao Khun Dhammachedi, decided to arrange
nightly sessions of sutta chanting to honor him, accompanied by discourses
on Dhamma, which were always well attended.
All the various functions
connected with Acariya Mun’s funeral were organized with the generous
cooperation of the local populace. From government officials and business
leaders down to the general public, all contributions were made in a spirit
of geniality. Sincere in their faith, they took these responsibilities very
seriously, never losing heart. From the day Acariya Mun passed away until
the time of his cremation, the people of Sakon Nakhon
put forth a concerted effort to make life as convenient as possible for the
monks and novices gathered there for the occasion. They worked tirelessly,
with enthusiasm, to insure that this huge funeral ceremony was an
unqualified success, and spared no effort or expense in the process.
In the
months leading up to the cremation, hundreds of monks arrived in Sakon
Nakhon wishing to pay their final respects. Most then returned home, but
over one hundred remained, residing in the monastery to help coordinate all
the necessary arrangements. Despite the large influx of monks, local
residents never felt discouraged; the faithful were prepared to support them
each day with plenty of alms food. The lines of monks receiving food every
morning seemed to stretch on forever, but people remained unstinting in
their generosity from the first day to the last – on not a single day was
alms food in short supply. Even with the increasing demand, ample food
offerings were always graciously provided to support the monks.
I witnessed
the enormous sacrifices these people made during that period, so I feel
obliged to record for posterity their charitable goodness and amicable
cooperation. It made such a deep impression on me – I shall never forget it.
I never imagined I would see so much patience, endurance, and self-sacrifice
shown by one group of people. Having experienced this incredible outpouring
of generosity firsthand, I want to express my admiration to the people of Sakon Nakhon: they possessed a magnanimous faith that never waned. Their
grand hospitality has left me with a warm feeling of gratitude – an
impression that will forever remain in my heart.
One had to sympathize with
the monks and novices, staying at the monastery, who helped supervise
suitable arrangements for all the people attending the funeral, and with the
many lay supporters who toiled so hard, helping with the labor. Well in
advance of the cremation date, monks and novices were already arriving in
large numbers, while the cremation ceremony was expected to attract a crowd
of well over ten thousand people. Several pavilions were constructed to
house people, and as many kitchen areas as possible were set up around the
grounds to accommodate the large crowd that was expected to attend this
important occasion. Begun shortly after Acariya Mun passed away, these
preparations were completed just in time for his cremation.
As the day of the funeral ceremony drew near, monks and lay
devotees flooded in from all directions, their numbers swelling until those
charged with receiving them were hardly able to cope. The closer it came to
cremation day, the greater the multitude of people pouring into the
monastery. In the end, no more space could be found to accommodate the
hordes of people who kept arriving. By funeral day, all the huts were full,
and the whole extensive tract of forest within the monastery grounds was
crowded with monks and novices who had traveled from all over the region.
Most of them camped out in the woods, their white umbrella-tents visible
everywhere. A total of eight hundred monks and novices were camped out
inside of Wat Suddhawat alone; several hundred more found shelter in nearby
monasteries. In all, well over a thousand monks and novices were present at
Acariya Mun’s cremation. As for the lay devotees, it was simply impossible
to count how many were camped inside the monastery grounds. Over and above
that, many more people stayed outside the monastery, sleeping under trees or
out in the open fields. Many more slept in town, filling up all the limited
hotel space. With the entire multitude finally assembled at the funeral pyre
on cremation day, it was impossible to give an accurate reckoning of their
total strength. At best, one could estimate that tens of thousands were in
attendance that day.
And yet, strangely, amazingly, there was very little of
the kind of noise usually associated with such a crowded ceremony. Only the
sound of the public address system was heard, broadcasting the religious
functions being performed in connection with the cremation. Performed
strictly in accordance with kammatthana tradition, there were no sideshows
to entertain the crowd. The quantities of food, cloth, and other items, that
were offered by devotees from all over the region to help the monastery with
the funeral, amounted to a small mountain of goods. Hundreds of sacks of
rice were offered, while the cars of faithful donors continuously brought
food of all sorts to help feed everyone. The quantity of merit-making cloth,
offered in honor of Acariya Mun, would probably have filled a weaving
factory. I’ve never seen a weaving factory and I have no idea how big they
are, but I am confident that this mountain of cloth brought by faithful
followers from all over the country would have exceeded the capacity of any
such factory.
I wish to apologize to the reader if this
seems an exaggeration. I was somewhat carried away by a sense of pride I
felt concerning the offerings of so many generous people. I never imagined
that we Thai people could be so generous. But witnessing this wonderful
display of munificence personally, I have continued to be amazed by it ever
since. Self-sacrifice and bounteous generosity are hallmarks of the Thai
people. From a global perspective, Thailand is but a small country, yet our
compassionate tendency to engage in spontaneous acts of charitable giving is
second to none. It is a tradition that is entirely appropriate for a country
like ours with a Buddhist heritage that teaches us to have compassion for
one another. On the whole, we Thais have always been a nation of warm,
big-hearted people who tend to shun narrow-minded, stingy attitudes.
Nowhere
was this more apparent than at Acariya Mun’s funeral, where faithful donors
offered an abundance of items for general consumption. The bounty was truly
extraordinary. The sizes of the enormous pots of rice and stew prepared each
day were almost frightening. These pots were so big and heavy that several
people were required to carry them to the pavilions where the monks gathered
to eat. Due to the unusually large number of monks, many different eating
places were set up to accommodate them. Most of them ate in large groups –
thirty to forty monks here, fifty to sixty monks there – at locations set
aside for that purpose within the grounds. Smaller groups of nine to ten
monks ate together in the monks’ living quarters. The vast majority of them
were kammatthana monks who ate directly from their alms bowls, so large
quantities of dishes and eating utensils were unnecessary, making it much
easier to serve so many. Sets of dishes were provided only for the
relatively few, prominent administrative monks and those accompanying them.
Once the pots of rice and stew had been offered, monks served themselves in
order of seniority, placing rice, stew, and assorted sweets together in
their alms bowls. This was normal practice – they invariably mixed their
food in that way. The religious faith of the general public and the
protective power of Acariya Mun’s spiritual greatness combined to ensure
that food was always plentiful.
For the duration of the
funeral, there were no instances of drinking or drunken behavior, no
quarreling or fighting, and no cases of theft were reported. When found,
lost articles were handed over to someone in authority who announced them
over the loudspeakers. If the item in question was something valuable, the
announcer did not describe it. He said merely that a valuable item had been
found and urged the owner to come and claim it. Having correctly identified
it, the item was returned to him. If the lost article was something common,
the announcer simply described what had been found so the owner could then
reclaim it. If it was money, he announced only that some money had been
found, but the amount and its container – such as a wallet – were not
mentioned. The owner was required to supply this information as proof of
ownership.
The funeral ceremonies preceding the cremation of Acariya Mun’s
body lasted a total of four days and three nights. The entire event was
remarkable in many respects. To begin with, despite the enormous crowds,
there was very little noise; no fights or wild, drunken behavior anywhere in
the area, no pickpockets, and no thefts reported. Lost valuables were
promptly handed over to the authorities; all monks and novices were calm,
quiet, and very well-behaved. In any gathering of such size, it is unusual
to meet with even one of these favorable conditions. Having them all
combined in a single event was truly remarkable indeed.
Beginning at eight
o’clock each night the monks assembled to chant suttas in honor of Acariya
Mun. The laity then offered gifts of cloth to the monks, one of whom gave a
discourse on Dhamma. Again the next morning after the meal, members of the
laity began presenting traditional offerings of merit-making cloth to the
monks, offerings which continued with no fixed schedule throughout most of
the day. During the four-day period, there were so many faithful devotees,
traveling such great distances, hoping to dedicate offerings of cloth, that
it would have been impractical to restrict those offerings to scheduled
times. The issue was resolved by permitting lay people who wanted to
dedicate offerings of cloth to a monk, or a group of monks, to make their
dedications as quickly and easily as possible. Those arriving with cloth to
offer were advised to contact the announcer and specifying to him how many
monks they required. Using the public address system was by far the most
convenient method, since it was almost impossible to find a specific monk in
such a large crowd in any other way. So if certain devotees wanted to invite
a specific monk to come and receive an offering, his name was announced on the public address system. The announcer had a
complete list of the names of all the monks in attendance. All visiting
monks and novices were required to register their names at the announcer’s
booth as soon as they arrived, and an announcement to this effect was
broadcast on a regular basis. This policy allowed the organizers to make an
accurate estimation of the number of monks and novices attending the funeral
ceremonies. It also enabled the announcer to call out their names correctly
when required.
Monks walked to the nearby villages, or into town, for alms
every morning. The only exception was the day of the cremation itself. On
that day, the laity made a special request that the monks collect food in
the immediate vicinity of the monastery. The faithful lined up in groups at
various places inside and outside the monastery, placing offerings into
their bowls as the monks filed past.
The ceremony began on the tenth lunar
day of the third lunar month and ended at midnight on the thirteenth lunar
day with the cremation of Acariya Mun’s body. The special casket containing
Acariya Mun’s body was placed on an ornate funeral pyre, specially
constructed for the cremation. Built on the site where the uposatha hall
presently stands, it was a four-sided wooden structure decorated with
intricately carved motifs that skilled craftsman had created for the
auspicious occasion. It looked very impressive – worthy of such a
distinguished acariya. His remains were later collected on the morning of
the fourteenth lunar day. Unfortunately, I cannot recall the day of the
month according to the international calendar.14
To the best of my recollection,
his body was placed there on the eleventh lunar day. As they prepared to
move his body from the pavilion where he lay in state, the monks and the
laity held a short service to ask his forgiveness for any past
transgressions they might have committed. The casket containing his body was
then carried solemnly to the funeral pyre, prompting a dramatic outburst of
emotion among his followers as they expressed their grief once more.
Watching his body pass by for the last time, the crowd looked on with long,
sad faces, tearful expressions occasionally erupting in cries of anguish. It
was a chaotic scene, his casket moving slowly through throngs of impassioned
supporters, all mourning the loss of an exceptionally noble person who
possessed such a boundless ocean of loving kindness. Many in the crowd wept openly as his body passed by. It was all they
had left of him – the last vestige of conventional reality still associated
with his presence in the world. He had entered the sublime, pure land of
Nibbana. Never again would he return to physical, bodily existence – the
domain of tearful lamentations.
His devotees wept one last time – with
affection and respect for a man whose Dhamma teaching had soothed their
hearts and tempered their ignorance. Through his grace, they had gained the
presence of mind needed to reflect on the merits of virtue and the failings
of evil. Reminded of his great virtue, they longed to keep his body awhile
longer as an object of veneration, though they knew this was now impossible.
So they asked only that they be allowed this final chance to offer their
tears and heartfelt emotions as tokens of their deep appreciation. Although
they may have been unfortunate in many ways, they did have the wonderful
good fortune to witness for themselves the final farewell of a supreme sage,
sublimely free of all kilesas – an extremely auspicious event that is rarely
ever witnessed. Having transcended samsara’s abundant misery, he had already
reached the Ultimate Happiness of Nibbana. Even so, they continued to hope
that his compassion would be with them in this hour of sorrow – a sorrow
that made them weep with longing for that noble being of unbounded virtue
who was so dear to their hearts. They wondered when they would ever find a
way to escape Mara’s net and reached the safety of Nibbana as well. But
their time was not yet ripe. All they could do was extol his extraordinary
virtue and honor his magnificent achievement with their tears. Such was the
overwhelming sentiment of the Buddhist faithful as they mourned the loss of
the monk they so revered. Only when his body had finally been placed upon
the funeral pyre did they begin to calm down and grow quiet.
At midnight the
funeral pyre was lit. In anticipation, such a mass of people had crowded in
around the cremation site that no one could move. Packed tightly together,
they pushed and pressed against one another trying to get a better look. All
had patiently waited late into the night to have one last glimpse of his
body – a memory to be long cherished by everyone.
Just as the funeral pyre
was lit, something unimaginably strange and wonderful occurred. As the first
flames began to shoot up, a small cloud appeared in the sky and began to
rain ever so gently on the burning pyre. It was the
night of the full moon. Bright moonlight was shining over the surrounding
area, but the cremation site was suddenly bathed in a fine, misty rain.
Softly sprinkling for about fifteen minutes, the cloud then gradually faded
into the clear night sky. You may wonder why I think it so strange.
Normally, at that time of year, the sky is completely clear; only the stars
and the moon are visible. And so it was that night, until the funeral pyre
was lit, when a small cloud floated over, sprinkling a gentle shower on the
whole proceeding. I clearly witnessed this amazing event – such an
extraordinary spectacle I’ve never forgotten it. Anyone who was there that
night will be able to confirm it.
Instead of the usual pile of firewood or
charcoal, Acariya Mun’s funeral pyre was made with fragrant sandalwood that
ardent devotees had specially ordered from across the Mekong River in Laos.
Having acquired a sufficient amount, they mixed it with incense, using this
as a pyre to cremate the body. The results were just as satisfactory as
those obtained by using plain firewood or charcoal. From the moment the pyre
was lit until the cremation of his body had been completed and his remains
had been safely collected, the whole affair was supervised by officials from
the monastic and lay communities.
At nine o’clock the following morning the
bone remains were carefully collected from the ash.15 Bone relics were
distributed to monks representing the various provinces in attendance with
the understanding that these relics would be placed in suitable public
shrines in their respective locales. Fragments of bone were also handed out
to members of the general public, but due to the size of the crowd, there
were not nearly enough to go around. As far as I can recall, representatives
from over twenty provinces took bone relics back with them that day.
When the collection and
distribution of the bone relics were finally completed, something
indescribably moving happened that made a profound impression on me. As soon
as the officials in charge of collecting the bones had finished their work
and left, a scene of total confusion ensued as men and women of all ages
rushed in to collect bits and pieces of ash and charcoal to keep as objects
of worship. Everybody scrambled to get a bit of this or a piece of that,
combing the ground around the funeral pyre for any small memento they could
find. In the end, the whole area was spotless – as if it had been scrubbed
clean. Walking away, each person seemed to be floating on air, smiling,
overjoyed beyond words. All clasped
some small keepsake in their fists, guarding their treasure jealously, as
though afraid someone might try to snatch it away at any moment. Like so
many other events occurring during the course of Acariya Mun’s funeral, it
was an extremely moving sight.
Later, as their last act of homage before
going home, most people returned one more time to the site of the cremation
– the final resting place of Acariya Mun’s body. Prostrating themselves
three times, they sat quietly on the ground for a few moments in an attitude
of deep reflection, expressing their sense of loss with tears and quiet sobs
in a way that was heartrending to witness. As I watched those people who
felt such profound gratitude for a monk of surpassing virtue, I shared with
them the same painful sense of loss. When their moment of quiet reflection
was over, they rose and sadly walked away, their faces stained with tears.
Other faithful devotees then took their places, solemnly paying their final
respects, aware that they had lost the person they so dearly revered. And so
it continued for many hours that day – it was an incredibly touching scene
to watch.
The key factor here is the heart: the heart is the most important
thing in the world. People’s hearts were the primary force behind all the
events I have just described. Tens of thousands of monks and lay people
attended the funeral – their motivation for going came directly from the
heart. Their hearts were instinctively drawn to Acariya Mun, for his heart
was pure Dhamma – an attainment so sought-after that it induced good, moral
people from all over the country to come to worship him. Although their
hearts may not have amassed as much virtue as they would have liked, it was
still enough to create in them a tendency toward future rebirth as human
beings. This is unlike the hearts of shameless people who seem to be vying
for rebirth in hell or the animal world – types of birth that result in
endless suffering. Rebirth in the lower realms of existence effectively
debases the heart even further. Eventually, nothing of value is left to hold
on to and all hope is lost.
All matters, without exception, converge at the
heart: the heart is the driving force churning out the affairs of this world
and determining the direction they take. If the heart is inclined toward
goodness, everything a person does will bring contentment, both now and in
the future. All paths branching off from the main avenue of goodness will
invariably provide comfort and security to the virtuous wayfarer. Each
rebirth will be a happy, prosperous one where hopes and
desires are constantly being fulfilled. One day, that accumulated virtue is
bound to lead to the most cherished goal of all. Witness Acariya Mun, whose
heart was a wellspring of goodness from the beginning stages to the very
highest one.
Acariya Mun has been widely glorified for his attainment of
Parinibbana. The word Parinibbana is used solely in connection with someone
absolutely free of all kilesas. When the average person stops breathing,
bringing his physical existence to an end, this condition is known as
‘death’. But when the Lord Buddha or an Arahant dies, this is Parinibbana.
It is generally presumed that Acariya Mun’s death was also Parinibbana, a
conclusion I have no reason to dispute. I gladly yield to the verdict of all
those fine people who have given him this prestigious epitaph. For many
years I lived with him, listening closely to his every word, and I found
nothing contradictory in his way of life or his Dhamma teaching. In truth,
his teaching so profoundly impressed me that I am convinced it was
amatadhamma,16 emanating from a heart of genuine purity. A heart of such
pureness is by no means inherent within human beings. To experience it, one
must take the heart of an ordinary human being, then cleanse it until it
becomes the pure heart of an Arahant – there is no other way. This purified
heart then remains ariyacitta ariyadhamma forever.
Saying that the heart is the
most important thing in the world means that the heart is the decisive
factor controlling all manifestations of good and all manifestations of
evil. The heart is the principal actor, and the one ultimately held
accountable for all actions. If people’s hearts motivate them to act in evil
ways, the entire planet can easily be destroyed as a consequence. Thus, it
is essential that our hearts should receive enough proper training and care
so that we can safely look after ourselves and the world we live in. Then we
will live in comfort, our lives free of undue disturbance; and the world
will be a pleasant place to live, without the specter of strife constantly
hanging over it.

|
|
n the period ollowing his cremation, many of the monks in Acariya Mun’s lineage remained distraught as they continued to feel the loss
of their one reliable refuge in life. Like kites with their strings broken,
drifting at the mercy of the winds, they wandered off in all directions.
Their spirits depressed, they felt like small, helpless orphans who had lost
both parents. Consequently, the circle of practicing monks in Acariya Mun’s
lineage found itself quite unsettled in the immediate aftermath of his
funeral. By the time they eventually began to regroup, they had all realized
the harmful effects of being without a good teacher.
The passing away of an
outstanding acariya is never a small matter. Invariably it affects the
community of practicing monks in a very serious way – shaking them like an
earthquake to their very foundations. If his disciples have already
established themselves firmly in the practice, possessing the mental
fortitude to hold their own while helping to sustain their fellow monks,
then the long-term effects will not be so adverse. Whether it’s a family
leader, a social leader, a business leader, a government leader, or a leader
in any branch of the community of monks – the death of a good leader is
always felt as a huge loss. Since it is ultimately unavoidable, those
subordinates who depend on their leadership should earnestly prepare
themselves for such an eventuality so that they may prosper now and in the
future.
When Acariya Mun passed away, I saw the incredibly harmful effects
that such a loss can have. He was only a single individual, but vast numbers
of monks and lay devotees were so grieved by his death that they appeared to
be left in a state of ruin – like a building whose foundation has been
damaged so that its entire structure suffers accordingly. I was shocked by
this development, and worried for the future of the circle of practicing
monks who could easily suffer damage without the protection of a strong
teacher. If we do not make the effort to intensify our practice and get
results while our teacher is still alive, upon his death we will be like the
living dead, lacking firm principles of our own to hold on to.
I myself was
caught woefully unprepared at that time. It was a terrible experience. I
felt as if the winds of a cyclone were raging through my heart, blowing me
in all directions. One storm blew in to assail me with the thought that I
had been left stranded without a refuge; another blew in to fill me with
doubts and left me wondering about whom I could possibly rely on now. Then a
gale blew through, driving the thought that, having passed away sublimely
without any concerns, he had left me behind feeling empty and lifeless to
drift along hopelessly without a mainstay to which I could cling. Yet
another wind buffeted me with the thought that everything would come to an
end now that he was gone: Who would I stay with now that my father had died?
Did this really signal my downfall? No sooner had I begun to stand on my own
than my father left me. What a terrible misfortune! Another howling wind
inveighed against the miserable bad luck of this poor orphan: I am finished
for sure this time, and at such a crucial juncture in my own development as
well. The kilesas and Dhamma are engaged in a full-scale war, and Acariya
Mun has been my advisor, helping me to work out a battle plan. Who will have
this kind of compassion for me in the future? I had never reached such an
agonizing impasse before. I felt as though I had fallen into an infernal pit
of mortal despair. All hope seemed lost as I lived on without him.
Such was
my troubled state of mind when Acariya Mun passed away. That experience
chastened me. Ever since then I’ve been loath to see other practicing monks
encounter a similar agonizing experience simply because they lack the firm
principles needed to stand on their own. Fearing that they will miss their
rightful destiny by default, I constantly warn them of the dangers. Should
they wait until the sun has already set before rushing to find a safe
refuge, I’m concerned they may end up feeling as empty and lifeless as I
did. Not wishing to see this happen, I caution them to hurry and intensify
their efforts while the moon is still bright, their hearts still willing,
and their bodies still able. Thus committed, those desiring to attain the
wealth of virtue inherent within magga, phala, and Nibbana can still manage
to do so. They need not live poverty-stricken amid a world of spiritual
riches.
Relics Transformed
All the people who received some of the bone
fragments that were distributed after Acariya Mun’s cremation, placed them
in suitable reliquaries and worshipped these relics in his stead. Everyone
went their separate ways after the funeral, and nothing further was heard
about this matter until some four years later when Khun Wan Khomanamun,
owner of the Siriphon Phanit Store and the Suddhiphon Hotel in Nakhon
Ratchasima, returned to Sakon Nakhon for a merit-making ceremony. When he
presented a cloth offering at Wat Suddhawat monastery, where Acariya Mun had
passed away, the abbot gave him a piece of bone taken from Acariya Mun’s
funeral pyre. Upon returning home, he decided to place it in the reliquary
with the other remains of Acariya Mun which he had received four years
earlier. When he opened the container, he was astonished to find that these
bone fragments, received at the cremation, had all been transformed into
crystal-like relics.1 He was so amazed at seeing them that his spirits
soared. He quickly sent someone to check on another set of Acariya Mun’s
remains that he kept in a reliquary at the Suddhiphon Hotel, and discovered
that they too had been transformed into crystal-like relics. A small portion
of the original bone remained in the form of a coarse powder, but soon that,
too, underwent the same transformation. In the end, a total of 344 relics
were counted in the two reliquaries belonging to Khun Wan. This was the
first instance where Acariya Mun’s remains were found to have transformed
into relics.
News of this miracle spread far and wide. Soon people began
coming to ask him for a share of the relics. Khun Wan was a very generous
person and he sympathized with their request. So, he shared the relics out
among them one or two at a time. He very kindly gave me some on two
occasions. On the first occasion, I received five; on the second, two,
making seven altogether. As soon as I received them I publicized the fact
that I had something very special. I was enormously pleased to have them,
but my mouth wasn’t satisfied to keep quiet about it. In the end I lost out
– some women came and took them all. But, oddly enough, I was not at all
disappointed that they took advantage of me. And there being nothing left to
publicize, my mouth was finally satisfied.
When word got out that I had
something very special, the first people who came to ask to see them were
all women. When I brought out the relics, first, this woman picked one up to
inspect it; then, that woman picked one up to inspect it. Before I knew it,
each of them had quietly slipped the one she was holding into her pocket,
asking me if she could keep it. Who would dare ask for their return at that
point, and make a fool of himself twice. Since then I have never had any of Acariya Mun’s relics in my possession. Later, I heard that Khun Wan had
given so many of his relics away to other devotees that he had hardly any
left; so, I didn’t dare to bother him again.
It is my understanding that Khun Wan’s store in Nakhon Ratchasima was the first place where Acariya
Mun’s bone fragments were discovered to be genuine relics. From that time
on, such relics have appeared in many different places where faithful
people, who received pieces of Acariya Mun’s bone, continued to worship them
with special reverence. Even today, people still discover that Acariya Mun’s
bone fragments have turned into relics, though the families who have them
keep very quiet, fearing that others will ask for a share of these rare,
priceless gems. In any case, someone who did not have an inherent spiritual
connection with Acariya Mun would find it difficult to receive one of his
relics to worship. Just look at me: I received several of them but lacked
the merit necessary to look after them – I had to give them to someone else
to care for them in my place.
Acariya Mun’s relics possess many strange,
amazing qualities. One person who owned two of them made a solemn wish that
his two relics become three so that he would have one for each of the “Three
Jewels”: Buddha, Dhamma, and Sangha. Soon afterward a third relic
materialized with the other two. Another person with two relics made the
same solemn wish, but instead of increasing, the two fused into one, which
greatly disappointed him. This person told me what had happened and asked my
advice. I explained to him that whether one has three of Acariya Mun’s
relics, or one of them, or merely a bone fragment that has yet to undergo
any transformation, all are essentially relics from his body. So no one
should be disappointed if two became one, for it’s a miraculous occurrence
just the same. What could be more amazing than that? Even the hair samples
from Acariya Mun’s head – which were collected when he shaved his head each
month, and which are now kept and revered by people in many different places
– have undergone a transformation similar to the bone fragments. In either
case, the result is the same: undergoing an essential transformation, both
become relics.
People who have genuine relics of Acariya Mun cherish them so
much that they keep very quiet about it. But, if someone inquires
skeptically whether Acariya Mun’s bones really did become relics, the same
people will answer boldly in the affirmative. Should they then be asked
whether or not they possess any, they will just smile and say they have so
few they couldn’t possibly give one away, thus precluding someone from
asking. For this reason, it is difficult to find out these days who actually
possesses Acariya Mun’s relics. Even if they were asked by a monk whom they
revere, they would probably give a rather vague answer. So we must
sympathize with those who venerate and treasure Acariya Mun’s relics.
As a
living teacher, Acariya Mun was extremely influential. He had very effective
methods for alleviating the mental stress and feelings of anxiety
experienced by his followers. Many people have recounted instances when they
were determined to commit evil, or their minds were very hot and agitated,
or they felt vengeful enough to kill someone – and the mere thought of
Acariya Mun then was enough to cause these emotions and ideas to subside
immediately. It was as though he had doused their flaming hearts with cool
water, allowing them to realize their misunderstandings. Their harmful
thoughts had simply vanished. The sense of relief they felt made them want
to prostrate before him then and there. Many lay followers have testified to
this, and surely there are many more unreported cases of devotees using the
power of remembering Acariya Mun to successfully counter their wrongful
intentions. Many monks, as well, have used the power of their faith in him
to restrain themselves in accordance with their spiritual calling.
During
his lifetime Acariya Mun trained countless numbers of people to be good,
righteous individuals. At least forty years of his life as a monk were spent
engaged in teaching monks and laity from all over the country. Just think of
how many monks and how many lay people must have trained under him in that
forty year period. If we consider only the monks, the disciples who became
accomplished in meditation and the way of practice were already numerous.
These monks have in turn become acariyas, teaching their own disciples how
to develop firm principles for the future. All of this resulted from Acariya
Mun’s pioneering efforts to pass on that knowledge and understanding to
others. Without his guidance they would never have been able to find the
right path, to say nothing of teaching others how to practice it.
The task
of laying a firm spiritual foundation in the heart, so that it is solidly
anchored in reason and propriety, is an important and difficult one – far
more so than any other seemingly difficult task we’ve ever done. Spiritual
work, like all other work, follows the lead of the heart. In truth, the
primary basis for everything we do is found in the heart. The heart is both
instigator and director of all affairs concerning good and evil, right and
wrong. Being both arbiter and taskmaster in all moral issues, the more the
heart learns about itself and its relation to matters of good, evil, right,
and wrong, the better equipped it will be to sustain itself in a smooth,
safe, and joyful manner. Those of us, who were aware of Acariya Mun’s
profound knowledge of this subject, feel obliged to pay homage to him with
unshakable faith. While he was alive, we were constantly reminded of the
depth of his understanding. And although he has now passed away, we have
never forgotten it. We cannot help but recollect him with a profound and
boundless sense of gratitude.
Acariya Mun was a teacher of the highest
caliber when it came to developing people’s hearts – a development that goes
straight to the essential core of life in this world. A heart well developed
in Dhamma is unlikely to suffer adverse consequences. More than that, we can
state with confidence that a fully developed heart will never suffer any
adverse consequences at all. All its actions will bring beneficial results.
A world in which proper spiritual development keeps pace with material
development is a truly progressive world where people are bound to live in
peace and happiness. When the material side of the world progresses at the
expense of the spiritual side, people’s hearts are forever ablaze, so the
world experiences strife, oppression, exploitation, and corruption on a
grand scale. Such progress is equivalent to the advance of the fires of
hell. If you want to know what the advancing fires of hell are like, you
need only look at a world devoid of spiritual development; a world that is
constantly polluted by the heart’s filthy excretions. When the heart is
neglected, people’s behavior becomes perverse, immoral, irritating, and
quite offensive. So much so that nothing of pleasure or praiseworthiness can
be found in a world ruled by impropriety.
Understanding this, wise,
intelligent people emphasize spiritual development over all other kinds of
development – which are all merely creations of the heart anyway. Once the
heart has been well developed, its overriding influence then cleanses all
aspects of a person’s behavior. The world thus enjoys peace and happiness
following the lead of intelligent people who have developed themselves
spiritually, and therefore, strive to govern society with reason, according
to the principles of Dhamma.
We should be very wary of admiring or trusting
the intelligence of people who lack spiritual development even if they’re so
clever that they can explore the sun, the moon, and the stars. Such
achievements are not all that significant; especially if the intelligence in
question is of the kind that is unmindful of its own misdoing and exudes
poisonous elements that cause trouble in society. Applied indiscriminately,
this ‘clever’ knowledge may well lead to behavior rivaling that of common
animals that ruthlessly prey on and devour each other, believing all the
while that it is a clever way to satisfy their needs. Regardless of our
position in society, genuine intelligence is measured by our ability to use
the principles of reason to bring prosperity to ourselves and others, and
there is no need to earn a diploma to certify it. Thoughts and actions
bringing peace and happiness to ourselves and others are considered the true
fruits of genuine intelligence; and as such, they constitute their own
certificate of recognition. We need not boast of our credentials to verify
our intelligence. In fact, such certification may secretly act as a cover
for immoral behavior. In that case, the means may be furtive, but the
resultant disturbance to others is no secret – the troublesome problems it
creates are obvious everywhere we look.
Such is the harm that arises when
spiritual development is overlooked. Who can seriously believe that material
development alone – driven by people whose hearts are corroded by kilesas
and corrupted by selfish motives – will ever bring true peace and prosperity
to the world? Only someone who is completely insensitive to moral issues
could possibly accept this view. The difference between the actions of those
who have developed themselves spiritually and those who have not is the
difference between day and night. It was for this reason that the Lord
Buddha did not recommend that the samadhi attainments be used for such
psychic purposes as levitating, diving through the earth, or walking on
water. He did not praise the intelligence of people acting like that. On the
contrary, he praised as intelligent those who made an effort to thoroughly
train themselves in the way of virtue, regardless of whether they were using
samadhi attainments or some other means to achieve this. Such people are a
blessing to themselves and to others, for a sense of contentment is the
primary determinant of how pleasant our world really is. Even though the
state of our health and other physical needs may be uncertain, following the
fluctuating nature of anicca, life remains pleasant if our hearts have
sufficient contentment to insure us against life becoming unbearable.
Questions have arisen concerning the spontaneous transformation of the bone
remains of Acariya Mun and Acariya Sao into relics. As news of this marvel
spread shortly after the first relics of Acariya Mun appeared, many people
voiced doubts about why the bone remains of ordinary people could not also
become relics: after all, the bones of an Arahant and the bones of an
ordinary person are composed of the same body elements. Why is it that only
an Arahant’s bones can become relics? What’s the essential difference
between the two?
Briefly, my own explanation is that the heart, or the
citta, is the fundamental, determining factor here. Although the citta is
something common to all living beings, it varies greatly in power and
quality from one person to the next. As for an Arahant, his citta is an ariyacitta; meaning that it is absolutely pure. The citta of the average
person, on the other hand, is merely an ordinary citta; meaning, that it is
polluted by kilesas. In either case, the nature of the citta – the master
and prime mover – has a decisive impact on the condition of the physical
body in which it resides. For instance, the Arahant’s citta being pure, it
may well have the power to cleanse his body elements, making them pure as
well, and thus allowing his bones to transmute into relics. Although the
body of an ordinary person is composed of the same types of elements, the
body’s master, the citta, is full of kilesas. It has no power to cleanse the
body elements and purify them. Because the body elements have not been
purified, the cremated bones of the average person remain unchanged,
reflecting the impure nature of the citta. We could say that purified
elements are synonymous with the ariyacitta, while ordinary elements are
synonymous with the ordinary citta. The attributes of the Arahant’s citta –
and by extension, his body elements – differ significantly from those of the
average person, so their bone remains are bound to differ as well.
However,
I am not sure that, after death, the bones of all Arahants will
automatically be transformed to relics. The citta of someone attaining the
level of Arahant is completely purified at the moment of its attainment. The
question remains: When the body of an Arahant is cremated, do the remaining
bones become relics in each and every case or not? From one Arahant to
another, there is a considerable difference in time between the moment when
he reaches that attainment and the moment when he finally passes away. The
bones of living Arahants, who maintain their body elements for a long period
of time after their attainment, are very likely to become relics after
death. This is due to the length of time involved. The citta of an Arahant
maintains the body elements by means of the various life-sustaining systems
present in the body, like the breath for example. At the same time, an
Arahant maintains throughout his daily activities an intrinsic level of
samadhi that steadily works to cleanse his body elements until they also
become pure. This results in his bone remains becoming relics after he
passes away. But I’m not convinced that the bone remains of an Arahant, who
passes away shortly after his attainment, do become relics, since his body
elements were not subject to the same lengthy cleansing process mentioned
above.
An Arahant classified as dandhabhinna is one who attains
enlightenment slowly and gradually. He may well reach the Anagami level, and
then be stuck there for a long time before he finally reaches the level of
Arahant. He must spend a lot of time investigating back and forth between
arahattamagga and arahattaphala before the citta develops sufficient
strength and skill to pass beyond. This process of investigating
arahattamagga for the sake of attaining arahattaphala is in fact an
effective means of cleansing the body elements. Having finally attained the
level of Arahant, his bones may well become relics after he passes away. On
the other hand, I am not at all sure that the bones of an Arahant, who
attains enlightenment quickly – that is, khippabhinna – and then passes away
shortly afterward, will necessarily become relics, since his purified citta
would have very little time to cleanse his body elements. As for the
ordinary citta of the average person, producing a transformation from bone
to relic is well beyond its capability.
Not only were Acariya Mun’s bone
remains clearly transformed into relics, but some of these relics then
underwent some amazing changes of their own. As I have already mentioned,
someone who had two relics made a solemn wish that they become three and was
rewarded with an extra one. Someone with two wished for a third and ended up
with only one instead. Although it seems virtually impossible, such
transformations actually happened.
There was another strange case where a
man who had been given two relics one morning found three when he looked
again that evening: in the short period between morning and evening they had
increased from two to three. The man in question was a senior government
official with enormous faith in Acariya Mun. From the day he passed away
until the time of his cremation, this man had been extremely helpful in
nearly every aspect of the funeral arrangements. A certain senior monk,
having received some relics from Khun Wan of Nakhon Ratchasima and
remembering this man’s kind assistance, gave him a pair as a keepsake one
morning. The man felt an overwhelming sense of joy the moment he was handed
that precious gift. Having nothing suitable to put them in just then, he put
the relics in an empty snuff bottle for the time being. He closed the cap
tightly and placed the bottle in his shirt pocket, buttoning it for good
measure to insure against loss. Upon leaving the monastery that morning, he
went directly to work where he spent the whole day in a bright, happy frame
of mind, his thoughts returning time and again to the relics he had just
received.
Arriving home that evening, he excitedly told his family that he
had received something splendid, a gift he had never received before. After
the whole household gathered around to see what it was, he produced a proper
reliquary for holding the relics. Opening the snuff bottle to remove the
relics, he saw, to his amazement, that there were three of them. This sight
heightened his reverence for Acariya Mun, and he was so overjoyed at
receiving the relics that he could hardly contain himself. He boldly
proclaimed to his wife and children that this was a genuine miracle – proof
that Acariya Mun was truly an Arahant. His family were somewhat skeptical,
worried that, perhaps, he had miscounted them in the morning. He refused to
accept this, arguing vehemently that he clearly remembered being given two
relics by the senior monk that morning. He insisted that he had accepted
them with great interest and respect. Even at work he had kept them in mind
all day, repeating to himself “two relics, two relics”, as though it was a
meditation subject. How could he have forgotten how many there were? He told
his family that if they still harbored any doubts, tomorrow he would take
them all to ask the senior monk: then they would realize that what he said
was true. But his family didn’t want to wait: they were determined to go
immediately. So, they all agreed to go straight away. Upon arriving at the
monastery, the government official asked the senior monk how many relics he
had given him that morning.
“I gave you two relics. Why do you ask? Is one
missing?”
“No, none are missing. In fact, they have actually increased by
one, so now I have three! The reason I ask is, when I returned home and
opened the bottle to remove the relics and place them in a reliquary, there
were three instead of the two I expected to see. This made me tremble with
joy. I quickly told my wife and children what had happened, but no one
believed me. Afraid that I had miscounted them, they insisted that I come
again and ask you to make sure. Now that we know the truth, I feel even
happier. Well, what do you say – do you believe me now?”
His wife smiled and
said she was worried that he may have miscounted them, or that perhaps he
was just kidding her. She just wanted to make sure. Since it was obviously
true, she believed it; she had no intention of denying the truth. At this
the senior monk smiled and explained to her what had happened:
“This morning
I gave your husband two relics. He was always especially helpful to Acariya
Mun and the rest of the monks. He gave us invaluable assistance from the
time Acariya Mun died until his cremation was completed. I have never
forgotten this, so, when I was given some relics by Khun Wan of Nakhon
Ratchasima, I put a few aside to give to your husband as a keepsake since
they are so hard to find nowadays. Acariya Mun is the first person I have
ever encountered whose bones have changed to relics. Though such things are
mentioned in the ancient texts, I had never seen the real thing with my own
eyes. Now I have seen irrefutable proof. Please keep them in a suitable
place and look after them well. Should they happen to vanish one day, your
disappointment will be far more profound than the joy you felt when they
increased in number. Don’t say I didn’t warn you. Acariya Mun’s relics
possess very miraculous properties. When they can increase in number as
easily as they just have for you, they can just as easily vanish if they are
not properly respected. Please keep them in a prominent, high place and pay
homage to them every morning and evening. They may well bring you some
unexpected good fortune. I am absolutely convinced that Acariya Mun was a
monk of the highest purity, but I don’t tell people this very often for fear
they may think I’m crazy. You see, people tend to easily believe in bad
things, but they have difficulty believing in good ones. Consequently, it is
difficult to find a good person but easy to find a bad one. By observing
ourselves, we will notice that we too tend to prefer thinking in unwholesome
rather than in wholesome ways.”
When the senior monk finished speaking, the
government official and his wife respectfully took leave of him and returned
home in an exceptionally cheerful mood.
I have mentioned these strange,
miraculous properties of Acariya Mun’s relics so that my readers may ponder
for themselves what causes such phenomena to occur. Those searching for
scientific proof to authenticate their occurrence will find empirical
evidence hard to come by. Since such things are impossible for people with
kilesas to fathom, they may not find a shred of evidence to support them.
The difference between the body elements of an Arahant and those of the rest
of us is clearly demonstrated by the fact that an Arahant’s bones can become
genuine relics. As for the body elements of people with kilesas: even the
cremated remains of a million such people will never produce the same
results. Thus it is clear that a living Arahant is a human being who is
incomparably different from the rest of us. Just the fact that his heart is
pure makes him stand out in a uniquely amazing way. His attainment is
something that the whole world should respect and revere.
Other Mysteries
Ordinarily, people’s sense of their own self-importance makes it difficult
for them to believe in someone else’s superiority. Nevertheless, aspiring to
be good people, they feel obliged to accept what is obviously true, for
refusing to accept manifestations of genuine goodness would show a kind of
stupidity that defies human dignity. Take Acariya Mun, for example. I am
unaware of any monk, novice, or nun, who knew him well and understood what
he taught yet remained so stubborn and conceited that they refused to accept
the truth of his teaching. Moreover, they all seemed to be quite willing to
sacrifice their lives for him.
The way of truth and purity, that he taught
in such detail, can be compared to a discipline like mathematics: both are
established in fixed principles that give precise results when followed
correctly. For example, one plus one must equal two, two plus two must equal
four. No matter how many multiples are calculated in this fashion, the
calculations will always be correct so long as the basic rules are applied.
Whether it is an adult making the calculations, or a child, if the right
method is followed, then the results will inevitably be correct. No matter
how many people may come along arbitrarily denying the validity of these
basic principles, their truth remains the same. Such people merely display
their own senseless stupidity. Likewise, principles of Truth do not depend
on the whims of any particular age group, gender, or nationality. They are
accepted as irrefutable natural laws. The principles of Dhamma, that the
Lord Buddha and the Arahants fully realized to be true, can be proclaimed in
their entirety with absolute assurance about their validity.
Acariya Mun was
one individual who fully realized the principles of Truth within himself. He
could fully describe all the knowledge about internal and external phenomena
that he had so clearly attained, without concern for the belief or disbelief
or the praise or criticism of others. Every aspect of his internal practice
– beginning with moral discipline and samadhi, and progressing all the way
to the absolute freedom of Nibbana – was declared openly and boldly so that
his listeners could make use of that knowledge according to their own
capabilities. He spoke fearlessly about the external aspects of his
practice, like devas, brahmas, and various types of ghosts, leaving it up to
his listeners to investigate as best they could. Besides receiving
encouragement in their practice, those who shared his natural inclination to
perceive such phenomena, were able to significantly broaden the scope of
their knowledge, enabling themselves to deal expeditiously with the
mysterious phenomena they encountered.
Some of his disciples bore witness to
these phenomena, though they did not possess nearly the mastery that he did.
I’ll give you an example. One night Acariya Mun received groups of devas
late into the night, having no chance to rest. Eventually feeling very
tired, he wanted to lay down for a while. When yet another group of devas
arrived late that night, he explained to them that he was very tired from
receiving several previous groups and now needed a rest. He requested that
they go instead to visit one of his disciples and listen to his Dhamma
discourse – which they did. When told what Acariya Mun had said, this
disciple agreed to talk with them about Dhamma for awhile, after which they
left.
The next morning this monk asked Acariya Mun about the incident: “Last
night a group of devas came to visit me. They said that, before coming to
me, they had paid you a visit to request a Dhamma teaching, but you were
very tired and needed a rest, so you sent them to me instead. Is this true,
or were they misleading me just so they could listen to me talk about
Dhamma? Feeling somewhat skeptical, I wanted to ask you about it.”
Acariya
Mun replied:
“Well, having already received several groups of devas, I was
dead tired. Then the last group came, so I sent them to you, exactly as they
said. Believe me, devas never lie to monks. They are not like human beings,
who tend to be quite deceitful and untrustworthy. When devas make a promise,
they always keep it; and when they make an appointment, they are always
right on time. I have associated with terrestrial and celestial devas for a
long time now and I have never heard them say anything false or deceitful.
They are far more honest and virtuous than humans are. They scrupulously
honor their word as if their very lives depended on it. They will severely
criticize anyone who deviates from his word; and if that individual does not
have a genuinely sound reason for failing to honor his commitments, they
lose all respect for him.
“They have criticized me sometimes, though I had
no intention of being dishonest. On certain occasions I entered into a deep
state of samadhi prior to the appointed hour. I became absorbed there, only
to find the devas waiting for me when I finally withdrew to a level where I
could access them. When they reproached me for making them wait so long, I
explained that I had been resting in samadhi and inadvertently failed to
withdraw at the scheduled time, a reason which they accepted.
“Then there
were other occasions when I reproached the devas. I explained to them that I
am only one individual, yet tens or even hundreds of thousands of devas from
the upper and lower realms insist on coming to visit this one monk: ‘How
could anyone successfully manage to receive each and every group exactly on
time? There are times when my health is not so good, yet I must patiently
sit there receiving visitors. You should sympathize with some of the
difficulties I face. Sometimes I’m pleasantly absorbed in samadhi, only to
get roundly criticized when I withdraw a little later than scheduled. If
that’s how it’s going to be, I’ll just keep to myself and not waste my time
and energy receiving visitors. What do you say to that?’ When rebuked like
this, the devas invariably admitted their mistake and immediately asked for
forgiveness.
“Those devas who visit me often are familiar with my way of
doing things, so, they don’t mind if I am a little late sometimes. It’s
those who have never come before that tend to mind my being late, since by
nature they place such a high value on truthfulness. All devas from all
realms, including terrestrial devas, are the same in this respect.
Sometimes, being aware that I must withdraw from a restful state of samadhi
to receive them, they do worry about the moral consequences of criticizing
me for not keeping my word. I occasionally counter their reproaches by
telling them I actually value my word more than my own life: ‘The reason
that I did not withdraw from samadhi in time to receive you was due to an
obligation I have to Dhamma, which is something far more important than any
promise made to a deva. Although devas and brahmas of the celestial realms
possess nonphysical forms more refined than this human body of mine, my
citta and my sense of truthfulness are exceedingly more subtle than those of
all the devas and brahmas combined. But I am not one to talk incessantly
about such things like some idiot. I mention it to you now only to remind
you how important the Dhamma I maintain really is. So please consider the
consequences carefully before criticizing me.’ “Once I explained my true
priorities to them, the devas realized their mistake and felt very concerned
about the moral implications of what they had done. Together they asked for
my forgiveness. I made a point of assuring them that I do not feel any
resentment toward any living being in the whole universe: ‘I put my trust in
the Dhamma of compassion and loving kindness which is devoid of all forms of
malice. My every activity is governed by the Dhamma of absolute purity.
Devas, on the other hand, possess only wholesome intentions and a sense of
integrity – qualities that are not really all that amazing. The Lord Buddha
and the Arahants possess an integrity that is pure because the Dhamma in
their hearts is absolutely pure. No living being in the universe can
possibly imagine just how supremely amazing such a state of purity is. The
kind of integrity that devas observe is something that exists within the
sphere of conventional reality. And the knowledge and the practice of it are
well within the range of all living beings. The Dhamma integrity of a pure
heart, however, is the exclusive property of the Buddha and the Arahants. No
one who has yet to realize that attainment can possibly comprehend it or put
it into practice. Whether or not I myself possess an absolutely pure level
of integrity is not a matter to boast about. But please keep in mind that,
in contrast to the Dhamma integrity of the Lord Buddha and the Arahants, the
moral integrity that devas observe is neither exceptional or unique.’ ”
Had Acariya Mun addressed these words to human beings instead of devas, the
humans would probably have felt embarrassed – or something even worse. But
the devas were keen to hear his Dhamma, and so listened with intense
interest to what he said. They were able to realize the mistake they made in
taking liberties with him out of their ignorance of the situation. They were
more than glad to carefully guard their conduct after that. They weren’t
angered or offended in the least. Acariya Mun said that such admirable
behavior was truly commensurate with their lofty plane of existence.
This
brief example should serve as food for thought about the mysterious
phenomena existing beyond the range of the physical senses. Such phenomena
are mysterious only to those unable to perceive them; they cease to be a
mystery to those who can. This same principle applies to dhammabhisamaya.2
So long as the Lord Buddha was the only person capable of comprehending the
true nature of Dhamma, that Dhamma remained a mystery to everyone else. But
once the Buddha’s Arahant disciples comprehended that same Dhamma, its true
nature ceased to be a mystery to them. So it is with the mysterious
phenomena mentioned above: they cease to be a mystery to those who can
perceive them.
At the time of the Lord Buddha, he and his Arahant disciples
were the only ones capable of fully comprehending the mysterious nature of
Dhamma, and the only ones capable of perceiving every type of mysterious
external phenomena. Such things were not common knowledge. Many people at
that time were incapable of perceiving these mysteries. At most, they had
heard about such things, and, after consideration, they came to believe in
them, being satisfied of their existence even though they hadn’t perceived
them directly. Others, who also considered the matter, refused to believe in
these mysteries. This became a hindrance to their practice, preventing them
from unreservedly following the Lord Buddha and his Arahant disciples. It is
the same today: only those possessing an innate capacity to perceive these
phenomena can uncover their mysteries; for the rest it’s just hearsay.
Whether we choose to believe in such things or not, there is unlikely to be
any scientific evidence to prove their existence. I too might have been
tempted to disbelieve, but I never found enough reason to be skeptical. So I
have tried to remain impartial and simply write Acariya Mun’s story as he
and his senior disciples related it to me.
Although my knowledge of these
matters is not very astute, I must admit that my heart is full of immense
faith and respect for Acariya Mun. If someone whom I trusted were to come to
me and suggest that I exchange my own life for that of Acariya Mun, so he
could return from the dead to teach again – pointing out that with my
stupidity I could never possibly teach others the way – I would agree
immediately, provided I could confirm what he said to be true. If he could
guarantee that Acariya Mun would return in exchange for my life, I would
quickly arrange for my own death then and there without a second’s delay. In
truth, I’ve been quite troubled by my own stupidity for a long time now.
Although no one has ever requested that I exchange my life for Acariya Mun’s
return, I am constantly disappointed, that in writing his biography, I am
unable to remember so many things he kindly recounted to me in such detail.
Because of my poor memory, so much of what he said has been lost. I feel
rather apologetic even about what I have been able to remember and write
down. The little that has stuck in my memory is a bit like a pet animal that
sticks to its owner, no matter what, and never runs away. In any case, what
is written here can merely serve to whet the reader’s appetite, as words
alone cannot properly convey the mystery of these things.
In modern-day
Thailand, Acariya Mun was the person responsible for reviving an interest in
experiencing these internal and external insights, though very few people
could hope to perceive such mysterious phenomena nearly as well as he did.
It’s almost as though Acariya Mun was practicing for the sake of sharp
vision and clear understanding, while the rest of us were practicing for the
sake of blind ignorance, and were thus never able to see as he did. The fact
that so little has been written here about his unusual abilities is a result
of my own failure to take enough interest in these matters when he explained
them to us. Still, to my knowledge, none of his disciples possessing similar
abilities ever contradicted what he said about them. Instead, they
themselves bore witness to the existence of these mysterious things. Which
should be enough of an indication to convince the rest of us, who are not
sufficiently skilled in their perception, that these things do exist even
though they are hidden from view. In the same way, the Lord Buddha was the
first person to attain enlightenment and the first person to perceive many
mysterious phenomena – attainments that his Arahant disciples were
eventually able to duplicate, and bear witness to.
In our present time, the
sort of unusual phenomena that was perceptible to Acariya Mun ceased to be
mysterious to a few of his contemporaries who possessed an ability similar
to his. This is evident in the case of another mysterious affair that,
though quite intriguing, is likely to raise doubts among those of us who are
self-confessed skeptics. While Acariya Mun lived at Ban Nong Pheu monastery,
an elderly, white-robed lay woman from the local community, who had great
respect for him, came to the monastery and told him about an experience she
had in meditation. As she sat in meditation late one night, her citta
‘converged’, dropping deeply into samadhi. Remaining absolutely still in
that state for a time, she began to notice a very fine thread-like tentacle
flowing out of her citta and away from her body. Her curiosity aroused, she
followed the flow of her citta to find out where it had slipped away to,
what it was doing, and why. In doing so she discovered that this subtle flow
of consciousness was preparing to reserve a new birthplace in the womb of
her own niece who lived in the same village – this despite the fact that she
herself was still very much alive. This discovery shocked her, so she
quickly brought her citta back to its base and withdrew from samadhi. She
was greatly troubled for she knew that her niece was already one month
pregnant.
The next morning she hurried off to the monastery and related the
whole affair to Acariya Mun. Listening quietly, many of the monks overheard
what she said. Having never heard anything like it before, we were all
puzzled by such a strange tale. I was especially interested in this affair
and how Acariya Mun would respond to the elderly lady. We sat perfectly
still in breathless anticipation, all eyes on Acariya Mun, waiting to hear
his reply. He sat with eyes closed for about two minutes and then spoke to
the elderly lady, telling her precisely what she should do.
“The next time
your citta ‘converges’ into calm like that carefully examine the flow of
your citta. Should you notice that the flow of your citta has again gone
outward, then you must concentrate on severing that outward flow with
intuitive wisdom. If you succeed in completely cutting it off with wisdom,
it will not reappear in the future. But it’s imperative that you carefully
examine it and then fully concentrate on severing it with wisdom. Don’t just
do it halfheartedly, or else, I warn you, when you die you’ll be reborn in
your niece’s womb. Remember well what I’m telling you. If you don’t succeed
in cutting off this outward flow of your citta, when you die you will surely
be reborn in your niece’s womb. I have no doubt about this.”
Having received
this advice, the elderly lady returned home. Two days later she came to the
monastery looking bright and cheerful. It didn’t require any special insight
to tell from her expression that she had been successful. Acariya Mun began
questioning her the moment she sat down.
“What happened? Did you manage to
prevent yourself from being reborn within your niece’s womb despite being
very much alive?”
“Yes, I severed that connection the very first night. As
soon as my citta ‘converged’ into a state of complete calm, focusing my
attention there, I saw exactly what I had seen before. So I concentrated on sev-ering it with intuitive wisdom, just as you said, until it finally
snapped apart. Again last night I examined it thoroughly and couldn’t find
anything – it had simply disappeared. Today I could not wait any longer. I
just had to come and tell you about it.”
“Well, that is a good example of
how very subtle the citta can be. Only someone who practices meditation can
become aware of such things – there is no other way. You nearly fell prey to
the kilesas, which were preparing to shove you into your niece’s womb
without you being aware of it. It’s a good thing you uncovered it in your
meditation and managed to correct it in time.”
Shortly after the flow of her
aunt’s citta to her womb had been severed, the woman’s niece had a
miscarriage, thus cutting that connection for good.
Soon the monks in the
monastery began pondering two questions related to that incident: one to do
with the rebirth of a person who has yet to die, the other to do with
miscarriages. The old woman never told anyone in the village about what
happened, so no one else knew about it. But having heard the whole affair as
it was related to Acariya Mun, the monks were well informed about the
incident. This prompted several questions, so the monks asked Acariya Mun
for an explanation. To the question: “How could a person who has not yet
died begin to take birth in a womb?”, he answered as follows:
“She was
merely preparing to take birth, the process had not been completed yet. It’s
quite common for preparations to be made before the work takes place. In
this case, she was making the preparations but she had yet to finalize them.
So it would be incorrect to say that a person can be reborn while she is
still alive. But had she not been so perceptive, she would certainly have
established a new home in her niece’s womb.”
To the second question: “Isn’t
severing the flow of the citta, connecting the elderly lady to her niece,
tantamount to destroying a human life?”, he answered as follows:
“What was
there to destroy? She merely severed the flow of her citta. She didn’t cut
off the head of a living being. The true citta remained with that woman the
whole time; it simply sent a tentacle out to latch on to her niece. As soon
as she realized it and cut the outward flow of her citta to break that
connection, that was the end of the matter.”
The important point here was, Acariya Mun did not contradict the old woman when she described how the flow
of her citta had stolen out to reserve a place in her niece’s womb. He did
not dispute the truth of her experience, telling her that she was mistaken
or that she should reconsider the nature of her assumptions. Instead, he
responded by addressing her experience directly.
This story is very
intriguing because there was in fact a good reason why her citta flowed out
to her niece. The woman said she had always been very fond of her niece,
keeping in constant touch and always doting on her. But she never suspected
that anything mysterious lurked in their relationship, waiting to sneak out
and cause her to be reborn as her niece’s child. If Acariya Mun had not
helped to solve this problem, she would have ended up in that young woman’s
womb for sure.
Acariya Mun stated that it is far beyond the average person’s
capabilities to fathom the citta’s extraordinary complexity, making it very
difficult for them to properly look after the citta and avoid jeopardizing
their own well-being. Had that woman possessed no basis in samadhi
meditation, she would have had no means of understanding the way the citta
functions in relation to living and dying. Consequently, samadhi meditation
is an effective means of dealing correctly with the citta. This is
especially true at critical junctures in life when mindfulness and wisdom
are extremely important aids to understanding and caring for the citta. When
these faculties are well developed, they are able to effectively intervene
and neutralize severe pain so that it does not overwhelm the heart at the
time of death.
Death is an absolutely crucial time when defeat means, at the
very least, a missed opportunity for the next life. For instance, someone
who misses out at death may be reborn as an animal and be forced to waste
time, stuck for the duration of that animal’s life and suffering the agony
of that lowly existence as well. If, however, the citta is skillful, having
enough mindfulness to properly support it, then a human birth is the least
one can expect. Over and above that, one may be reborn in a heavenly realm
and enjoy a variety of celestial pleasures for a long time before being
reborn eventually as a human being again. When reborn as a human being, the
virtuous tendencies, that were developed in previous lives, are not
forgotten. In this way, the power of an individual’s inherent virtue
increases gradually with each successive birth until the citta gains the
strength and ability to look after itself. Dying then becomes merely a
process by which an individual exchanges one bodily form for another,
progressing from lower to higher, from grosser to ever more refined forms of
existence – and eventually from the cycle of samsara to the freedom of
Nibbana. This is similar to the way that the Lord Buddha and his Arahant
disciples raised the quality of successive existences over many lifetimes,
while steadily altering their spiritual makeup until there were no more
changes to be made. Thus it is that a citta trained in virtue through each
successive rebirth, is eventually transformed into the treasure of Nibbana.
All of which stems directly from the citta being trained gradually, step by
step, in the way of virtue. For this reason, wise, intelligent men and women
of all ages never tire of doing good deeds that redound to their spiritual
credit, always enhancing their well-being now and in the future.
I feel I
must apologize to the reader for meandering so much in telling Acariya Mun’s
story. I am trying very hard to present his biography in an orderly fashion,
but my inherent forgetfulness has caused me to mix up the subject matter,
putting first what should have come last, while putting last what should
have come first. Although the story of Acariya Mun’s life has already drawn
to a close, I am still tacking on afterthoughts that I failed to remember
earlier on. Because of this tendency, there’s still no end in sight. As you
read along you’ll see how unreliable I am at arranging events in their
proper sequence.
Another intriguing incident took place one morning at Ban Nong Pheu monastery when Acariya Mun, rising from meditation, came out of
his room and, before anyone spoke, immediately told the monks to look under
his hut and tell him whether or not they could see the track of a large
snake imprinted in the dirt there. He explained to them that the night
before a great naga had come to visit him and to listen to Dhamma. Before it
left, he had asked it to leave some marks on the ground as a visible sign to
show the monks in the morning. The monks informed him that they could see
the track of a very large snake trailing out from underneath his hut and
into the forest. There being no other tracks leading in, they could not tell
how it had gotten there. The only visible track was the one going out from
under his hut. The ground around his hut was swept clean so other tracks
would have been easily noticed; but there were no others; only the one.
Acariya Mun told them they need not look for others because they wouldn’t
find them. He reiterated that the naga left directly from his hut soon after
he requested it to leave a mark on the ground below.
Had the monks seen the
track first and then asked Acariya Mun about it, the incident would not be
so thought-provoking. The intriguing fact is that Acariya Mun immediately
broached the subject first, without being prompted; and sure enough, they
then found the track of a large snake under his hut. Which means that,
perceiving the naga with his inner eye, he told it to leave some visible
mark for the monks to see with their physical eyes, since their inner eyes
were blind and they had no way to see the naga when it came to visit.
Later
when they had an opportunity, the monks asked Acariya Mun whether the nagas
who visited him appeared in a serpent-like form or in some other form. He
replied that one could never be sure with nagas how they would appear.
“If
they come for the purpose of listening to Dhamma, as they did last night,
then they’ll come in the form of a human being of a comparable social status
to their own. A great naga will come in the guise of a sovereign king
surrounded by a royal entourage. Its comportment will be very regal in every
respect; so when I discuss Dhamma with it I use royal terms of speech, just
as I would with any royal personage. Its entourage resembles a delegation of
government officials accompanying a crowned head of state. They all behave
in a most polite, respectful manner – much more so than we humans do. They
sit perfectly still when listening to Dhamma, showing no signs of
restlessness. When discussing Dhamma with me, the leader always speaks on
behalf of the whole group. Anyone with a question will refer it to the
leader first. Then he asks me and I give a reply. Once I have answered all
their questions, they all depart together.”
Here is another incident that we
can take on faith about Acariya Mun’s extraordinary abilities, even though
its true nature lies beyond our comprehension. A certain monk noticed that
Acariya Mun liked to smoke a particular brand of cigarettes,3 so he told a
lay supporter to use some money he had been offered to buy some for Acariya
Mun. The lay supporter complied; and the monk then offered them to Acariya
Mun. At first Acariya Mun said nothing, probably because he was speaking on
Dhamma at the time and did not have any opportunity to investigate the
matter. But, the following morning when that monk went to see him, he
ordered him to take the cigarettes away. He said that he would not smoke
them since they were owned in common by many different people. The monk in
question assured Acariya Mun that the cigarettes belonged to him alone,
since he had told a lay supporter to buy them with his own money the day
before. He specifically had them purchased as an offering for Acariya Mun,
so they could not possibly be owned in common by many people. Acariya Mun
reiterated that he wanted them taken away. Being owned in common by many
different people, the offering was not ‘pure’, so he did not want to smoke
them.
Not daring to press the issue any further for fear of being rebuked,
the monk was obliged to take back the cigarettes. He sent for the lay
supporter who had purchased them for him and asked what had happened. It
turned out that this layman had taken money belonging to many different
monks, all of whom instructed him to buy some necessity or other. He had
used the money left over from those purchases to buy the cigarettes. The
monk asked him for the names of the monks whose money was involved, and then
hurried off to find them. Once he explained about the mix-up with the
cigarettes, each was more than happy to see them offered to Acariya Mun. So
the monk took the cigarettes and once more offered them to Acariya Mun,
confessing that he was really at fault for not questioning the layman
thoroughly about the matter first. He acknowledged that Acariya Mun was
exactly right: the layman confirmed that he had taken money belonging to
many different monks and put it all together to make various purchases.
Since all the monks had been asked and were happy to share the offer of
cigarettes to Acariya Mun, he was offering them again. Acariya Mun took them
without saying a word and the matter was never mentioned again.
Later, that
monk told some of his fellow monks how he first tried unsuccessfully to
contradict Acariya Mun, only to discover in the end that Acariya Mun was
exactly right. Some monks were puzzled as to how he could possibly have
known whose money was involved in the cigarette purchase since he had never
been informed about it. One monk at this informal meeting spoke up,
protesting vigorously.
“Were he simply like the rest of us, obviously he
wouldn’t have known a thing. But it’s precisely because he is so very
different from us that we respect him and admire his superior wisdom. All of
us gathered here under his tutelage realize that his capabilities are as
different from ours as day is from night. Although I don’t know much, I do
know for certain that he is wiser and more knowledgeable than I am in every
way. I see he is truly above reproach, which is why I have entrusted my life
to him and his training methods with self-effacing humility. My heart is
still full of kilesas, but those kilesas are very afraid of him, so they
don’t dare show their faces in his presence. I believe this is due to my
willingness to surrender to him out of fear and respect, an attitude far
more powerful than these vile kilesas, which naturally tend to oppose the
teacher. Confronted by Acariya Mun, they give up completely, not daring to
display the same reckless abandon they do when I live with other teachers.
If we feel we cannot submit wholeheartedly to his judgment, then we do not
belong here under his guidance. Should we persist in staying under those
conditions, we will not benefit at all – only harm will come. What more need
be said after this incident with the cigarettes.”
Just an unwholesome train
of thought in the middle of the night was enough to elicit a stern response
from him the next morning. Meeting Acariya Mun, the offending monk would be
met by his sharp, penetrating gaze, a gaze that seemed to pierce the culprit
and tear him to pieces. In a situation like that it was inadvisable to
approach him or attempt to help him with his requisites, since he would
strictly refuse to allow that monk to do anything for him. It was his
indirect way of tormenting the monk’s innate stubbornness. But it is strange
how a monk initially felt quite chastened, yet somehow the effect didn’t
last long. He felt chastened at the moment he was stung by a severe
reprimand; but later, when Acariya Mun spoke to him in a normal tone of
voice he would let down his guard and make the same mistake again. Despite
having no intention of thinking in ways that were harmful to himself, he was
simply unable to keep up with his own restive thoughts, which tended to jump
from one thing to another quicker than a horde of wild monkeys. Later on,
when the same monk went to see Acariya Mun again, he could sense immediately
that he was not welcome – just the look in Acariya Mun’s eyes was enough to
make him extremely wary. Even with that, he had yet to fully learn his
lesson. After a while, if the dangers of his way of thinking were not
brought home again to him, he would inadvertently begin to befriend those
harmful thoughts once more, entertaining them as if they were actually
something worthwhile. That is why I say that, despite feeling quite
chastened, somehow the effect didn’t last long. When he not only felt
chastened but also remained very conscious of the fear of revisiting those
thoughts, then the positive effects were long-lasting. His mind remained
cool, calm, and peaceful throughout. The next time he went to see Acariya
Mun, he needn’t be so fearful about being taken to task.
My own mind tended
to react in a very similar fashion. Being unable to rely on myself alone, I
could not allow myself to stray far from my teacher. Living with him I was
always fearful and on guard, which prevented my thoughts from deviating from
the path of practice. Becoming quickly aware when my mind did stray, I was
able to pull it back in time to avoid harmful consequences.
I am absolutely
convinced that Acariya Mun could read my thoughts. Whether or not he could
read other people’s thoughts doesn’t concern me so much. What does concerns
me is how he used that ability to mitigate my own stubborn tendencies and
teach me a good lesson. There was a time, when I first went to stay with
him, that I thought, rather bizarrely: They say that Acariya Mun can read
other people’s thoughts, that he knows everything we’re thinking. Can this
really be true? If it is true, then he needn’t take an interest in
everything I’m thinking – I just want to know if he’s aware of what I’m
thinking right now. That would be enough. If he does know what I’m thinking
at this moment, I will prostrate myself before him. That’s all I ask of him. Coming face to face with him that evening I could hardly sit still. As his
eyes glared directly at me without blinking, I felt in my heart that he was
about to shout and point straight at me. When he began speaking to the
assembled monks, I was so worried about being singled out and scolded for
stubbornly testing him, that I had a hard time paying attention. Before long
his voice began cracking like a whip as it rained down blows all around me,
brushing past and narrowly missing me time and again until finally the whip
lashed into the very core of my being. I became flushed as my body shook
uncontrollably. The more my fear mounted, the more agitated I became until
all traces of contentment vanished from my heart. While I sat there, his
voice kept whipping and lashing at my heart, his words hitting home time and
time again until by the end of his talk I could no longer bear the pressure.
My heart gave in to him, thinking: I thought as I did simply because I
wanted to know if you could truly read other people’s thoughts. I had no
intention of disparaging your other virtuous qualities. I now acknowledge
that you are a true master in every respect, so I wish to entrust my life to
you until the day I die. Please have compassion for me and assist me with
your teaching. Please don’t become fed up with me because of this one
incident.
Once my heart completely surrendered to him, the fiery tone in his
voice began to subside. Finally he concluded by elucidating a basic
principle.
“Right and wrong both exist within yourself. Why don’t you take
an interest in looking there? What’s the point in meddling in the rights and
wrongs of others? Is this the type of thinking that will make you a good,
skillful person? Even though you may find out how good or skillful someone
else is, if you yourself are neither good nor skillful, then you will never
be successful. If you want to know how good other people are, first you must
thoroughly examine yourself; then, knowledge about others will come on its
own. There is no need to test them to find out. Good, skillful people do not
have to resort to such testing. A good person who is truly skillful in
Dhamma can know about others without having to test them.”
Acariya Mun ended
his talk to the monks on this note. I almost fainted at the time, sitting
there soaked with sweat. Surrendering to him completely that night, I
learned a lesson I’ve never forgotten – never again did I dare to test him
out. Had I been as severely chastened about matters concerning my own
practice as I was that night about matters concerning Acariya Mun, then I
would probably have transcended dukkha long ago. But, alas, I have never
been able to chasten myself to such good effect, which really rankles me
sometimes.
This was another issue that the monks discussed secretly among
themselves at their informal meeting, which I also attended. Since this
incident involved me personally, I’ve included it here with the story about
the cigarettes to highlight the principle that the truth about the nature of
Truth exists all around us everywhere, at all times – akaliko. All that’s
required is that we practice sincerely until we attain the Truth; then we
will surely understand the nature of that Truth, the fullest extent of our
understanding being conditioned only by the natural limitations of our
inherent abilities. This includes the intrinsic truths, or saccadhamma, as
well as all the various forms of extrinsic knowledge. Keep in mind also that
people differ in the type and degree of the inherent good qualities they
have developed through successive existences, as well as the spiritual goals
they have variously set for themselves. But the primary results of magga,
phala, and Nibbana do not differ. These results are the same for everyone
who attains them.
The Adventures of Acariya Chob
Acariya Mun was a teacher
whose unique mode of practice will never be forgotten by those of us who
were closely associated with him. Many such senior disciples of his are
still alive today. Each acariya differs somewhat in his inherent virtuous
qualities, his specific mode of practice, and the special kinds of knowledge
and understanding he has attained as a result. Earlier on I mentioned some
of these acariyas by name; but there are many others whose names were not
identified. Nonetheless, it was always my intention to identify one of his
senior disciples in particular, once the story of Acariya Mun’s life was
completed, so that the reader could learn something of the way he practiced,
the experiences he encountered, and the insights he gained. Acariya Mun’s
disciples followed in his footsteps much in the same manner that the Lord
Buddha’s Arahant disciples followed in his, experiencing many difficulties
along the way before ultimately attaining the same knowledge and
understanding that their teacher had before them. The extent to which these
monks met with spine-tingling, frightening situations in their practice
environment depended largely on the nature of the places where they lived
and traveled.
This brings me to one senior disciple of Acariya Mun for whom
I have a great amount of respect. Since this acariya’s dhutanga experiences
are quite different from most of his contemporaries, I would like to present
here some episodes from his practice as evidence of the possibility that
some of the unusual external phenomena commonly reported at the time of the
Buddha may still exist today. Certain incidents in the life of the Buddha –
like the elephant who gave him protection and the monkey who offered him
honeycomb – may have their modern-day parallels in some of this acariya’s
experiences. To demonstrate the authenticity of the episodes I’m about to
relate, I shall identify him by name. He is Acariya Chob4 who, having been
ordained as a monk for many years, is now about 70 years old. He has always
preferred living in remote forest and mountain areas and still does so to
this day. Since he likes to trek through such wilderness areas at night,
he’s constantly encountering nocturnal creatures like wild tigers. Leaving Lomsak in Phetchabun province one afternoon, he started trekking north
toward Lampang in the province of Chiang Mai. As he was about to enter a
large tract of forest, he met with some local villagers who advised him,
with obvious concern, to spend the night near their village and then
continue on the next morning. They warned him that the forest he was about
to enter was vast, so there was no way someone entering it in the afternoon
could get through to the other side before dark. Those who ended up stranded
in this forest after dark invariably became food for the huge tigers that
roamed there at night. Since it was already afternoon, he had no chance to
hike through it in time. Once darkness fell, the tigers began roaming around
looking for something to eat, and they considered any person that they
happened on as just another source of food. Since no one ever escaped from
them alive, the villagers were fearful that Acariya Chob would meet the same
fate. It was already well after noon, so they did not want him to enter the
forest. They told him that a notice had been posted, warning travelers about
this ‘forest of yakkhas’ to keep them from being eaten by those monsters.
Being curious, Acariya Chob asked what yakkhas they were talking about. He
had read old accounts about such creatures but had never actually seen one.
They told him that it was just their way of referring to those huge, striped
tigers who devoured anyone failing to make it through the forest by
nightfall. They invited him to return with them to their village and spend
the night there. He could then have a meal the next morning and continue on
his journey.
Telling them that he intended to continue walking anyway, Acariya Chob refused to return to the village. Concerned for his safety,
they insisted that, no matter how fast he walked, by having started this
late in the day he could not possibly reach the other side before nightfall
and would end up stranded in the middle of that vast forest. But, determined
to press ahead, he refused to be deterred. They asked him if he was afraid
of tigers. He acknowledged that he was but said it was irrelevant: he
intended to go in any case. They insisted that the tigers there never ran
away from people. If he encountered one, he was sure to lose his life. If he
wanted to avoid being attacked by man-eating tigers, he should wait until
morning to proceed further. He replied that should his kamma dictate that he
was destined to be eaten by tigers, then that’s the way it would be. If,
however, he was destined to continue living, then the tigers wouldn’t
trouble him.
Taking leave of the villagers, Acariya Chob resumed his
journey, feeling no qualms about dying. No sooner had he begun to enter the
forest than he noticed that both sides of the trail he was on were covered
with claw prints, where tigers had been scratching in the earth. He saw
piles of tiger scat scattered all along the trail – some of it old, some of
it quite fresh. As he walked along doing meditation practice, he observed
these telltale signs, but he wasn’t afraid. By the time he had reached the
very middle of the forest, darkness had closed in all around him.
Suddenly,
he heard the roar of a huge tiger coming up behind him, followed by the roar
of another huge tiger moving toward him, both calling out to each other as
they quickly closed in on him. The roaring sounds from both directions grew
closer and louder until suddenly both tigers emerged from the darkness at
the same moment – one, merely six feet in front of him and the other a mere
six feet behind. The sound of their roars had become deafening. Seeing the
gravity of the situation, Acariya Chob stood transfixed in the middle of the
trail. He saw that the tiger in front of him was crouched and ready to
pounce. Glancing behind him, he saw that the tiger there, too, was crouched
and ready to pounce. Fear arose in him then, for he was sure that this
signaled the end of his life. Petrified with fear, he stood stock-still,
rooted to the spot. But his mindfulness remained strong, so he concentrated
his mind intently, and that prevented him from panicking. Even though he
might be killed by those tigers, he would not allow his mind to falter. With
that resolve, he turned the focus of his attention away from the tigers and
back within himself, thus excluding everything external from his awareness.
At that moment, his citta ‘converged’, dropping quickly into a deep state of
samadhi. As this occurred, the knowledge arose in him that the tigers could
not possibly harm him. After that, everything in the world simply vanished,
including himself and the tigers. Experiencing no physical sensations
whatsoever, he was totally unaware of what then happened to his body. All
awareness of the external world, including his physical presence, had
utterly disappeared. Which meant that awareness of the tigers had also
disappeared. His citta had ‘converged’ completely, dropping to the very base
of samadhi, and many hours passed before it withdrew from that state.
When
his citta finally withdrew, he found that he was still standing in the same
position as before. His umbrella and alms bowl were still slung over his
shoulder, and in one hand he still carried a candle lantern, which had long
since gone out. So he lit another candle and looked around for the tigers;
but they were nowhere to be found. He had no idea where they had disappeared
to.
Withdrawing from samadhi that night, he felt no fear whatsoever. His
heart was full of such remarkable courage that even if hundreds of tigers
appeared at that moment, he would have remained completely unperturbed; for,
he had seen with absolute clarity the extraordinary power of the citta. He
felt amazed to have escaped the gaping jaws of those two tigers – a sense of
amazement defying description. Standing there alone in the forest, Acariya
Chob was suddenly overcome by a feeling of compassionate affection for the
two tigers. In his mind they became friends who, having provided him with a
lesson in Dhamma, then miraculously disappeared. He no longer feared them –
in fact, he actually missed them.
Acariya Chob described both tigers as
being enormous: each was about the size of a racehorse, though its body
length well exceeded that of a horse. Their heads would easily have measured
sixteen inches from ear to ear. He had never in his life seen tigers that
were so grotesquely large. Consequently, when he first saw them he stood
petrified, stiff as a corpse. Fortunately, his mindfulness remained strong
throughout. Later, after his citta had withdrawn from samadhi, he felt
joyful and serene. He knew then that he could go wherever he wished without
fearing anything in the world. Believing wholeheartedly that the citta, when
fully integrated with Dhamma, reigns supreme in the universe, he was
convinced that nothing could possibly harm him.
With this serene Dhamma
filling his heart, he resumed his trek through the forest, practicing
walking meditation as he hiked along. His two tiger friends were still fresh
in his mind and he often thought about them. He felt that, were he to see
them again, he could easily walk up and playfully stroke their backs as if
they were pets, though it’s questionable whether they would ever allow it.
Acariya Chob walked the rest of that night in peace and solitude, buoyed by
a joyful heart. When day finally broke, he still had not reached the end of
the forest. It wasn’t until nine o’clock that morning that he emerged from
the forest to arrive at a village settlement. Putting down his belongings,
he put on his outer robes and walked through the village for alms. When the
inhabitants saw him entering the village with his alms bowl, they called out
to one another to come and offer him food. Having placed food in his bowl,
some of them followed him back to where he had left his belongings and asked
where he had come from. These being forest people who knew the ways of the
forest, when they saw him emerging from that vast wilderness at an unusual
hour, they wanted to questioned him about it. He told them that, having
begun at the southern end, he trekked all night through the forest without
sleeping and now intended to continue wandering north. Astounded by this
statement, they wanted to know how it was possible, for it was common
knowledge that passing through there at night meant almost certain death in
the jaws of a tiger. How had he managed to avoid the tigers? Had he come
across no tigers during the night? Acariya Chob admitted he had met some
tigers, but said he hadn’t been bothered by them. The villagers were
reluctant to believe him because the ferocious man-eating tigers roaming
that forest were renowned for waiting to ambush anyone caught there
overnight. Only after he had explained the actual circumstances of his
encounter with the tigers did they finally believe him, realizing that his
miraculous powers were a special case, and not applicable to ordinary
people.
Whether it is the spiritual path of the heart or the physical path
through the forest, ignorance of the path we are on, the distances that must
be traveled, and the potential dangers along the way are all obstacles to
our progress. So we must depend on a knowledgeable guide to ensure our
safety. We, who are journeying along the path toward safe, happy, prosperous
circumstances now and in the future, should always keep this in mind. Just
because we’ve always thought and acted in a certain way, we must not
carelessly assume that it is necessarily the right way. In truth, our
habitual ways of thinking and acting usually tend to be mistaken,
continuously leading most of us down the wrong path.
During his life as a dhutanga monk, Acariya Chob had many close encounters with wild animals.
Once while wandering through Burma,5 he stopped to do his practice in a cave
frequented by tigers. Although these huge beasts roamed freely through the
area while he lived there, they never harmed him. So he never dreamed that
one would actually come looking for him. But then one afternoon at about
five o’clock, as he was getting up from his meditation, his eyes glanced up
to the mouth of the cave to see a huge, striped tiger approaching the
entrance. It was an enormous animal and very frightening-looking; but
Acariya Chob remained unperturbed – probably because he was so accustomed to
seeing these creatures wherever he went. Peering into the cave, the tiger
spied him just as he was looking up at it. Instead of showing alarm at the
sight of him or roaring out in a terrifying manner, it just stood there
passively, as though it were a house pet. It showed no signs of fear and
made no threatening gestures. Looking casually about, the tiger leapt onto a
large, flat rock at the entrance to the cave, about eighteen feet from where
Acariya Chob stood. Sitting nonchalantly, licking its paws, it seemed
uninterested in him, though it knew perfectly well he was in the cave. It
sat there calmly with the air of a pet dog sitting in front of the house.
Growing tired, it flopped down, stretched out its legs, and lay there
comfortably just like a pet dog, continuing to lick itself as though feeling
right at home.
Since Acariya Chob’s meditation track was right in front of
the cave, he didn’t dare go out and walk there – the proximity of the huge
tiger made him feel a bit nervous. His uneasiness was compounded by the fact
that he had never before seen a wild tiger behave like a household pet in
this way. So he continued his sitting meditation on a small bamboo platform
inside the cave, though with no sense of fear that the tiger might try to
harm him there. Once in a long while it casually glanced at him in the
nonchalant manner of an old friend, while lying contentedly with no evident
intention of moving. Acariya Chob expected it to eventually wander off, but
it showed no interest in going anywhere.
At first, Acariya Chob was sitting
outside his mosquito net; but once darkness fell he moved inside the net and
lit a candle. The tiger remained impassive as the candlelight illuminated
the cave. It continued lying contentedly on the rock until late into the
night, when Acariya Chob finally lay down to take a rest. Awaking at about
three a.m., he lit a candle only to find the tiger reclining impassively as
before. After washing his face, he sat in meditation until the first light
of dawn; then he rose from his seat and put away his mosquito net. Glancing
up, he saw the tiger still stretched out comfortably, looking like some
oversized pet dog in front of its master’s house. Eventually, the time for
his daily almsround arrived. The only way out of the cave went straight past
the tiger. He wondered what its reaction would be when he walked by. As he
put on his robes he noticed the tiger looking at him with soft, gentle eyes
like a dog looking wistfully at its master. Since he had no other
alternative, he would have to pass within several feet of it on his way out.
When he was ready, he approached the mouth of the cave and began speaking to
the tiger:
“It’s now time for my morning almsround. Like all other creatures
in this world, I am hungry and need to fill my stomach. If it’s okay with
you, I’ll go out and get some food. Please be kind enough to let me pass by.
If you want to stay on here, that’s fine with me. Or, if you prefer to go
off searching for something to eat, that’s all right too.” The tiger lay
there listening to him with its head cocked like a dog listening to the
voice of its master. As Acariya Chob walked past, it watched him with a
soft, gentle gaze as if to say: Go ahead, there’s no need to be afraid. I’ve
only come here to protect you from danger.
Acariya Chob walked down to the
local village for his alms round, but he didn’t tell anyone about the tiger
for fear they might try to kill it. Returning to the cave he looked at the
place where the tiger had been, but there was no longer any sign of it. He
had no idea where it had gone. During the remainder of his stay in that
cave, it never came to visit him again.
Acariya Chob suspected that the
tiger was no ordinary forest creature but rather a creation of the devas,6
which is why it appeared so tame and non-threatening the entire time it was
with him. He felt a lot of affection for it and so missed its presence for
many days thereafter. He thought it might return from time to time to see
him, but it never did. Although he heard the sounds of tigers roaring every
night, he couldn’t tell whether his friend was among them. In any case, the
whole forest was teeming with tigers. A faint-hearted person could never
have lived there, but he was not affected by such dangers. In fact, the
tame-looking tiger, who kept watch over him all night, made him feel more
affection than fear. Acariya Chob said that experience increased his belief
in Dhamma in quite a special way.
Acariya Chob spent five years living in
Burma, where he learned to speak Burmese as fluently as if it were his own
language. The reason he eventually returned to Thailand concerned the Second
World War. The English and the Japanese were fighting each other all up and
down the countryside – in the towns, the villages, and even in the
mountains. During that period, the English accused the Thai people of
collaborating with the Japanese.7 Consequently, they searched for Thais in
Burma, hunting them down with a vengeance. They summarily executed any Thai
they found inside Burma, regardless of whether it was a man, a women, or a
monk – no exceptions were made.
The villagers that Acariya Chob depended on
for his daily alms loved and respected him; so when they saw the English
soldiers being very meddlesome, they became concerned for his safety. They
hurriedly took him deep into the mountains and hid him in a place where they
decided the English would not be able to find him. But eventually a
contingent of English soldiers did come across him there, just as he was
giving a blessing to a group of villagers. The villagers were crestfallen.
Questioned by the soldiers, Acariya Chob told them that he had been living
in Burma for a long time and was never involved in politics. He said that
being a monk, he knew nothing about such matters. The villagers spoke up in
his defense to say that, unlike lay people, monks had nothing to do with the
war, so it would be wrong to try to involve him in any way. They warned the
soldiers that, should they take any action against him, it would amount to
hurting the feelings of the Burmese people who had done nothing wrong. It
would unnecessarily damage relations with the local population, which would
be a grave mistake. They assured the soldiers that he had been living there
since long before the war began and knew nothing about international
affairs. Even though their country was now in a state of war, the Burmese
people did not view this monk as a threat of any kind. Thus, if the soldiers
were to harm him, it would be tantamount to harming the whole of the Burmese
nation. The Burmese people could never condone such an action.
The
contingent of English soldiers stood talking among themselves about what to
do with Acariya Chob. After discussing his case for about half an hour, they
told the villagers to quickly take him away to another location, for if
another army patrol came and spotted him, there could be trouble. Should
their pleas be rejected the next time, his life might well be in danger.
While the soldiers were viewing him as an enemy, Acariya Chob sat quietly,
extending forth thoughts of loving kindness and recollecting the virtues of
the Buddha, the Dhamma, and the Sangha.
When the soldiers had gone, the
villagers took him deeper into the mountains, telling him not to come down
to the village for almsround. Instead, each morning they secretly brought
food for him to eat. From that day on, patrols of English troops regularly
came to bother the villagers. Soon patrols were coming daily to ask the
whereabouts of the Thai monk, and it became increasingly obvious that he
would be killed if they found him. As the situation worsened, the villagers
became more and more concerned for his safety. Finally, they decided to send
him back to Thailand by way of a remote forest trail that passed through
thick mountainous terrain. This trail was known to be safe from incursions
by English patrols. They gave him detailed instructions on how to proceed,
warning him to stick to the trail no matter what happened. Even if he found
the trail overgrown in places, he was not to attempt a different route. It
was an old footpath used for generations by the hill tribes that eventually
led all the way to the Thai border.
Once he had these instructions, he began
walking. He walked all day and all night without sleeping or eating,
drinking only water. With great difficulty he made his way through this
dense wilderness region teeming with all manner of wild animals. Everywhere
he looked he saw tiger and elephant tracks. He feared he would never survive
his flight from Burma; he was constantly worried that he might make one
wrong turn on the trail and end up hopelessly lost in that vast wilderness.
On the morning of the fourth day of his trek to the Thai border, something
incredibly amazing happened to Acariya Chob. Please reserve judgment on this
incident until you have read the whole story. As he crested the top of a
mountain ridge, he was so extremely hungry and exhausted that he thought he
couldn’t possibly go on. By that time he had been walking for three days and
three nights without any sleep or food. The only breaks he had taken were
short periods of rest to alleviate the physical stress of such an arduous
journey. While dragging his enfeebled body over the ridge, a thought arose
in his mind: I have walked the entire distance to this point risking my life
with every breath I take, yet somehow I’m still alive. Since starting out
I’ve yet to see a single human habitation where I could request alms food to
sustain my life. Am I now going to die needlessly for lack of a single meal?
I’ve suffered enormous hardships on this trip – at no other time in my life
have I suffered so much. Is it all going to be in vain? Have I escaped war,
a sphere of death everyone fears, only to die of starvation and the
hardships of this trek? If, as the Lord Buddha declared, there really are
devas in the upper realms, possessing divine eyes and ears that can truly
perceive at great distances, can’t they see this monk who is about ready to
die at any moment? I do believe what the Lord Buddha said. But are the devas,
who have received kind assistance from so many monks, from the Buddha’s time
until the present day, really so heartless as this? If devas are not in fact
hardhearted, then let them demonstrate their kindness to this dying monk so
that their pure, celestial qualities can be admired.
No sooner had this
thought occurred to Acariya Chob than something incredibly strange and
amazing happened. It was almost impossible to believe. As he staggered along
that remote mountain trail, he saw an elegantly dressed gentleman, who bore
no resemblance to the hill tribes people of that region, quietly sitting at
the side of the path, holding a tray of food offerings up to his head. It
seemed impossible! Acariya Chob was so flabbergasted by what he saw that he
got goose flesh and his hair stood on end. He forgot all about being hungry
and exhausted. He was wholly astounded to see a kind-looking gentleman
sitting beside the path about twenty-five feet ahead waiting to offer him
food. As he approached, the gentleman spoke to him:
“Please, sir, rest here
awhile and eat something to relieve your hunger and fatigue. Once you’ve
regained your strength, you can continue on. You’re sure to reach the other
side of this vast wilderness some time today.”
Acariya Chob stopped, put
down what few requisites he was carrying, and prepared his alms bowl to
receive the food that the gentleman was offering. He then stepped forward
and accepted the food. To his amazement, as soon as the food items were
placed in his bowl, a sweet fragrance seemed to permeate the whole
surrounding forest. The amount of food he was offered by the gentleman was
exactly the right amount to satisfy his needs. And it had an exquisite taste
that was absolutely indescribable. This might seem like an extravagant
exaggeration, but the truth of what his senses perceived at that moment was
so amazing as to be virtually impossible to describe.
When the gentleman
finished putting food in his bowl, Acariya Chob asked him where his house
was located. He said that he had been walking for three nights and four days
now but had yet to see a single human habitation. The gentleman pointed
vaguely upward, saying his house was over there. Acariya Chob asked what had
prompted him to prepare food and then wait along that trail to offer it to a
monk. How had he known in the first place that there would be a monk coming
to receive it? The gentleman smiled slightly, but didn’t speak. Acariya Chob
gave him a blessing, after which the gentleman told him that he would have
to leave since his house was some distance away. He appeared to be quite
different from the average person in that he was remarkably dignified while
speaking very little. He looked to be a middle-aged man of medium height
with a radiant complexion and behavior that was impeccably self-composed.
Having taken his leave, he stood up and began to walk away. As he was
obviously an unusual man, Acariya Chob observed him carefully. He walked
about twenty-five feet, stepped behind a tree, and disappeared from sight.
Acariya Chob stared at the tree waiting for him to reappear on the other
side, but he never did. This was even more puzzling; so he stood up and
walked over to the tree to have a closer look – but no one was there. Had
someone been in that area, he would definitely have seen him. But looking
around in all directions he saw no one. The strange circumstances of the
man’s disappearance surprised him all the more.
Still puzzled, Acariya Chob
walked back and began to eat his food. Tasting the various foods he had been
given, he found them to be unlike the human cuisine that he was used to
eating. All the food was wonderfully fragrant and flavorful, and perfectly
suited to his bodily needs in every possible way. He had never eaten
anything like it. The food’s exquisite taste permeated throughout every pore
in his body which had so long been oppressed by hunger and fatigue. In the
end, he wasn’t sure if it was his extreme hunger that made it taste so good
or the celestial nature of the food itself. He ate every last morsel of what
was offered, and it turned out to be exactly the right amount to fill his
stomach. Had there been even a little extra, he would have been unable to
finish it.
Having eaten, he set off again feeling incredibly robust and
radiant, not at all like the person who was at death’s door a short while
before. Walking along he became so absorbed in thinking about the mysterious
gentleman that he forgot about the rigors of the journey, the distance he
had to walk, and whether or not he was on the right trail. As evening fell,
he emerged from the other side of that vast wilderness just as the
mysterious gentleman had predicted. He crossed the border into Thailand with
the same feeling of joy that he had been experiencing all day. The mental
and physical distress that had tormented him earlier in his journey had
disappeared after his morning repast. When he finally crossed into Thailand,
the land of his birth, he knew for certain that he was going to live.
He
said that the strange gentleman he met was surely a devic being and not one
of the local inhabitants. Think about it: From the point where he met that
gentleman to the point where he entered Thailand, he encountered not a
single human habitation. The whole affair was very puzzling. Ordinarily, one
would expect to meet with at least a small settlement of some sort along the
whole of that route through Burma. As it turned out, his evasion of the army
patrols had been so successful that he had encountered neither people nor
food. It had been so successful that he had nearly starved to death.
Acariya
Chob said that his almost miraculous escape from death in that vast
wilderness caused him to suspect the involvement of divine intervention.
Although the wilderness he passed through teemed with dangerous wild animals
like tigers, elephants, bears, and snakes, he never encountered them. The
only animals he came across were harmless ones. Normally, someone trekking
through such a wilderness would encounter dangerous wild animals daily,
especially tigers and elephants. And there was a very strong possibility
that that person might be killed by one of those savage beasts. Surely his
own safe passage can be attributed to the miraculous properties of Dhamma,
or miraculous intervention by the devas, or both. The villagers who helped
him escape were very concerned that he would not survive the threat posed by
dangerous wild animals, but there had been no other choice. Had he remained
in Burma, the threat posed by the war and the English soldiers was even more
imminent. So opting for the lesser of two evils, they had helped him escape
from the land of bloodthirsty people, hoping that he would survive the
savage beasts and enjoy a long life. Which is why he was forced to make the
perilous trek that nearly cost him his life.
Please contemplate these
mysterious happenings for yourself. I have recorded the stories just as I
heard them. But being reluctant to pass judgment on them alone, I would
prefer that you come to your own conclusions. Still, I cannot help but feel
amazed that something so seemingly impossible actually occurred. Due to the
rigorous nature of Acariya Chob’s dhutanga kammatthana lifestyle, he has had
many other similar experiences, for he always prefers living and practicing
in remote wilderness areas. Since he lives deep in the forest, few people
dare to go visit him, so his involvement with society is very limited.
Conclusion
Practicing monks in the lineage of Acariya Mun tend to prefer
living in mountains and forests. Leading the way in this lifestyle himself,
Acariya Mun encouraged all his disciples to do the same. By nature, he was
fond of praising the virtues of life in the wilds. He said the reason he
preferred such places was that knowledge and understanding of Dhamma was
much more likely to arise while he lived in remote forest areas than while
staying in congested ones. Crowded, congested places are hardly conducive to
calm and contentment in the practice of Dhamma. Even the Dhamma that his
disciples are teaching today was earned practicing at the threshold of death
in that same wilderness environment.
In the physical sense, Acariya Mun died
many years ago. Never-theless, disciples of his who naturally possess the
meditative ability to perceive such phenomena still regularly experience
visual images of him arising spontaneously in their meditation, just as if
he were still alive. Should one of them experience a problem in his
practice, a visual image of Acariya Mun will appear to him while he is
meditating, demonstrating effective ways to solve the problem. He appears to
be sitting there in person giving advice, much in the same way that past
Arahants came and instructed him on the various occasions I mentioned
earlier. When a monk, whose practice has reached a certain level, finds a
specific problem that he cannot solve himself, a visual image of Acariya Mun
appears and advises him on that very question, and then disappears on its
own. After that, the monk takes the teaching that Acariya Mun has given him,
analyzes it carefully and uses it to the best of his ability. And thus he
gains new insights in his meditation practice. Those monks who are naturally
inclined to perceive external phenomena possess the necessary psychic
ability to receive such advice on their practice. This is known as
‘listening to Dhamma by way of nimittas appearing in meditation’. That is,
the teacher presents his teaching in the form of a nimitta, while the
disciple understands that teaching as he perceives the nimitta. This may
seem rather mysterious to those who have never heard about it or experienced
it for themselves. Some people may reject such psychic communication out of
hand as being sheer nonsense; but in truth, it does occur. Practicing monks
having a natural psychic inclination perceive various external phenomena in
the same manner. However, this talent is not shared by all practicing monks.
Rather, individuals possessing this capability are special cases, meaning
they have previously developed the specific virtuous qualities suited to
such psychic achievements. For instance, the Buddha and the Arahants
appeared in Acariya Mun’s meditation as nimittas, so he was able to hear
their teachings in that way. Similarly, disciples of Acariya Mun, who
possessed similar psychic tendencies, were able to perceive nimittas of him,
or of the Buddhas and the Arahants, and so hear their teachings. In
principle, it can be compared to the nimitta that the Lord Buddha used to
teach his mother when she resided in the Tavatimsa heavenly realm. But the
Lord Buddha constitutes a very exceptional case, one which people consent to
believe in far more readily than that of someone less exalted, even though
both share the same causal basis – which makes it difficult to further
elaborate on this matter.
Being reluctant to write any more on this subject,
I leave it up to those practicing meditation to discover this knowledge for
themselves – paccattam – which is better than relying on someone else’s
explanation, and far more certain as well. I am wholly convinced of this. No
matter what is being discussed, without having the ability to perceive such
things directly with our own senses, we will be reluctant to simply rely on
another person’s description of them. Although that person may provide us
with accurate information, there will always be certain aspects that we are
bound to doubt or take exception to, notwithstanding the fact that the
person is compassionately explaining the matter to us with a pure heart. The
problem is: we ordinary people are not pure ourselves so we tend to balk at
what we hear, hesitant to accept someone else’s judgment. So it is better
that we experience these things for ourselves. Only then can we truly accept
their validity. Then we needn’t annoy others with our remonstrations. As the
Buddha said: All of us must accept the consequences of our own actions. We
shoulder the burden of pain and suffering and enjoy the fruits of happiness
that we have created for ourselves. This is absolutely right and beautifully
simple too.
The story of Acariya Mun is a splendid story. Beginning from the
time he was still in lay life, he demonstrated the characteristics of a true
sage. Always conducting himself in a safe, steady manner, he was never known
to have caused any disgrace or undue trouble to his parents or relatives.
Having ordained as a monk, he strove relentlessly to develop firm principles
within himself and so became a spiritual refuge to monks, novices, and lay
people for the rest of his long life. He was a man whose life was a bright,
shining example from beginning to end – a life of virtue that should
definitely be considered an excellent model for people in this day and age.
His meditation methods were extremely rigorous, his spiritual development of
the highest caliber. The kilesas never had a chance to overrun his heart,
for he systematically destroyed them until not a single one remained. So
much so that he was acknowledged by his close disciples and those revering
him to be a present-day Arahant.
The spiritual benefits that he bestowed
upon the world were always in line with the principles of mindfulness and
wisdom – from the initial stages of practice to the very highest level, his
teaching never deviated from the true way of Dhamma. Internally, he was very
astute at judging the character and temperament of his students. Externally,
he was very clever in the way he gave assistance to people in every strata
of society, from simple hill tribes people to urban intellectuals. Even when
nearing death, he did not abandon his natural compassion for others. When a
student with a problem in his practice went to seek assistance, he kindly
made an effort to discuss the issue until all doubts had been allayed. All
his disciples received some piece of farewell advice from him to carry in
their hearts forever. Having been fortunate enough to meet such a supreme
individual and having wholeheartedly accepted him as their one true refuge,
they were confident that they had not lived their lives in vain. Many of his
senior disciples were able to establish themselves firmly in the principles
of Dhamma. By virtue of their own spiritual development, they also became acariyas passing on the teaching to their students, thus assuring that the
Supreme Noble wealth of the Lord Buddha does not disappear. Many of his more
junior disciples are still alive today serving as a strong base for the
sasana into the foreseeable future. Though they may not openly demonstrate
it, many of them possess excellent Dhamma credentials. Every one of these
monks was inspired by the magic quality of Acariya Mun’s compassionate
teaching.
As a teacher, Acariya Mun was unrivaled in his ability to help
develop the spiritual potential of members of the lay community, enabling
them to grasp the significance of Dhamma and the basic moral principles of
cause and effect, which are universal principles governing the world.
Spiritual development means developing the one factor that is absolutely
central to the well-being of the world. The world comes to ruin only if
people’s spiritual values come to ruin first. When spiritual values
deteriorate, then everything people do becomes just another means of
destroying the world and subverting Dhamma. When people’s hearts are well
trained in spiritual values, their speech and actions become an effective
means of promoting the world’s prosperity; so inevitably Dhamma flourishes
as well. How could people who have sincerely developed the way of Dhamma in
their hearts possibly turn around and act ruinously, showing no compunction?
Such behavior would be unnatural to them – unless of course they simply
memorize the principles of Dhamma, reciting them by heart without ever
making an effort to develop those spiritual values within their hearts.
Acariya Mun invariably made a deep impression on the people who met him.
Those who sincerely respected him were willing to offer their lives to him –
unconditionally. Whether it be matters of good or matters of evil, once such
concerns are embraced and taken to heart they then exert a powerful
influence on that person, one no other force in the world can match. Were
this not the case, people would not have the self-assurance to act upon
their intentions – be they good, or evil. It is precisely because they take
such matters to heart that they can act boldly upon them. Having assumed
this attitude, the outcome becomes inevitable. This was especially evident
among practicing monks who revered Acariya Mun. By taking the Dhamma that he
taught to heart, those monks became uncompromising in their respect for him.
The power of their belief in him was so strong that they would even dare to
sacrifice their precious lives for him. But although they could have given
their lives without difficulty, their strong faith in him was never
sacrificed. It was this extraordinary magnetic quality he possessed that so
attracted people and engendered such veneration in them, both during his
lifetime and after he passed away.
As for myself, well, I have always been a
rather hopeless individual, so my sentiments are very different from most
people’s. Although over twenty years has elapsed since his death, to me it
feels as if Acariya Mun passed away only yesterday. And though his body died
at that time, his citta seems never to have passed away. I feel he is always
here with me, helping me continually.
As a concluding chapter to his
biography, I would like to present a representative sample of the teachings Acariya Mun gave, beginning with comments he made at the onset of his final
illness and ending with his last instructions to the monks – teachings which
have continued to make a profound impression on me ever since. The Dhamma he
presented to the monks at the start of his illness took the form of a
warning to them that the illness had begun a process of uprooting the very
source of his physical existence, including all his bodily functions, which
were destined to steadily deteriorate, break down, and finally fail
altogether. He began:
“I have been investigating matters concerning the life
and death of this body for nearly sixty years now and I have found nothing
in the physical khandha that is worthy of the least attachment or that would
cause me to regret its passing away. I ceased to have doubts about such
things the moment I realized Dhamma’s Supreme Truth. Whether they exist
inside of the body or outside of it, all material substances are composed of
the same physical elements. They gradually break down and decompose with
each passing day, and thus are always reverting back to their fundamental
natural state. Although we imagine the body belonging to us, in truth it is
just a conglomeration of physical elements that are commonly found
everywhere on this earth.
“What most concerns me now is my students who have
come here from all over the country. I worry that you will not have gained a
firm basis of Dhamma in your hearts before I pass away. That is why I have
always warned you against being complacent about the kilesas, which are the
source of an endless procession of births and deaths. Never assume that the
kilesas are insignificant, or somehow harmless, and thus fail to tackle them
seriously while the time is still right. Once death overtakes you, it will
be impossible to take any action against them. Don’t say I didn’t warn you!
“Every human being and animal on this planet suffers dukkha as a matter of
course. Don’t misunderstand the cause of this suffering: it is caused by
those very kilesas that you seem to think are so insignificant and harmless.
I have examined the origins of birth, death and suffering with all the
mindfulness and wisdom at my disposal. Only one cause induces the hearts of
living beings to seek a place in the realm of birth and death experiencing
various degrees of pain and suffering, and that cause is the kilesas that
people everywhere overlook. In truth, they are the principal instigators.
All of you who have kilesas ruling over your hearts, what is your attitude?
Do you also consider them unimportant? If so, then no matter how long you
live under my guidance, you will always be like the ladle in a pot of
delicious stew. If you want to be able to taste the flavor of that stew,
then you must listen with keen interest to the Dhamma that I teach you and
fully take it to heart. Don’t act like ladles and obstruct my teaching by
failing to appreciate its value. Otherwise, you will live and die having
nothing of value to show for it. Which is worse than being animals, whose
flesh and skins are at least of some value when they die. Heedless people
are always worthless – alive or dead.
“Since this illness began, I have
reminded you constantly that I am slowly dying, day by day. When a person
transcends dukkha he is perfectly satisfied in every respect, and so he dies
free of all concerns. Forever unblemished, he has nothing further to attain,
for nothing is missing from his sense of perfect satisfaction. But someone
who dies while under the influence of the kilesas, which are never
satisfied, will find the same sense of dissatisfaction clinging to his heart
wherever he is reborn. The stronger the influence of the kilesas, the more
intense the dukkha he will suffer. Don’t imagine this or that realm of
existence will be a pleasant, joyful place to be reborn in when you die.
Such thoughts are merely an indication that craving and dissatisfaction are
disturbing your hearts before you’ve even died. Which means you are still
unwilling to view the kilesas as enemies that constantly stir up trouble in
your hearts. With that attitude, where will you ever find happiness and
contentment? If you cannot rid yourself of the desire to be reborn in the
future, then I am at a loss as to how I can help you. “Monks who have yet to
develop the calm and concentration of samadhi within themselves should not
expect to find peace and contentment in the world; instead, they will
encounter only the frustration that is hidden inside their agitated hearts.
You must hurry to remedy this situation now by developing an effective means
to counter such agitation. By being diligent, courageous, and persevering in
your struggle with the kilesas – which are always antagonistic to Dhamma –
you will soon discover the peaceful nature of genuine tranquillity arising
in your hearts. With persistence, results will come quickly; especially when
compared with the endless amount of time you have spent wandering through
samsara from one type of existence to another.
“The teachings of the Lord
Buddha are all designed for the purpose of helping those who believe what he
taught to gradually transcend dukkha, step by step, until they finally reach
the stage where they will never again return to this world of repeated birth
and death. Those who desire not to return to birth must analyze every aspect
of existence in the entire universe, from the grossest to the most subtle,
in terms of the three basic characteristics of all existence – anicca,
dukkha, and anatta – and use wisdom to thoroughly investigate each aspect
until all doubts have been eliminated. Once that happens, even strong
attachments8 that are difficult to break will evaporate and disappear in the
blink of an eye. All that’s needed to cut through those oppressive doubts is
wisdom that is sharp and incisive. In all the three worlds of existence
there is no more effective, up-to-date means for confronting the kilesas
than the combination of mindfulness and wisdom. The Lord Buddha and all the
Arahants employed mindfulness and wisdom to counteract every kind of kilesa
– no other means was used. The Lord Buddha himself endorsed the unrivaled
supremacy of mindfulness and wisdom as weapons for combating the kilesas.
This is not meant to belittle the value of other spiritual qualities, but
they perform an auxiliary role – like provisions of food used to support and
maintain the fighting strength of soldiers in battle. It is the soldiers and
their weapons, however, that are indispensable to the war effort. Soldiers
in this case means your absolute determination to never retreat in the face
of the kilesas and thus slide back into the mire of birth and death where
these defilements can ridicule you once more. The premier weapons of choice
are mindfulness and wisdom. Being effective at every level of combat, they
should always remain close at hand.
“The points in the course of your
practice where the citta gets stuck, are the points you must examine
fearlessly without concern that the intensity of your efforts to dismantle
the cycle of rebirth will somehow prove fatal. When you face the moment of
death, I want you to die victorious. Don’t allow yourself to die defeated or
else you will continue to suffer for a long time to come. You must make
every effort to fight on until samsara becomes a completely deserted place.
Try it! Is it really possible that samsara will become deserted, due to lack
of deluded people taking birth there, simply because you put forth effort in
your practice? Why are you so worried about returning to occupy a place in
samsara? You haven’t even died, yet every thought arising in your mind is
directed toward reserving a future existence for yourself. Why is that?
Whenever you reduce your efforts in practice, you are automatically working
hard to reserve a place in the continuing cycle of birth and death.
Consequently, birth and death are always bound up with your heart and your
heart is always bound up with dukkha.
“I have made every effort to teach you
the way of Dhamma, candidly revealing everything that you should know about
the Four Noble Truths and the Four Foundations of Mindfulness. I have
withheld only certain aspects of Dhamma dealing with specific kinds of
psychic perception that are not directly connected with enlightenment, such
as those special insights that I have alluded to from time to time. I am
always glad to listen to anyone who experiences such perceptions and assist
them in any way I can. Once I have died, it will be very difficult to find
someone who can advise you on these matters. You must keep in mind that the
practice of Dhamma differs considerably from the theory of Dhamma.9 Those
who have not actually attained samadhi and panna, or magga, phala, and
Nibbana, cannot possibly teach others the correct way to reach these
attainments.”
Acariya Mun concluded his pacchima ovada10 by emphasizing the
importance of sankharadhamma, just as the Lord Buddha had done in his final
instructions to the community of monks prior to his Parinibbana. Acariya
Mun began by paraphrasing the Buddha’s instructions: Monks, heed my words.
All sankhara dhammas are subject to change. They arise, evolve, decay, and
then pass away, so you should always remain diligent in your practice. He
then explained the essential meaning of this passage.
“The word ‘sankhara’
in the Lord Buddha’s pacchima ovada refers to the highest Dhamma. He
gathered together all conditioned things in the word ‘sankhara’, but he
wished at that time to emphasize the internal sankharas above all others.11
He wanted the monks to see that these sankharas are important because they
are samudaya – the cause of dukkha. They are the factors that disturb the
citta, causing it to languish in a state of delusion where it never
experiences a tranquil, independent existence. If we investigate such
sankharas – being all of our thoughts and concepts from the most vulgar to
the most refined – until we fully comprehend their true nature, they will
then come to an end. When sankharas come to an end, nothing remains to
disturb the citta. Although thoughts and ideas do still arise to some
extent, they merely follow the natural inclination of the khandhas –
khandhas that are now pure and unadulterated. They no longer conceal any
form of kilesa, tanha, or avijja. Comparing it to sleep, it is equivalent to
a deep, dreamless sleep. In this case, the citta is referred to a ‘vupasama
citta’; that is, a tranquil citta completely devoid of all remnants of the
kilesas. The citta of the Lord Buddha and those of all the Arahants were of
just such a nature, so they harbored no aspirations to attain anything
further. The moment the kilesas are extinguished within the citta, a state
of purity arises in their place. This is called sa-upadisesa-nibbana.12 That
is the precise moment when the attainment of Arahant occurs – an absolutely
amazing pure essence of mind for which no comparison can be found in all the
three worlds of existence.”
Upon reaching this point, Acariya Mun stopped
speaking and retired to rest. From that day onward he never gave another
discourse to the monks, which is why I have called it his pacchima ovada. It
is a very fitting note on which to conclude his biography.
As the author, I
have done my utmost to write a thorough and accurate account of Acariya
Mun’s life. I feel it to be a once-in-a-lifetime endeavor. I have written
down the whole story as meticulously and as eloquently as I possibly could.
Should there be any inaccuracies in what I’ve written, I trust you will
forgive my shortcomings. I have spent a considerable amount of time
attempting to record the story of his life from beginning to end. But even
if I were to continue writing for another three years, I could never
encompass it all. Although I would like to write as much as possible for the
sake of my readers who never had a chance to meet him, my ability to
recollect and transcribe the events comprising Acariya Mun’s life has now
been exhausted. Still, many people may now read his biography, learning how
he practiced and trained himself from the day of his ordination to the day
he passed away. At least the story of his life is available to the
interested reader, even though it is by no means a complete picture of
Acariya Mun and his extraordinary achievements.
In compiling this biography,
I have tried very hard to select only those aspects of his life and teaching
that I felt would be of greatest benefit to the average reader. At the same
time, I have omitted any aspect that I felt would serve no definite purpose.
Of the relevant material which was collected to write this book,
approximately seventy percent has been included in the text you’ve just
read. That much I felt was neither too deep nor too confusing for the
reader’s understanding. The remaining thirty percent was excluded because I
felt those aspects of Acariya Mun’s life and teaching would be difficult to
present in a way that’s easy to read and understand. I was concerned they
wouldn’t benefit the reader enough to justify their inclusion. Thus they
were omitted, though often with some reluctance. Even then, I’m not wholly
comfortable with some of the things I have included in the book, though they
do faithfully represent the truth of what Acariya Mun said. I managed to
resist the urge to exclude them, however; yet, I could not bring myself to
write about certain other matters, and for this reason they were left out.
Acariya Mun’s story, with all its many remarkable facets, tells of a truly
beautiful life that is full of subtlety and grace. It would certainly be
difficult finding someone to equal him nowadays. If his life were fully
narrated in every detail, then it probably would not differ significantly
from the lives of those Arahants who attained such mastery in the time of
the Buddha. Listening to him explain various aspects of Dhamma, including
the countless variety of external phenomena he contacted, I was truly amazed
by his incredible mastery. When he proclaimed that impressive Dhamma for us
to hear, it seemed as though he was speaking on behalf of the Lord Buddha
and his gifted Arahant disciples. We could almost picture the Buddha and his
disciples sitting right in front of us and bathing our hearts with the pure
waters of Dhamma.
Were I to attempt to describe each and every facet of Acariya Mun’s knowledge and understanding, I would feel ashamed of my own
inadequacies in this regard – ashamed of being a forest monk in appearance
only, a phony who has somehow encroached upon the sasana. Through my own
ignorance I might inadvertently damage his excellent reputation, which
should be preserved at all costs. Although I stated at the beginning of the
book that I intended to write in the style of the Venerable Acariyas of
antiquity, who transcribed the lives of the Lord Buddha and his Arahant
disciples, I can’t help feeling embarrassed that I am not so gifted as they
were. Nevertheless, I have done the best I could. Should this somewhat
imperfect biography fall short of your expectations, please be so kind as to
forgive my shortcomings.
It is appropriate now to bring this biography to a
close. If the account I have written contains any inaccuracies or
misrepresentations, I respectfully ask forgiveness of Acariya Mun who, like
a loving father, gave birth to my faith in Dhamma. May the power of his
all-encompassing love and compassion always bring peace and happiness to
people everywhere. May you all have sufficient faith and resources of merit
to follow in his footsteps, practicing the Dhamma that he taught to your
ultimate satisfaction. May Thailand enjoy continual, uninterrupted
prosperity and remain free of enemies and natural disasters. And may the
Thai people remain untroubled by misfortune and hardship, forever
experiencing happiness and contentment in harmony with the Buddhasasana.
Should my presentation of Acariya Mun’s life be deemed inappropriate in any
way, either in terms of the subject matter or the style in which it was
written, I do sincerely apologize. I hope you will make allowances for my
forest background, for it’s difficult to transform the natural character of
a forest monk into something eloquent and sophisticated. Though I have
attempted to present every aspect of Acariya Mun’s life in a suitable,
accurate fashion, I must confess that my own disorderly tendencies are
hopelessly incurable. In writing a book of this nature, there will
inevitably be some inconsistencies that may confuse the reader – which is
why I have been at pains to stress my shortcomings.
Before the life history
of Acariya Mun could come to a successful conclusion in my own mind, I had
to carefully contemplate the whole matter for a long time. This prompted me
to go around recording the recollections of many acariyas who have lived
with him at various times in the past. To this I added my own memories of
what he told me about his life. It took me many years to gather all the
strands of his story and weave them into a creditable whole. Be that as it
may, my often confusing style of writing, plus the fact that so many events
appear out of sequence, will probably confound the reader.
I accept full
responsibility for everything in this biography. As I feel somewhat guilty
about my own incompetence in this endeavor, I shall be glad to entertain
your critical comments. At the same time, I shall be pleased to receive any
complimentary remarks with the satisfaction of knowing that this book has
been of some small benefit to those who read it. May all the merit gained
from this work be fully credited to the readers and to those who helped to
make the book possible. Should I deserve a portion by virtue of being the
author, I ask to share it with every one of you who venerate the memory of Acariya Mun. May we all share this merit equally.
Finally, may the Supreme
Merit of the Buddha, the Dhamma, and the Sangha – plus the great virtue of Acariya Mun and whatever virtue I may possess – may everything sacred in the
world watch over and protect all my readers as well as the editors of
Srisapada Publishing. The folks at Srisapada worked tirelessly in their
efforts to bring this biography to fruition, struggling to print a
manuscript that was sent to them in numerous installments. Never once did
they complain about the difficulties and inconveniences associated with this
project or with any of the other issues on which I requested their
assistance. May they all be free of sickness and misfortune, enjoying only
prosperity and contentment now and in the future. And may their aspirations
in the sphere of Dhamma be fulfilled to their ultimate satisfaction.

October 1971
Appendix I

Answering the Skeptics
After his biography of Acariya
Mun first appeared, Acariya Maha Boowa received many inquiries and much
skepticism concerning certain aspects of Acariya Mun’s life and practice.
Most notably, he encountered criticism that, in principle, some episodes
appear to contradict specific long-held views about the mind’s pure essence
and the existential nature of the fully-enlightened Arahant. Acariya Maha
Boowa was quick to point out that the truth of Acariya Mun’s profound and
mysterious inner knowledge lies beyond the average person’s ability to grasp
with the intellect or define in a theory. In this context, he included those
students of the Pali scriptures who, believing that the written texts
comprise the sum total of all aspects of Dhamma, assert that scriptural
doctrine and convention are the only legitimate criteria for authenticating
all of the countless experiences known to Buddhist practitioners over the
ages. In order to address this issue, Acariya Maha Boowa included an
addendum to subsequent editions of the biography. The following is a summary
of his remarks:
Acariya Mun often told his disciples how he daily
experienced such an incredible variety of Dhamma within his heart that it
would be impossible to enumerate all of the things that were revealed to
him. He was constantly aware of things that he could never have imagined to
exist. The extent of his own experiences left him in no doubt that the
aspects of Dhamma that the Lord Buddha and his Arahant disciples witnessed,
from the moment they attained full enlightenment until the day they passed
away, were simply incalculable. Obviously, they must have been numerous
beyond reckoning.
Acariya Mun stated that the Dhamma inscribed in the Pali
Canon is analogous to the amount of water in a small jar; whereas the Dhamma
that is not elucidated in the scriptures is comparable to the immense volume
of water contained in all the great oceans. He felt it was a shame that no
one thought to formally transcribe the Buddha’s teachings until many
hundreds of years after his death, and the deaths of his fully-accomplished
disciples. For the most part, the nature and emphasis of the Dhamma that was
eventually written down was dictated by the particular attitudes and
opinions of those individuals who compiled the texts. For this reason, it
remains uncertain to what extent the compilations that have been passed down
to us are always an entirely accurate reflection of what the Buddha actually
taught.
Acariya Mun frequently declared to his disciples: “Personally, I
feel that the Dhamma which issued directly from the Buddha’s own lips, and
thus emanated from his pure heart, must have been absolutely amazing because
it possessed an extraordinary power to inspire large numbers of his audience
to realize the paths and fruits of his teaching with apparent ease. Such
genuine, living Dhamma, whether spoken by the Buddha or by one of his
Arahant disciples, had the power to transform those who listened, allowing
them to clearly understand its most profound meaning in a way that went
straight to the heart. As for the Tipitika, we study and memorize its
contents all the time. But has anyone attained Nibbana while learning the
texts, or while listening to recitations of the suttas? By saying this, I do
not mean to imply that the scriptures are without benefit. But, when
compared with the Dhamma that issued directly from the Buddha’s lips, it is
obvious to me which had the greater value, and the greater impact.
“Consider
my words carefully, those of you who believe that I am advocating some
false, ignoble truth. I myself wholeheartedly believe that Dhamma coming
from the Buddha’s own lips is Dhamma that forcibly uproots every type of
kilesa from the hearts of his listeners – then and there on the spot, and to
their total satisfaction. This is the same Dhamma that the Lord Buddha used
so effectively to root out the kilesas of living beings everywhere. It was
an exceptionally powerful teaching that reverberated throughout the three
worlds of existence. So, I have no intention of encouraging the Buddhist
faithful to become opinionated bookworms vainly chewing at pages of
scripture simply because they insist on holding tenaciously to the Dhamma
they have learned by rote, and thus cannot be bothered to investigate the
supreme Noble Truths that are an integral part of their very own being. I
fear that they will mistakenly appropriate the great wealth of the Lord
Buddha as their own personal property, believing that, because they have
learned his Dhamma teaching, they are therefore sufficiently wise; even
though the kilesas that are piled as high as a mountain and filling their
hearts have not diminished in the least.
“You should develop mindfulness to
safeguard yourselves. Don’t be useless scholars learning to no good purpose
and so dying in vain because you possess no Dhamma that is truly your own to
take with you. It is not my intention to in any way disparage the Dhamma
teachings of the Lord Buddha. By its very nature, Dhamma is always Dhamma,
whether it be the Dhamma existing within the heart or external aspects of
Dhamma like the Pali scriptures. Still, the Dhamma that the Buddha delivered
directly from his heart enabled large numbers of those present to attain
enlightenment every time he spoke. Now contrast that living Dhamma with the
Dhamma teachings transcribed in the Pali scriptures. We can be certain that
the Dhamma in the Lord Buddha’s heart was absolutely pure. But, since the
Buddha’s teachings were written down only long after he and his Arahant
disciples passed into total Nibbana, who knows, it may well be that some of
the transcribers’ own concepts and theories became assimilated into the
texts as well, reducing the value and sacredness of those particular aspects
accordingly.”
Such was the essence of Acariya Mun’s discourse. As to the
criticism that the Pali Canon contains no evidence to support Acariya Mun’s
assertion that deceased Arahants came to discuss Dhamma with him and
demonstrate their manner of attaining total Nibbana: If we accept that the
Tipitika does not hold a complete monopoly on Dhamma, then surely those who
practice the Buddha’s teaching correctly are entitled to know for themselves
all those aspects of Dhamma that fall within the range of their own natural
abilities, regardless of whether they are mentioned in the scriptures or
not. Consider the Lord Buddha and his Arahant disciples, for instance. They
knew and thoroughly understood Dhamma long before the Pali Canon appeared.
If these Noble individuals are truly the genuine refuge that the world
believes them to be, it is clear that they achieved that exalted status at a
time when there were no scriptures to define the parameters of Dhamma. On
the other hand, should their achievements thereby be deemed false, then the
whole body of the Pali Canon must perforce be false as well. So please
decide for yourselves whether you prefer to take the Buddha, Dhamma and
Sangha as your heartfelt refuge, or whether you want to take refuge in what
you chance to read and what you imagine to be true. But those who choose to
be indiscriminate in what they eat should beware lest a bone get stuck in
their throat….
Appendix II

Citta – The Mind’s Essential Knowing Nature.
The following comments about
the nature of the citta have been excerpted from several discourses given by
Acariya Maha Boowa.
Of foremost importance is the citta, the mind’s
essential knowing nature. It consists of pure and simple awareness: the
citta simply knows. Awareness of good and evil, and the critical judgements
that result, are merely activities of the citta. At times, these activities
may manifest as mindfulness; at other times, wisdom. But the true citta does
not exhibit any activities or manifest any conditions at all. It only knows.
Those activities that arise in the citta, such as awareness of good and
evil, or happiness and suffering, or praise and blame, are all conditions of
the consciousness that flows out from the citta. Since it represents
activities and conditions of the citta that are, by their very nature,
constantly arising and ceasing, this sort of consciousness is always
unstable and unreliable.
The conscious acknowledgement of phenomena as they
arise and cease is called vinnana. For instance, vinnana acknowledges and
registers the sense impressions that are produced when sights, sounds,
smells, tastes, and tactile sensations contact the eyes, ears, nose, tongue,
and body respectively. Each such contact between an external sense sphere
and its corresponding internal base gives rise to a specific consciousness
that registers the moment at which each interaction takes place, and then
promptly ceases at the same moment that the contact passes. Vinnana,
therefore, is consciousness as a condition of the citta. Sankhara, or
thoughts and imagination, is also a condition of the citta. Once the citta
has given expression to these conditions, they tend to proliferate without
limit. On the other hand, when no conditions arise at all, only the citta’s
inherent quality of knowing is apparent.
Still, the essential knowing of the
average person’s mind is very different from the essential knowing of an
Arahant. The average person’s knowing nature is contaminated from within.
Arahants, being khinasava, are free of all contamination. Their knowing is a
pure and simple awareness without any adulteration. Pure awareness, devoid
of all contaminants, is supreme awareness: a truly amazing quality of
knowing that bestows perfect happiness, as befits the Arahant’s state of
absolute purity. This Supreme Happiness always remains constant. It never
changes or varies like conditioned phenomena of the world, which are always
burdened with anicca, dukkha, and anatta. Such mundane characteristics
cannot possibly enter into the citta of someone who has cleansed it until it
is absolutely pure.
The citta forms the very foundation of samsara; it is
the essence of being that wanders from birth to birth. It is the instigator
of the cycle of existence and the prime mover in the round of repeated birth
and death. Samsara is said to be a cycle because death and rebirth recur
regularly according to the immutable law of kamma. The citta is governed by
kamma, so it is obliged to revolve perpetually in this cycle following
kamma’s dictates. As long as the citta remains under the jurisdiction of
kamma, this will always be the case. The citta of the Arahant is the sole
exception, for his citta has completely transcended kamma’s domain. Since he
has also transcended all conventional connections, not a single aspect of
relative, conventional reality can possibly become involved with the
Arahant’s citta. At the level of Arahant, the citta has absolutely no
involvement with anything.
Once the citta is totally pure, it simply knows
according to its own inherent nature. It is here that the citta reaches it
culmination; it attains perfection at the level of absolute purity. Here the
continuous migration from one birth to the next finally comes to an end.
Here the perpetual journey from the higher realms of existence to the lower
ones and back again, through the repetitive cycle of birth, ageing,
sickness, and death, totally ceases. Why does it cease here? Because those
hidden, defiling elements that normally permeate the citta and cause it to
spin around have been completely eliminated. All that remains is the pure
citta, which will never again experience birth and death.
Rebirth is
inevitable, however, for the citta that has yet to reach that level of
purity. One may be tempted to deny that rebirth follows death, or one may
doggedly hold to the nihilistic viewpoint that rejects all possibility of
life after death, but such convictions cannot alter the truth. One’s
essential knowing nature is not governed by speculation; nor is it
influenced by people’s views and opinions. Its preeminence within one’s own
being, coupled with the supreme authority of kamma, completely override all
speculative considerations.
As a consequence, all living beings are
compelled to move from one life to the next, experiencing both gross
incarnations, like the creatures of land, sea and air, and the more refined
incarnations of ghosts, devas and brahmas. Although the later are so
ethereal as to be invisible to the human eye, the citta has no difficulty
taking birth in their realms. The appropriate kamma is all that is required.
Kamma is the determining factor; it is the power that propels the citta on
its ceaseless journey in samsara.
The citta is something so extremely subtle
that it is difficult to comprehend what actually constitutes the citta. It
is only when the citta attains a state of meditative calm that its true
nature becomes apparent. Even experienced meditators who are intent on
understanding the citta are unable to know its true nature until they have
attained the meditative calm of samadhi.
Even though the citta resides
within the body, we are nevertheless unable to detect it. That’s how very
subtle it is. Because it is dispersed throughout the physical body, we
cannot tell which part or which aspect is actually the true citta. It is so
subtle that only the practice of meditation can detect its presence and
differentiate it from all the other aspects associated with the body.
Through the practice of meditation we can separate them out, seeing that the
body is one thing and the citta is another. This is one level of separation,
the level of the citta that is experienced in samadhi, but its duration is
limited to the time spent practicing samadhi.
At the next level, the citta
can totally separate itself from the physical body, but it cannot yet
disengage from the mental components of personality: vedana, sanna, sankhara,
and vinnana. When the citta reaches this level, one can use wisdom to
separate out the body and eventually become detached forever from the belief
that one’s body is oneself, but one is still unable to separate the mental
factors of feeling, memory, thoughts, and consciousness from the citta. By
using wisdom to investigate further, these mental factors can also be
detached from the citta. We then see clearly for ourselves – sanditthiko –
that all five khandhas are realities separate from the citta. This is the
third level of separation.
At the final level, our attention turns to the
original cause of all delusion, that extremely subtle pervasion of ignorance
we call avijja. We know avijja’s name, but we fail to realize that it is
concealed there within the citta. In fact, it permeates the citta like an
insidious poison. We cannot see it yet, but it’s there. At this stage, we
must rely on the superior strength of our mindfulness, wisdom, and
perseverance to extract the poison. Eventually, by employing the full power
of mindfulness and wisdom, even avijja can be separated from the citta.
When
everything permeating the citta has finally been removed, we have reached
the ultimate stage. Separation at this level is a permanent and total
disengagement that requires no further effort to maintain. This is true
freedom for the citta. When the body suffers illness, we know clearly that
only the physical elements are affected, so we are not concerned or upset by
the symptoms. Ordinarily, bodily discomfort causes mental stress. But once
the citta is truly free, one remains supremely happy even amid intense
physical suffering. The body and the pain are known to be phenomena separate
from the citta, so the citta does not participate in the distress. Having
relinquished them unequivocally, body and feelings can never again intermix
with the citta. This is the citta’s absolute freedom.
Being intrinsically
bright and clear, the citta is always ready to make contact with everything
of every nature. Although all conditioned phenomena without exception are
governed by the three universal laws of anicca, dukkha, and anatta, the
citta’s true nature is not subject to these laws. The citta is conditioned
by anicca, dukkha, and anatta only because things that are subject to these
laws come spinning in to become involved with the citta and so cause it to
spin along with them. However, though it spins in unison with conditioned
phenomena, the citta never disintegrates or falls apart. It spins following
the influence of those forces which have the power to make it spin, but the
true power of the citta’s own nature is that it knows and does not die. This
deathlessness is a quality that lies beyond disintegration. Being beyond
disintegration, it also lies beyond the range of anicca, dukkha, and anatta
and the universal laws of nature. But we remain unaware of this truth
because the conventional realities that involve themselves with the citta
have completely surrounded it, making the citta’s nature thoroughly conform
to theirs.
Birth and death have always been conditions of the citta that is
infected by kilesas. But, since kilesas themselves are the cause of our
ignorance, we are unaware of this truth. Birth and death are problems
arising from the kilesas. Our real problem, our one fundamental problem –
which is also the citta’s fundamental problem – is that we lack the power
needed to be our own true self. Instead, we have always taken counterfeit
things to be the essence of who we really are, so that the citta’s behavior
is never in harmony with its true nature. Rather, it expresses itself
through the kilesas’ cunning deceits, which cause it to feel anxious and
frightened of virtually everything. It dreads living, and dreads dying.
Whatever happens – slight pain, severe pain – it becomes afraid. It’s
perturbed by even the smallest disturbances. As a result, the citta is
forever full of worries and fears. And although fear and worry are not
intrinsic to the citta, they still manage to produce apprehension there.
When the citta has been cleansed so that it is absolutely pure and free of
all involvement, only then will we see a citta devoid of all fear. Then,
neither fear nor courage appear, only the citta’s true nature, existing
naturally alone on its own, forever independent of time and space. Only that
appears – nothing else. This is the genuine citta.
The term “genuine citta”
refers solely to the absolute purity, or the sa-upadisesa-nibbana, of the
Arahant. Nothing else can wholeheartedly and without reservations be called
the “genuine citta”. I myself would be embarrassed to use the term in any
other way. The term “original citta” means the original nature of the citta
that spins endlessly through the cycle of rebirth. The Buddha indicated this
when he said: “Monks, the original citta is intrinsically bright and clear,
but it becomes defiled by the commingling of the kilesas that come passing
through.”
In this sense, “original citta” refers to the origin of
conventional reality (sammuti), not the origin of Absolute Purity (parisuddhi).
When referring to the original citta, the Buddha stated: “Pabhassaramidam
cittam bhikkhave.” Pabhassara means radiant, it does not mean pure. His
reasoning is absolutely correct; it is impossible to argue against it. Had
the Buddha equated the original citta with the pure citta, one could
immediately object: “If the citta was originally pure, why then should it be
born at all?” The Arahant, who has purified his citta, is one who never
comes to birth again. If his citta were originally pure, why then would he
need to purify it? This would be the obvious objection: What reason would
there be to purify it? The radiant citta, on the other hand, can be purified
because its radiance is nothing other than the essential, true nature of
avijja. Meditators will realize this truth clearly for themselves at the
moment when the citta transcends this radiance to reach Absolute Freedom
(vimutti). Then, the radiance will no longer appear in the citta. At this
very point, one realizes the supreme truth about the citta.
Once the citta
has become so well-cleansed that it is always bright and clear, then when we
are in a quiet place, surrounded by complete silence – as in the still of
the night – even though the citta has not ‘converged’ in samadhi, the focal
point of its awareness is so exceedingly delicate and refined as to be
indescribable. This subtle awareness manifests as a radiance that extends
forth in all directions around us. We are unconscious of sights, sounds,
odors, tastes, and tactile sensations, despite the fact that the citta has
not entered samadhi. Instead, it is actually experiencing its own firm
foundation, the very basis of the citta that has been well-cleansed to the
point where a mesmerizing, majestic quality of knowing is its most prominent
feature.
Seeming to exist independent of the physical body, this kind of
extremely refined awareness stands out exclusively within the citta. Due to
the subtle and pronounced nature of the citta at this stage, its knowing
nature completely predominates. No images or visions appear there at all. It
is an awareness that stands out exclusively on its own. This is one aspect
of the citta.
Another aspect is seen when this well-cleansed citta enters
meditative calm, not thinking or imagining anything. Ceasing all activity,
all movement, it simply rests for awhile. All thought and imagination within
the citta come to a complete halt. This is called “the citta entering a
state of total calm.” Then, the citta’s essential knowing nature is all that
remains. Except for this very refined awareness – an awareness that seems to
blanket the entire cosmos – absolutely nothing else appears. For unlike a
beam of light, whose range is limited, reaching either near or far depending
on the strength of the light, the flow of the citta has no limits, no “near”
or “far”. For instance, the brightness of an electric light depends on its
wattage. If the wattage is high, it shines a long distance; if low, a short
distance. But the flow of the citta is very different. Distance is not a
factor. To be precise, the citta is beyond the conditions of time and space,
which allows it to blanket everything. Far is like near, for concepts of
space do not apply. All that appears is a very refined awareness suffusing
everything throughout the entire universe. The whole world seems to be
filled by this subtle quality of knowing, as though nothing else exists,
though things still exist in the world as they always have. The
all-encompassing flow of the citta that has been cleansed of the things that
cloud and obscure it, this is the citta’s true power.
The citta that is
absolutely pure is even more difficult to describe. Since it is something
that defies definition, I don’t know how I could characterize it. It cannot
be expressed in the same way that conventional things in general can be,
simply because it is not a conventional phenomenon. It is the sole province
of those who have transcended all aspects of conventional reality, and thus
realize within themselves that non-conventional nature. For this reason,
words cannot describe it.
Why do we speak of a “conventional” citta and an
“absolutely pure” citta? Are they actually two different cittas? Not at all.
It remains the same citta. When it is controlled by conventional realities,
such as kilesas and asavas, that is one condition of the citta. But when the
faculty of wisdom has scrubbed it clean until this condition has totally
disintegrated, the true citta, the true Dhamma, the one that can stand the
test, will not disintegrate and disappear along with it. Only the conditions
of anicca, dukkha and anatta, which infiltrate the citta, actually
disappear.
No matter how subtle the kilesas may be, they are still
conditioned by anicca, dukkha, and anatta, and therefore, must be
conventional phenomena. Once these things have completely disintegrated, the
true citta, the one that has transcended conventional reality, becomes fully
apparent. This is called the citta’s Absolute Freedom, or the citta’s
Absolute Purity. All connections continuing from the citta’s previous
condition have been severed forever. Now utterly pure, the citta’s essential
knowing nature remains alone on its own.
We cannot say where in the body
this essential knowing nature is centered. Previously, with the conventional
citta, it formed a prominent point that we could clearly see and know. For
example, in samadhi we knew that it was centered in the middle of the chest
because the knowing quality of our awareness stood out prominently there.
The calm, the brightness, and the radiance appeared to emanate conspicuously
from that point. We could see this for ourselves. All meditators whose level
of calm has reached the very base of samadhi realize that the center of
“what knows” stands out prominently in the region of the heart. They will
not argue that it is centered in the brain, as those who have no experience
in the practice of samadhi are always claiming.
But when the same citta has
been cleansed until it is pure, that center then disappears. One can no
longer say that the citta is located above or below, or that it is situated
at any specific point in the body. It is now pure awareness, a knowing
quality that is so subtle and refined that it transcends all conventional
designations whatsoever. Still, in saying that it is “exceedingly refined”,
we are obliged to use a conventional figure of speech that cannot possibly
express the truth; for, of course, the notion of extreme refinement is
itself a convention. Since this refined awareness does not have a point or a
center, it is impossible to specifically locate its position. There is only
that essential knowing, with absolutely nothing infiltrating it. Although it
still exists amid the same khandhas with which it used to intermix, it no
longer shares any common characteristics with them. It is a world apart.
Only then do we know clearly that the body, the khandhas, and the citta are
all distinct and separate realities.
Acknowledgements I would like to
acknowledge a special debt of gratitude I owe to Bhikkhu Khemasanto, who
worked for several years to prepare a translation of this biography that was
eventually entrusted to me for editing and revisions. After careful
comparison with the original Thai text, I decided to begin from scratch and
to translate the entire book myself. Bhikkhu Khemasanto’s efforts did,
however, prove to be a useful source of reference. I am also indebted to
Bhikkhu Piyadhammo who, having managed to decipher my often jumbled
handwriting, worked tirelessly to type and format the entire manuscript. And
a special thanks must go to Swe Thant, without whose careful copy-editing
and timely prompting the book would be far less polished than it is at
present. I am also extremely grateful to Mr. Chaleo Yuvittaya who generously
sponsored the entire second printing of this book and also helped to
distribute it around the world as a gift of Dhamma. May he and all who read
this book be blessed with faith in Acariya Mun, his life, and his teachings.
Endnotes

1. The Early Years
1.
The minimum age for full ordination as a Buddhist monk is 20 years. However,
boys under that age are allowed to ordain as samaneras (novices). Novices
shave their heads, wear the yellow robes, and observe the ten basic
precepts.
2. The year 2436 B. E., according to the traditional Thai
calendar.
3. An upajjhaya is the preceptor who presides over a bhikkhu’s
ordination. The kammavacariya and anusasanacariya are a new bhikkhu’s
announcing teacher and instructing teacher respectively.
4. The name Bhuridatta is found in one of the Buddha’s previous births, the last ten of
which were spent perfecting the ten parami (perfections of virtue). In his
fifth to last birth the Bodhisatta was born as a Great Naga, or Serpent
King, with the name Bhuridatta (meaning: Gift of the Earth). Weary of life
in the subterranean world of nagas, he rose to the earth’s surface where he
was captured by a snake charmer who saw an opportunity to become rich and
famous by making the majestic naga perform feats in front of the regional
monarch. Though he could have used his mystical powers to annihilate the
snake charmer in an instant, the naga Bhuridatta, who cherished his moral
virtue above all else, restrained himself, did what his “master” ordered,
and endured the humiliation. In this way, he developed the Khanti Parami
(The Virtue of Forbearance) to ultimate perfection. Its association with the
Bodhisatta makes the name Bhuridatta very auspicious, which is probably the
reason that Acariya Mun’s preceptor chose it. The word bhuri is also equated
with panna (wisdom), according to some Pali commentaries. As such,
Bhuridatta might be rendered as “A Gift of Wisdom”.
5. Jati tree is a type
of deciduous hardwood indigenous to the highland forests of Thailand’s
northeast region. The simile in Acariya Mun’s dream hinges on the word
“jati”, which is also the Pali word for “birth”.
6. A Tipitaka cabinet is a
bookcase that is specially designed to house a full printed set of the
Buddhist Canon, comprising a total of some 50 volumes.
7. The dhutangas are
a set of 13 specialized ascetic practices that Buddhist monks voluntarily
undertake. These dhutanga observances are explained in detail in the next
chapter.
8. The outer, upper, and lower robes of a Buddhist monk are the sanghati, uttarasanga, and antaravasaka respectively.
9. Kilesa is a term
that is crucial to understanding the aim of Buddhist practice because it
highlights the mind’s basic obstacle and thus indicates what needs to be
surmounted in order to make progress along the spiritual path. Kilesas, or
mental defilements, are negative psychological and emotional forces within
the hearts and minds of all living beings. They are of three basic types:
greed, hatred, and delusion. All are pollutants that contaminate the way
people think, speak, and act and thus corrupt from within the very intention
and purpose of their existence, binding them (through the inevitable
consequences of such actions) ever more firmly to the perpetual cycle of
rebirth. Their manifestations are many and varied. They include passion,
jealousy, envy, conceit, vanity, pride, stinginess, arrogance, anger,
resentment, etc., plus all sorts of more subtle variations that invariably
produce unwholesome and harmful states of mind that are responsible for so
much human misery. Kilesa-driven mental states interact and combine to
create patterns of conduct that perpetuate people’s suffering and give rise
to all of the world’s disharmony.
10. The citta is the mind’s essential
knowing nature, the fundamental quality of knowing that underlies all
sentient existence. In association with a physical body, it is referred to
as “mind” or “heart”. Normally, the “knowing nature” of the citta is
timeless, boundless, and radiant, but its true nature is obscured from
within by mental defilements (kilesa). Through the power of fundamental
ignorance (avijja), its currents “flow out” to manifest as feelings
(vedana), memory (sanna), thoughts (sankhara), and consciousness (vinnana).
But, the true nature of the citta simply “knows”. It does not arise or pass
away; it is never born and never dies. In this book the citta is often
referred to as the heart; the two are synonymous. The heart forms the core
within the body. It is the center, the substance, the primary essence within
the body. It is the basic foundation. Conditions that arise from the citta,
such as thoughts, arise there. Goodness, evil, happiness, and suffering all
come together in the heart. There is a strong tendency to think that
consciousness results purely from complex interactions within the human
brain, and that when the brain dies, consciousness ceases. This mechanistic
view is wholly mistaken. While there is evidence that certain parts of the
brain can be identified with certain mental functions, that does not mean
that the brain produces consciousness. In essence, the brain is a complex
processing organ. It receives and processes incoming data impulses that
inform about feelings, memory, thoughts, and consciousness, but it does not
generate these mental functions; nor does it generate conscious awareness.
That is entirely the province of the citta. (for a more detailed discussion
see Appendix II) (also see Glossary)
11. When the citta (mind) gathers all
of its outflowing currents into one point, this is known as the citta
‘converging’. Under the power of the kilesas, currents of consciousness flow
from the citta into its various manifestations (feelings, memory, thoughts,
and consciousness) and through them into the sense media (sights, sounds,
smells, tastes, and tactile sensations). The practice of samadhi meditation
is a method for concentrating these diverse currents into one focal point,
thus centering the citta into a condition of complete stillness and calm.
This does not mean that the mind is straining to concentrate on one point,
but rather that it is concentrated in the sense that everything has “come
together to center in one place.” In this way, the citta becomes fully
absorbed within itself. The resulting experience is a feeling of pure and
harmonious being that is so wondrous as to be indescribable.
12. An uggaha
nimitta is an image that arises spontaneously in the course of meditation.
13. A home-made umbrella that serves as a tent-like shelter when suspended
from the branch of a tree. A specially sewn sheet of cloth is hung around
the outside edge of the open umbrella, extending down to the ground and
forming a cylindrical inner space where a monk can sit in meditation or lie
down to rest with adequate protection from mosquitoes and other insects,
and, to some extent, the wind and rain.
14. Samicikamma
15. Dukkha is the
condition of fundamental discontent that is inherent within the very nature
of all sentient existence. Depending on its degree of severity, dukkha is
experienced as pain and discomfort, discontent and unhappiness, or suffering
and misery. Essentially, it is the underlying sense of dissatisfaction that
ultimately undermines even the most pleasant experiences, for everything in
the phenomenal world is subject to change and therefore unreliable. Thus all
of samsaric existence is characterized by dukkha. The wish to relieve this
unsatisfactory condition constitutes the starting point of Buddhist
practice. Eliminating its causes (the kilesas), and thus transcending
dukkha, is the primary aim of a Buddhist monk.
16. Paccavekkhana: Patisankha
yoniso…etc. A monk is taught to wisely reflect on his requisites, such as
food, not as ends in themselves, but as tools in the training of the mind;
and to develop an attitude of contentment with whatever he receives. He is
taught to contemplate food as follows: “Reflecting appropriately, he uses
alms food, not playfully, or for intoxication, not for putting on weight, or
for beautification; but simply for the survival and continuance of the body,
for ending its afflictions, and for supporting the spiritual life, thinking,
‘Thus will I destroy old feelings (of hunger) and not create new feelings
(from overeating). I will maintain myself, be blameless, and live in
comfort’.”
17. Patikkula. This is a reference to the inherently disgusting,
repulsive nature of all food. Once chewed in the mouth, even the most
eye-appealing dishes become a disgusting mess. Even more so is the food in
the stomach, which is being digested and broken down into its constituent
elements. This is the true nature of food.
18. Acariya Sao Kantasilo
(1859-1942) was a native of Ubon Ratchathani province. As Acariya Mun’s
teacher, he introduced him to the dhutanga kammatthana way of life. Between
rainy season retreats, Acariya Mun went wandering with Acariya Sao,
searching out forest sanctuaries suitable for meditation. Together they have
been credited with reviving the dhutanga lifestyle of the wandering ascetic
in the Northeast region of Thailand.
19. A Paccekabuddha, or Private Buddha,
is one who, like a Buddha, has attained Enlightenment without the benefit of
a teacher, but who lacks the capacity to effectively teach others.
Therefore, he does not proclaim this truth to the world. A Paccekabuddha is
described as someone who is frugal of speech and who cherishes solitude.
20. Upacara samadhi, or access concentration, is the intermediate level of
samadhi which precedes the complete stillness of full absorption (appana
samadhi). At this level, the citta may actively engage with a variety of
internal and external phenomena without losing its fundamental inward focus.
21. Chao Khun Upali (Jan Sirichando, 1856-1932) was born at a village in
Ubon Ratchathani province not far from Acariya Mun’s native village.
Ordained a monk in 1878, he was later appointed administrative head of the
Sangha for the Northeast region. In 1904 he became the abbot of Wat
Boromaniwat Monastery in Bangkok. Chao Khun Upali was a renowned Buddhist
scholar who always endeavored to put the theory of Dhamma into practice. Due
to a close personal rapport and a respect for his wise counsel, Acariya Mun
considered him a mentor and always sought him out when he traveled to
Bangkok.
22. This is a reference to the sanna khandha: one of the mental
components of personality which is associated with the function of memory;
for instance, recognition, association, and interpretation. Sanna both
recognizes the known and gives meaning and significance to all of one’s
personal perceptions. Through recollection of past experience, the function
of memory gives things specific meanings and then falls for its own
interpretations of them, causing one to become either sad or glad about what
one perceives.
23. This is a reference to the sankhara khandha: one of the
mental components of personality which is associated with thought and
imagination. Sankhara are the thoughts that constantly form in the mind and
conceptualize about one’s personal perceptions. Sankhara creates these ideas
and then hands them on to sanna, which interprets and elaborates on them,
making assumptions about their significance.
24. Terrestrial or rukkha devas
are a special class of nonhuman beings who inhabit a realm of sensuous
existence immediately above the human realm. Also known as bhumma devas
because of their natural affinity with the earth, these beings normally
“inhabit” the uppermost foliage of large trees, a group or “family” of them
often living together in a cluster in one tree. Birth in this realm is a
consequence of certain kinds of wholesome, meritorious actions, combined
with a strong attachment to the earth plane. Although their existence has a
substantive, physical base (the earth), the bodies of these devas have no
gross material characteristics. A rukkha deva is composed of ethereal light,
which is beyond the range of the human senses but clearly visible to the
divine eye of the meditator. It seems that the majority of devas who visited
Acariya Mun during his career as a wandering monk were from this terrestrial
realm, for remote wilderness areas have always been their preferred habitat.
25. A savaka is a direct disciple of the Lord Buddha who hears the Buddha’s
teaching and declares him to be his teacher.
26. Samadhi nimitta is a
sensory image that appears in the citta at the level of upacara samadhi
(access concentration). The message, in the case of the savaka Arahants, is
communicated telepathically by means of the heart’s own universal language:
a direct, non-verbal communication in which the essence of the meaning
appears unambiguously in its entirety, allowing no room for misunderstanding
or misconception to occur. Not obscured by conjecture or interpretation, the
“listener” intuitively “knows” the whole meaning as it is conveyed.
27. A samana is a contemplative who abandons the conventional obligations of
social life in order to follow a life of spiritual striving. At the time of
the Buddha, a samana was considered to embody the ideal of the wandering
ascetic.
28. An Anagami, or Non-returner, is a person who has abandoned the
five lower fetters that bind the mind to the cycle of rebirth, and who after
death will appear in one of the worlds called the Pure Abodes, to eventually
attain Nibbana and thus never again to return to this world. The five lower
fetters are: 1) personality view (sakkayaditthi) 2) skeptical doubt (vicikiccha)
3) wrong attitude toward precepts and vows (silabbataparamasa) 4)sensual
desire (kamaraga) 5) aversion (patigha) 29. Paticcasamuppada, or Dependent
Origination, is a concise statement of how fundamental ignorance (avijja)
conditions the rise of the whole cycle of repeated existence.
2. The Middle
Years
1. Acariya Singh Khantayakhamo (1888-1961). Ordained in 1909, Acariya
Singh first met Acariya Mun in 1919 at Wat Burapha in Ubon Ratchathani.
Acariya Singh was studying the Buddhist scriptures at a nearby monastery at
the time. He was so impressed by the clarity of Acariya Mun’s discourses and
the serenity of his manner that he left his academic studies to go wandering
dhutanga with Acariya Mun. He later became a central figure helping to
establish the dhutanga way of life among monks in the provinces of Khon Kaen
and Nakhon Ratchasima.
2. Acariya Maha Pin Pannaphalo (1892-1946). Ordained
in 1912, Acariya Maha Pin spent the first 10 years of his monastic career
studying the Buddhist scriptures in Bangkok, eventually earning a degree (Maha)
in Pali studies. In 1922 he returned to Ubon Ratchathani where his brother,
Acariya Singh, convinced him to try the dhutanga lifestyle. Acariya Maha Pin
was the first scholastic monk of Maha grade to become a disciple of Acariya
Mun.
3. Acariya Thet Thesarangsi (1902-1994). Having ordained as a novice at
the age of 18 with the help of Acariya Singh, Acariya Thet took higher
ordination in 1922. After living and practicing with Acariya Singh for many
years, in 1933 Acariya Thet traveled to Chiang Mai in search of Acariya Mun.
He wandered and practiced meditation with Acariya Mun and other dhutanga
monks for 5 years before returning to settle in the Northeast.
4. Acariya
Fan Ajaro (1898-1977). Having initially ordained as a novice, then as a
monk, Acariya Fan first met Acariya Mun in 1920 when the latter came to stay
near his home village in Sakon Nakhon. Acariya Mun’s clear articulation of
the Dhamma impressed him, inspiring him to follow the dhutanga way of life.
In 1926 he followed Acariya Mun to Ubon Ratchathani where he helped to
establish several forest monasteries in the succeeding years. After a life
of extensive wandering, Acariya Fan eventually settled at a monastery in his
home district in Sakon Nakhon.
5. Acariya Khao Analayo (1888-1983). Ordained
in Ubon Ratchathani at the age of 31, having already had a wife and family,
Acariya Khao wandered over much of the Northeast in search of Acariya Mun,
whom he eventually met up with in Nong Khai province. He later followed
Acariya Mun to Chiang Mai and spent many years with him there. In his
frequent encounters with wild animals, Acariya Khao was known to have a
special affinity for elephants.
6. Yakkhas (ogres) are a special class of
powerful nonhuman beings who often have cruel and murderous temperaments.
7. Wat Pa Baan Taad, the author’s forest monastery in Udon Thani province,
was established in 1955.
8. The Four Foundations of Mindfulness are: 1) body
(rupa) 2) feelings (vedana) 3) states of mind (citta) 4) mental phenomena
(dhamma).
9. The Four Noble Truths are: 1) suffering (dukkha) 2) the cause
of suffering (samudaya) 3) the cessation of suffering (nirodha) 4) the path
leading to the cessation of suffering (magga).
10. “When we are taught to
visit a cemetery, we should never neglect the inner cemetery. Even if we
visit a cemetery outside, the purpose is to reflect inwardly on the inner
cemetery – our own body. Dried corpses, fresh corpses, raw corpses, cooked
corpses, all kinds of corpses are gathered together in this body, but I’ve
never heard the place where they are barbecued, roasted, and stewed called a
crematorium. Instead it’s called a kitchen. But actually, that’s what it is,
a crematorium for animals. And they are all buried here in this stomach,
this grave. If we look at ourselves in all fairness, with impartiality, we
see that we are a burial ground for all kinds of animals – yes, us! –
because we’re filled with corpses old and new. Once we have contemplated in
this way, if we don’t feel disenchanted, if we don’t feel disengaged, what
will we feel? – for that’s the way the truth actually is.” – comments by Acariya Maha Boowa
11. Mara represents the personification of evil and
temptation, and by extension, a personification of the insidious hold which
the senses have on the mind. Ensnared by Mara one remains lost in the world
and fails to find the path that leads to the cessation of suffering.
12. In
the past, cemeteries were not like they are today. An open stretch of ground
well outside the village was set aside for disposing of the dead. Corpses
were cremated out in the open on pyres made of firewood, and the charred
skeletal remains were left scattered around the area.
13. This is a
reference to the sanna khandha, one of the mental components of personality
which is associated with the function of memory; as for instance,
recognition, association, and interpretation. When thoughts (sankhara) are
formed in the mind, sanna immediately defines and then interprets them from
various angles. This is where one gets deluded. The mind falls for its own
assumptions – its own shadows – which paint pictures that constantly delight
or upset it. The mind is deceived by its own shadows (sanna) into feeling
happy or sad, frightened or worried. Such emotional turmoil is caused simply
by the mind painting pictures to delude itself. Because the monk in this
story had the idea of ghosts firmly fixed in his mind, his perceptions were
then instinctively interpreted in that way. He assumed an external threat,
but in fact was haunted by the shadows lurking in his own mind.
14. A monk’s 8 basic requisites are: his three principal robes, alms bowl,
belt, razor, needle, and water filter.
15. The Patimokkha is the basic code of monastic
discipline. It comprises 227 rules of conduct and is usually recited rule by
rule before an assembly of monks once every fortnight.
16. The First Sangha
Council was held during the rainy season retreat immediately following the
Lord Buddha’s Parinibbana for the purpose of officially codifying the entire
body of his teachings. All of the 500 monks scheduled to attend were
fully-enlightened Arahants – except the Venerable Ananda. Before his passing
away, the Buddha had predicted that Venerable Ananda, his personal
attendant, would attain full enlightenment in time to participate in the
First Council, which he did – on the very morning the council was scheduled
to convene.
17. “Fundamental ignorance (avijja) conditions the arising of
conditioned phenomena (sankhara)… such is the origin of this entire mass of
suffering (dukkha).” This is an abbreviated sequence of the factors of
Dependent Origination (paticcasamuppada), progressing from cause to effect.
18. “With the remainderless fading and cessation of fundamental ignorance
(avijja) comes the cessation of conditioned phenomena (sankhara)… such is
the cessation of this entire mass of suffering (dukkha).” This is an
abbreviated sequence of the cessation of those factors.
19. Ragatanha is
usually translated as “sexual desire” or “lust”. Predicted on the belief
that the body is oneself and that happiness can be achieved for oneself
through bodily sensations, ragatanha is the desire, even craving, to seek
pleasure and self-gratification by means of the physical body. With this
mental defilement as the driving force, most people attempt to overcome
discontent and find fulfillment using physical stimulation as the primary
means. If such craving is allowed a free rein, it easily becomes a
preoccupation that gives rise to even more craving, leaving the heart
forever hungry and dissatisfied. For lust is a hunger that no amount of
gluttony can satiate. The harder one tries to find satisfaction in this way,
the more one suffers the consequences. This deep-rooted sexual drive is the
main fetter binding living beings to the Sensuous World (Kama-loka). But, as
Acariya Mun points out here, ragatanha also has another more sinister side,
for passionate intentions can easily become aggressive and violent. Thus,
united in a passion for physical stimulation, the kilesas of greed and
aversion join forces in the guise of ragatanha, which strives to assuage its
insatiable hunger by dominating and exploiting others. In this way, passion
for sex and lust for power are two aspects of the same fundamental craving.
The thirst for war and murder, the thirst for torture and all forms of
abuse, all have their roots in ragatanha. As such, ragatanha is a primary
factor governing birth in the sub-human realms (demons, ghosts, animals, and
hells).
20. The sphere of conventional reality (sammuti) includes all
conditioned phenomena without exception. That is, all phenomena
characterized by being impermanent (anicca), bound up with suffering
(dukkha), and not-self (anatta) are relative, conventional realities. Only
Nibbana is completely beyond the sphere of conventional reality.
21. Sugato,
meaning “well-gone” or “gone to a good destination”, is a frequently used
epithet for the Buddha.
22. Sadhu, meaning “it is well”, is an exclamation
expressing appreciation or approval.
23. Samadhi’s access level is upacara
samadhi. It is the level that precedes the complete stillness of full
absorption (appana samadhi). At this level the citta may engage with
external phenomena, such as devas, without losing its fundamental inward
focus.
24. “The Venerable Acariya Mun taught that all hearts share the same
language. Regardless of one’s language or nationality, the heart has nothing
but simple awareness, which is why he said that all hearts have the same
language. When a thought arises, we understand it; but in translating it
into words, it must become this or that language, so we don’t really
understand one another. The feelings within the heart, however, are the same
for everyone. This is why Dhamma fits the heart perfectly, for Dhamma is not
any particular language. Dhamma is the language of the heart.” – comments by
Acariya Maha Boowa
25. The attainment of Nibbana is the ultimate goal of the
holy life (brahma-cariya).
26. The Pali word vasana, variously translated as
“inherent virtuous tendencies” or “resources of merit”, refers to virtues
developed in past lives which then become part of an individual’s ongoing
spiritual legacy that is experienced in the present life. It is a common
belief among Buddhists that those who feel a strong inclination to ordain as
monks and practice meditation must have cultivated Buddhist practices in
their previous lives, and therefore have available to them a store of
accumulated virtue that they can fall back on. Some rely on these presumed
inherent tendencies to ensure their continued progress. Acariya Mun is
insisting here that only diligent effort at the practice in a suitable
environment can truly ensure spiritual progress.
27. “As for Dhamma, which
is the path that the Lord Buddha taught us to follow, its basis is faith (saddha)
– in other words, faith that following the path will bring us good results –
and diligent effort (viriya) to make us persistent in our attempt to
earnestly follow that path. Mindfulness (sati) is what guides our efforts
along the path. Concentration (samadhi) is firmness of the heart as it
progresses along the path, in addition to being food for the journey – in
other words, the spiritual peace and happiness that we enjoy along the way
before we reach the goal. And wisdom (panna) is the circumspection needed to
follow the path step by step from beginning to end. All of these qualities
support us and encourage us to stay on the right path. When we have these
five qualities – faith, diligent effort, mindfulness, concentration and
wisdom – constantly with us, there is no doubt that the right results will
clearly appear as our reward, in line with our strength and abilities. If we
develop these five qualities so that they are powerful within our hearts,
then the results that the Lord Buddha declared to be lying at the end of the
path – release from suffering and Nibbana – will not be able to elude us,
for all of these qualities aim at just those results.” – comments by Acariya
Maha Boowa
28. Generosity (dana), moral virtue (sila), and meditative
development (bhavana) are the three basic categories of meritorious activity
taught by the Buddha.
29. Mindfulness of breathing (anapanasati) is
practiced by focusing one’s attention on the in-and-out breaths at the spot
where the sensation of the breath passing in and out appears most prominent.
One is mindful each time the breath comes in and each time it goes out until
one gradually becomes absorbed in the subtle feeling of the breath to the
exclusion of everything else.
30. “Buddho”, “dhammo”, “sangho” are
meditation-words used to hold the mind’s attention. When focusing on the
repetition of “buddho”, for example, one mentally repeats the word “buddho”
continuously while meditating. Simply be aware of each repetition of
“buddho, buddho, buddho” to the exclusion of all else. Once it becomes
continuous, this simple repetition will produce results of peace and calm in
the heart.
31. This is a contemplation on the nature of the human body.
Using kesa (hair of the head), loma (hair of the body), nakkha (nails),
danta (teeth), and taco (skin) as its most visible aspects, one analyzes the
body according to its constituent parts (of which
32 body parts are traditionally cited). Each part is analyzed in turn, back
and forth, until one specific part captures one’s interest. Then one focuses
exclusively on an investigation into that body part’s true nature.
32. Meditation on death
(marananussati) is a reflection on the nature of death and its implications
for oneself. One contemplates how all beings on this earth are subject to
death: having been born, we get old and sick and then we die; and one sees
that it is a completely natural process. One realizes that nobody knows
when, where, or under what circumstances death will occur, or what kind of
fate one can expect after death; and that life is very short and one’s time
here is limited, so one should make the most of it. Continuous contemplation
of death inspires diligence in the way of practice, while developing
detachment toward the affairs of the world.
33. Paracittavijja, also known
as ceto-pariya-nana, is knowledge of the hearts and minds of others; in
other words, thought-reading and telepathy.
34. In momentary (khanika)
samadhi the citta ‘converges’ into a still calm state for only a moment
before withdrawing on its own. This is the initial stage of samadhi. In
access (upacara) samadhi the citta ‘converges’ into a prolonged state of
calm and stillness which is at the same time a state of enhanced awareness
concerning internal and external phenomena that make contact with the
internal and external sense bases. At the access level, normal thought
processes (the inner dialogue) are temporarily suspended, while powers of
perception are heightened. This is the intermediate stage of samadhi. In
full-absorption (appana) samadhi the citta completely ‘converges’ into the
very base of samadhi. Perceptions of body and mind totally disappear from
awareness at that time, leaving only the “knowing nature” of the citta alone
on its own. Clear, bright, and expansive, the citta simply “knows”. There is
no object, no duality, just “knowing”. This is the advanced stage of
samadhi.
35. This is the ultimate stage of body contemplation (kayagatasati)
where both the body’s attractive aspects (subha) and its repulsive aspects (asubha)
are fully comprehended for what they really are and successfully surpassed.
This happens with the clear realization that both attractiveness and
repulsiveness are a matter of the citta deceiving itself.
36. An upasika is
a female devotee who wears white robes and strictly follows the standard 8
precepts. She is the modern-day equivalent of a Buddhist nun.
3. A Heart
Released
1. Chao Khun Upali (Jan Sirichando, 1856-1932) The abbot of Wat
Boromaniwat Monastery in Bangkok, Chao Khun Upali was a renown Buddhist
scholar who always strove to put the theory of Dhamma into practice. Due to
a close personal rapport and a respect for his wise counsel, Acariya Mun
considered him a mentor and always sought him out whenever he traveled to
Bangkok.
2. The nama khandhas are the four mental components of personality:
feelings (vedana), memory (sanna), thoughts (sankhara), and consciousness (vinnana).
They are all simply natural phenomena that continuously arise and pass away.
Since no substantial and continuous self-entity can be found anywhere in
these mental phenomena, they are said to be anatta (not-self).
3. A
theoretical understanding acquired from memory (sanna) greatly differs from
a genuine understanding based on wisdom (panna). In this context, sanna
means the knowledge gained from studying the theories and commentaries
pertaining to Buddhist practice, that is, academic learning. On its own,
such intellectual comprehension is quite inadequate, for it relies on views
and opinions, which lead to speculation and guesswork. One can remember
names and descriptions of all the factors of Dhamma, for instance, but one
cannot discover the truth of those factors within oneself. Panna, on the
other hand, is a clear intuitive insight gained by directly probing,
investigating, and analyzing the various factors that arise during
meditation in light of principles of reason until their cause-and-effect
relationships become clearly apparent. Such intuitive understanding, while
not at odds with the theory of Dhamma, carries with it the certainty of
direct personal experience, which can confidently be applied to help solve
the next set of problems that arises in meditation practice.
4. Sanditthiko
means self-evident; immediately apparent; visible here and now. It is a
traditional epithet for the Dhamma.
5. Literally, “a pool of understanding”
(Thai: Nong Aw. The Thai word aw is an oral inflection used to signify that
one has just awakened to a true understanding of a certain matter, as in
“Ah! So this is how it is!”). In Acariya Mun’s case, it might be phrased
“Ah! So this is how the Buddha attained Enlightenment!”
6. Paticcasamuppada
(referred to in the text as paccayakara) is Dependent Origination: a concise
statement of how fundamental ignorance (avijja) conditions the rise of the
whole cycle of repeated existence.
7. Visuddhidhamma, meaning “Dhamma of
Absolute Purity”, is a synonym for Nibbana.
8. Sukhavihara-dhamma (or
ditthadhamma sukhavihara). Of an Arahant: Living happily, at ease in the
sensory world until he finally passes away.
9. The vatta-cakka is the cycle
of rebirth, which “spins” around continuously like a “wheel”. With the
destruction of the vatta-cakka, the vivatta-citta (the citta that has
stopped “spinning”) is fully realized.
10. Vimuttidhamma, meaning “Dhamma of
Absolute Freedom”, is another synonym for Nibbana.
11. The 5 khandhas, or
aggregates (body, feelings, memory, thoughts, and consciousness), are the
physical and mental components of personality and of sensory experience in
general. Normally, the khandhas are the “tools” that the kilesas use to
construct and maintain the world of samsara. Once the kilesas have been
eliminated, the khandhas continue to function naturally, as they always
have. However, since the defiling influences of the kilesas are no longer
present to dictate their activities, they then work solely at the command of
Dhamma. The 5 khandhas remain components of an Arahant’s personality for as
long as he lives; when he finally passes away, his citta no longer has any
connection with the 5 khandhas.
12. Yathadipo ca nibbuto means “extinguished
like the flame of a lamp.” This is a reference to the Nibbana of an Arahant
after his passing away. Another analogy compares it to an extinguished fire
whose embers are cold.
13. Here Acariya Mun contrasts relative, conventional
reality (sammuti) with Absolute Freedom (vimutti). The citta, the mind’s
essential knowing nature, has been dominated by fundamental ignorance
(avijja) since time immemorial. This fundamental ignorance has created
within the citta a center or focal point of the knower. The existence of
that false center engenders an individual perspective which is the nucleus
of self-identity. This “self” forms perceptions of duality (the knower and
the known) and from there awareness flows out to produce the world of the 5
khandhas and of all sensory experience, which in turn reinforce the knower’s
sense of individuality. It all begins with the currents of the citta, which
flow out to create the entire sensory world, the world of conditioned
phenomena. Because of this, it is said that all physical and mental
phenomena are relative, conventional realities (sammuti). They exist only
relative to the knower, the one who perceives them. As such they are merely
conventions that the citta has brought into being and given a subjective
identity to in order to experience its own manifestations. In turn, these
manifestations become incorporated into the citta’s sense of its own
identity. Thus the known becomes indistinguishable from the knower, and
duality comes full circle, trapping the citta in a web of self-delusion. The
citta is reduced to depending on its manifestations to assess the nature of
its own existence. When fundamental ignorance has been destroyed, the focal
point of the knower disintegrates, which causes the “self” perspective to
disappear from the citta altogether. With the disappearance of
self-identity, all manifestations of the citta, all relative, conventional
realities, are divested of their power to deceive and no longer appear
within the citta. Although they do continue to play a role, in the form of
the 5 khandhas, as long as the Arahant remains alive, they are no longer
incorporated into the citta’s identity and have no part in conditioning its
outlook. This is called vimutti – absolute freedom from all conditions. No
conditions whatsoever exist for this freedom.
14. Nong Aw. Literally, “a
pool of understanding”. (see Note #5 of this section)
15. A visuddhi-deva is
a being made divine by the purity of his attainment, that is, an Arahant.
16. Dhammapada verse 354: The gift of Dhamma surpasses all gifts, The taste
of Dhamma surpasses all tastes, Delight in Dhamma transcends all delights,
Freedom from craving ends all suffering.
17. Spiritual partner. Literally,
“one’s partner in developing the spiritual perfections (parami)”. Most
living beings have an individual, usually of the opposite sex, with whom
they have maintained an intimate, personal relationship spanning countless
lifetimes over many eons of existence. Life after life, those couples who
share a deep spiritual commitment will reconnect and renew their
relationship, assisting each other to develop one or another aspect of
spiritual perfection. Such a devoted companion is considered to be essential
for the eons-long quest to become a fully-enlightened Buddha, as Gautama
Buddha’s own story illustrates: In a past eon of the world, as a
forest-dwelling ascetic named Sumedha, he threw himself at the feet of an
earlier Buddha, Dipankara, and resolved to become a Buddha himself in the
future. As he made this vow, a young woman bearing incense and flowers
stepped forth joyously to congratulate him. He immediately rejected her
support, saying that as a forest-dwelling ascetic he was determined to live
alone. Dipankara Buddha then cautioned the young ascetic, telling him that
every aspirant to Buddhahood had a spiritual companion (pada-paricarika) who
was his inseparable partner throughout the long, arduous journey to
perfection. After that, through countless lives, the Bodhisatta and his
spiritual partner labored and sacrificed together for the benefit of other
living beings as they traveled the Path of Awakening.
18. Knowledge of
wisdom (pannanana). This is a reference to the sixth and last of the
“special knowledges” (abinna): knowledge of the total extinction of the
citta’s “outflows” (asavakhayanana), and signifies the attainment of
Nibbana.
19. The brahmaviharas are the four “sublime” or “divine” abodes
that are developed through the practices of loving kindness (metta),
compassion (karuna), appreciative joy (mudita) and equanimity (upekkha).
Meditation on these four spiritual qualities is particularly beneficial as
an antidote to hatred and anger.
20. All four brahmaviharas – loving
kindness, compassion, appreciative joy, and equanimity are included in this
statement.
21. Originally, savaka meant a direct disciple of the Buddha –
one who attained enlightenment after hearing the Buddha teach. In Acariya
Mun’s case, he renounced his previous determination to become a Buddha in
the future in order to practice the existent teaching of a Buddha and thus
become an enlightened “disciple” instead.
22. The asavas are mental
pollutants that “flow out” from the mind to create a “flood” of repetitive
birth and death cycles.
23. The minimum age for ordaining as a Buddhist monk
is 20 years. However, boys under that age are allowed to ordain as novices (samanera).
Novices shave their heads, wear the yellow robes, and observe ten basic
precepts. Although no specific minimum age for novices is mentioned in the
scriptures, traditionally in Thailand boys as young as seven are accepted.
This tradition follows the story of the Lord Buddha’s son, Rahula, who was
allowed to become a novice at the age of seven.
24. Literally, vatta-dukkha,
the pain and suffering experienced in the round of samsara.
25. For
relative, conventional realities (sammuti) see Note #13 of this section.
26. Anupadisesa-nibbana, meaning “Nibbana without any remaining physical or
mental components of personality (i. e. the 5 khandhas ) ”, is the total
Nibbana of the Arahant after he has passed away.
27. A nimitta is a mental
sign, image, or vision that arises spontaneously in the citta.
28. In light
of widely-held views about Nibbana, one would do well to keep in mind that
the unconditioned (asankhata) nature of Nibbana naturally implies that
absolutely no conditions or limitations whatsoever can be attributed to
Nibbana. To believe that, having passed away, the Buddhas and the Arahants
are completely beyond any possibility of interacting with the world is to
place conditions on the Unconditioned. (see Appendix I, page 457)
29. Sammodaniyadhamma
literally means, “the courtesy of exchanging friendly greetings”.
30. Samicikamma
31. Visuddhidhamma, meaning “Dhamma of Absolute Purity”, is a synonym
for Nibbana.
32. Seniority within the Sangha is based on the date of a monk’s ordination
and the number of consecutive rainy season retreats he has spent in the
robes.
33. Heartwood from the jackfruit tree, a fruit tree indigenous
to much of South and Southeast Asia, is boiled to bring out the
yellowish-brown color, which is then used to dye a monk’s robes.
4. The
Chiang Mai Years
1. Sundara Samudda was an Arahant at the time of the Buddha
who thwarted a courtesan’s seductions and attained Enlightenment. Tradition
has it that he floated up and out a window in the top of her house to escape
her advances. (Theragatha VII.1)
2. That is to say, penetrating realization
of the Path to Enlightenment (magga-nana) had destroyed the king (avijja) of
the citta caught in the perpetual cycle of rebirth (vatta-citta).
3. Thai-style kick boxing is a sport where the feet, knees, and elbows, as
well as the fists, are used to fight and subdue an opponent.
4. That is, Acariya Mun used both samadhi nimittas and his ability to read other’s
thoughts (paracittavijja) to equally good effect in teaching his students.
5. This passage refers to nirodhasamapatti, also called
sanna-vedayitanirodha (the cessation of consciousness and feeling), the
highest and most profound of all the samadhi attainments. All conditioned
phenomena are, by their very nature, conventional realities (sammuti). Since
anicca (constant change), dukkha (unsatisfactoriness), and anatta (not-self)
are the basic characteristics inherent in all conditioned phenomena, anicca,
dukkha, and anatta are therefore part and parcel of the nature of all
conventional realities (see Note #13, page 482). Upon the attainment of
nirodhasamapatti, all such phenomena, including the
5 khandhas and the sense
bases, temporarily cease to appear within the knowing nature of the citta
which has reached that attainment.
6. The terms vimutti-citta and visuddhi-citta
(the absolutely free and absolutely pure citta) are synonymous with the
Arahant, who has completely transcended every aspect of conventional reality
(sammuti).
7. A specially sewn sheet of cloth was hung around the outside
edge of the open umbrella, which extended down to the ground forming a
cylindrical inner space where a monk could sit or lie down and receive some
moderate protection from the wind and rain.
8. That is, Acariya Mun was a
visuddhi puggala (pure one) and a punnakkhettam lokassa (a field of merit
for the world), both traditional epithets for the Arahant.
9. Sugato,
meaning “well-gone” or “gone to a good destination”, is a traditional
epithet for the Buddha.
10. Acariya Fan Ajaro was the monk visited by the
author on that occasion.
11. Puthujjana is the ordinary worldly person who
lacks any special Dhamma attainment.
12. Conquer anger with lack of anger is
taken from Dhammapada verse 223: Conquer anger with lack of anger, Conquer
evil with good. Overcome stinginess by being generous, And lies by telling
the truth.
13. This story was related to the author by Acariya Maha Thong
Sak himself.
14. Acariya Mun was referring to the image of the calf lodged
under its mother’s neck: it appeared as though it was trying to carry her on
its back.
15. Maw lam, also known as “folk opera”, was a popular form of
village entertainment in the Northeast region of Thailand. Maw lam takes the
form of a contest in extemporaneous rhyming, usually performed on a public
stage between a man and a woman, in which the battle of wits can become
quite fierce. Much use is made of word play: riddles, puns, innuendoes,
metaphors, and simply playing with the sounds of words. The verses are made
up as the singers go along, and the winner is the one who comes up with the
most humorous verses, thus making the other one look foolish.
16. He was the
same Chao Khun Upali who later became a senior administrative monk and a
renowned Buddhist scholar. He was the “mentor” whom Acariya Mun always
sought out when he traveled to Bangkok. As a youth his name was “Jan”. (see
Note #21, page 474)
17. By then it was nighttime, and the local people were
instinctively reluctant to walk long distances alone at night for fear of
tigers and ghosts.
18. The Vessantara Jataka is one of the more popular of
the Jataka tales, which recount stories of the previous births of the
Buddha. In this Jataka, Sakka, in the guise of an old brahmin, asked Lord
Vessantara for that which was most precious to him, his wife, in order to
test his joyful generosity.
19. Metta appamanna brahmavihara is the
spiritual practice of focusing the mind to “dwell in a state of boundless
loving kindness”.
20. A stupa (cetiya) is a dome-shaped monument that
usually houses the remains of a revered Buddhist monk; though some are built
by the Buddhist faithful to act as memorial shrines.
21. Traditional
Buddhist meditation contains two different but complementary aspects,
namely, calm (samatha) and insight (vipassana), which are suited to the
development of deep states of concentration (samadhi) and wisdom (panna)
respectively. The Arahant, having already developed meditative calm and
insight to perfection, uses them as a means of living at ease in the sensory
world (sukhavihara-dhamma) until he passes away.
22. Literally, the vimutti-citta.
23. There is virtually unanimous agreement in Thailand that
the author, Acariya Maha Boowa, is one of those auspicious monks. There is
debate as to who the other one might be.
24. This is a reference to the Duddubha Jataka (No.322) in which a rabbit in the forest, having heard a
loud thud caused by a fruit striking a palm leaf, imagined that the sky was
collapsing and ran panic-stricken, spreading this false news to the other
animals. Those animals in turn stampeded, thus placing themselves in great
danger by believing in unfounded rumors instead of trying to find out the
truth for themselves.
25. Literally, vatta-dukkha.
26. For Paccekabuddha see
Note #19, page 474.
27. Nagas are a special class of nonhuman beings
comprising all kinds of serpents. Included in this category are snakes,
deities associated with bodies of water, and spirits of earth and the realm
beneath it. As such, nagas represent the vital potential of falling rain and
flowing water. They are a class of beings whose primary role is that of
protector and benefactor, though, like all beings with kilesas, they may be
temperamental, as the following story illustrates. It is said that nagas can
change their form at will. In the ancient texts there are many stories of
nagas presenting themselves in human guise. Nagas were known to have great
respect for the Buddha and his disciples.
28. Acariya Mun explained that the
naga had sprayed those monks with its venom, thus causing various unpleasant
symptoms to arise until they could no longer bear the discomfort and fled.
29. Anupadisesa-nibbana, meaning “Nibbana without any remaining physical or
mental components of personality (i. e. the 5 khandhas)”, is the total
Nibbana of the Arahant after he has passed away.
30. Lion’s posture: The
Buddha slept on his right side with his right hand under his head, his legs
flush, and one foot slightly overlapping the other. When he lay down for the
final time to enter Parinibbana, he assumed the same “lion’s posture”.
31. Maha
is a Pali word meaning “great”. In Thailand, it is an honorary title given
to a monk who has earned a degree in Pali studies, as the monk in question
had done.
32. The kammatthana referred to here are the five most visible parts
of the human body – hair of the head, hair of the body, nails, teeth and
skin – which are recommended to a newly-ordained monk, by his preceptor, as
essential objects of meditation.
33. Paracittavijja, also known as ceto-pariya-nana, is knowledge of the
hearts and minds of others, in other words, thought-reading and telepathy.
34. This is a reference to the ancient Thai art of magic, which uses tattoos
and incantations to prevent bullets, swords, and knives from penetrating a
person’s body.
35. Visakha is the
ancient name for the sixth lunar month, which occurs in May. According to
tradition, the Buddha’s birth, Enlightenment, and Parinibbana each took
place on the full-moon night in the month of Visakha. Visakha Puja (or Vesak)
is a festival day commemorating these events that is celebrated annually
throughout the world of Theravada Buddhism.
5. Unusual Questions,
Enlightening Answers
1. The elder in question was the Venerable Chao Khun
Upali. (see Note #21, page 474)
2. “Oneself is one’s own refuge” (attahi
attano natho) is taken from Dhammapada verse 160: Oneself is one’s own
refuge, For who else could one’s refuge be? Having trained oneself well, One
obtains a refuge hard to gain.
3. Pubbenivasa. Literally, one’s previous
state of existence (in a former life).
4. That is, concentration, wisdom,
absolute freedom, and perfect realization of absolute freedom.
5. The Four
Roads to Spiritual Power (iddhipada) are: intention (chanda), effort
(viriya), contemplation (citta), and analysis (vimamsa).
6. The term savakasangha refers to the ariyasangha and denotes all of those followers of
the Buddha who have attained at least Stream-entry (Sotapanna), the first of
the transcendent Noble Paths (Ariya-magga). Such individuals are sure to
“practice well (supatipanno), straightly (uju), rightly (naya), and properly
(samici)”.
7. Acariya Mun died in November of the year 2492 of the Buddhist
Era, approximately twenty years before this biography was written.
8. The Bodhi Tree, or Tree of Awakening, was the tree under which the Buddha was
seated when he attained Enlightenment. It was an Indian pipal tree (ficus
religiosa).
9. All of these acariyas have now passed away.
10. Stream-enterer (Sotapanna), Once-returner (Sakadagami), and Non-returner
(Anagami): the first three stages of the Noble Path to Nibbana, which
culminate in the fourth or Arahant stage.
6. The Final Years
1. When Acariya
Mun’s biography was written, only three photographs of him were known to
exist. In the intervening years, several more photographs were discovered,
bringing to nine the number of pictures of Acariya Mun now in circulation.
Most of them are reproduced in this book.
2. This is said with tongue in
cheek, since in the Thai system of Buddhist scholarship the ninth grade of
Pali studies is the highest level of achievement.
3. The Patimokkha is the
basic code of monastic discipline. It comprises 227 rules of conduct and is
usually recited rule by rule before an assembly of monks every fortnight.
4. Ti-lakkhana are the three fundamental characteristics inherent in all
conditioned phenomena, that is, they are inherently impermanent and unstable
(anicca), bound up with pain and suffering (dukkha), and devoid of anything
which can be identified as “self” (anatta).
5. Ragatanha (see Note #19, page
477)
6. That is, the Four Foundations of Mindfulness or Satipatthana: rupa
(body), vedana (feelings), citta (mental states), and dhamma (mental
phenomena).
7. Kho nu haso kim anando (“why all this laughter, why all the
joy”) is taken from Dhammapada verse 146: Why all this laughter, why all the
joy, When the world is always burning? Since you are shrouded in darkness,
Why not seek the light?
8. The suddhavasa, or Pure Abodes, are the five
highest realms of the brahma world. After death, an Anagami will be reborn
in one of the Pure Abodes, there to attain Nibbana, and thus never to return
to this world again.
9. Appana samadhi, or “full absorption”, is a state
into which the citta ‘converges’, or ‘drops’, once it has become fully
integrated with the object of meditation. Upon reaching the appana or base
level of samadhi, the meditation object and awareness of body, mind, and
environment all disappear. (see Note #34, page 480)
10. Acariya Mun was
diagnosed as having pulmonary tuberculosis. He died on November 10, 1949.
11. Ovada Patimokkha
12. Literally, sakyaputta, which means “son of the
Sakyan”, the Buddha having been a native of the Sakyan Republic. Sakyaputta
is an epithet for Buddhist monks.
13. The distance they walked from Ban Nong
Pheu to Ban Phu was approximately 12 miles.
14. The date of Acariya Mun’s
cremation was January 31, 1950.
15. Once the body of a revered monk has been
cremated, the charred pieces of bone that survive the fire are collected.
The extreme heat of the fire usually causes the larger bone segments to
disintegrate and break up, leaving many small, often porous, fragments. Such
bone fragments, usually burned to an ashen white color by the fire, are kept
and treasured as ‘relics’ by the Buddhist faithful. 16. Amatadhamma means
“the Deathless Dhamma” and is a synonym for Nibbana, which is the final
liberation from the cycle of rebirths, and therefore also freedom from
ever-repeated deaths.
7. The Legacy
1. The bodily relics (sarira-dhatu) left
behind after death by an Arahant are one of the ineffable mysteries of the
mind’s pure essence, a phenomena so miraculous that it appears to transcend
the laws of modern science. Due to the extreme heat of the fire, bone
fragments collected after an Arahant’s cremation are usually porous in
nature. Kept with great reverence and venerated by the faithful, over a
period of years – or sometimes even months – the physical elements in each
piece of bone somehow amalgamate into dense, hard, crystalline pebbles of
various hues of translucency and opacity. (see color photo at the beginning
of this book) As Acariya Maha Boowa explains it, this transformation from
bone to relic is a result of the cleansing effect that the pure citta of the
Arahant has on his body elements. Such relics are cherished as rare gems by
the Buddhist faithful. Having a supernatural, spiritual potency, they bless
those who possess them with good fortune, even seeming miracles, in direct
proportion to the strength of faith and virtue which their owners maintain
in their hearts.
2. Dhammabhisamaya means “full comprehension of Dhamma”.
3. In his old age, Acariya Mun smoked four cigarettes each day. He smoked
one after his morning meal, one in the early afternoon, one at about 5 p.m.,
and a final one at about 8 p.m. He preferred to smoke Cock Brand cigarettes,
which were the ones purchased for him on that occasion.
4. Acariya Chob
Thanasamo (1902-1995). Born in the northeastern province of Loei, Acariya
Chob left home at the age of 15 to follow a dhutanga monk on his wanderings.
Ordained initially as a novice and later as a monk, he first met Acariya Mun
in 1928 in Nakhon Phanom province. Acariya Chob mostly lived a very
reclusive life in inaccessible locations where he had many memorable
encounters with wild animals and various classes of nonhuman beings.
5. Burma shares a long common border with Thailand.
6. Either a deva
assuming the bodily form of a tiger, or possibly, a deva using its superior
psychic power to mesmerize a real, flesh-and-blood tiger to make it behave
in a docile manner.
7. At that time Thailand was effectively under the control of the Japanese
Imperial Army, which had established a puppet regime in the country.
8. Literally, upadana.
9. For a related discussion of the
practice of Dhamma (patipatti) as opposed to theoretical knowledge of Dhamma
obtained through reading, study, and learning (pariyatti), see Note #3, page
481 (see pdf version).
10. The Buddha’s pacchima ovada was the “final instruction” he imparted
to his disciples just prior to his Parinibbana. He declared to them: “All
conditioned phenomena are subject to disintegration. Strive diligently to
attain the goal.” (Vayadhamma sankhara appamadena sampadetha)
11. “In this
teaching, the Buddha’s “final instructions”, how should we understand the
word sankhara? What kind of phenomena does it refer to? We could take it as
referring to external phenomena, or internal phenomena, and we wouldn’t be
wrong in either case. But at that moment, we can be fairly certain that his
final instructions at that final hour were for practicing monks with high
levels of spiritual attainment, from Arahant on down. So I would think that
the main point the Buddha was emphasizing then was the internal, mental
phenomena which form thoughts in the mind and so disrupt the mind at all
times. He taught that the arising and ceasing of these mental phenomena
should be investigated with diligence – in other words, they should be
constantly investigated using mindfulness and wisdom. These phenomena
encompass the entire cosmos! “We could, if we wanted, interpret the word
sankhara to mean external phenomena – trees, mountains, animals, people –
but that would not be consistent with the spiritual level of the monks
gathered there. Nor would it be keeping with the occasion: the Buddha’s last
moments before his Parinibbana when he gave this exhortation to the Sangha –
the ultimate teaching at his final hour. “Thus the Buddha’s final
exhortation concerning conditioned phenomena, given as he was preparing to
enter Parinibbana, must refer to those phenomena which arise exclusively
within the heart. Once we have clearly understood these inner phenomena, how
could we help but understand their basis, what they arise from? For to do
that we must penetrate into the well-spring of the cycle of rebirth – the
avijja-citta. This is the way we discover the crucial point. Those disciples
of the Buddha who had already reached that level had to know this. Those who
were approaching it in stages, but had yet to fully realize it, still knew
this clearly because they were already investigating the matter. Thus the
Buddha’s final instructions to them, which were given in the middle of such
a momentous event.” – comments by Acariya Maha Boowa
12. Sa-upadisesa-nibbana,
meaning “Nibbana with the physical and mental components of personality (i.
e., the 5 khandhas ) still remaining”, is the Nibbana experienced by the
Arahant during his lifetime.
Glossary

acariya: Teacher, mentor; also used as a term of respect when referring to a
senior monk. When capitalized, Acariya is the respectful title given to a
teacher by his disciples, as in Acariya Mun and Acariya Sao.
akaliko:
Timeless, not conditioned by time or season; existing beyond time and space.
Akaliko is a traditional epithet for Dhamma.
Anagami: Non-returner. An
Anagami is a person who has abandoned the five lower fetters that bind the
mind to the cycle of rebirth, and who after death will appear in one of the
worlds called the Pure Abodes, to eventually attain Nibbana and thus never
again to return to this world.
anatta: Not-self; the truth that all
phenomena are devoid of anything that can be identified as “self”. This
means that none of the physical and mental components of personality (the 5 khandhas ) make up an entity, either individual or collective, nor can a
self-entity be found anywhere within the heart (citta). Therefore, what is
experienced as being an abiding self is no more than a phantom personality
born of ignorance and delusion – inherently transient, unstable, and bound
up with suffering.
anicca: The unstable, impermanent, transient nature of
all phenomena in all realms of existence. In other words, all things arise
and cease, are subject to change, and will become otherwise, making them all
inherently unsatisfactory and bound to cause suffering.
appana:
Full-absorption samadhi. In appana samadhi the citta completely ‘converges’
to the very base of samadhi. Perceptions of body and mind totally disappear
from awareness at that time, leaving only the essential “knowing nature” of
the citta alone on its own. Clear, bright, and expansive, the citta simply
“knows”. There is no object, no duality, just “knowing”. The previous sense
of dividedness is replaced by a wholly unified mental state, and a feeling
of pure and harmonious being that is so wondrous as to be indescribable.
This is the advanced stage of samadhi.
Arahant: A “fully enlightened one” or
“pure one”. A person who, by following the Buddha’s Path to Freedom, has
totally eradicated his mental defilements (kilesas) and thus possesses the
certainty that all traces of ignorance and delusion have been conclusively
destroyed, never to arise in his heart again in the future. Having
completely severed the fetters that once bound him to the cycle of repeated
birth and death, he is no longer destined for future rebirth. Thus, the
Arahant is the individual who has attained Nibbana; and though the physical
and mental components of personality (khandhas) remain intact until his
death, his citta – being free of all defiling elements whatsoever – is
absolutely pure. At death, body and mind disintegrate, leaving only the
unconditioned, absolutely pure nature of the citta – which is wholly beyond
conventional description.
avijja: Fundamental ignorance. This ignorance is
the central factor in the delusion about the true nature of oneself and
therefore the essential factor binding living beings to the cycle of
rebirth. Avijja exists entirely within the citta (the one who knows). Being
an integral part of the citta’s conscious perspective since time-without
beginning, it has usurped the citta’s “knowing nature” and distorted its
intrinsic quality of simply “knowing” by creating the false duality of the
“knower” and the “known”. From this individual viewpoint spring right and
wrong, good and evil, heaven and hell, and the whole mass of suffering that
comprises the world of samsara. Thus avijja is the seed of being and birth,
the very nucleus of all existence. It is also the well-spring from which all
other mental defilements arise.
Far from appearing dark and menacing, avijja
is the epitome of all the mental and spiritual virtues that living beings
hold in the very highest esteem. This is its beguiling allure, the reason
why living beings cannot see it for what it actually is – the great lord and
master of birth and death. Appearing at first to be the ultimate in virtue
and happiness, the citta’s true abiding sanctuary, when wisdom finally
penetrates to its core and exposes its fundamental deception, avijja
promptly dissipates, revealing the pure, unblemished citta, the true Supreme
Happiness, Nibbana.
bhikkhu: A Buddhist monk; a male member of the Buddhist
Sangha who has gone forth into homelessness and received the higher
ordination. In Theravada countries today, bhikkhus form the nucleus of the
Buddhist community. Living entirely off donations of food and other basic
requisites, their monastic lifestyle is based on the principles of poverty,
celibacy, virtue, and meditation.
bodhi: Awakening; enlightenment;
transcendent wisdom. Bodhi is equated with perfection of insight into the
Four Noble Truths and the realization of Nibbana, the cessation of all
suffering.
brahma (brahma): Celestial beings who inhabit the first three
realms of the Fine Material World. Beings reborn into those sublime realms
are said to have some experience with the meditative absorptions (jhana).
Consequently, brahmas have extremely refined bodies composed of pure light
and experience extremely refined degrees of mental pleasure. When the good
kamma that sent them to those realms is finally exhausted, these beings pass
away and are reborn again somewhere else, in a realm of existence suitable
to their remaining kamma.
Buddhasasana: The Teachings of the Lord Buddha
and, by extension, the Buddhist religion in general (see sasana).
buddho:
Supremely enlightened. A traditional epithet for the Buddha, buddho is a
preparatory meditation-word (parikamma) that is repeated mentally while
reflecting on the Buddha’s special qualities. In its simplest form, one
focuses attention exclusively on the repetition of “buddho”, continuously
thinking the word “buddho” while in meditation. One should simply be aware
of each repetition of “buddho, buddho, buddho” to the exclusion of all else.
Once it becomes continuous, this simple repetition will produce results of
peace and calm in the heart.
citta: The citta is the mind’s essential
knowing nature, the fundamental quality of knowing that underlies all
sentient existence. When associated with a physical body, it is referred to
as “mind” or “heart”. Being corrupted by the defiling influence of
fundamental ignorance (avijja), its currents “flow out” to manifest as
feelings (vedana), memory (sanna), thoughts (sankhara), and consciousness (vinnana),
thus embroiling the citta in a web of self-deception. It is deceived about
its own true nature. The true nature of the citta is that it simply “knows”.
There is no subject, no object, no duality; it simply knows. The citta does
not arise or pass away; it is never born and never dies. Normally, the
“knowing nature” of the citta is timeless, boundless, and radiant, but this
true nature is obscured by the defilements (kilesa) within it. Through the
power of fundamental ignorance, a focal point of the “knower” is created
from which that knowing nature views the world outside. The establishment of
that false center creates a “self” from whose perspective consciousness
flows out to perceive the duality of the “knower” and the “known”. Thus the
citta becomes entangled with things that are born, become ill, grow old, and
die, and therefore, deeply involved it in a whole mass of suffering. In this
book the citta is often referred to as the heart; the two are synonymous.
The heart forms the core within the body. It is the center, the substance,
the primary essence within the body. It is the basic foundation. Conditions
that arise from the citta, such as thoughts, arise there. Goodness, evil,
happiness, and suffering all come together in the heart. Samadhi meditation
provides confirmation of the heart’s significance. When the citta gathers
all of its outflowing currents into one point, the calm, still state of
samadhi arises. From the meditator’s perspective, that experience is
centered in the middle of the chest. The stillness, the brightness, and the
awareness of this experience appear to emanate prominently from the region
of the heart. The knowing nature of the citta is pronounced right there.
Thus, the true seat of consciousness is in the heart; and it is wise,
therefore, to avoid thinking of the “mind” as essentially cerebral and
located in the head. There is a strong tendency to think that consciousness
results purely from complex interactions within the human brain, and that
when the brain dies, consciousness ceases. This mechanistic view is wholly
mistaken. While there is evidence that certain parts of the brain can be
identified with certain mental functions, that does not mean that the brain
produces consciousness. In essence, the brain is a complex processing organ.
It receives and processes incoming data impulses that inform about feelings,
memory, thoughts, and consciousness, but it does not generate these mental
functions; nor does it generate conscious awareness. That is entirely the
province of the citta. (for a more detailed discussion see Appendix II, page
461)
‘converge’: When the citta gathers all of its outflowing currents into
one point, this is known as the citta ‘converging’. The practice of samadhi
meditation is a method for concentrating all of these diverse currents into
one focal point, thus centering the citta into a condition of complete
stillness and calm.
deva: Literally, “shining one”; an inhabitant of one of
the celestial realms of sensual bliss, which are located immediately above
the human realm. With bodies composed entirely of ethereal light, devas
exist in a spiritual dimension that lies beyond the range of normal sense
faculties. These beings are usually associated with such qualities as
splendor, mobility, beauty, goodness, and radiance. The upper and lower
celestial devas referred to by Acariya Mun are the brahmas and the upper
Sensual World devas respectively. On a still lower level are the terrestrial
devas who, having an affinity for the earth, inhabit a realm of existence
located just above the human realm and just below the celestial realms.
devaraja: King of the devas. This is a reference to Sakka, a preeminent
follower of the Buddha who presides over the Tavatimsa celestial realm.
Dhamma (skt. Dharma): Supreme Truth; the basic principles of that Truth;
transcendent spiritual qualities; the Buddha’s Teaching. First and foremost,
Dhamma is the quintessential nature of perfect harmony existing in and of
itself, independent of all phenomena, yet permeating every aspect of
sentient existence. Dhamma is the right natural order of things that forms
the underlying basis for all existence, though it is not dependent on or
conditioned by any form of existence. Ultimately, Dhamma is the sum of those
transcendent qualities, such as detachment, loving kindness and wisdom, the
spiritual perfection of which brings the mind into harmony with the Supreme
Truth. By further extension, Dhamma encompasses the basic principles that
are the essence of the Buddha’s Teaching, including the patterns of behavior
that should be practiced so as to harmonize oneself with the right natural
order of things.
dhamma: Elemental factors of experience; the intrinsic essence of something;
mental phenomena.
dhutanga: Ascetic practices. The
dhutangas are a set of 13 specialized ascetic practices that Buddhist monks
voluntarily undertake. Their purpose in each case is to counteract specific
mental defilements (kilesas). They are: 1) Wearing only robes made from
discarded cloth; 2) Wearing only the three principle robes and no others; 3)
Going on almsround everyday without fail; 4) Not omitting any house on
almsround; 5) Eating only one meal per day; 6) Eating all food directly from
the alms bowl; 7) Refusing to accept food offered after the almsround; 8)
Living in the forest; 9) Dwelling at the foot of a tree; 10) Living in the
open – not at the foot of a tree or under a roof; 11) Living in a cemetery;
12) Being satisfied with whichever bed or resting place is available; 13)
The sitter’s practice; that is to say, sitting, standing or walking, but
never lying down.
dukkha: Suffering, pain, discontent; the unsatisfactory
nature of all phenomena. Dukkha is the condition of fundamental discontent
that is inherent within the very nature of all sentient existence.
Essentially, it is the underlying sense of dissatisfaction that ultimately
undermines even the most pleasant experiences, for everything in the
phenomenal world is subject to change and therefore unreliable. Thus, all of samsaric existence is characterized by dukkha.
garuda: A special class of
nonhuman beings characterized by features that appear part bird and part
human. Garudas are the archenemies of all classes of serpents, especially
nagas.
kamma (skt. karma): One’s intentional actions of body, speech, and
mind that result in birth and future existence. These actions carry with
them a specific moral content – good, bad, or neutral – and leave in the
ongoing continuum of consciousness a potential to engender corresponding
results in the future. Buddhism holds that all unenlightened beings are
bound to be born, live, die, and be reborn again and again in a variety of
worlds and circumstances, a perpetual cycle of existence that is driven by
the nature of their kamma and the inevitable manifestation of its
consequences.
kammatthana: Literally, “basis of work”, kammatthana refers to
the “occupation” of a practicing Buddhist monk: namely, the contemplation of
certain meditation themes that are conducive to uprooting the defiling
forces of greed, hatred, and delusion from his mind. In the ordination
procedure, a new monk is taught the 5 basic kammatthana that lay the
groundwork for contemplation of the body: hair of the head, hair of the
body, nails, teeth, and skin. By extension, kammatthana includes all 40 of
the classical Buddhist meditation subjects. The term kammatthana is most
often used to identify the particular Thai forest tradition and lineage that
was founded by Acariya Sao and Acariya Mun.
khandha: Literally, “group” or
“aggregate”. In the plural, khandhas refer to the five physical and mental
components of personality (body, feelings, memory, thoughts, consciousness)
and to sensory experience in general (sights, sounds, smells, tastes,
tactile sensations). Also known as “aggregates of attachment” because they
are the objects of a craving for personal existence, they are, in fact,
simply classes of natural phenomena that continuously arise and cease and
are devoid of any enduring self-identity whatsoever.
kilesa: Mental
defilement. Kilesa are negative psychological and emotional forces existing
within the hearts and minds of all living beings. These defilements are of
three basic types: greed, hatred, and delusion. All of them are degenerate
pollutants that contaminate the way people think, speak and act, and thus
corrupt from within the very intention and purpose of their existence,
binding them (through the inevitable consequences of their actions) ever
more firmly to the perpetual cycle of rebirth. Their manifestations are many
and varied. They include passion, jealousy, envy, conceit, vanity, pride,
stinginess, arrogance, anger, resentment, etc., plus all sorts of more
subtle variations that invariably produce the unwholesome and harmful states
of mind which are responsible for so much human misery. These various
kilesa-driven mental states interact and combine to create patterns of
conduct that perpetuate people’s suffering and give rise to all of the
world’s disharmony.
magga, phala, and Nibbana: The Transcendent Paths, their
Fruition, and Nibbana. As used by Acariya Mun, the expression magga, phala,
and Nibbana refers to the transcendent nature of the Buddhist path of
practice and its primary aim of leading one, stage by stage, through
successive levels of spiritual liberation until one ultimately reaches the
absolute freedom of Nibbana.
mahasati and mahapanna: Supreme-mindfulness and
supreme-wisdom. Mindfulness (sati) is the faculty of being keenly attentive
to whatever arises within one’s field of awareness. Wisdom (panna) is the
faculty of intuitive insight that probes, examines, and analyzes the nature
of phenomena as mindfulness becomes aware of them. Supreme-mindfulness and
supreme-wisdom are these two faculties developed to an advanced level of
proficiency characterized by heightened alertness, quickness, and agility,
combined with incisive powers of reasoning. Constantly working in unison,
without a moment’s lapse in concentration, mahasati and mahapanna are said
to be capable of automatically tracking and penetrating to the truth of all
phenomena as they arise and cease. Being the only mental faculties capable
of investigating the increasingly more subtle defilements at the highest
stage of the Transcendent Path (arahattamagga), their development is a
prerequisite for reaching this level of practice and thus for attaining the
ultimate goal, Nibbana.
mindfulness (sati): Attentiveness; the ability to
keep one’s attention deliberately fixed on whatever one chooses to observe.
In all forms of meditation, this means an uninterrupted span of attention
focused directly on the chosen object of meditation or on the unfolding
process of occurring phenomena that is the subject of investigation.
Mindfulness is the one faculty that’s essential to every type of meditation.
Without it the mind will invariably falter and fail to achieve its
objectives.
naga: A special class of nonhuman beings comprising all kinds of
serpents. Nagas include snakes, deities associated with bodies of water, and
spirits of the earth and the realm beneath it. As such, they represent the
vital potential of falling rain and flowing water. Nagas are a class of
beings whose primary role is that of protector and benefactor. They are said
to be able to change their formal appearance at will. In the ancient texts
there are many stories of nagas presenting themselves in human guise. Nagas
were known to have great respect for the Buddha and his disciples.
nama:
Mental phenomena. Nama refers to the mental components of personality (namakhandha),
which include feelings, memory, thoughts, and consciousness.
Nibbana (skt.
Nirvana): Literally meaning “extinguished”, Nibbana is compared to a lamp or
a fire going out. That is to say, the threefold fire of greed, hatred and
delusion goes out in the heart due to lack of fuel. The extinguishing of
this fire frees the mind from everything that binds it to the cycle of
rebirth and the suffering experienced therein. Nibbana is Absolute Freedom,
the Supreme Happiness. As such, it is the ultimate goal of the Buddhist
training. It is said to be Unborn, Deathless, and Unconditioned, but being
totally detached from all traces of conventional reality, a description of
what Nibbana is, or is not, lies wholly beyond the range of conventional
figures of speech.
nimitta: Mental image; vision. A samadhi nimitta is an
image that arises spontaneously during the course of meditation. Nimittas
may take the form of extrasensory perceptions, visualizations, symbolic
representations of reality, or prophetic dreams.
Pali: An ancient variant of
Sanskrit, Pali is the literary language of the early Buddhists and the
language in which the texts of the original Buddhist Canon are preserved.
Most of the terms that have been italicized in this book are Pali words.
panna: wisdom; intuitive insight. (see wisdom)
Parinibbana: Total Nibbana.
That is to say, the total extinction of the physical and mental components
of personality (the 5 khandhas ), and with their disintegration the ending
of all traces of existence in the phenomenal world and thus total release
from the misery of samsara. Parinibbana is the Nibbana that occurs at the
death of an Arahant. It is most frequently used to refer to the passing away
of the Lord Buddha.
paticcasamuppada: Dependent Origination.
Paticcasamuppada is a concise statement of how fundamental ignorance
(avijja) conditions the rise of the whole cycle of repeated existence.
Patimokkha: The Buddhist monk’s basic code of discipline. It comprises 227
rules of conduct and is usually recited rule by rule before an assembly of
monks once every fortnight.
ragatanha: Sexual desire; lust. Predicated on a
belief that the body is oneself and that happiness can be achieved for
oneself through bodily sensations, ragatanha is the desire, even craving, to
seek pleasure and self-gratification by means of the physical body. With
this mental defilement as the driving force, people attempt to overcome
discontent and find fulfillment using physical stimulation as the primary
means. If such craving is allowed a free rein, it easily becomes a
preoccupation that gives rise to even more craving, leaving the heart
forever hungry and dissatisfied. rainy season retreat (vassa): The annual
three-month-long meditation retreat observed by Buddhist monks in the
Theravadin tradition. The retreat is always held during the Asian monsoon
season and stretches from the full moon day of July to the full moon day of
October. In the dhutanga forest tradition of Acariya Mun, the retreat
accentuates a lifestyle of renunciation, strict ascetic practices, and
intensive meditation.
rupa: The body, and physical phenomena in general.
When opposed to nama (mental phenomena), rupa is the strictly physical
component of personality.
saddha: Faith; conviction. Faith in the Buddha, or
one’s teacher, that gives one the confidence and willingness to put his
teachings into practice. A reasoned faith, rooted in understanding, saddha
gains strength with each successive attainment along the path of Dhamma.
sadhu: “It is well.” Commonly used in Buddhist circles, sadhu is an
exclamation expressing appreciation, assent, or approval.
Sakka: Known as
“king of devas”, Sakka is a preeminent follower of the Buddha who presides
over the Tavatimsa heavenly realm.
samadhi: Meditative calm and
concentration. Samadhi is experienced by practicing various meditation
techniques that are designed to calm the mind’s emotional turbulence and
mental distraction by fixing it firmly on a single object of attention and
mindfully holding it there until the mind becomes fully absorbed in that
single preoccupation to the exclusion of everything else, and thus wholly
integrated within a simple, unified state of awareness. By concentrating
one’s attention on just one object, distracting thoughts and currents of the
mind that would normally flow out into the sensory environment are gradually
gathered into one inner point of focus, one still, calm, concentrated state
called samadhi. This does not mean that the mind is striving to concentrate
on one point (an outward focus), but rather that by assiduously following
the method with mindful attention, the mind naturally, on its own accord,
converges into a unified state of awareness. The resulting experience is a
feeling of pure and harmonious being that is so wondrous as to be
indescribable. Upon withdrawing from samadhi, this calm, concentrated mental
focus then serves as a basis for successfully pursuing investigative
techniques to develop wisdom and gain insight into the true nature of all
phenomena. Samadhi has many levels and classifications. For one such
classification see Note #34, page 480. ( see pdf version)
samana: A contemplative who abandons
the conventional obligations of social life in order to follow a life of
spiritual striving. At the time of the Buddha, a samana was considered to
embody the ideal of the wandering ascetic.
samsara: The round of rebirth
without beginning, in which all living beings revolve. Samsara is the name
given to the continuous process of being born, getting sick, growing old,
and dying – an uninterrupted succession of births, deaths, and rebirths. It
encompasses the entire universe of sentient existence, from the grossest
beings to the most refined, from the highest realms of the Immaterial World
to the lowest realms of hell. All existence within this cycle is subject to
change, inherently unstable, and burdened with pain and suffering, with each
state of existence being determined by a being’s intentional actions of
body, speech, and mind (kamma). The attainment of Nibbana marks the complete
transcendence of the world of samsara.
Sangha: The community of the Buddha’s
disciples. On the conventional level, this means the Buddhist monastic
order. On the ideal level, it refers to those of the Buddha’s followers,
whether lay or ordained, who have attained at least the first of the four
Transcendent Paths culminating in Arahantship.
sankhara: As a general term,
sankhara refers to all forces that form or condition things in the
phenomenal world of mind and matter, and to those formed or conditioned
phenomena that result. As the fourth component of personality (sankhara
khandha) it refers to thought and imagination; that is, the thoughts that
constantly form in the mind and conceptualize about one’s personal
perceptions. Sankhara creates these ideas and then hands them on to sanna,
which interprets and elaborates on them, making assumptions about their
significance.
sanna: Memory; recognition of physical and mental phenomena as
they arise. As the third component of personality, sanna khandha is
associated with the function of memory; for instance, recognition,
association, and interpretation. Sanna both recognizes the known and gives
meaning and significance to all of one’s personal perceptions. Through
recollection of past experience, the function of memory gives things
specific meanings and then falls for its own interpretation of them, causing
one to become either sad or glad about what one perceives.
sasana: The
teaching of the Buddha and, by extension, the Buddhist religion in general.
The Buddhist spiritual path is inevitably a multidimensional one where all
legitimate wholesome practices, from generosity to virtuous conduct to
transcendent meditation, are essential aspects of the way leading toward the
ultimate goal, the cessation of suffering. The term sasana usually refers to
this aggregate of the Buddha’s teaching, its practices, and its realization.
savaka: A direct disciple of the Lord Buddha who hears the Buddha’s teaching
and declares him to be his teacher.
sugato: “Well-gone” or “gone to a good
destination”; a traditional epithet for the Buddha.
sutta: A discourse or
sermon spoken by the Buddha. After the Buddha’s death, the suttas he
delivered to his disciples were passed down in the Pali language according
to a well-established oral tradition. They were finally committed to written
form in Sri Lanka around 100 BCE and form the basis for the Buddha’s
teachings that we have today.
Tathagata: “One thus gone.” One of the
epithets a Buddha uses when referring to himself.
Tavatimsa: “The
Thirty-three.” A realm of heavenly beings (devas) in the Sensuous World
where Sakka is the presiding deity.
terrestrial devas: A special class of
nonhuman beings who inhabit a realm of sensuous existence immediately above
the human realm. Also known as rukkha or bhumma devas because of their
natural affinity with the earth, these beings normally “inhabit” the
uppermost foliage of large trees, a group or “family” of them often living
together in a cluster in one tree. Birth in this realm takes place as a
consequence of certain kinds of wholesome, meritorious actions, combined
with a strong attachment to the earth plane. It seems that the majority of
devas who visited Acariya Mun during his career as a wandering monk were
from the terrestrial realm, for remote wilderness areas have always been
their preferred habitat.
Theravada: “Doctrine of the Elders”. Handed down to
us in the Pali language, it is the oldest form of the Buddha’s teachings.
Theravada is the only one of the early schools of Buddhism to have survived
into the present. It is currently the dominant form of Buddhism in Thailand,
Sri Lanka, and Burma.
three worlds of existence: The Sensuous World (Kama-loka),
The Fine Material World (Rupa-loka), and the Immaterial World (Arupa-loka),
which together comprise the entire universe of sentient existence. (for a
graphic illustration of Buddhist cosmology see The Thirty-One Planes of
Existence at www.accesstoinsight.org)
vimutti: Absolute Freedom, that is,
freedom from the fabrications and conventions of the mind. Vimutti is a
synonym for Nibbana.
vinnana: Consciousness; simple cognizance. As the fifth
component of personality, vinnana khandha simply registers sense data,
feelings, and mental impressions as they occur. For instance, when visual
images make contact with the eye, or when thoughts occur in the mind,
consciousness of them arises simultaneously. When that object subsequently
ceases, so too does the consciousness that took note of it.
vipassana: Clear
intuitive insight. Aided by a clear, quiet state of meditative calm,
vipassana is spontaneous insight into physical and mental phenomena, as they
arise and cease, that sees them for what they really are: inherently
impermanent and unstable, bound up with pain and suffering, and devoid of
anything that can be identified as “self”.
visuddhi: Perfect purity of mind.
The pure nature of a mind that has completely transcended all mental
defilements. That is, the state of Absolute Purity experienced by an
Arahant.
wisdom (panna): The term wisdom denotes an active, incisive
application of the principles of cause and effect for the purpose of
probing, examining, and analyzing physical and mental phenomena, as they
arise and cease, so as to see them for what they really are: inherently
impermanent and unstable, bound up with pain and suffering, and devoid of
anything that can be identified as “self”. As it is used in Buddhism, wisdom
implies much more than just sound judgement. Wisdom is a faculty that
searches, probes, compares, and investigates the workings of body and mind
in light of the fundamental principles of truth in order to gain a decisive
advantage over the defiling elements (kilesas) that obscure their true
nature and the true nature of the one who knows them. Although inductive
reasoning is initially very much a part of the practice of wisdom, insights
based solely on it are still superficial. As the faculty of wisdom develops
and becomes more introspective, its skills become increasingly more subtle,
while its insights become more intuitive in nature. Only when meditative
insight penetrates deeply can the root causes of the mind’s discontent be
truly exposed, uprooted, and destroyed. In general, wisdom is the proactive
complement to the quiescence of samadhi. Both work together in tandem to
ensure that the task of eradicating the kilesas is accomplished with maximum
efficiency. Both are essential aspects of the path leading to the cessation
of all suffering.
yakkha: Ogres. A special class of powerful nonhuman beings
who often have cruel and murderous temperaments.
About the Translator
Born
Richard E. Byrd, Jr. at Winchester, Virginia in 1948, Bhikkhu Silaratano was
ordained as a Buddhist monk at Bangkok, Thailand in 1977, having already
undergone several years of Buddhist training in India and Sri Lanka. Since
his ordination, he has been resident in Thailand, practicing under the
tutelage of Acariya Maha Boowa.
O THER
BOOKS
BY ÃCARIYA MAHÃ BOOWA FOR FREE DISTRIBUTION:
Patipadã:
The Dhutanga Kammatthãna
Practices of Venerable Acharn Mun
(the companion volume to Ãcariya Mun’s Biography)
Venerable Ãcariya Kow Anãlayo:
A Meditation Master’s Biography
Things As They Are:
A Collection of Talks
on the Training of the Mind
A Life of
Inner Quality:
A Comprehensive Guide to
Buddhist Practice
The Dhamma
Teaching of Ãcariya Mahã Boowa in London
Straight From the Heart:
Talks on the
Practice of Meditation
Forest Dhamma:
A Selection of Talks on Buddhist
Practice
Wisdom Develops Samãdhi
To find out about our books in print, on-line or to be
printed, please contact:
Forest Dhamma Books
Wat Pa Baan Taad
Baan Taad
Ampher Meuang
Udon Thani
41000 Thailand
Email: FDBooks@gmail.com
www.forestdhammabooks.com
|
|

|
|
Source :
http://www.forestdhammabooks.com |
|
|
|
Home |
Links |
Contact
|
Copy Right Issues ©
DhammaTalks.net |